"Bewitched, bothered & bevampyred - 3 in 1 - Mary Jo Putney, MaryJanice Davidson, Susan Grant et a" - читать интересную книгу автора (Putney Mary Jo)
Bewitched, Bothered &…Be-Vampyred… By
www.triskelionpublishing.com Published by Triskelion Publishing www.triskelionpublishing.com
15508 W. Bell Rd. #101, PMB #502, Surprise, AZ 85374 U.S.A. First
e-published by Triskelion Publishing First e-publishing April2005 ISBN 1-933471-00-X Copyright © Mary Jo Putney, MaryJanice Davidson, Vicki Lewis
Thompson, et al…March 2005 All rights reserved. PUBLISHER’S NOTE: This is a work of fiction. Names,
characters places, and incidents are the product of the author’s imagination.
Any resemblance to persons living or dead, business establishments, events or
locales is entirely coincidental. Edited by Terey daly Ramin
& Gail Northman Cover design by Michelle Rouillard For anyone in need of an escape
from harsh reality, a good dose of laughter and a random act of kindness
anywhere, anytime This is for you. Triskelion Publishing is pleased to announce
that 100% of the advances, royalties and digital profits from the sale of this
eBook will be donated directly to the International Red Cross to aid the
victims of international disasters. 100% of the advances and royalties from the
sale of the print and other editions of this work are also earmarked for
donation to the International Red Cross to aid the victims of international
disasters. The Legend of Braugh-Naughton (Or: How Brokenoggin Got its Name) By Jennifer St. Giles Within
the verdant forest boughs Once a man of brawn and valor Renown, the great Braugh Naughton Until he met a maiden so fair But she to another was chained So
hidden in the forest boughs “I’ll fight to the death to save you maid,” At sunrise, they did duel And
when the battle turned its favor To
this day, and forevermore The
wizard’s magic became not his own For The lady fair with the silver hair And
the great Braugh Naughton Who
for his lady love he cries Episode 1.0 Series Premier NAKED CAME THE VAMPYRE By Terese Ramin Episode 1.0 (Premiere) NAKED CAME THE VAMPYRE By Terese Ramin i: Janice Now Entering BROKENOGGIN FALLS
NATIONAL FOREST RESERVE AREA For
Your Own Safety Please Observe The Following: .
• Remain
in your locked vehicle at all times; Do not leave it under any circumstances .
• Keep
windows rolled up & doors closed .
• Keep
hands, fingers, feet, heads and all appendages inside your vehicle without fail
.
• Do
not — Repeat, DO NOT — pick up strangers within or near the reserve; they are
always strange and NEVER harmless .
• Encouraging
the residents is strictly forbidden .
• In
case of emergency — SCREAM! Someone will be right along to investigate the .
• Enjoy
your stay & have a nice day! Janice Thinksalot swept the headlights of
her rebuilt Chevrolet Caprice police cruiser across the wood-burned
sign in a broad arc when she made the shoulder-to-shoulder yoo-ey back into the
confines of her patrol jurisdiction. Michigan’s scenic highway 28 was darker
than usual, she realized, the sky starless despite the clear night. There was also no moon. She grimaced. Boded ill, that. No good
ever came of a fine, cloudless, moonless summer night without stars in
Brokenoggin. You could be sure of it. Fine hairs on preternatural alert, Janice
powered down the Caprice’s front windows and sniffed the air that flowed
through. Pine, spruce, cedar, fir, sand, loam, rich forest decay, moss, wild
turkey… She turned her head quickly, eagerly
after the bird scent, muttered an oath and snapped her attention back where it
belonged. Damn it! She was not out here to dog turkeys no matter how
much the thought made her mouth water and her belly grumble. She was on
Periwinkle Moon Patrol (the literal color of Brokenoggin’s third full moon of
each and every month), and there was a lot of potential mayhem left for the
Falls’ area’s sole town cop slash police chief slash medical examiner slash
sheriff-jailer-forest ranger-state smokey to handle. Not to mention that she was having a
little trouble with her own inner beast lately. She glowered at the black upon black
non-reflection in the inside review mirror. Came of starting to look—and
sometimes feel—fifty-ish, no doubt. Sag-to-the-knees boobs, cottage cheese
thighs, scraggly chicken neck, jaw jowls and all. Damn it. Vanity, thy name be Janice, she thought dryly, rolling her eyes.
Nothing like a long night and a lot of empty blacktop to send a person’s
thoughts down the least attractive inner roads. Speaking of which… She made an abrupt turn onto a narrow
fire road thickly bordered by old growth forest. Gray sand grabbed the
Caprice’s tires, caused its butt-end to slew before the car settled into place,
straddling the scrubby-growth weeds and grasses between the tire tracks. In the darker-than-darkness, Janice
switched off her high beams and gave the suddenly lighter shadows on either
side of her a thorough appraisal. If she remembered correctly, the Lord of the
Forest Trolls (LOF-T, as his royal annoyance was also known) had called a
meeting of all the forest creatures for tonight to see if they could determine
who was throwing trolls into the sunlight and turning them into stone Garden
Gnomes. Maybe— Whump! The sound of something hitting the
Caprice’s roof and bouncing off the light bar startled Janice in a way she
hadn’t had her heart jumped in a very long time. One hand already on the door
handle and the other on the shotgun ever-ready in its rack on the front seat
floor hump, she stamped on the brakes and jammed the cruiser into park with a
free finger even as she hauled the shotgun out of the vehicle with her. For a few moments night bloomed, then… “Yooooooowwwwwl, yaaaa-haaaa!” “What the—?” Reflexively, Janice snapped on the
shotgun’s safety, let it slide through her hands until she could use it like a
fighting staff, and crouched, rising when instinct told her the timing was
perfect to smash the huge, slavering male wolf hurtling down upon her across
the jaw. The blow brought the beast to earth in fine smack-down mode,
whimpering and howling. The darkness shimmered slightly and the
wolf-shifter’s—for such he was—human face formed first. “Hot damn, Janice.”
The rest of his naked human body emerged quickly. “What the hell you tryin’ ta
do, eh? Lighten up, eh? I’m just havin’ a little fun.” “At someone else’s expense, Remo.”
Janice returned the shotgun to its meant-for position and thumbed off
the safety. She stepped up close and prodded her—what was he, maybe seventeen
times removed?—relative in the balls with the twelve gauge’s business end. “I
keep tellin’ ya, mess with me when I’m on the job and it’s your tail—bushy or
human at the time, makes no difference to me.” Remo shrugged, unfazed by her threats or
the shotgun barrel’s location. “It’s Romeo now, ya know, Janice. Romeo
Bighorns. I changed it legally on my centennial. And I think the ladies
around here would miss me sure ‘nuff.” “Privately—” Janice gave the shotgun a
little shove around the soft parts, and Remo-Romeo flinched. “I think there’s
something you’d miss more than they would. Eh, Remo Nohorns?” “Mmghtp gbftohs ghriop,” her
not-removed-far-enough-from-here cousin muttered under his breath. “What was that?” “No wonder you don’t have
any friends, you menopausal old bitch,”
Romeo enunciated clearly, but very, very sotto voce. Janice blinked once, then smiled her
toothiest and most menacing law enforcement I-am-so-sure-you-didn’t-say-that
smile, tipped her head and viewed him sideways, eyebrows lifted. “Again?” “Uh…” The self-named Lothario shuffled
quickly in place. “I said, maybe I better pick up the garden gnome someone
pitched at my head before it bounced off your whoop-whoop bar and get in the
back-a your cruiser and let you drive me over to AnnMarie’s—which, by the way,
is where I was headed before someone tried to kill me—so I can shore up the
door to her skeleton closet before they get out and all manner-more-a hell
breaks loose—” “Janice, Janice!” The radio inside
the Caprice cruiser squawked to panicked life. “You’ve got a
sixty-seven-eighty-two with a possible six-six-six in progress in the
unconsecrated sector of Brokenoggin cemetery grid forty-nine. I repeat
six-seven-eight-two with possible six-six-six in unconsecrated sector
four-niner, Brokenoggin Falls cemetery. This is not a drill. Repeat, no drill.”
“Sixty-seven-eighty-two?
What the…?” numbers.
Then, with maddening calm, Janice dropped the shotgun barrel dirt-ward and went
to reach through the cruiser’s window to retrieve her radio mike. Unhurriedly
she brought it to her mouth and pressed the on button. “Get a grip and say again, Hesther,” she
instructed Brokenoggin’s volunteer dispatcher. At four-foot-three-inches,
Hesther Bellhallow was a petite Medium of largely interesting-repute who felt
it was only smart business on her part to know everyone else’s. How else could
she be expected to properly traverse the spirit world and give them accurate
readings? “It sounded like you called an Apocalypse in the cemetery with
Undead walking. Over.” “Vam-PY-res, Janice,” Hesther gibber-shrieked. “On
unhallowed ground. Walking. Fighting. Stabbing each other with two-by-twos or
four-by-fours or something big and pointy and wooden. The end is coming, I’ve seen
it! If you don’t get back here and do something about it, we’ll all be undead
in our beds and having wild sex by morning.” She stuttered uncertainly to
a stop on the last pronouncement, sounding as though she might be rethinking
the entire this-is-bad-because?…scenario. With a population of only five
hundred and sixty-seven (sometimes), Brokenoggin Falls’ singles scene often
left something to be desired. “There’s no such thing as Vam-pэres,
Hesther,” Janice said reasonably, accenting the ‘Y’ in Pyres exactly as
Hesther had, and making it sound as though the whole “undead thing” had more to
do with funeral pyres than Vlad-the-Impaler or bats or Dracula legends. “We’ve
discussed this. The dead can’t be not. Over.” “Well,” Hesther sobbed, “something isn’t dead that should be,
and it’s walking around with a great big long piece of lumber through it’s
chest right where its heart should be. If that’s not a Vampyre, I don’t know
what isss—” The last word broke off abruptly. There
was the sound of scrambling and clattering, then clattering and scraping—as
though furniture was being dragged across a wooden floor—then Hesther was back,
more hysterical than ever. “It’s coming, Janice. It’s coming right
here. OmiGoddess, what am I going to do? You have to help me, you have
to—Janice?” And then
she screamed. Resigned, Janice dropped the mike. “Oh
shit.” She had time to gesture a thumb at the Caprice and say, “Bring it in for
me, eh, Rom—” before the elements that ruled the atmosphere surrounding
Brokenoggin Falls swirled her up and whisked her to Hesther. When the sign said, “In case of
emergency scream and someone will be right along” it meant literally. 12 It also meant Janice. ii: SETH Scream re-entry was rarely precise and
often painful. Janice was never sure if she’d enter a
scene of chaos and mayhem, wind up flattening the person who’d screamed, or
landing head first at the source of the scream’s cause. All too often she found
herself only half-dressed and ill prepared to deal with the situation—which was
no doubt why she felt like she’d been cursed with the position as town sheriff,
lo, those many moons ago. Literally speaking, she had been cursed—and cursed
but good—by her entire tribe after they’d caught her attempting to free… The Beast of Brokenoggin Falls. Now she was its—and the town’s—guardian,
jailer and ward. It was a damned lonely and thankless job,
and she… Well, she disliked it. Strongly disliked it. But it did have the occasional perk. Now, for example, when she arrived out of
the scream summons sprawled across the southern half of the sexiest naked torso
she’d ever seen—er, felt—in her life. Considering that was some two
hundred fifty-ish plus at least eighteen puppy years or so… For a split second, it occurred to her to
wonder why the guys who dropped into Brokenoggin Falls after midnight never
seemed to be wearing any clothes. Then she saw that, sure enough, Hesther had
called it spot on, there was definitely a four foot two-by-two staked through
the center of Studly Gorgeous’ chest and he was, by all that was holy, not
dead, which left him… Undead, in the flesh. And he appeared to
be fighting to stay that way. Something unfamiliar trickled through
Janice. An emotion, perhaps, or something even more rare and therefor more
frightening and exhilarating and connected to her long unused and oft-rejected
libido—or possibly both. She didn’t know and it didn’t matter—she didn’t stop
to analyze it because she rarely stopped to analyze anything. In less than a
heartbeat, she chose sides and acted. Right hand wrapped around the
twelve-gauge barrel that had apparently survived the jump cradled through her
elbow, she put her left had down between his magnificent rock hard, tree trunk
thighs to push herself erect. It landed on a long, thick, equally solid and
very alive something. Startled, she looked down then up into bold eyes
the color of the night sky, rimmed by the longest, densest black eyelashes ever
created. Surprise and wry amusement sent black eyebrows fleeing upwards toward
the tumble of curly, jet hair mussed over his forehead. Embarrassed, Janice moved her hand.
Teased, the cock thickened and came to greater attention. “Not now, Janice,” a voice one shade deeper
and six shades sexier than Barry White’s rumbled, “I’m busy.” He shoved her upright, used the momentum
and a tug from her to haul himself after. “But I promise—” He dropped a full-of-tongue kiss on her
open mouth (an awkward move, what with the stake protruding from his chest and
all). “—we get through this without dying, do
something about this thing in my chest, and—” He pulled her to the side and blocked an
imprecise round of flying stakes with an upraised arm. “—we’ll go somewhere and screw for a
century because that’s how long I’ve been searching for you, my entire life and
beyond. You’re the only one who can make me whole. You complete me—” A volley of rocks and arrows fell around
them this time, followed by a barrage of bottles filled with… Janice tasted the
droplets that fell on her. Water? The gorgeous, not dead being who’d been—
according to him—searching for her forever and who’d just promised to fuck her
for a century and who… Wait! Janice stopped dead in the middle
of the action and gulped. What had he said? He knew her name and she completed
him? Was that a movie line? She didn’t watch a lot of movies; with so many
people screaming around Brokenoggin and whisking her wherever, she didn’t have
much chance. But no. Even if it was a line of some
sort, the object of her instant infatuation still hadn’t let go of her hand.
And just as an object of unknown origin came hurtling toward her face, he once
again yanked her out of the way, reached out and snatched the missile out of
the air. It was another of the small, water-filled
bottles. Janice’s Undead looked at it, snorted in
disgust and flung it back from whence it came, growling, “Holy water, Nihil? As
I lay dying the first time, they baptized and named me with the stuff. If it
doesn’t work on you when you begged the demon to make you a vampyre, what
idiocy makes you think it’ll work on me when I fought like hell not to?” “Yet here you are.” The voice in the
darkness was oily and unholy, a poisonous thing crawling down Janice’s spine.
Of all the unnerving creatures that resided in Brokenoggin Falls, Janice knew
there’d never been anything as evil here before as what she faced now. She
retrieved her captured hand and unhinged her right elbow, slid the shotgun into
place, even as the voice continued, “Still a vampyre, Seth, one of the damned,
in love with a legend that doesn’t exist.” The voice was closer now. Night
vision tuned, Janice could just make out the too-pale outline of a
human-looking face above a powerful-if-beer-bellied, leather-clad, biker-built
form. “Where there is no beast, there can be no beastkeeper. If she doesn’t
exist, you can’t save her nor she, you…or anyone.” “Brave words for a bloodsucker about to
be put down by the myth herself,” the naked, staked hunk called Seth roared. He
looked over his shoulder at Janice, bloodless face alight with faith and
fervor. “Do it, love. I’ll run interference. You raise the beast they’ve forced
you to deny for centuries, and annihilate the very devil they’ve sent to
enslave us all.” Then he flung himself forward, straight
at the murderous Nihil. The Hell’s Demon threw back his head, laughed and
raised his deadly crossbow, and the unconsecrated earth quaked beneath their
feet. Grave markers shifted, the earth opened wide, unleashed the slavering
hounds of hell. From wherever she was, Hesther Bellhallow
screamed and screamed. Clueless as everyone but Seth and the
vampyre demon he called “Niall” seemed to be about what was going on Janice
nevertheless tucked the twelve-gauge tight and leveled it. The hellhounds bore
down on her, but she stood her ground, concentrating on not hitting the first
male person or thing to ever call her love, to ever come looking for
her—no matter how insane he might be—or to know her name without ever being
told. It was the sort of fairy tale every little girl dreamed about no matter
what manner of creature she was, and no woman could quite bring herself to stop
believing in no matter how many centuries she lived or how inactive her tamped
down libido became. In the middle of disaster, he acted like
he full on believed in her so crazy or not, how could she not believe in him
back? She started to squeeze the shotgun’s
trigger at the same moment that a scream-leap jerked at her when someone
elsewhere within Brokenoggin’s borders shrieked in terror. “Not now,” she swore, but the jolt had
already joggled her aim. She tried to correct and fire again
quickly, before she was whisked completely away from the scene, but Hesther was
screaming again and the two scream-needs crossed wires somewhere in the magick
ether and— Seth cried out and fell
blunt-stake-end-first across Nihil who looked simply stunned and dropped
without a sound. The hounds of hell closed on the spot where Janice was last,
snarling and snapping, a freak thunderstorm sprung out of nowhere, and— Janice crashed butt first onto the light
bar atop her rebuilt Caprice cruiser, breaking it, and causing
Remo-Romeo to swerve off the highway and into a ditch outside the gates of the
Brokenoggin Community Church cemetery, consecrated section. Then chaos really
broke loose. *** iii: Janice & Seth Later, when things died down, (meaning
when Janice finally got back to the scene of the Vampyre Brawl and pumped a lot
of spelled hemlock-and-foxglove loaded shells into things that didn’t normally
reside in Brokenoggin Falls, and Remo changed into a werewolf and dined on what
was left) Joe the town’s veterinarian and general practitioner (who better to
look after werewolves and other…preternatural…creatures?) arrived on the scene
to minister emergency aid to the survivors and supervise the disposal of the
dead. “This is bad,” Joe said, eying the
cemetery full of upheaval before going down on his knees beside Seth. He gave
the four foot two-by-two stake a gingerly stroke. “This is very bad.” He looked
up at Janice, trying hard to be stoic and unemotional and cop-like on the
vampyre’s across from him. “I thought we’d decided there was no such thing as
Vam-Pэres.” Janice shrugged. “Myths and legends,” she
said. “We harbor all the myths, guess now we’re getting the legends, too, eh.”
She gestured at the stake. “Can you take it out? Can you save him?” “Tricky.” Joe shook his head. “Made a big
hole—” he indicated the entry and exit wounds “— through and through. Took his
heart clean out, ‘cept fer mebbe a piece the size of my thumb. Should be dead,
but if he’s a vampyre, means he’s already dead…” He scratched his head. “I
guess. “Anyway, lumber’s treated, Womanized.
Figure that’s what’s keepin’ him from not turnin’ to dust. Either that or it’s
because it didn’t take out his whole heart. But I’m a veterinarian and a
cryptozoologist, a mytho-zoologist. The things I work with have working
lungs and a heart that beats, blood that flows. All the people in Brokenoggin
are special, but they live and breathe. This…” He shook his head. “This is out
of my purview.” “So you’re sayin’ leavin’ the lumber in
would be better’n taking it out?” Joe shrugged. “But…” Janice hesitated, eyeing the two
feet of stake that stuck out Seth’s chest and back. She knew that as a law
enforcement official she sometimes had the imagination of a flea, but still…
“Won’t it be a little, er, awkward for him to have all that wood
sticking out of him all the time?” Joe gave her a look that said she’d
suddenly developed Medusa hair—which unfortunately in Brokenoggin Falls was
entirely possible. Janice patted her long, inky black hair back up under her
sheriff’s hat, bit her lip and dragged an embarrassed regulation-clad toe along
the bloody ground. If it was a stupid question, she didn’t know. And if she
didn’t know, she had to ask, right? “He said he came here for her, Joe.”
Hesther rose uncharacteristically to her defense. “I heard him. Said he
wanted to screw her brains out for the next century cuz that’s how long he’s
been looking for her. Kinda difficult to do with that chunk of lumber growing
out of him. Might make positioning chancey—” She paused to lick her lips
significantly. “If you catch my drift.” “Holy heck, Hesther.” Joe grimaced. “The
dead here caught your drift.” He sighed and reached across Seth to pat
Janice’s hand. “Look, what I meant was, I’ll cut the two-by-two flush to his
chest and back, make sure it’s secured in there with Super Glue around the
seams, slap on a coat of Goop back and front to seal the wood over, then add a
Duct Tape strapping. Oughtta hold until I can find out enough about his
physiology to come up with something better’n more permanent. Meantime…” He
smiled slightly. “We’d probably better see if we can get the town coven to do
something about those scream summonses you keep getting. This guy’s going to
need a lot of TLC and since you saved him you’re responsible for keeping him ali–,
er, in existence now…” Janice’s throat muscles tightened once on
a convulsive swallow. Just what she needed, more responsibility. And yet… Seth stirred restlessly, moaning, and
reached for her hand. When he found it, even in unconsciousness he brought it
to his mouth, held her open palm there as though to absorb her, her scent, her
presence. “Thanks, Doc,” Janice murmured. She used
her chin to indicate the vampyre who’d attempted to annihilate Seth. “What
about it?” Joe raised an eyebrow. “How do we get rid of it so it doesn’t
come back?” Hesther elaborated. “You’re asking me?” Joe coughed in
disbelief. “Until tonight these things didn’t exist. How the dickens should I
know how to get rid of one? I don’t know. Cut off its head, cut out its
heart and bury that in consecrated ground, burn the carcass—no, in fact
do all the other stuff, then give the carcass to The Beast to crunch up and
burn. If there’s any bone dust and ashes leftover, take it out of
Brokenoggin Falls and bury it with a dozen cloves of garlic in a grove of
wolfbane.” “Yes, but what do we do with the head?”
Hesther asked earnestly. Joe’s jaw dropped. Before he could form an adequate,
non-sarcastic response, however, Remo loped over to nuzzle Hesther’s hand and
change back into a very naked, very happy-to-see-her man. Hesther’s breath caught. A hand fluttered
to her breast. “Oh my, Romeo! Whereforever have thou been? Come home with me
this morning, won’t you? I believe I have some heaven and earth for you to
move in me.” “Sure, Hesther.” Remo grinned. “Let me
find my clothes and finish up here and with the skeleton closet lock over at
AnnMarie’s. Meetcha at your car outside dispatch—you drive the Jetta, yeah?
See if we can put a little hum in your squeezebox right th—” “Whoa, T.M.I.!” Joe coughed,
interrupting. Embarrassed he busied himself tending Seth. “Way Too Much Information,” Janice
agreed, grimacing. Were there no seriously committed couples in this burgh or
did she just not run into them on the job? She sent her cousin a, boy I
wish I didn’t know you and wasn’t related to you look. “Hound.” Then to
Hesther, “I don’t want to hear it over the radio, understand? And
whatever you do, don’t scream! I’m sick of getting screamed up by kids
who want to see how fast they can conjure me, frustrated adolescents,
pre-menstrual and mid-life witches of all genders, and everyone in the throes
of get-the-fuck-out-of-here-Janice-so-we-can.” Hesther nodded. “Gotcha, sheriff. Don’t
kick the broadcast button, and keep the verbalization to a minimum. Copy.” For
a moment she studied Janice shrewdly. Then very woman-to-woman, she twitched a
significant eyebrow at Seth. “Want me to touch any, ah, part of him,
see if I can read him?” she stage whispered. “Find out what his real intentions
are toward you?” “No!” Janice’s usually impassive face mobilized itself into
disbelieving, absolutely mortified horror. She knew that’s what it did because
she felt it pull itself in wild directions, eyes to jaw to chin and mouth, each
of them stupefyingly shocked. At the same time her insecurities shouted, ‘Fuckin’
A, babe, go for it! Touch the boy’s cock and tell me abso-freaking-everything.’
But her self-respect—or maybe that should read her innate stoicism—made her
say, “Leave me alone, leave him alone, leave well enough alon—” Woozy and unbalanced, Seth suddenly sat
up and sagged against Janice’s athletically supported bosom. “Mmmm,” he mumbled dreamily, “nice.” He reached up to fluff her breasts more
comfortably under his head, instinctively it seemed, searching out her aureoles
and nipples in the process. Janice’s Ennel athletic bra, however, made her
bosom regretfully immune to such shenanigans: once hooked into it, her bustline
didn’t move and her sensitive areas didn’t feel. Useful for those highly active
moments on the job when she had to kick butt, but generally a bust (pardon the
pun) for moments like these when a gorgeous, partially out-of-it guy who’d
seemed genuinely attracted to her when in full possession of his faculties
wanted to feel her up. Nobody in real life ever did. “Huhnnn,” he sighed in what sounded like
disappointment, using his left hand to smoosh her right breast under his cheek
as best he could while his thumb grazed the spot where her nipple probably was.
“They’d be beautiful you know, if you let them go free. We’d both enjoy it so
much.” “Oh…brother,” Joe groaned
disgusted. “Et tu, Janice? I thought we were supposed to be lonely
Norwegian bachelors together.” “I’m not Norwegian,” Janice mumbled,
blushing as fiery red as her native coppery-bronze skin would allow. No one had
ever said anything so…so…lecherously romantic to her before in her life.
And at two hundred fifty-seven plus eighteen or so puppy years, that was a lot
of unlechered-at life. Joe rolled his eyes. “Even so, Janice Thinksalot.”
“Thinks a lot? Who’s thinking? Who
wants to?” Echoing Janice’s exact sentiments, Seth stirred and sat up again.
“And who’s Janice?” “Ummmm…” said Hesther. “Hoooo boy,” said Joe. Janice sat back on her heels. “Seth?” she
asked tentatively. “I don’t think so,” he said doubtfully,
“but I don’t know. Maybe I am. Do you know? And where I am?” He touched his
tongue to his overlong incisors curiously. “And what? And what I’m doing here?
And—” Grimacing slightly, he shoved a careful hand through the hair at his
temple revealing a bloody gouge and a pair of stray hemlock-and-foxglove
shotgun pellets that must have struck him when Janice shot Nihil and he was in
the way. “Who that is?” He pointed at Nihil. “Oh, Seth.” Janice, defeated,
disappointed and aghast when she saw his head wound. “We’d better get you over to my surgery,”
Joe said briskly, “take care of this stake and that wound.” Out of the
corner of his mouth to Janice, “I guess now we know what hemlock and foxglove
does to vampyres when you shoot ‘em in the head with it—gives ‘em amnesia.” “Go to hell, Joe,” Janice swore. She
felt like crying she really did. Because just when she finally had
someone—vampyre or whatever—who might be for her, he wound up not knowing who
she was five minutes later because of her damn shotgun, which she hardly ever
used. “Just go to hell—” “Shhhh, sweetheart.” Seth stroked her
cheek with a cool finger. “Shhh. It’s all right, don’t worry.” He caressed her
lips with a rough, sensuous thumb, and his cock lifted high. “So pretty. Do we
know each other…” He sent a significant glance to his lap. “Well?” If whopping big lies were among the
skeletons AnnMarie kept in her closet, Remo had better get over there and put a
big damn lock on the door. Because if this one got out, or if Seth’s amnesia
cleared up, Janice was about to buy herself a packet more trouble than she
already owned. Janice’s heart jumped. She swallowed.
“Omigod.” Inside the Ennel bra her nipples wanted room to tighten and bud, but
didn’t have any. Her breasts wanted to swell and bloom, but couldn’t do that
either. And her libido leapt up from between her thighs like a supertrain
leashed but revving for over two centuries, tore out of the station on a squeal
of hot pheromones released to the warming predawn air and a low moan. “Yes,
Seth” she breathed and, leaning very close, played her fingers lightly down his
chest. “Maybe you should write this down so you won’t forget again because we
know each other very well indeed.” “Holy crap,” Joe muttered. Then he put a stop to the flirtatious
byplay right then and there before things got completely out of hand,
convincing Janice the medical emergency was best served first before its, hers
and her inner beast’s passions were further inflamed. Or something like that. When Janice and Seth both agreed on the
spot, they were out of there. As to Nihil… Left alone with the apparently lifeless
spawn of Satan who’d tried to annihilate Seth for reasons now known only to him
(and whoever’d sent him), Remo (who made a much better Romeo than he did a
vampyre-disposer-of or a handyman) studied the situation for about six
seconds. Unable to ascertain if anyone was actually serious about all that
stuff Joe’d suggested they do with the vampyre’s body and too alpha male to
stop and ask for directions, he carted Nihil’s remains off with him to
AnnMarie’s. There he shoved Nihil—whole—through a very small crack between the
door and the doorjamb into the closet with the rest of Brokenoggin’s skeletons
before he slammed the door tight and installed six shiny new keyless locks,
floor to ceiling… Wrong way in. Episode 1.1 THE HARPY IN THE CLOCK TOWER By Rachel Carrington Episode 1.1 The Harpy in the Clock Tower By Rachel Carrington The screeching was loud
enough to wake the dead. Add to that the interminable flapping of wings and
the thump of a body against the stone walls inside the clock tower and every
citizen within a thirty mile radius of Brokenoggin Falls was lying awake in their
beds. And not happy. “For the love of God, will someone please do something
about that damned creature!” The shout came seconds on the heels of a pop that
sounded suspiciously like a small caliber pistol. Janice climbed from her bed
and reached for her uniform pants. Sometimes, being a police officer really
sucked, especially, when she had no idea what in the hell she was supposed to
do about the noise. She’d asked for volunteers, but not too many people were
willing to risk their own lives to deal with a harpy. “Welcome to Brokenoggin,”
she grumbled. *** Last call came too soon for Maria Drinkwater’s tastes. She
still hadn’t finished scanning the room, looking for her date for the remainder
of the evening. The blazing neon sign above Brokenoggin’s only tavern blinked
half-heartedly. The owner had never taken the time to fix it, but Maria kind
of liked it that way. It added a dirty appeal, which fit with her persona. She
slid off the barstool just as the door banged against the far wall. “That damned
harpy won’t shut up!” Bare feet slapping against the plank floor, Gavin surged
into the room, naked as the day he was born. He stomped past a line of fallen
drunks and plopped down, three stools away from Maria. Her immediate departure
forgotten, Maria took notice. Why was it she’d never really paid attention to
the disgraced warlock’s attributes before? She plopped back down onto the
wooden stool and slid what was left of the rum and coke closer. Perhaps this
night had promise, after all. “Evening, Gavin.” He barely spared her a glance.
“Go away, Maria. I’m tired and a little bitter right now.” Hope escalated.
Perfect. A man without a mission. She scooted the barstool closer and bumped
her elbow against his. “Want to talk about it?” Making sure her cleavage
dipped low enough to give him a birdseye view of her own abundance, she placed
her hand on his wrist. “You look like you could use
someone to talk to.” He raised one eyebrow. “Are you sure
talking is all you had in mind?” “I ain’t serving no more drinks,” the
bartender interrupted with a growl in his voice. “That’s okay,” Maria said with more perk
in her voice than even she’d heard in a while. “We weren’t staying long.” Gavin watched Maria pour herself off the
stool once more. “Why don’t you come on home with me? You
could use a friend.” He couldn’t hide his interest, not that
Maria was complaining. He had more than enough ‘interest’ for her, as a matter
of fact. She sashayed toward the door, pausing to peek over her shoulder.
“Don’t worry. I have plenty of things at my place to keep you warm.” “You better be careful around that one,”
the bartender warned. “I heard she eats her mates.” Gavin grinned. “Oh, but I can certainly
hope so.” He thumped his way to the door. *** “Order, order. This
meeting will come to order.” Earl Choo banged the gavel, his ruddy face even
redder than ordinary. The room fell silent while chairs scooted and feet
shuffled on the floor. Expectant faces gazed upon Earl. He cleared his
throat. “That’s better. Now, Mayor Dumas asked me to preside over this meeting
since
he can’t seem to make it back to town right away. He’s stuck in Flagstaff.” “Probably means Falstaff,” Maria
whispered as an aside to Gavin. Morgan Falstaff flitted down, landing on
Maria’s shoulder. “I take offense to that. I’m particular about my
dalliances.” He folded his legs primly, resting his painted nails atop his
knees. “Right now, I have my eye on that cute little Cuban.” Maria’s antenna went up. “Cute little
Cuban? Who are you talking about?” “You mean you don’t know? Mavis told me
that’s he’s been in town for only a few days, but he looks like a displaced
Cabana boy. Hubba-hubba.” He wiggled his eyebrows suggestively. Maria leaned back against the plastic
chair, her mind whirling. Cabana boy and a wizard. Could life get any better
than this? “If everyone would pay attention, please,
we’re here to discuss the harpy situation.” Earl raised his voice over the
hub-bub. Janice took a step forward from her usual
spot as peacekeeper at the front edge of the room. “I’d like to discuss
changing the terms of my scream summonses,” she said firmly. “I’m getting too
many bogus scream calls and it’s mighty inconvenient winding up where I’m not
wanted or needed when I should be elsewhere.” “I’m sure that’s all very valid, Janice,”
Earl placated, “and no doubt the coven can come up with something, but right
now we’ve got to do something about the harpy—” “Her screams call me every five minutes,”
Janice said—and as though to demonstrate blipped out of and back into the room
when the harpy screamed shrilly twice in rapid succession. She held her head,
swaying dizzily. “See?” “Yes, but—” Earl tried. “Shoot her!” someone yelled from the back
for the room. “She could be a mother,” a woman inserted
in a disgusted tone of voice. Earl sent Janice a helpless look and
banged the gavel. “Look, I don’t think violence is the answer.” “Like she wouldn’t rip us to shreds if
she had half the chance,” Gavin muttered with much disgust. “Just like a
woman.” Maria elbowed him. “I didn’t hear you
complaining about women last night.” The wizard shoved a hand through his hair
and coughed. “Yeah, well, that was different.” Maria checked her watch and held up her
hand. “Could we move this along, please, Earl? Some of us have things to do.” “Or people to do,” Morgan took his turn
at cattiness, but Maria only chuckled. She wouldn’t deny that most citizens in
Brokenoggin considered her somewhat of a tramp, but she’d long given up denying
her assets. And she’d been blessed with many. Of course, praying to her
sister witches helped. They were more than willing to keep her body parts in
the shape and position they were supposed to be in. Could have something to do
with Maria’s own willingness to turn a blind eye to some of their less than
favorable activities. And their newest recruits. She leaned in closer to whisper in
Gavin’s ear. “Can you meet me at my house around eleven this morning?” She
trailed a finger around his ear lobe. “I have an idea.” Her gaze dropped to
his lap. “And if you’re going to stay with me a while, you should really think
about putting some clothes on. I think it will be most uncomfortable to walk
around with such a noticeable boner.” Gavin shifted and crossed his legs, but
Maria caught the wince on his face. Feeling naughty, she made a particularly
vivid suggestion in his ear and watched his face turn beet-red. He cleared
his throat loudly as Maria slithered out of her chair. “We’ll be done shortly, Maria, if you
could just take your seat, please,” Earl’s voice held a note of desperation
which made Janice get to her feet. “Maria, please.” The law enforcement
officer swept a hand toward the chair. Maria huffed out a breath. “Very well.” *** Gavin couldn’t breathe and it wasn’t any
wonder considering Maria had taken to stroking his leg. He’d only meant to
sleep with her once, just to piss off the other wizards who couldn’t bang a
witch if their lives depended on it. Oh, Maria would never admit she was a
witch, but he knew. He might not have all of his sensory perceptions, but he
recognized a witch when he saw one. He smirked and moved again, an action
that brought Maria’s hand dangerously closer to his male member. He gurgled
and tried to brush her away. He felt eyes on the back of his skull and knew
Morgan Falstaff hadn’t taken his gaze off the action. “Could you please stop?”
he snapped. Maria gave him an impish smile and
continued to rub him. Damned little vixen, he snarled
silently. The door creaked open behind them and steps echoed across the tiled
floor of the cafeteria where all town meetings were held. The local high
school was the only place big enough to house five hundred and some odd
citizens. Well, actually, Gavin’s mind, they were all odd. “Oh my,” Maria breathed beside him. His head swiveled as a swarthy young man,
wearing snug-fitting jeans and a white t-shirt, strode past the row of chairs
to the front of the room. “That must be Mr. Cabana.” Her strokes
intensified and Gavin wanted to complain, but what the hell? Did it really
matter that her instant attraction to the Cuban had brought about a renewed
increase in her ministrations? After all, he was the one reaping the benefits.
“I will take care of the harpy,” the
young man announced in a tone loud enough to draw every eye in the room. Gavin’s lips curled into a sneer. So he
wanted attention, did he? Maria leaped to her feet again. “We would
be so in your debt, Mr.…” She paused for information. “Just call me Juan.” Gavin saw Maria’s hips twitch and he
wondered if the sex was, indeed, over. He couldn’t mask his surprise when she
snatched hold of his hand and practically dragged him from the cafeteria. *** The harpy screeched. Maria moaned and
sweat broke out on Gavin’s forehead. She hadn’t given him time to figure out
what she wanted after they’d left the town meeting before she launched herself
at him. Her lithe body curved around his, her
legs going around his waist. She fisted her hands in his hair and smeared
lipstick kisses across his face. It didn’t matter anymore that they’d barely
made it to the bottom floor of the high school and that any minute, the meeting
could adjourn. Maria assured him they were safe enough in the stairwell, but
Gavin didn’t really think she cared. Sex, sex, sex. The woman had it on the
brain. And she was damned good at it. “Pardon me,” came a heavily accented
voice from over Gavin’s left shoulder. Maria’s head popped up
and her eyes lit with delight. “Oh, this is perfect,” she cooed. “Hello,
Juan. Could I interest you in a small party?” *** “Perhaps we should wait until
we’re invited.” Claudia Choo traipsed after her sister witches as they
followed the beaten path to Maria Drinkwater’s Colonial-style house. “She
could be entertaining.” A snort. “She’s always entertaining.” Claudia looked over her shoulder. “Earl
will be expecting me home soon.” “Honey, you’re not going to want to miss
this spell. We’ve been working on this for days and if all goes well, not only
will that harpy be history, but so will all of our troubles.” A chorus of cackles made Claudia more
uneasy, but as Maria’s house came into view, she relaxed somewhat. Maria
always made them feel welcome. And she always had coffee and some of the
best-tasting donuts in town. She could really go for a donut right now. The quartet of witches neared the front
door and as Claudia opened her mouth to speak, the head witch, a tall, spindly
woman who preferred to be called Greta, didn’t bother to knock. A tangle of limbs, brown, creamy, and
tanned, poured into Claudia’s line of view. She clapped a hand over her mouth
as other body parts became visible. “Hello, Maria,” Greta sing-songed. Maria’s dark head shot up, her make-up
smeared and breathing heavily. “Greta?” Her head swiveled to the clock over
the mantle. “Is it noon already?” One brown hand curved over her breast and
she moaned, holding up two fingers. “Two minutes. That’s all I need. I’m
almost there.” Greta muttered her disgust and stomped
past the threesome. “I’ll be in the kitchen.” “I’ll just wait outside,” Claudia
suggested hopefully. Never, in all her years as a married woman, had she ever
seen anything so outrageous. Or exciting. Maria struggled to extricate herself from
Gavin’s arms and as she stood, hands on hips, her breasts
sat right where they were supposed to sit. Claudia hated her for that. “Don’t
run away, Claudia. There’s plenty to go around for everyone. How long has it
been since you’ve had a good romp?” Before Claudia could answer, an explosion
rocked the kitchen and Greta bounded out into the living room, face dirty, hair
askew. “What in the hell did you do to my kitchen?” Maria demanded, shoving
her aside to inspect the damage. Greta looked forlorn. “The spell
didn’t work.” Maria’s head whipped around. “You used some kind of concoction in
my kitchen?” “It was a spell,” Greta defended. “Now, we’ll never get rid of the
harpy.” “I got rid of the harpy.” Juan launched himself to his feet. “Who is
that?” Greta pointed, but her eyes dropped to Juan’s crotch. Maria shouldered
her way to stand in front of the Cabana boy. “He’s mine and who told you that you could concoct
your spells in my kitchen? I’ve told you I don’t like that stuff! Look.” She
clamped her hands on her hips. “I agreed that you and your sisters can come
here and hold your meetings, but I didn’t say anything about using my home as a
laboratory.” “Aren’t
they your sisters, too?” Gavin spoke up from the floor. smoke disappeared,
the soot evaporated and the chrome appliances gleamed as before. “Thank
goodness at least one of us was paying attention when you were reading aloud
from the Book of Spells, Greta.” “Shhh,”
Maria interrupted with a finger against her lips. “Do you hear that?” look over her shoulder. “So tell them how
you did it, Sugar.” With a swagger to his step, he came forward and whispered
in Maria’s ear. Her eyes widened for a brief moment and then she laughed out
loud. Claudia exchanged glances with Greta.
“What? What did he say?” Juan, his brown skin glistening with
sweat, bowed low. “I promised her a night she would never forget.” Gavin scrambled to his feet. “You
promised sex to a harpy? She’ll tear you limb from limb!” “Actually,” Juan corrected, “they’re
quite docile if you know how to tame them.” Gavin gave him a look of disgust and
marched toward the door. “Well, I’ve had enough of this. I thought I was
sleeping with a witch, which by the way, would earn me great points with the
wizards, and now, I discover I’ve only been used and I wouldn’t be surprised if
that harpy was summoned by this quack crew of witches.” Two of the witches behind Greta grumbled
in disagreement, but Greta held up her hand to silence them. “We do not summon
harpies, Mr. Wizard.” Her eyes narrowed. “Although, had we thought of it, we
might have considered it, especially if it meant ridding the town of
wizards.” The door slammed shut behind Gavin and
Juan began gathering his clothes. Maria snagged hold of his arm. “Where do you
think you’re going?” Juan stroked his knuckles down her cheek.
“I fear I must be on my way. My work here is done.” Maria pursed her lips. “I beg to differ.
I can think of many more jobs for you to do.” He winked at her and leaned in to kiss
her once more. “Ah, but there are other harpies in other clock towers. The
world needs me.” He waved a hand as he disintegrated into a cloud of dust, the
room fell silent. Except for the chiming of the clock
tower. Episode 1.2 THE
WITCHES OF BROKENOGGIN AND THE DEAD WHO LOVE THEM By Gena
Showalter Episode 1.2 The Witches of Brokenoggin & the Dead Who Love Them By Gena Showalter The witches always came
at midnight. Gripping his flip phone camera in his hand, John crouched behind
the thick marble headstone of Agnes McCloud, the biggest slut he’d ever met.
The woman had tried to tell his wife about their affair. Had tried to ruin him.
Bitch. She’d done the world a favor the day she’d decided to take a hike around
the block and his Cadillac had accidentally (cough, cough) slipped into another
lane, jumped the curb, burned rubber, and slammed into her. Anyway… Overhead,
the blood moon drowned him in crimson shadows, and he licked his lips in
anticipation of the coming ritual. He was a breast man—God, he loved a nice
rack—and the Tawdry triplets had some of the finest boobs in Brokenoggin. He
should be home, sitting at the dinner table across from his wife, chatting
about their respective days—and wishing like hell he were dead. Instead of
slicing his wrists to escape the constant whine of Hillde’s voice, however,
he’d come to the cemetery. He knew the triplets would strip to their luscious,
lickable, kissable, completely edible skin and dance naked atop the graves,
casting their spells and generally causing his slacks to expand. Better than Playboy.
Every time. He glanced at his wristwatch and frowned. Six minutes past.
Where the hell were they? Didn’t they realize he was on a time crunch here?
If he wasn’t home within the next hour, Hillde would freak and come looking for
him and then he’d never be able to work up a good erection, something he hadn’t
been able to do lately but wanted to real bad. Erections were the most
important part of a man’s life. And he if didn’t have another one soon, he’d—
A twig snapped. Hallelujah! The witches had arrived. His muscles tightened
with eagerness, and his lips lifted in a grin. Oh yeah, baby, let the good
times roll. Or rather, let Mr. Givemeattention out of his cage. John quickly
ducked further into the shadows, inching the lens of his flip phone around the
tombstone and waiting… *** “I hereby call this coven to order.” Godiva Tawdry
removed the band from her hair, letting the long pale strands cascade down her
back. She breathed deeply of the night air. “Get naked.” “Yeah, yeah,” was her sister, Gladys’,
reply. Of course, Gladys remained in place, not stripping. “What are you waiting for? Hurry and
take off your clothes. I need to get home and feed Romeo.” Romeo was her pet
wolf. He’d shown up on her doorstep a few weeks ago, sad, alone, and wounded,
and had been her constant companion ever since. Already she missed him. Her other sister, Gerda, anchored her
hands on her hips and frowned. She’d been opposed to this meeting from the
first, preferring to let the good citizens of Brokenoggin Falls suffer. Godvia
even suspected Gerda was the one responsible for unleashing the recent havoc in
town. Ever since Marko, the love of her sister’s life, had a heart attack in
bed, she’d been, well, a witch, capital B. “We wouldn’t be running late,” Gerda
snapped, “if Tubby over there hadn’t made us stop and grab a bag of Doritos, a
roll of doughnuts, and an Icy Big Gulp.” Gladys gasped. “How dare you call me
Tubby! I have low blood sugar.” “No, actually, you’re just a cow.” Another gasp. “Whore!” “Fat ass!” “You want a piece of me?” Gladys tossed
her broom to the ground. Eyes narrowed, she stepped into her sister’s personal
space, squaring off nose to nose. “If your greatest wish is to be bitch
slapped, color me Genie in a Bottle because I’m about to grant it.” “Girls, please.” Godiva knew interrupting
the argument would give her sisters yet another reason to call her Goody, Goody
but that was okay because she secretly called them Bitch #1 and Bitch #2. “We
have spells to cast and your bickering is slowing us down. Now, a lot of weird
things have been happening in town. Naked vampires, screaming harpies, deadly
ponies.” “Emma Mincemeat getting a man,” Gladys
added, thankfully calming down. “That, too. I’m thinking we need to call
on the spirits of the dead to guard the city limits and protect everyone
inside.” As she spoke, Godiva unbuttoned her dress and shimmed it down her
voluptuous hips. The buttercup yellow material pooled at her feet. Everyone
knew a good spell only worked if the witch casting it was naked. A chill night breeze wisped around them,
and with a sigh, Gerda stripped. Gladys quickly followed suit. “There,” she said, relived. “Now we can
begin. Form a circle and clasp hands.” “I’m not holding onto her.” Gerda
motioned to Gladys with a tilt of her chin. “I don’t know where her skanky
hands have been.” Godiva rolled her eyes. Great Goddess,
could they never get along? Romeo was probably prowling the house right now,
wondering where she was. “Why couldn’t I have been an only child?”
Gladys muttered. Gerda flicked the long length of her
snow-white hair over her shoulder. “Because the Great Goddess hates you and
wants you to suffer.” Her smart mouth finally pushed Gladys
over the edge. “Take that back, you dirty slut. Right now!” “Make me.” In the next instant, Gladys launched
herself at Gerda. The two grappled together on the ground, clawing,
screaming and tugging hair, their limbs tangled together. “Ding, ding,” she
sighed. “Round one.” With a sigh, she plopped onto a tombstone and waited for
them to finish… *** While her husband, John, cavorted with
the witches, Hillde used her time alone to invent new ways to torment him.
Look at other women, would he? Despise his time with her, would he? Secretly
get a vasectomy so she couldn’t have children, would he? Hillde paced her bedroom, steps clipped.
She’d replaced John’s prescription of Viagra with sugar pills weeks ago, but
that wasn’t enough. She needed to do more. He needed to suffer more. The
bastard was even now spying on the naked witches and their perfect tatas. What can I do? Immediately a few ideas drifted through
her mind, and she smiled an evil, scorned-woman smile. Twenty minutes later, pepper sauce was
blended into his aftershave, Nair was mixed into his shampoo, his tooth brush
dripped with toilet water, and his mother’s face was glued onto every female
face in his Playboy. Bastard! He always shaved, showered and jerked off
when he returned from his peeping activities. Now all she had to do was await
his return… *** How long had passed since her sisters
decided to play Wrestle Mania, Bitch Addition Godiva didn’t know, but she was
tired of waiting for it to end. Twice she’d thought she heard the tortured
howl of a wolf. Her wolf. Had Romeo somehow gotten out of her house and
now stalked the woods, searching for her? Another howl erupted through the night. Her sisters heard this one and stopped
for a moment, their ragged breath echoing around them. “Oh, Goddess.” Panting, Gerda shoved her
hair out of her face. “We better stop. I think the wolves are out again. Last
time they humped my leg for hours, and I’d rather kick your ass later than
endure that again.” “Me, too. At least in the old days we’d
get dinner first. Now it’s just eighty pounds of fur, fangs and bad breath.” “I think it’s Romeo,” Godiva told them,
scanning the forest for a glimpse of him. “Oh.” Gerda. “Oh.” Gladys. “Okay, then.” They jumped back into their fight. “Girls,” she said, exasperated. They ignored her. Gerda even jerked out a
lock of Gladys’ hair, and Gladys yelped and pinched her in retaliation. Godiva was just about to pull her sisters
apart when, a few feet away, a click, click sounded. Startled,
she searched the graveyard until she spotted the source of the noise. A cold
sweat broke over her skin when she spied a flip phone camera aimed at her
sisters. “Girls,” she whispered frantically.
“Someone is taking pictures of you.” Instantly their struggles ceased. Dirt
and dried flower petals streaked their skin. Both were sucking in shallow
breaths, crouched, their pale hair hanging in their eyes. “Did you say someone is taking pictures
of us?” Gladys’ silver eyes narrowed. “Nobody takes secret pictures of me
unless I’ve had time to diet.” “Don’t worry. I’ll handle this.”
Scowling, Gerda pushed to her feet, her hands rising into the air, a spell
slipping easily from her lips. A startled scream echoed through the
night. “What did you do?” Gladys bent down and
swiped up her broom. “See for yourself.” The girls closed ranks on the tombstone,
circling the intruder and blocking him from escape. They found the flip phone
hovering in the air in front of a trembling, horrified man, the phone clamping
and snapping its way down his body. Only after it had bitten his favorite appendage
(twice) and he screamed like a little girl (twice) did it fall to the ground. “John Foster,” Gladys gasped. “You big
pervert. Does Hillde know you’re out here? And staring at our breasts, no
less?” “Please don’t tell her—your breasts are
so big.” Eyes widening, he said, “I mean, I don’t want her to know—I want to
touch your breasts.” He shook his head, but his gaze remained glued on Gladys’
chest. He licked his lips. “What I mean to say is—double-D fun bags are my
favorite.” Gladys smacked him over the head with her
broom. “Letch!” “Bastard!” Godiva grabbed her own broom
and popped him dead center in the face. “Dickweed!” Gerda didn’t have her broom
in hand, so she raised her arms high in the air and uttered a quick
incantation. “You like breasts so much, you can have a pair of your own.” His shirt ripped down the middle as a
huge pair of breasts grew on his chest. He stared down at them, his mouth
gaping open. “What the hell! Get them off, get them—Hey, these are nice.”
Closing his eyes, he reached up and kneaded his new breasts, a rapturous smile
spreading across his face. “Mmm,” he muttered. “Undo the spell!” Gladys scowled. “Undo
the spell right now. We’ll punish him another way.” “No, this is punishment,” he cried, covering
the man-boobs protectively. “I swear. Don’t take them away. I’ve got to learn
my lesson.” After Gerda did as commanded, and John’s
chest had shrunk back to its normal size—and he was bawling like a baby—he
tried to dart out of their circle, but Godiva quickly muttered an incantation,
locking his feet in place. “Not so fast,” she said. His
eyes widened with horror. “What are you going to do to me? I didn’t mean any
harm. only wanted a peek at your hoohoos.” Without saying a word, the three sisters
tugged at the rest of his clothing, peeling it from his middle-aged body until
he wore nothing but a few teardrops. Since he’d gotten a look at their goods,
it was only fair they got a look at his. “We’re going to cast our spells around
you—” Gerda’s gaze darted between his legs, “—little John, and you’re
going to stand there like a good boy and pray the Goddess takes mercy on your
soul.” That dried his tears real fast. “You
mean you’re not going to hurt me, and I get to watch you dance? Naked?” He
tried real hard not to grin. “Thank you, Great Goddess. Have mercy. Oh, have
mercy. Lots and lots of mercy and breasts and mercy. Amen.” “I swear,” Gladys growled, “you’re the
scum of the earth.” “Ignore him,” Godiva said after another
wolf howl echoed through the night. “We need to get to work.” “Fine.” “Whatever.” Gerda found her broom buried
in a mound of dirt, snatched it up, and rejoined the circle. The three sisters closed their eyes,
blocking out John’s image and his voice, and in perfect sync began their
protection spells. Round and round they danced, their hips undulating, their
hair swaying, their brooms raised high in the air. Each one chanted under her
breath. While she danced, Godiva stumbled over
the spell’s words, unable to push Romeo from her mind. That last howl had
sounded pained. Was he hurt? Should she go looking for him? He was one of the
biggest, strongest, fiercest wolves she’d ever seen, but he possessed a gentle
and loving nature and other beasts of the forest might trample him. Suddenly Gladys stopped, her breasts
jiggling with the abrupt halt. “What are you doing? Keep moving,” John
whined. “I’m still praying.” She frowned. “Does it feel like the
ground is shaking?” Godiva stilled, followed quickly by
Gerda. In the next instant and seemingly without provocation, Gladys stumbled
backward and landed on her butt. “What’s going on?” Godiva gasped. Dirt began cracking at their feet. Grass
began splitting. Flowers tumbled off of tombstones… and then the tombstones
themselves tumbled to the ground. “What’s going on?” she asked again, her
tone more frenzied. Gladys popped to her feet, and Gerda
paled. “I think—ohmygod—I think the bodies are rising!” “That can’t be.” Gladys sucked in a
breath, whirling around to scan the surrounding area. “We only called forth
their spirits.” “Well, the dirty bastards didn’t listen!”
A bony hand shot through the cracked dirt
and latched onto John’s ankle. Startled, he screamed and would have dropped
into a fetal ball and sucked his thumb if his feet hadn’t been frozen in place.
All over the cemetery bodies rose. Most were completely decayed, but all still
wore their worm-eaten burial clothes. As they emerged, they limped, lumbered
and trudged toward the triplets. Deadly moans echoed across the distance. “What should we do?” Gladys gasped out,
holding out her broom like a sword. “What the hell should we do?” In the next instant, Agnes McCloud
climbed all the way out of the ground. Seeing her, John started shaking like
an epileptic. “Help me,” he cried. “Please, help me.” Godiva swatted at the skeleton with her
broom. “Shoo.” Big chunks of dirt fell out of the dead woman’s remaining
hair. “Get back in the ground. I command you.” Agnes hadn’t yet fully decayed, and it
was freaky seeing her half-on, half-off face lift into a grin when she spied
John. “John! Oh, my darling Johnnie. I missed you so much.” “We’ve got to send them back.” Gladys’
mouth formed a large O as she counted the number of bodies headed toward them.
“They’re multiplying like rabbits!” “Demons of the Dark,” Godiva shouted,
“return to your graves!” They kept coming. “Spirits of the Nether World, be gone!” Still, they kept coming. Meanwhile, Agnes had leapt on John and
was feeding him kisses like she was a buffet of sensual delights and he had
been on a year long fast. Except, the man looked like he would rather eat his
own vomit than the dead woman’s tongue. He kept gagging, but that didn’t stop
Agnes. If she’d had time, Godiva would have
snapped a picture of the two with the flip phone. As it was, the rest of the
dead bodies finally reached them and closed her and her sisters in a circle,
moaning and groaning and reaching out to caress them. Having been without
human contact for so long, they were probably desperate for it. Or maybe they
were simply hungry and she and her sisters looked like a triple stacked Egg
MacMuffin. Gladys shrieked. Godiva swatted at the
bony hands with her broom. And Gerda broke into a frenzied run. One of the
corpses sprang after her, his laughter ringing through the cemetery like nails
over a chalkboard. “Is that…Marko?” As she defended her and
her sister’s honor, Godiva watched the tall corpse who wore the same black suit
Marko had been buried in chase the flailing Gerda around a tree. Finally Marko snagged her, wrapping his
arms around her waist, spinning her around and tossing her over his shoulder.
Without a pause in his step, he absconded into the nearby forest with her. Her
furious shouts echoed from the trees. Then…she giggled. An
honest-to-the-Goddess giggle. What the hell were they doing? Having a
slap-and-tickle fight? Playing find-the-bone? Godiva and Gladys continued to fight off
their molesters with their brooms, all the while uttering spell after
ineffectual spell. Well, not so ineffectual. Each spell conjured
something—just not the help they wanted. A harpy. A horny troll. A demon. Each
creature materialized at the edge of the forest and stood, watching the
proceedings, grinning. One of them even produced a bowl of popcorn and a large
soda. “Two dollars the one with worms in his
eyes snags the witch on the left,” the demon said. “You’re on,” the troll agreed. Suddenly a fierce growl overshadowed
every other noise, and a pack of wolves raced into the graveyard, snapping and
snarling. “Romeo,” Godiva cried, her relief nearly
a palpable force when she recognized her pet. His teeth bared in a scowl, Romeo leapt
up and latched onto the bony arm reaching for her and snapped it off. The
corpse glanced at his armless side, then at the wolf. His armless side, then
the wolf. Still holding the bone, Romeo sprinted away. “Give that back,” the corpse shouted. The rest of the wolf pack chased the
skeletons in every direction. All except Agnes, who was still sucking John’s
face. Godiva and Gladys dropped to the ground in relief. “Well, that went well,” Gladys said
dryly. “I never thought I’d be grateful to the wolves.” A few minutes later, Romeo appeared in
front of them. “Come here, boy,” Godiva said, reaching out for him. He
dropped the arm bone at her feet as if it were the greatest prize in the world
and nuzzled her with his nose. She luxuriated in his soft black fur as his
tongue flicked out and licked her collarbone. “That’s my good boy. Thank you
so, so much for saving me.” “Eww.” Gladys pushed to her feet with a
sigh. “I know I’ve said your boyfriends were dogs in the past, but hello. This
one is a dog. Don’t let him lick you like that.” “He’s my special sweetie.” She rubbed
her cheeks against his. “My hero.” “At least have him neutered or he’ll
start to hump you.” With barely a breath, Gladys turned on her heel and
lumbered out of the graveyard. “I’m outta here,” she said over her
shoulder. Romeo growled at Gladys’ retreating back,
then looked up into the sky and howled. As he howled, his body elongated and
his fur fell away, leaving bronzed skin in its place. Godiva’s mouth went dry,
and her heart pounded against her ribs. “Romeo?” The name emerged on a
breathless catch of air. Pale blue human eyes suddenly
stared down at her, and she drank in the most beautiful face she’d ever seen.
Perfectly chiseled cheekbones, perfectly sloped nose. Full, lush pink lips made
for kissing. Her gaze traveled downward, taking in the rest of him. His chest
was wide and muscled, like velvet poured over steel. And his dick…? “Oh my
god.” Hello, Satisfaction. He grinned wickedly. “No
neutering. Please.” His voice was rough and husky, and so sexy she shivered.
Gulping, she blinked up at him. “No neutering. Promise.” He licked his way up
her neck. “You’ll be real glad for that decision in a minute.” *** Later that
night, John trudged into his house. He muttered and cursed under his breath.
Hillde was
sitting on the couch, looking relaxed and at ease while she flipped through a
magazine. He’d had to do the Karate moves he’d seen on TV to escape Agnes,
then run like hell. Thank God her bony legs hadn’t allowed her to
follow him. If he didn’t wash his mouth out with antibacterial soap soon, he’d
vomit. God, he smelled like a rotten corpse. “I’m taking a long, hot shower,” he
growled, already moving up the stairs. “Don’t interrupt me.” Hillde smiled sweetly. “Take all the
time you need, dear.” Episode
1.3 Candy Cox and the Big Bad (Were)Wolf By
PC Cast Episode 1.3 Candy Cox & the Big Bad (Were) Wolf By PC Cast “Godiva! Wait—wait—wait. Did you just say
that you and your sisters called forth the dead last night?” Candice said,
rubbing her forehead where it was beginning to pound. “Yeah, but you missed the important
part. Romeo was…spectacular,” Godiva said breathlessly. “So he actually did more than hump your
leg this time?” “Candy Cox—I swear you haven’t been
listening.” “You know I hate it when you call me
that.” “Fine. Candice you haven’t been
listening,” Godiva said. Candice kept muttering as if Godiva
hadn’t spoken. “It’s not like I don’t get enough of that name crap at school.
Why the hell I ever decided to attempt to teach high school morons I’ll never
know.” She cringed inwardly, remembering the countless times some hormone
impaired sixteen year old boy had made a wise-ass remark about her name. God,
she was truly sick and f-ing tired of Brokenoggin High School—Home of the
Fighting Fairies. “You could have kept one of your
ex-husband’s names,” Godiva said helpfully. “Oh please,” Candice scoffed. “I’d rather
sound like a porn star than keep any reminders of exhusstupid number one, two,
or three. No. My solution is to change careers. As soon as I finish my
internet Masters in Creative Writing I can dump the Fighting Fairies and snag
that job as a copy editor for Full Moon Press.” “I could work on a spell that might help
shut those boys up whenever they try to speak your name. Maybe something to do
with testicles and tiny brains…” “That’s really sweet of you, but you know
that magic doesn’t work around me, so it probably wouldn’t work on my name,
either,” Candice sighed. It was true. She lived in a town full of witches,
warlocks, vampyres, harpies, werewolves, etcetera, etcetera, and her magic was
non-magic. It figured. She did magic like she did marriages. Not at all.
“Men are such a pain in the ass.” Without losing a beat at her friend’s
sudden change in subjects, Godiva giggled. “I agree completely, and I know
exactly what you need—a werewolf lover.” “Godiva Tawdry! I’m too damn old to roll
around the woods with a dog.” “A werewolf is not a dog. And forty-five
is not old. Plus, you look at least ten years younger. Why
do you think high school boys still get crushes on you, Ms. Candy Cox?” “Put boobs on a snake and high school
boys would chase after it. And don’t call me Candy.” Godiva laughed. “True, but that doesn’t
make you any less attractive. You’ve got a killer body, Ms. Cox.” “I’m fat.” “You’re curvy.” “I’m old.” “You’re ripe.” “I’ve sworn off men,” Candice said,
exasperated. “No, I remember exactly what you said.
‘Godiva,’ here you raised your fist to the sky like Scarlet O’Hara. ‘I will
never marry again.’ So you’ve sworn off marriage, not men. And anyway, a
werewolf is only a man part of the time. The rest of the time he really is the
most adorably cuddly sweet furry—” “Fine.” She cut Godiva off. “I’ll think
about it.” “Really?” “Yes.” No, she thought. She
hurried on before Godiva could press the point. “I’ve really gotta go. I’m
deep in the middle of Homework Hell. I have to turn in my poetry collection to
the Internet creative writing professor next week, and I still haven’t figured
out a theme for the damn thing. I’m totally screwed if I can’t get rid of this
writer’s block.” “Well,” Godiva giggled micheviously, “I
don’t know how it’d work on writer’s block, but Romeo sure unclogged me last
night.” “You’re not helping me.” “I’m just saying—a little werewolf action
might fix you right up.” “You’re still not helping.” “Sorry. I’ll let you get back to your
writing. Remember, you said you’d think about a werewolf lover.” “Yeah, I’ll think about it right after I
think about my poetry theme. Uh, shouldn’t you and your sisters be frolicking
about the graveyard making sure the dead stay dead?” “Oh, don’t worry about it. I’m sure the
spell wore off when the sun rose.” Godiva paused, thinking about how her
sister, Gerda, had scampered off into the woods with one of the corpses.
Yeesh. “Uh, on second thought. Are you going jogging today?” “Yes.” “Do you think you could take a spin
through the graveyard? Between you and the sun, that should make sure the dead
are, well, dead. Again.” Candice sighed. “I suppose.” “Thanks! You’re a doll! Bye.” Godiva hung up the phone and sat tapping
her chin with one long, slender finger. Candy was getting old before her
time. Goddess knows she really did need a lover. A young lover. A young
werewolf lover. Her fingers itched to swirl up a little love spell, but magic
wouldn’t work on her friend. Godiva’s eyes widened and her full, pink lips
tilted up. Magic wouldn’t work on Candy, but it would work on a werewolf… *** She’d never get this damn assignment
done. “You’d think after teaching for twenty years I wouldn’t have any problem
doing homework.” Candy grumbled at herself and ran a frustrated hand through
her thick hair. “Poetry themes…poetry themes…poetry themes…” Death, time,
love, the soul, happiness, sex… “Sex,” she muttered, chewing the end of her
well-sharpened #2 pencil. “That’s one I can’t write about. Like I’ve had sex
in…” She clamped her lips shut, refusing to speak aloud the ridiculous amount
of time it had been since the last time she’d been laid. As if the last
time(s) even counted. Ex-husidiot number three had been, in politically correct
terms, the penis impaired. Spoken plainly, he’d had a pathetically small dick,
and an incredibly large wallet. Unfortunately, one did not make up for the
other. Candy grimaced. Quite frankly, women who said size didn’t matter have
clearly never been with a man with a small dick. The remembrance alone was
enough to turn her stomach. “Theme!” she said, forcing her thoughts
back to the blank notebook page. She wanted to create poetry that would dazzle
her professor, replete with complex symbolism, witty phrasing, and possibly
even a few clever slant rhymes. She’d come up with exactly—she glanced at the
naked page—nothing. She was screwed (figuratively speaking). “Okay, so write something…anything…write
what you know…” What the hell did she know? She knew she
was sick of teaching the Fighting Fairies and she knew she would never get
married again. Well, she sure as hell didn’t want to write about high school,
which left… “What the hell. At least it’ll get me
writing.” …She drew a deep breath and let her
pencil begin moving across the blank page. Keep your Errol Flynn’s, Paul Newman’s,
Mel Gibson’s all puppets—empty mascarades.
She blinked and reread the
first two lines. Not Shakespeare, but it did have a certain ring to it. Candy
grinned and continued. Tom, Dick, and Harry, too the boy next door I want no more. Wasn’t that the truth. Her
pencil, with a mind of its own, kept moving. You ask, what now? Well… And the self-moving pencil
stopped. What now? What now? What now? She jumped as the clock in her study
chimed seven times. Seven o’clock already? How long had she been on the phone
with Godiva? Now she’d have to hurry to get in her five mile jog, complete
with graveyard detour, before the sun set. Crap! She certainly didn’t want to
be outside alone long after dusk. Weird things had been going on—and it took
some doing for anything to be classified as “weird” by a Brokenoggin native.
Candy put down her pencil and began pulling on her running shoes. *** The beat of her shoes against
the blacktop road beckoned to him. He’d heard it while he was still deep in the
woods and it had called him away from the disgruntled and unsatisfied young
thing he’d been licking. It was unlike him to leave such a delicious tidbit,
but the steady slapping sound seemed to somehow get into his body. It thrummed
with his pulse…his heartbeat…it pounded through his loins making them feel hot
and heavy. He scented the warm evening breeze. Woman…hot, sweaty, and ripe.
And not far ahead of him. He growled deep in his throat as he hurried to catch
her. *** Candy kept her eyes half
closed as she sprinted through the graveyard, totally ignoring the creepy
shadows that flitted past the edge of her vision. Bleck. She shivered and
increased her pace, thinking that the burn in her muscles actually felt good.
Godiva had been right about one thing—she did still have a killer body. Sure,
she’d like to lose a few pounds, but who wouldn’t? Her legs were long and
strong, her boobs were full and womanly, and—best of all—she had seriously big
hair. With a burst of speed, she
shot out of the graveyard and pounded down the empty blacktop road that would
eventually circle around and back to her house, which had been build, log cabin
style, at the edge of town. Maybe she could keep up this pace the rest of the
way home. Hell, she might even run an extra mile or so! Which was a lovely thought
until the cramp hit her right calf. “Shit!” She pulled up,
hobbling like one of the crones from Macbeth. Breathing a sigh of relief, she
realized that the little rise in the road was the bridge that covered Wolf
Creek. She could sit on the bank and rub her calf back into working order. So
much for sprinting home. She had just pulled off her
shoe and thick athletic sock when she heard the growl. Low and deep it drifted
to her on the breeze, tickling up her spine. She looked nervously around. It
sounded too big to be a dog. It was probably a werewolf. Candy rubbed harder at
the cramp. She wasn’t actually afraid. Werewolves were rarely more than
annoying. Spectacular…Godiva’s breathy moan whispered through her mind.
Candy ignored it. “Did you hurt yourself?” His voice was deep, with a
husky velvet sound that was very much man. She swiveled around in time to see
him step from the edge of the pine trees. And her mouth dropped open. He was
easily 6’4” and probably 230 pounds. Broad shoulders seemed to stretch on
forever, and a wide, scrumptious chest tapered down to a well defined waist.
And those legs…even through the relaxed jeans she could see that they were
heavily muscled. His face was in shadow, so her entire attention focused on
his body and the way he stalked towards her with a strong, feral grace that
made her breath catch and her mouth go dry. Then, like he’d walked into a
tree, he stopped. “Miss Cox?” “Yes,” she said hesitantly,
trying to figure out who the hell he was. “It’s me, Jason.” He started towards her again,
and she blinked up at him as his face emerged from the shadows. And—good
lord—what a face it was! Strong, well-defined cheekbones and a rugged,
masculine chin. His hair was thick, with a sexy, mussed curl, and so black it
reminded her of a raven’s wing. His eyes…oh shit…his eyes were intense Paul
Newman blue and were almost as inviting as his beautiful mouth. “Jason Thinksalot. You know,
Janice’s uh…” Here he hesitated. “…well, I’m related to Janice. I had you for
sophomore English.” She mentally shook herself.
He was an ex-student. Did it just figure. Candy frowned, trying to pull her
thoughts from the bedroom into the classroom. “Oh, that’s right. Wow. Time
flies,” she said with forced levity, feeling suddenly old as hell. “What was
that, ten years ago?” “Twelve,” he said. He
crouched next to her and nodded at her bare leg. “Did you hurt yourself?” “Oh, no. It’s nothing. Just a
cramp.” He was so close to her that she could feel the heat of his body and smell him—young and
virile and masculine. Holy shit he was sexy! “I can fix that,” he said.
Without waiting for her to respond he took her foot and propped it in his lap.
Then he began to massage her cramping calf. His hands
were strong and his touch was incredibly warm. “Lay back. Relax.” His voice had
dropped to the deep, throaty tone he’d used when he’d first come into the
clearing. “Let me take care of you.” She stared at him. She should tell him to take her foot out of
his crotch and take his hands off her leg. But his touch was doing the most amazing
things to her body. His fingers were sending little ripples of shock from her
calf up the inside of her thigh and directly to her crotch, filling her with an
unexpected rush of heat and wetness. “Don’t fight it. There’s no reason to. It’s just me,” he said.
His breath had deepened and his eyes kept traveling from her mouth to her
breasts. She realized that her aroused nipples were clearly visible through
her damp tee shirt and sheer white sports bra. What would it hurt? It had been years since a beautiful young man
had rubbed anything on her body. Why the hell not? She deserved a good time.
After all, she wasn’t planning on being a Fighting Fairy much longer. With a
sigh, she lay back. His smile was knowing. “Does that feel good?” he asked. instep. “You know, I had a
huge crush on you in high school,” he murmured. “I thought you were the sexiest woman I’d ever seen.”
Candy couldn’t seem to find her voice. “You’re still the sexiest woman I’ve
ever seen.” Slowly, he raised her foot to his lips and kissed the delicate arch his fingers
had warmed. She shivered. “You shouldn’t do that,” she said, but she didn’t
pull her foot from his grasp. “Why not?” His tongue flicked out and touched
her foot. “Because you’re my ex-student!” she blurted. He smiled and scooted
forward so that his mouth could move from her foot to her ankle. “I’m of
age. Well of age. I’m twenty-six.” “Oh, God!” She said as his teeth teasingly
nipped her bare leg. “I thought you were twenty- seven.”
As if one year actually made a difference. He was an infant! Practically a
teenager. “I’ll be twenty-seven if you
want me to be,” he said huskily. “Oh, God!” she gasped
(again), and all thoughts of statutory rape and moral turpitude fled from her
mind. “Sssh,” he breathed against
the sensitive spot behind her knee. “You taught me twelve years ago. Now it’s
my turn. Let me teach you what I’ve learned since I left your class.” “You really shouldn’t,” she
said breathlessly, making no move to stop him as his lips grazed her inner
thigh. He continued as if she hadn’t
spoken. “What I’ve learned is how to use my tongue and mouth to bring a woman to
orgasm before I fill her body with mine and stroke her into another climax and
then another.” “So you do this often?” The
thought of the possibility that she might be just another in a long line of
female conquests began to dissipate her horny haze. “No,” he moaned, his mouth
against her skin. “Don’t think that. It’s you I want to taste—you I want to
pleasure. I’ve fantasized about you for years. You have no idea how much I
want you and only you. Let me make my fantasies real.” “But I’ve sworn off men,” she
said inanely. Between his husky voice and his clever mouth, she was quickly
falling back into a mindless horny haze, and was barely able to form a complete
thought. “That’s perfect because I’m
not a man,” he said, his eyes shining up at her from between her legs. “I’m a
werewolf. You can make love to me and still keep your oath.” Her breath caught in
surprise. Had she ever known that he was one of Brokenoggin’s werewolves?
Janice certainly wasn’t. Was she? And then, Candy automatically glanced up at
the darkening sky, where a full moon would soon be rising above the trees. “If I remember correctly, Candy,”
his voice caressed her name, “your magic is non-magic. Which means I am unable
to shift my shape around you. I am in man form right now, and as long as I’m
close to you I’ll stay in that form.” He nuzzled her thigh. “Let me make love
to you, my sweet Candy. Let me be your lover.” I know exactly what you
need…a werewolf lover. Godiva’s voice whispered through her mind. Maybe her friend was
right. And why the hell not? It had been so damn long. A young, virile
lover... With a fierce smile, she made
her decision. “If you can’t change form as
long as I’m close to you, I guess the right answer is for me to keep you very
close to me.” She pulled the young werewolf to her and let his victorious
growl vibrate against her naked skin. *** Jogging home her pace was filled with newfound energy and her
smile never wavered. Godiva had been right. A werewolf lover was spectacular.
Especially such a young werewolf lover. God, she’d almost forgotten the
incredibly sexy strength of a young man’s body. And recovery time! Jeesh. The
boy/man/wolf had been better than a recharged vibrator. She jumped the steps
into her house two at a time. He made her feel twenty again. And the day
after tomorrow…they were meeting again the day after tomorrow. He’d wanted to
see her again the very next day, but then he had suddenly remembered that he’d
promised Janice that every odd day of the week he’d help her with…well,
whatever. Candy couldn’t remember exactly what job he’d promised to do for the
sheriff every other day. She had been too busy staring at his wonderful
mouth—there was a whole other world waiting for her in that mouth— and she
looked foreword to discovering new territory in it every other day. She could
hardly wait. Gulping a glass of water, her
eye caught sight of the notebook and pencil sitting on her desk where she’d
left them. Candy grinned. Again, Godiva had been right. He’d certainly unblocked
her. Eagerly, she sat down and put pencil to the unfinished page, taking up
easily where she’d left off. You ask, what now? Candy giggled. You see…a wolfman is the man
for me. The ringing phone jarred her. The caller ID said Tawdry, Godiva.
Blushing, Candy answered the phone. “So,” Godiva’s voice was smug. “How was your jog?” Candy’s breath came out in a rush. “You know! Did you do it?” “Do what?” “Don’t play innocent witch with me. How did you manage it? Magic
doesn’t work on me.” “It might not work on you, but it definitely works on werewolves.”
“You made him want me!” she shrieked. “Certainly not,” Godiva
sounded offended. “All I did was to cast a lupine drawing spell. If it caught
a wolf that didn’t find you attractive, he would have never approached you.
Think of it like baiting a hook. If the worm—which was you—wasn’t juicy and
tender and appealing to the fish—or in this case, werewolf—he would never taste the bait.” “Oh,” Candy grinned and
twirled a thick strand of hair around her finger. “Details, please.” “Let’s just say this worm was
well eaten.” They both dissolved into
giggles. “And,” Candy said
breathlessly, “I’m meeting him again, day after tomorrow. And then every other
day after that. He said he can’t get enough of me, and, honey, let me tell
you. I definitely can’t get enough of him!” “Sounds delicious! Who is
he?” “You mean you don’t know?” “No. I told you—I just baited
the hook. I had no idea which wolf would bite.” “Oh, Godiva, it’s so
deliciously naughty. He’s young, and,” she dropped her voice to a
whisper, “he’s an ex-student of mine.” “Oh, Goddess! How yummy.
Give. Who is he?” Godiva gushed. “Jason Thinksalot,” she said
breathlessly. “Who?” “Jason Thinksalot. You know,
he said he’s related to Janice.” “Oh, Goddess.” “What? What’s wrong? I know
he’s young, but it’s not like he’s still a teenager—which would be totally
disgusting—he’s twenty-six. Practically twenty-seven.” “Oh, Goddess.” “Godiva Tawdry what is it!”
Candy was beginning to feel sick. “I should have known,” Godiva
groaned. “But how could I have known? I didn’t think it would be him.” “Godiva. Tell me.” The witch drew a deep breath
and then blurted. “He’s a slut.” “What?!” “He’s the most promiscuous
werewolf in town—or out of town for that matter. The pack tramp. Truly a dog
in all the worst connotations of the word.” “Oh, no…” “Oh, yes. The every other day
thing? That’s probably the only way he could work you into his busy schedule.”
“And all that stuff he said
to me…” “You mean about making a
woman orgasm with his mouth?” Candy gasped in horror. “Let me guess—he licked your
foot?” Godiva said. “Yes,” Candy squeeked. “That’s his move. He does
that with all the girls/wolves/whatever.” “I may be sick.” “Hey, don’t worry about it,”
Godiva forced perkiness into her voice. “You had a good time, right?” “He played me for a fool,”
Candy said quietly. “No, he’s just—” Candice cut her off. “He’s
just not going to get away with it. I said I was too old for this kind of
shit, and I am. But not because I’m dried up and unattractive. I’m too old to
be lied to and cheated on. So tell me the truth. He’s obviously not working
with our sheriff tomorrow night. What is he really doing?” “Uh, if I tell you, what are
you going to do?” “Well, my witchy friend, I
can sum that up in one word. Retribution.” *** The full moon was so white
against the deep black of the starless sky that it almost looked silver.
Sitting at the edge of the clearing, Candice breathed deeply of the warm night
air and waited. It wasn’t long before she heard them approaching through the
trees. They weren’t being stealthy—there was no reason for it. They were being
young and uninhibited and very, very horny. Godiva had been right
(again). It was easy to tell which of the wolves was Jason. That thick black
pelt was as distinctive as his eyes (and his tongue). She stood up and stepped into
the clearing. Keeping the hand that clutched the collar hidden behind her back
she cocked her hip and shook back her hair. With a sexy purr to her voice, she
called to him. “Jason, come here boy!” The
big black wolf quit rolling around the ground with the little bitch he’d been
licking and cocked his ears at her. Candice ran her hand suggestively over her
body. “I have something special for you that I just couldn’t wait till
tomorrow to give you.” With an enthusiastic woof, he
bounded towards her, his all-too-familiar tongue lolling. With one quick
movement, she dropped to her knees beside him and slipped the heavy duty choke
collar around his throat. “Arough?” he said, staring up
at her in confusion. “Tonight you’re coming with
me,” she whispered. When the bitches yapped at her, she grinned over her
shoulder at them. “Don’t worry. I’ll give him back to you—but not till I’ve had
my way with him.” He whined and squirmed as she
dragged him to her jeep. “Don’t bother,” she told him. “Remember, my magic is
non-magic. You can’t change as long as I’m close to you. And I hear that your
favorite position is very close to any woman. So get comfortable fur-face.” *** “Thank goodness I caught you
before you closed, Joe,” Candice smiled as she dragged the whining wolf into
the veterinary clinic. “Is there something wrong
with your…” The vet hesitated, narrowing his eyes at the wolf. “Dog,” Candice supplied.
“Yes, there is something wrong with my dog. I need you to perform emergency
surgery.” “Really? He looks healthy to
me.” The vet reached down and ruffled the “dog’s” dark fur. Jason whined pitifully. “You’re a big boy, aren’t
you?” the vet said. “He certainly thinks he
is—which explains the emergency. I need you to,” Candice paused, glanced at
Jason, then dropped her voice and whispered into the vet’s ear. “Well, I don’t know. It’s
pretty late. I was just closing,” Joe said. “Surely you can fit him in.
Pretty please, Joe?” She fluttered her lashes at him. Joe smiled and shrugged. “I
suppose I could for my favorite teacher. Go Fairies!” “Go Fairies!” Candice chimed
in automatically. “If you wait here, I’ll take
him in the back and be done in no time,” Joe said. “Uh, no! I mean, I’ll come
back with you. If I don’t stay close to him he’ll change…into something that
might surprise you.” “But you won’t want to
watch!” “Oh, no, no,” she assured
him. “I’ll stay in the room, but I have a poem I need to finish, so I’ll be
concentrating on that while you take care of his problem.” “Suit yourself, teacher,” Joe
said. “Bring him back.” Candice settled on a metal
folding chair not far from the operating room table, careful to keep her back
to the busy veterinarian and his unwilling patient. She picked up her pencil,
and smiled as she finished
her poem. But if that wolfman breaks my
heart if he thinks that we should part I’ll wait until the moon is waxing full
that magic time when his change is due, (my love is quite helpless then, as a
puppy…baby…body in a mortuary) I’d collar that fur-faced gigolo and make a
timely visit to The Vet. Ah, well, I’m sure there’ll
never be a need. Candice smiled and glanced up
at where Joe obscured her view of the sleeping, spread eagle Jason. …Yet. Episode 1.4 CRUNCHING SCIENTIST, HIDDEN DRAGON By Sophia Nash Episode 1.4 Crunching Scientist, Hidden Dragon By Sophia Nash “Well, I’ll be damned if I’m going to let
Vanessa DuMal get her claws in one of them before me.” Mavis Gap dropped the
edge of her avocado and burnt orange striped curtains back in place and turned
to Janice, draped comfortably across a chartreuse loveseat. “Your pointed ears are glowing, honey.” “Well, I like that. Is that all you
gotta say?” Mavis scooped the chihuahua from her native Indian cop friend’s
lap and paced, a pouty look in full bloom. “Well, what did you expect? You know how
bored I get listening to your Vanessathons. When are you going to learn to
just ignore her?” “The day I win.” “Win what?” “Whatever.” Mavis bent down to kiss the
top of Prunella’s head, a devious plan emerging. “Have another Cosmopolitan, honey.” Janice
patted the seat next to her before giving the cocktail shaker a couple of jigs
and draining it into the two V shaped glasses. “It’s not even 7:15 in the morning,
Janice.” “Think of it as retail therapy.” “Wha? I can’t talk to you when you’re
this far gone.” Mavis accepted the glass from her friend and drained it in one
swallow. “It’s retail therapy when I had to go out
and actually buy this fancy French firewater since you couldn’t remember the
spell.” “You’re changing the subject.” Mavis glared
at her friend and wondered, not for the first time, if Janice was fifty or one
hundred and fifty. It was hard to tell given the amount of Votox Janice had
convinced the town vet to inject in her forehead. If she had not been her best
friend Mavis would make fun of the slight droop in one eyebrow. “I have dibs on
Dr. Perfectly-Chiseled.” “Does Dr. Predily-Chisolm know?” “He will tonight when he comes for
dinner. He and the other two visiting archaeologists end their first day of
excavation at five.” She looked down at her bosom and rearranged her Miracle
bra to extra perky before leafing through the pages of the latest edition of
Chihuahua Fancy. Janice sat up straight and shifted her
eyes. “Where’d they say they were digging?” “Why Corkscrew Falls—where all those old
bones are.” Janice’s eyes radiated a wolfish color
for the merest moment before she downed the cocktail and vamoosed out the door
faster than Mavis could say, “Single, white, willing witch. Humans within
1,500 mile radius only. Reply with photo.” *** If there was one thing Vanessa DuMal was
sure of, it was that she didn’t want to end up like town busybody, Mavis Gap,
with her neurotic brood of Chihuahuas and a passion for exotic cocktails. She
felt sorry for the woman who lived her life by watching everyone else’s.
Vanessa shook her head. Did Mavis really think Vanessa hadn’t seen her peeking
past her curtains whose colors were a scary homage to the dubious design
choices of the 70’s? Walking away from Sarah Caldron’s Chat
& Chew, Vanessa wondered why Mavis was so envious of her, anyway. It was
not as if she had any children, the one thing every other witch in town craved.
It seemed the woman coveted everything Vanessa possessed. Every time she
bought new clothes, not a week would go by before Mavis would be wearing the
identical thing—even when the jeans had made her chunky bottom and legs look
like, like…Vanessa forced back her mean-spirited thoughts and turned onto Puff
Draggy Lane. She knew why she was feeling cattish. Her hormones were on
overdrive and Mavis had blatantly propositioned Vanessa’s husband Jean-Luc at the
annual All Hollow’s Eve party at the town hall last week. The thought of her spouse made Vanessa’s
stomach churn. Every nerve ending in her body was tingling. Why had she made
that outrageous suggestion to the archaeologist at the Chat & Chew? It wasn’t
like her to flirt. She hadn’t looked twice at a male—human, warlock or
otherwise—since the day she had laid eyes on the Frenchman of her dreams that
warm autumn day in Paris—the day she had realized her lifelong dream of
visiting the City of Light. With his wild lion’s mane hair, glittering gold
eyes, and passion for adventure, the West Bank artist with a slew of fancy
French titles had stolen her heart faster than the time it had taken for the
paint to dry on the canvas she had purchased from him. She could still barely believe her luck
in having this extraordinary and mysterious man ask her to marry him, and agree
to move to middle-of-nowhere America. But he had had no choice given that
Vanessa spoke no French and the Parisian financial institutions had shown
little interest in employing an investment analyst from Michigan despite her
extraordinary knack for picking winning stocks and commodity futures. And so,
acting on the spur of the moment, a most beloved French trait, Jean-Luc had
packed up his canvases and paints brushes and sailed back with her to America.
Surprisingly, he had become enraptured by
the natural and mysterious elements of Brokenoggin which he featured in all his
new paintings. Although why a normal human would like it Brokenoggin she could
never understand. Most humans only stuck around here because of the various
potions and spells that were secretly disbursed as freely as sedatives on a
mental ward. Selling short May Pork Bellies five years
ago had provided the couple with enough cash for them to marry and move into a
house that Jean-Luc had quickly filled with his bold, visionary art. But
lately, nothing seemed to be going right. They were stuck in a rut of epic
proportions. Jean-Luc’s art wasn’t selling, and Vanessa’s depressing hormone
charts had long ago replaced their dinner discussions of charting the once
exhilarating pre-Silicon Valley financial markets. And lately, many of their
friends had stopped including them in gatherings. Many called Jean-Luc haughty and unapproachable
behind her back, forgetting that Vanessa’s gift of extraordinary hearing made
anyone within a four-block radius subject to her auditory clairvoyance. But she
loved Jean-Luc. Always would, despite his bizarre love of Animal Kingdom and
Jerry Lewis and his disinterest in daily showers. There was something about the mysterious
glow she sometimes thought she saw lurking in his eyes when he growled and
mated with her that made the answering primal urge within her ignite. It was
just that lately, she was certain all her childbearing enhancement potions were
interfering in their once tempestuous sex life. And there were times Vanessa was sure he
didn’t love her as much as she loved him. She sometimes thought the only reason
he stayed with her was because of her adeptness at moneymaking ventures. The
quarterly visits by her in-laws didn’t help Vanessa’s self-esteem either.
Jean-Luc’s father and stepmother Simone could make mincemeat of lesser
mortals. Their hawkish features and vague criticism of ‘vulgar American ways,”
cut Vanessa to the quick. When they came, there was no question in her opinion
of who came first in Jean-Luc’s mind in the familial pecking order. And
Vanessa couldn’t bear her stepmother-in-law’s accusatory stare. Didn’t they know
that Vanessa wanted to provide them with a grandchild even more than Jean-Luc
did? After five years with Jean-Luc, her itch for a child was worse than the
time Alice Fairweather mistakenly mixed poison ivy extract in her Preparation H
type remedy. Vanessa just couldn’t take it anymore.
Her eyelids burned with tears fighting to form as she opened the little gate to
her house’s cobbled walkway. A few feathers danced in the early morning breeze
and Vanessa wondered if the neighbor’s cat had finally gotten to the baby
eaglets nearby. “Jean-Luc, this is the only way. For the
thousandth time, you should have followed your father’s advice and never
married Vanessa, anyway. We knew the union could never produce an heir. At
least we’re grateful it hasn’t produced…something canine.” Vanessa stopped dead in her tracks and
stared at her red front door. Simone DuMal’s voice drowned out Mavis’s barking
chihuahuas five blocks away. She lost the fight with her welling tears. “You’ve gone too far, Simone. I won’t do
it. Not even for my father. I love Vanessa.” “Love…such a foolish notion Americans put
on their greeting cards”—Vanessa could picture Simone’s Gallic shrug—”Since
when did love having anything to do with producing the next generation’s
Vicomte de la Gryphon? Vanessa is a nice enough girl. But what we need is a
nester and breeder. I know the glitter of gold is what got to you. It has
been the undoing of most of our kind.” There was a pause. “Now, don’t make me
angry, you know what happens when the mood strikes me and I’m already
peckish.” Vanessa heard a familiar growl and scratching noise. “It’s a fait
accompli. You’re to meet that nice, normal archaeologist lady at eight pm
at the house your father and I rent when we come to visit. I told her you were
an expert on the history of Brokenoggin and she bought it. I’ll make a
delicious Foggy Dragon’s Breath soup so she’ll envision her wildest dream come
true—although with your charm and looks you really shouldn’t need it—and if you
can’t get her between the sheets within the blink of a sty, then I’ll, I’ll,
well, we’ll all give Vanessa another chance.” “Simone.” “Don’t ‘Simone’ me. This is for the
best. And Vanessa would thank us. If you impregnate the archaeologist, we’ll
cast spells on both Vanessa and the scientist so that they’re both convinced
it’s Vanessa’s child after the fact.” “I don’t know, Simone. It sounds pretty
far-fetched. But…I guess I’m willing to do it, if it will solve our problem.
Frankly, I’m sick of the subject.” Vanessa clapped her hands over her ears
and ran back toward town. Her cursed extra-sensory hearing. She knew it. Just
knew it. Jean-Luc didn’t love her. Now, there was nothing stopping her from
accepting that offer of a drink tonight. And it would serve them all right if
her child looked like the nerdy archaeologist. A new wave of tears erupted.
Witches were not known for their willingness to bite off their noses to spite
their faces. *** The table was set, the tarot cards swept
under the couch, and the dogs, bless their little hearts, dead asleep behind
the kitchen door after lapping up that mild sleeping draught. Mavis glanced at
a chew toy peeping up at her from the harvest-gold shag carpeting and kicked it
under the coffee table. The doorbell rang and Mavis suddenly
noticed that the eyes of the lit troll candle were glaring at her. She turned
the face away and ran to the door. Opening it, she stared up at the most
handsome human she’d ever seen. Wavy chestnut hair, blue-green eyes, full
luscious lips. Ah, he looked liked Dr. Kildare, only better. “Mrs. Gap?” Dr. Predily-Chisolm gallantly
swept up her hand and bent to brush his lips upon it. How utterly nineteenth
century romantic. There were definitely some things she wished civilization
hadn’t lost in the name of progress. Mavis forced back a girlish giggle. “Do
come in. I’m soooo glad you could make it. I know how tiring all that digging
must be.” He crossed the threshold and Mavis
quickly locked the door behind him and turned off the porch light. Nothing
was going to interrupt her now. “I’ve prepared a little dinner and”—she licked
her lips— ”a lot of dessert for after.” “How kind of you, Mrs. Gap.” “Miss Gap. But please call me
Mavis.” “Alright. Then you must call me John.” “How appropriate,” Mavis replied with a
giggle she hoped didn’t sound like a snort. He was so cute standing there and looking
a bit flustered and disheveled. Mavis rose up on her toes and brushed a fleck
of dirt off his cheek. “Miss—or rather, Mavis, thank you so much
for your invitation and for offering to give me a little insight into the
history of this town. I really do think we’re onto some sort of breakthrough.
We’re still trying to document the find. Can’t tell if it’s a woolly mammoth
or some sort of ancient dinosaur.” “How fascinating. Tell me more. But
first, please, try this little drinky-winky. I’ve made a batch of piсa-coladas
and they’re divine, if I do say so.” She slid a drink into his hand faster
than a black widow bites the head off its mate. Potions weren’t her forte.
She just hoped the aphrodisiac wasn’t too potent, but then again, maybe that
wouldn’t be such a bad thing. She motioned him to sit on the love seat and
joined him. Mavis clinked his glass in salute,
forcing him to take a swallow. “Mmmm, Mavis. That’s good. What’s that unusual
taste?” Must be the dash of ground Mexican fire
ant testes. “Paprika.” “Curious,” he said taking two gulps in
rapid succession. His eyes looked a little glazed. He shook his head in an obvious
effort to regain his sense of purpose. “So tell me about Brokenoggin.” “This drear—I mean dear little town?
Well, let’s see.” She really should tell him a little to whet his appetite and
ensure his return if the wild sex didn’t do the trick. He was simply too
handsome to be content with a one night stand. She hunched her shoulders which
forced her cleavage to full frontal attack mode and placed a finger on her
Dance with the Devil Red lips. “I understand from a little book I have,
written by my ancestor—a grandfather—or rather a great, great, great
grandfather. Maybe one or two more greats should be in there.” She winked at
him. “Anyway, sometime during the seventeenth century, he emigrated here from
Plymouth along with a group of other settlers who seemed disenchanted with the
whole puritan scene. I think he came with about six or seven other friends.”
“Really?” He had the cutest earnest expression on
his face. And the hugest bulge in his trousers. Mavis smiled. “Yes. Care for
some guacamole and chips?” She dipped a chip and dropped it between his
quivering lips before dragging her finger along his willing tongue. “Honey,
are you OK? You look a little warm.” That was an understatement. “No, no, I’m fine.” He gulped back the
rest of the piсa-colada and tugged on his tie. Mavis leaned forward to deftly untie the
striped Brooks-Brothers staple. Vanessa would be impressed. “How were they received?” he asked. A
trickle of perspiration slid down his temple. “What, honey?” “Your ancestor and his group. How were
they received?” “Oh. Let’s see.” She touched the tip of
her tongue on her top lip and tried to look thoughtful. Hmmmm, maybe she should
let him have another half a piсa colada so he’d really let go of his
inhibitions. She poured a little more from the Waring blender. “Well, it seems
the new settlers were very warmly welcomed because the original town folk were,
well, starving.” He tossed back the drink like a man who
had just crossed the Sahara. “Starving…” His pupils were dilated, and his
voice had taken on a kind of husky vibration. Something was dancing the mambo
in his pants. It was an impressive sight—enough to make any girl swoon. She looked at his transfixed gaze and
swooped in for a kiss. Let the thrashing begin. She had meant for the experience to
culminate in her bedroom. She had spiffed it up for the occasion, pink silk
sheets, a pink comforter, ruffles on all the pillows and bows on all the
curtains. But it wasn’t in the cards. She should have guessed since her tarot
cards had forewarned that this was going to be wild, brief, and devastating. Yummy.
Dr. Predily-Chisolm was a big boy. And
he was adorable, all large clumsy hands between mutterings of ‘sorry’ every
half a minute or so. He didn’t seem to know how to unhook her push-up bra or
untangle the fishnet stockings around her ankles. But he did know what to do
with his, his—well, a nice girl would call it ‘his digging tool,’ she
thought with a smirk. Oh, this felt so nice and normal after
all that wild jungle sex with the warlocks in town, when you never knew if they
were going to turn into lions or tigers or dragons at the drop of a wand. And
this time she was sure she would conceive a real child with magical powers
instead of another chihuahua. Not that she didn’t love the little darlings. It
was just that she was tired of all the pitying looks in town. And boy would it
get Vanessa’s goat. Oh my, she might just be reaching the
point of having an old-fashioned climax! How novel. Dr. Predily-Chisolm leaned
up on his forearms and Mavis gazed at his beautiful abs. She sighed in
pleasure and urged him silently with her hips. She was right on the pinnacle
and panting. “I’m so sorry, Mavis. I don’t know
what’s come over me.” “I don’t know what you mean, handsome.
I’m all yours for the taking.” “I mean, I don’t normally do this sort of
thing.” “Really? I would’ve never guessed.” If
he didn’t move again, she thought she would die of anticipation. She bucked
against him. “Wait. What’s that noise?” he asked. Please. Start. Moving. Now. She thought
in annoyance. She tried to tug his neck down but he had gone rigid. “I hear scratching and…and is that
barking?” Oh God. No! And she knew just what they
were capable of. Prunella had taught Wisty and George how to balance her on
their backs so that she could reach the kitchen doorknob with her paws and
wrench it open. No sooner had she envisioned it, when all nine dogs burst
through the door and circled them, barking in a laughing sort of way. The scientist jumped up, pulled up his
pants and stood on top of the end table, knocking her precious troll candle to
the floor. Mavis threw the rest of the piсa coladas
on the small flames now licking the carpet and a purple starburst erupted
before it extinguished the fire and left an ashen spot of sodden cinders. The
dogs had surrounded the end table like a pack of laughing hyenas and the good
doctor was looking mighty uncomfortable. Mavis was about as frustrated as she had
ever been in her life. “Prunella, if you don’t herd Wisty, George, Max and the
rest back to the kitchen, I’ll put you in the pound! And I’ll take you for
your annual shots early!” Mavis snapped a hand to her mouth. He would
think she was a raving lunatic talking to her little ones like that. Luckily,
he looked too scared to have noticed. “Johnny, darling, no need to cower up
there, my little doggies are the sweetest, they’d never hurt a Spanish fly.” Prunella winked and led her brothers and
sisters back to the kitchen. The scientist still appeared anxious and only half
listening when she helped him down. “I’m sorry, I don’t really like dogs.
I’m allergic.” His eyes did look a little watery. “Really? Well, you don’t look allergic
to me. Let’s go back to my bedroom where we won’t be disturbed.” “Ummm, thank you, Mavis, but really, I-I
think I should be going.” Mavis dropped her gaze to his pants and
saw that the dance had ended. Abruptly. Should’a made him drink a full second
glass. “But I have ever so much more to tell you about my ancestors, John. And
dinner is almost finished cooking.” He looked tempted but embarrassed.
“Well, all right, but maybe we should stay in this room. I don’t know what
came over me, Mavis. And I hope you’ll accept my apology. You see, the thing is,
well, to be perfectly frank”—he blinked—”I’m gay.” *** Dr. Loindexter’s room at Motel 13 gave
Mavis Gap’s home decorating efforts a run for their money. Vanessa tried not to
hyperventilate while she stared at the tilted barrel-shaped lampshade on the
nightstand next to the glued-down TV remote. The shiny blue polyester bed
covering looked like something right out of Alice’s bedroom from The Brady
Bunch. As she waited for Dr. Loindexter to emerge from the bathroom, she drew
the curtains closed in an effort to ignore the blinking of the neon tavern sign
across the street. Why, oh, why had she let this go so far?
She could have said ‘no’ after their dinner at Transylvania Pizza Kitchen. She
could have said no after drinks at Brokenoggin’s only tavern. But she hadn’t.
Every time ‘no thank you’ had crept onto her tongue, she remembered her
stepmother-in-law’s voice, ‘what we need is a nester and a breeder.” It
made Vanessa so hurt and sick inside. They always assumed it was her problem.
Well, had her in-laws ever stopped to think that maybe the problem lay in Jean-Luc’s
prodigious lap? Vanessa had spared Jean-Luc the embarrassment of submitting to
an examination by never voicing that thought. She removed her pale pink Manolo Blahniks
that matched her spring tweed suit and Gucci scarf. Jean-Luc had bought the
tiny skirt and jacket because he had said it made her legs look long and sexy.
Oh, she was going to have to stop thinking of Jean-Luc if she was going to do
this. She sat on the edge of the bed and straightened her spine. Reason fought with hurt feelings. Why
hadn’t he stood up to Simone? He almost always had in the past. Vanessa
remembered the secret, and guilty thrill she felt each time he had winked at
her before maneuvering his unsuspecting stepmother on top of their scratched up
trap door. She had thought they were on the same side. Not any more. The archaeologist emerged from the
bathroom, his white Fruit of the Looms pulled high. He had carefully wet and
combed his dark hair parted down the middle. He had tiny aureoles and not a
single strand of hair on his sunken chest. However, the hair from all the wild
beasts in Africa could be found covering his thin legs above his white socks. A
lopsided grin stretched from ear to ear. He looked like he was counting his
lucky stars. Vanessa supposed she had chosen him so
that she would feel less guilty. It was working. Jean-Luc pumped iron on
Mondays, Wednesdays and Saturdays and had some spectacularly sinuous muscles to
show for his efforts. This man, and she used the term generously, would
probably think a Nautilus machine was a navigational device. She crooked a finger at him, urging him
forward. He eagerly jumped onto the bed and sniffed her. So much for sensual
foreplay. “Vanessa, you’re the most beautiful woman
I’ve ever ever seen. I still can’t belie—” She leaned forward, held her breath and
forced herself to kiss him. It was too bad she had forgotten to close her
eyes. She forced back the bile creeping up her throat. For all his assumed lack of experience,
the scientist sure knew how to undress a woman in less time than she could do
it herself. But soon, way too soon, his clammy little hands were exploring
every last inch of her body, and she was trying, unsuccessfully, to keep disgust
at bay. He kept moaning her name over and over until she thought she would
scream. She wished he would just get it over with. Then she would thank him,
leave, and get home in time to mix up a post-coital fermentation elixir to
optimize the chance of conception. She dropped her hand to touch him in an
effort to urge him to mount. A wilted, placid piece of flesh greeted her hand.
What on earth? She had only ever seen Jean-Luc’s manhood, something that would
spark fear in the eyes of any virgin. With good reason. “Oh, Vanessa. Vanessa, baby. See me, feel
me, touch me, heallllll me—” Oh. My. God. Was he whispering lyrics
from the Who’s ‘Tommy’? “Um, Dr. Loindexter. Are you OK?” “Oh, yes, Vanessa baby. Just keep
touching me. It’s been so long. So long since…” “Yes?” “Ah, hell…since anyone’s hand has touched
me other than my own.” She forced herself to open her eyes and
saw a red flush move past his eyebrows to his receding hairline. “I’m sorry Dr.
Loindexter.” Such an unfortunate surname choice. “Will you please call me Duncan?” he
whined. “Oh, sorry, Duncan. What can I do?” He sighed heavily, rolled off of her and
covered his face with his forearm. “Nothing. Not a darn thing. You’re just too
intimidating for me, I guess. No, let me revise that. I know you’re
too intimidating. Hell, I’ve never gotten past second base with anyone, not
even pimply old Betty Sue Bob Michaels. How do you expect someone like me to
perform under so much pressure?” Vanessa’s mouth twitched. Poor man. “I’m
sorry Duncan. Do you want to try again?” She prayed he would say no. Right
now she would give up her first unborn anything if she could just get out of
there. If this was not a sign from her friend Lucifer that good witches didn’t
have to put up with bad sex, then— But… Her nature refused to let her leave
without doing a kindness toward Dr. Loindexter. She flipped open her Birkin
bag, extended her compact wand and flicked it. “Obliviosus somnus,” she
said, wishing she could remember that chapter on organ transformation from her
Curses textbook. This would have to do. Her liver wasn’t into continuing this
ridiculous plan anyway. Duncan Loindexter slept the sleep of the
dead, his jaw slackening in surrender. She was just going to have to figure
out another way to have a child. Perhaps Lucifer would be willing to make a
deal with her. He always had been more than accommodating in the past. Vanessa threw her wand back in her bag,
snapped into her clothes, and walked away from the preposterously named Dr.
Loindexter. She only wished she could experience a little forgetful sleep
herself. *** Jean-Luc DuMal gulped down his
stepmother’s soup like a fluish Jewish man tolerates his mama’s lukewarm Matzo
balls. He gazed down the length of the formal dining room table, marked with
only a few very faint scratch marks, reminders of some heated family
arguments. He wondered about the petite dark brunette archeologist facing
him. So very unlike Vanessa, his dear long, tall drink of ambrosia. His wife
was the quintessential blonde bombshell of every man’s fantasies. How was he
going to go through with this? Dr. Heather Lovingood was ordinary in a
girl-next-door kind of way. She had huge white straight teeth courtesy of an
excellent American orthodontist, a pert nose, and eyeglasses which were just
dying to be taken off her face. But she just wasn’t his type. It was also clear, however, that the
reverse was not true. Two sips of Simone’s soup had made the woman begin to
stare at him with a sort of rapt fascination similar to when the conversation
at the Ladies Home Wicca coffee-clatch turned to Hugh Jackman. Where was the
fun in this? The delicate dance of flirtation was best performed when both
parties knew the art of being coy and intriguing with a sprinkle of dry humor,
something his wife had in abundance. When he felt himself harden, despite
thoughts of his beloved wife, he began to suspect that Simone had slipped
something in his soup too—and it certainly wasn’t a potion that made Dr.
Lovingood look like Hugh Jackman. But then, his stepmother had never been
known to leave things to chance. “Mr. DuMal, you were speaking about the
new settlers, one of whom was your wife’s ancestor, right? He nodded and pushed away his soup bowl. “So they were instrumental in helping the
original townsfolk survive a particularly harsh winter. A kind of re-creation
of Plymouth’s first winter with the Indians, right?” she asked. “Yes, except these newcomers didn’t scalp
the townsfolk.” He smiled at her against his will. Heather was actually fairly
cute. Very cute, really. “Instead, they brought foodstuffs with them and
had some, uh, original methods of stretching what they had on
hand.” “So the inhabitants must have been
grateful.” “You would think.” He scratched his head.
“But you would be incorrect. It seems that once the starving townsfolk’s
stomachs were full, they began to question the newcomers’ methods.” He had a
sudden, nearly irresistible urge to climb on top of the table and crawl over to
this Lovingood babe and lick her. A rumbling from his stomach signaled
gastro-intestinal fire burning his ribs and his crotch. He wondered if dear
old Simone had found this potion in her Joy of Spooking or in a highly
adulterated Guide Micheline recipe file. Annoyance wrestled with desire, and of
course, desire won. “Really?” Heather paused and pulled the
rubber band from her hair, allowing the silky dark strands to fall all over her
nubile shoulders. When had she unbuttoned her oxford shirt
and pushed it off her shoulders? The Lovingood ran a hand through her hair
and tossed it back with panache. “And how did the newcomers react?” she asked
huskily. OK, no one could blame him. No
self-respecting warlock worth his weight in hemlock could resist this potion
whatever it was. He felt like he would explode if he didn’t have her right
here, right now. He got up, trying to casually hold a napkin over his front,
and walked the long length of the table to her. She looked up at him with huge
brown doe-eyes. Simone was right. It was for the best.
Vanessa would thank him if she knew what he was going through to provide
a child for them. He would do the Lovingood and make everyone happy by the
act. “Miss Lovingood, I have some etchings in my study that might be of
particular interest to you. Would you care to see them, my dear?” Not very
original, but who needed subtlety with potions like these? “Ohhhhh, yessss,” she said, breathing
heavily as they almost raced down the hallway. It was a miracle their pants were still
on by the time they reached the study. “What about your wife, Mr. DuMal?”
Heather asked in a moment of clarity. “Wife?” His mind turned to mush when the little
she-devil did something indescribably delicious with her tongue in his ear.
Little did she know she was playing with fire. Literally. He ached for her now with an intensity he
had never known. His stepmother sure knew how to cook. And Heather was
simmering for him. She was mewling like a cat and arching her back like a
rabid raccoon. It was a sight to behold. He gently nudged her down onto the brown
leather sofa and began to unzip his black jeans. The urge to stretch his long
length into her was unrelenting. He allowed his pants to drop and anticipated
the look of reverence that would light up Lovingood’s face. She giggled. It was the kind of giggle that felt like
a dash of ice cold water. With sickening intuition, he looked down to see the
stuff of nightmares. Standing as erect as a tin soldier was a manhood in all
its glory. But it wasn’t his manhood. It looked…well, it looked like a
birthday candle, a child’s unlit pink birthday cake candle. Even the revolving
pink and white swirls were visible. Hell… “Simone,” he roared. An involuntary
flash of fire came out of his throat. Heather screamed. Jean-Luc felt the unmistakable gnawing of
shifting in his bones. It was an achy, fiery sensation that reminded him of
the sound of fingernails on chalkboard. It actually almost felt good. He
hadn’t shifted since the day he’d married Vanessa. In fact, for five years he
had stoically endured a horrendous case of PGS, pre-griffin syndrome. He
didn’t need to glance down to see the feathers forming under his skin, his lionish
tailbones elongating, and his claws emerging. Miss Lovingood clearly wasn’t going to
hang around to see the rest. Moments later, Jean-Luc found himself tripping
over his tangled pants in an effort to keep up with her as she raced out the
front door. Luckily, it was full dark outside with only a waxing moon to
provide any sort of illumination. No one would see them. The fresh air caused an abrupt halt to
his transformation. The fire in his belly calmed and the itch of the pin
feathers retreated as they dissolved back under his skin’s epidermis. He
almost cried out in frustration, the urge to stretch out his wings and fly once
more was almost unbearable. He had waited so long for a shift. If she would only stop that infernal
screaming. Miss Lovingood’s lungs were only surpassed by her wheels, er, legs.
Jean-Luc could barely keep up with her as they raced down Main Street, past the
town tavern. Suddenly, the last door of the low-slung Motel 13 opened wide,
nearly knocking Jean-Luc off his feet. Out walked Vanessa, with a sphinx-like
cool expression on her face, spritzing Chanel No. 718 all over herself. “Jean-Luc, what are you doing here?”
Vanessa asked. Out of breath, Jean-Luc said not a
word—instead he peeked into the motel room. There seemed to be some sort of
half man, half primate curled up in a fetal position and passed out cold on one
of the beds. “I could ask you the same question,
cherie. But”—he raked a hand through his snarled hair—”to be honest, if I don’t
stop that screaming scientist right now, this town might just become prime
fodder for a host of National Enquirer reporters. Come on, we’ll talk later.” Not for the first time, Jean-Luc blessed
his wife’s cool head and long slim legs as she surged past him, high heels be
damned, up the steep road out of town. About half a mile up, the asphalt
turned to gravel and another half mile later, the road skidded into dirt. When
he spied a trail of broken branches, he veered into the underbrush toward
Corkscrew Falls. Fifteen minutes later, Jean-Luc’s sides heaving, he dragged
himself up beside his wife. He knew he should have been doing more cardio
instead of just pumping weights. “Where’d she go?” He leaned over in an
effort to regain his breath. Vanessa panted and pointed to the entrance
of a cave. Eerily familiar wing-batting and heel pounding noises came from
within. “Father?” he shouted. Eyebrows raised in question, Vanessa
swung around to face him. “Huh? Your father’s in there?” He quickly recanted. “I don’t know what
I’m saying, Cherie. Look, we’ve got to get that woman out of there. I have a
bad feeling about this. Isn’t this the place Janice told all of us to steer
clear of?” “What were you doing with that woman
anyway? “What were you doing in that motel room?”
“Don’t change the subject,” Vanessa said.
“Look, my love, I’m big enough to forgive
you if you’ll do the same. You know I love you and no other.” Vanessa looked at him as if she was
trying to read his mind. “Alright”—she pushed her hair over one ear and licked
her lips, a movement that always drove him crazy with desire—”but only if you
promise that you’ll keep your father and stepmother out of our lives forever.” “Forever is a long time, cherie. How
about if I promise to keep them out of our affairs until the next millennium?” “Deal.” Vanessa stuck out her left pinky
and he grabbed it with his own. Pulsating warmth spread through his loins and
he felt himself harden again. He put his other hand on himself and was
relieved to feel a large familiar shape under his jeans this time. Thank God. A bloodcurdling scream rent the night air
and the unmistakable sound of teeth gnawing bone followed. Scientists, it
seemed, were crunchy. The slight smell of mustard and ketchup wafted through
the air. And if he wasn’t mistaken, there was a hint of A1 too. He grabbed his wife’s other hand and
pulled her into a fast retreat toward town. “It’s too bad she wasn’t the
fainting type,” he said, sadly. “Well, someone’s going to have to concoct
a forgetful potion or spell for the other two scientists otherwise we really
will learn firsthand about the Enquirer’s stellar reporting skills,” she said a
few moments later. That’s what Jean-Luc loved about his wife, ever practical. “Poor woman. She came for dinner and I
was telling her all about the history of this little town. But, I was wondering
how I was going to explain the part about your ancestors’ mystical leanings and
the reason they settled here. She wouldn’t have understood the extraordinary
primal urges they—and we—have to mate. And the fact that it takes one mystical
being and one ordinary human to produce something memorable. A living and
breathing…child.” “Oh, Jean-Luc.” Vanessa hurled herself
into his arms. “Do you think we’ll ever have one of our own?” “Of course we will, cherie. It’s only a
matter of time”—he kissed her and held her tight—”and effort.” “And the right potion,” Vanessa added,
sensuality dripping from her. “Well, practice makes perfect,” Jean-Luc
growled and felt his eyes glow. Practice makes perfect, indeed, he thought as
he leaned in to kiss the one witch who made his blood boil. The unmistakable surge of energy in his
emerging wingtips matched the lion spirit invading his lower extremities.
There was no stopping this long anticipated shift now. “I’ve always favored
making love to you in the wild. Nothing like the hint of a dangerous,
man-eating creature nearby to heighten the mood.” Jean-Luc enveloped her with
his massive griffin wings and prepared to plunge into her. He prayed he wasn’t
scaring his dear witchy-wife to death. But he had forgotten her aplomb in the
face of change. “Nothing like being surrounded by soft
feathers and the anticipation of first time lion-sex to put me in the mood, my
love,” she whispered. “My thoughts exactly, cherie.” He growled
and thrust into her. Her primal scream of joy melded with a distant werewolf
howl, causing a star to burst in a galaxy nearby—surely, the promise of a new
life in the making. 2005 was, it seemed, a superb vintage
year, after all. Episode
1.5 HOW TO SEDUCE AN AMNESIAC VAMPIRE By
Kathryn Caskie Episode 1.5 How to Seduce an Amnesiac Vampyre By Kathryn Caskie He stood in the blue
light of the full moon, his back to the steadily lapping loch. There was no
escape. None. He didn’t dare move. Didn’t dare take his gaze from the enormous
wolf watching him from atop a sandstone outcropping not ten feet up the
embankment. This wasn’t good. Why the hell was he out here in the middle of
the night anyway? He searched his brain for an answer, but no matter how hard
he tried, he couldn’t remember a damn thing. Not even his name. Cautiously, he
slid one foot back into the water. He’d just swim out into the loch. It would
be safer out there. But then, a rather disturbing thought sprang into his
mind. What if he couldn’t swim? How was he to know? Best not risk it.
The wolf snarled viciously at his sudden movement and crouched low. He froze
in place. Icy water spat at his heels and splashed the backs of his thighs,
raising the hair from his chilled damp skin. Lifting the short hairs…everywhere.
No. No way. He risked a half-glance downward and blinked at
his own ghostly white skin. Holy shit. He was completely naked...and
what the hell was that—he squinted, trying to make it out—something
written on his hand? There had to be some damned good explanation for all of
this. Had to be. The wolf tilted her head back and let out a shrill
howl, sending an uncontrollable tremble through his body. He watched,
petrified, as she rose up on her muscled legs, prowled a step closer and, with
her tongue, lapped the saliva dripping from one of her fangs. Oh
hell. But
then, the loch behind him began to sputter and pop, bubbling like a pot set to
boil. The sound grew louder and more ferocious over the passing seconds, until
it all but muted the roar of the waterfall not five hundred yards away. His
breath came faster, and he couldn’t seem to get enough air, as the thrash and
splash behind him drew closer and closer still. From the corner of his eye, he
saw a massive scaly taloned appendage cut through the roiling water. Then
it was behind him. light knifed across his
vision sending him staggering toward the muddy bank. He fell to his hands and
knees, dazed. “Seth. Get up. Run!” Dark-winged specks crowded his mind as
he lifted and turned his head toward the female voice. There, on the
sandstone outcropping where the wolf had been, was a naked woman. “Get away
from the loch!” She leapt from the jutting rock with amazing agility and raced
toward him, her
moon-streaked raven hair floating behind her like a silken cape. “Now, Seth,
before it’s too late!” *** Janice pulled her rucksack from the crevice in the
cave wall, and dug around for her makeup bag and Altoid tin. First things first. Seth
could wake up at any moment and she didn’t want the gorgeous piece of man candy
to find her for the first
time—this lunar cycle—with residual gray werewolf streaks through her hair and
Fido breath. She glanced at Seth, the beautiful vampyre, who was lying naked
before the waterfall curtain that stretched across the mouth of the cave. How
lucky she’d been to stumble upon him when she did. But he was safe now...and
better yet, with her. Janice
had to admit she’d never seen such a perfect specimen of a man—mortal or
immortal. And in Brokenoggin Falls, where 24-hour hottie spells could be had
for a mere hundred bucks, that was really saying something. Hurriedly, she popped two Altoids into
her mouth to remedy her dog breath, then pulled out a pink tube of Maybelline
Waterproof Mascara. Angling a hand mirror over her head, she eased the mascara
wand from crown to tip, painting over her gray streaks. And, because she was a
tad over fifty after all, she used the magic Maybelline wand on a couple gray
curlies down under too. Of course, the streaks were only a
temporary thing and, as usual, would disappear once the moon set. But Seth’s
squeaky-clean memory was temporary as well. The minute he opened his eyes, his
amazing blue-ringed eyes, he would remember everything from the incident at the
loch onward—at least, until the next full moon wiped his mind clean again. First impressions were lasting though and
therefore Janice wanted to be sure to look her best—or rather, her youngest
for him. Of course, this meant making sure he saw
her naked...tonight. Absently, Janice wondered where she might
find her shredded uniform this time. It was a pain in the keester to hunt down
her clothing after every full moon, but she was a far larger wolf than human,
and well, that was probably a good thing. Reports of a wolf running through
the woods in a police uniform would probably start people talking. She proudly surveyed her bronze-hued nude
form, pausing on her perfectly pert breasts. There was no question about it,
she looked fabulous. Sadly, though, the wolfish effects on her body would be as
fleeting as her gray-streaked hair. Janice glanced down at her muscle-cut
abdomen, and well-defined arms and legs. Yup, by tomorrow morning, her boobs would
resemble puppy ears, her thighs cottage cheese, her belly a lumpy pillow and
her arms—well, they’d have wing flab. She shuddered at the reality of it. No, if she was going to seduce Seth, it
had to be tonight. She’d waited far too long already. Just then, Seth groaned and scratched at
his chest. He was sure to open his eyes at any moment. No more procrastinating. Besides, what would it matter if she blew
it? She’d only have to live with the humiliation until the next full moon,
right? Then she could try again. A nervous flutter shot through Janice’s
stomach as she slid open the zipper on her sack and pulled a black Sharpie
permanent marker from the leather loop on her ticket pad. She knelt beside
Seth, took his hand in hers and studied the words he’d written on his palm. As the moon waxes, your memory wanes. Good. Simple block letters. Easy enough
to mimic. Reaching across Seth’s hips, Janice
accidentally brushed him just there, causing him to twitch and quicken.
A little anticipatory smile burst upon her lips. She raised up his other hand and very
carefully, pressed the Sharpie to his palm. Call Janice 555-1805. Trust her. Looked good. Perfect, actually. Why, she
could have had a nice career as a check forger if she hadn’t gone into law
enforcement. Okay, now for the piece de resistance.
Janice swallowed hard as she reached down
between Seth’s legs and took him into her hand. Very
carefully, she began to write. *** His eyelids fluttered, and the first thing
he noticed, besides the merciless throbbing pain in his head, was a naked woman
kneeling at his side. He blinked in astonishment. Her golden skin glistened
in the light of a flickering lantern as she leaned close and drew a wool
blanket over his body. To his eyes, her female form was absolutely flawless.
Her breasts were full and round, her waist small and graspable—what was that?
Did she say something? “Can you hear me? I asked how you were feeling.” She
pushed her long ebony hair back from her
face, forcing him to peer up into her saucy golden brown eyes. “W-where am I?” “We’re in a cave...behind Brokenoggin
Falls. It’s okay, Seth. You’re safe here.” He was still dizzy and more than a little
disoriented, but turned his head toward the roar and splatter of a wall of
water a few feet away. Water. “In the loch—” He had started to ask her
about that scaly...thing with the talons, but then it occurred to him
that she’d revealed something more important. “You called me...Seth.” “I did. And, I’m Janice.” She reached
out and ran her fingers through his curly damp hair. “Seth.” He furrowed his brow. “Are
you sure? Why can’t I remember my name—anything?” “Shh, don’t worry.” She bent, and to his
utter surprise, pressed her warm lips to his. “It’s the moon. And in
Brokenoggin Falls, strange things happen in the light of a full moon.” She
glanced a little nervously across the cave at a canvas bag near the wall, then
turned her attention back to him. “I was worried about you. You really scared
me. Never, ever venture so near the loch during a full moon. It’s far too
dangerous.” Suddenly, he remembered the snarling wolf
on the rock...and then the naked woman. Seth pushed himself upright. He
stared at Janice. “You—the wolf. No, no, no. Can’t be.” He brought his
fingers to his aching head, and found a bandage plastered to his swollen brow.
“I hope it’s just the bump on my head and I’m not really going mad.” “I promise you, Seth, you’re quite
sane.” Janice remained expressionless for a moment before speaking again.
“Here in Brokenoggin, we all have secrets. Unbelievable secrets. But you and
I...we keep each other’s. We trust each other.” Seth shoved his hand through his hair.
This was all coming too fast. “I don’t even know you.” “Yes, you do. You know me...intimately.
You just don’t remember.” Janice caught his wrist and turned his palm
upright. “See?” Seth read the words on his hand. Call
Janice 555-1805. Trust her. “I know this is hard to grasp. It always
is when you lose your memory like this. But I am here for you.” “Then you’ve got to explain it to me.
Everything. How can this be?” “Seth, we have a lot to talk
about—believe me...a lot. But for now, you only need to know that you
lose your memory each time the full moon rises. Everything you know disappears
from your mind and you must start remembering from scratch.” Seth lifted his other hand and saw that
there was a message there, too. As the moon waxes, your memory wanes. “All these notes written on my skin...”
He cupped his hands and looked up at the dark haired goddess. “I-I don’t
understand.” Janice trailed her soft fingers
soothingly down his arm quickly pulling them back when he noticed the dirt
embedded under her long nails. “It’s how you remember, Seth. No matter what
happens to you, no matter where you end up, you know what’s most important—and
how to find me.” He gazed into her glittering eyes, as
understanding dawned. He had to admit, his method of note-taking was quite
clever. He must be a very intelligent man. “So I remember what’s most
important,” he murmured. “Yes, my love.” She smiled at him. My love, she said. Just how intimate are
we? It didn’t seem to bother Janice in the
least that she was naked, for she shifted and sat crossed-legged beside him,
her right thigh pressing against his hip. But he was a man after all and couldn’t
help but peek into that shadowed area between her legs. When
he did, he felt himself stir and harden. He was mortified. “Seth, I’m a little chilly from the
spray off the falls. Do you mind if I share the blanket with you for a bit?” “Uh...” He started to lift the blanket,
but decided to quickly check on his condition, trying to decide the best way to
apologize. It’s not like she wasn’t going to notice! But then, he discovered something odd. He couldn’t have. He’d actually written a message...down
there! What could have been so damned important, that he felt he had
to remember—could not forget? Lifting the blanket a little higher, he
allowed the lantern light to illuminate the rapidly expanding inked words. Janice is the best. The best, huh? Well now,
that was good to know. A wicked little grin found its way across his
lips. “Seth? I’m freezing out here.” “Sure, Janice, slip on under. I’ll
keep you warm. Real warm.” Janice gave a long pleasurable sigh as she
slid atop his naked body. Episode 1.6 THE LOCH’S STRESSED DRAGON’S HALF-SISTER By Elizabeth Holcombe Episode 1.6 The Loch’s Stressed Dragon Half-Sister By
Elizabeth Holcombe (In which Rowdy Vanderlight, love-sick
centaur and UPS driver spends solitary moments Googling himself and in the
process goes to the post office and finds help for his ailing heart.) Rowdy Vanderlight spent most of his free
time, when he wasn’t delivering packages for UPS, most of which went to Claudia
Choo from QVC, Googling himself. Yet, he couldn’t get the image of Claudia’s
witch sister, Tulah, out of his mind. He wanted to ask her for a date, but
Tulah was always out with that cackling, conjuring, moonlight-obsessed coven of
hers. In the late night hours, Rowdy had no choice but to find ways to amuse
himself after Conan was over and the infomercials took over the airwaves. He
discovered Googling. He Googled himself first. But, alas, Googling himself
soon grew boring, too. He couldn’t shake thoughts of Tulah. One particularly morose night, while
Googling, Rowdy discovered eBay. Never one to shy away from a pursuit that
could mildly boost his ego, he switched from Googling and eBayed himself. He
was there, too! Someone named “Ticklemypie73” was selling “A Rowdy Ghost Named
Vander in a Light Green Brooch”. So the two words “Rowdy”, “Vander”, and
“Light” were in an eBay listing. Interesting. The brooch was an ugly piece, but the
bidding was at an astronomical three thousand and fifty-eight dollars. Rowdy wasn’t completely clueless about
life outside of Brokenoggin. Mortals loved anything that they felt would
connect them to the spiritual world. He searched on eBay such words as
haunted, charmed, bewitched, cursed, among others and found a large amount of
crap for auction with huge bids. What fools those mortals be! And how rich he
could be! Maybe asking Tulah for a date would be easier if he had financial
means. He didn’t have looks that was for sure. He was a centaur who wore
baggy pants and looked too much like Napoleon Dynamite. Tulah might look past
his humble face, glasses, and lower half that resembled more Seabiscuit than
Secretariat. With wealth, Tulah might overlook his unfortunate physical
attributes. Brokenoggin had far more than its fair
share of haunted, charmed, cursed, and bewitched crap. Yet, he had to be
responsible. Nothing that was still haunted, charmed, cursed, or bewitched
could leave the town. But stuff that was once involved within the tangents of
the metaphysical would be safe and would sell faster than Godiva’s delicious
sugar maple nipple tips! Such was it that when no one was looking,
Rowdy Vanderlight mild of manner and dependable UPS driver, silently gathered
the detritus of Brokenoggin and secretly put them up for auction on EBay. In seven days after the auctions ended,
the money rolled in and causing Rowdy to scratch the bushy dark curls on his
head and face another dilemma: mailing the items. He couldn’t do UPS. Might
not be a good idea. He had never been to the Brokenoggin post office since the
new postmistress arrived some weeks ago causing quite a stir among some of the
more confident gents in town. Even Joe the veterinarian, who’d gone out and
captured some spoiled Wyvern and had it caged in a backroom of his office, looked
positively smitten every time he strolled toward the post office, a box under
his arm. And when he drove the big brown truck through town, Rowdy never failed
to notice Gavin-the-male-witch practically floating back down Main Street after
leaving the post office. Rowdy had to go there. His stable-living
room combo was covered with boxes that had to be mailed. Monies had been paid
to him. People expected to get their haunted crap. He had to go. He had to be
indifferent. Should the new postmistress live up to the bawdy talk by Gavin and
the other townsmen, Rowdy had to keep his cool and think of Tulah. She was the
only woman for him, even if she didn’t know it What a dilemma! Early the next morning, on his day off,
after Rowdy changed the straw in the bathroom and shoveled out the old into a
trash can in back of the house he made his way to the post office. Practically
galloped there. He almost literally ran into Joe who stormed out of the small
box of a building. “She’s damn Viagra, I tell ya!” Gavin
shouted into Rowdy’s face. Blinking at the wave of steak and onion
breath that shunted out of the often naked wizard’s mouth, Rowdy asked, “Who?” Gavin—who, according to some of the
town’s lady witches, hardly needed help getting a chubby—hooked a thumb in the
direction of the post office. “In there.” He regarded the boxes Rowdy held
with a death grip in his arms. “Forget your truck?” “Huh?” Rowdy glanced at the boxes. “Well, good luck,” Gavin said looking
woefully across the street at the Wicked Pea Diner. “Stop by sometime. You
might need a spell or something I can help you with.” He nodded at the diner,
with its seizure-inducing flickering neon “open” sign. “I need steak…” Gavin thrust his hands into his pants
pockets and walked across the street barely avoiding the dozens of marble-sized
droppings left by the Chihuahua herd on a pre-dawn run. The witch-warlock-wizard or whatever he
was had no idea the troubles Rowdy had. Sure, he was the only male
spell-caster in a town full of women known for their spells, but he at least
had some of his own kind around… Rowdy drew in a deep breath and clutched
his boxes tighter. He used his fingertips to grab the brass handle of the post
office’s glass door. Inside a fluorescent bar light sizzled overhead
giving a sickly institutional glow to the small space bisected with a
pock-marked wooden counter. Worn mangy velvet ropes hooked to dull brass
stanchions made up a U-shaped path to the counter. Stupidly Rowdy complied with
the rat maze even though he was the only half-human there. In Brokenoggin
Falls, humans were rare and usually ran out of town screaming. As Rowdy obeyed the velvet ropes he
glanced down at the boxes, taking in great sniffs of the air’s pungent scent:
old paper, glue, and sauerkraut. Sauerkraut? “May I help you?” The raspy female voice
bid him to look up from his parcels. Oh no. Gavin was right. Viagra for the
eyes. Heat began to rise up from his loins,
which were an impressive sight or so he’d been told. He hoped his baggy pants
would conceal his inner thoughts about the vixen behind the counter. Rowdy
squeezed his eyes shut. “May I help you?” He slowly opened his eyes. She was a
sexual goddess. If he didn’t control himself and soon, he would burst through
his khakis. “Yes,” he said stiffly placing the
packages on the pock-marked counter. “I’d like to mail these.” Goddess stared at him with glassy,
mesmerizing emerald eyes. Her mane of auburn and blonde-streaked hair
glistened even in the sparse fluorescent light. One thick lock tippled an
arched brow over those gem eyes drawing him in. The heat grew again. She had
to be human; she was a civil servant after all. Goddess broke her stare and looked
indifferently at the trio of boxes. “Anything liquid, perishable, or
potentially hazardous?” she asked. Liquid? One box held a lawn gnome that
had been pissed on by a werewolf. The werewolf whiz had dried. Not liquid. Perishable? Rowdy considered that
carefully. Another box held a dozen of Godiva’s maple sugar nipples guaranteed
to grow hair-down-there if bushiness was desired. The candy was a favorite
among fairies who were generally hairless and not happy to have their privates
chilled in the Michigan winter. Rowdy had pocketed these from the windowsill
where they cooled, such a clichй, before Godiva had a chance to place a spell
on them. Safe for humans, but not really perishable. Potentially hazardous? The last box
contained a white birch root flattened when the Wyvern farted on it. The “dragon”
root could be hazardous. The wood still contained the beast’s stench. It had
sold for quite a lot to a woman in Northern California who dealt in rare
herbs. Potentially hazardous? Rowdy had to ponder that one. “Mr. Vanderlight, do you wish to mail these
packages or not?” “I do, but the question perplexes me.”
And she knew his name. How? “Do these packages contain anything
liquid?” “No.” Her eyes looked like they had an
inner fire. He felt warmth in his impressive loins again. “Perishable?” “No.” It was growing, pressing into the
back of the zipper. “Potentially hazardous.” He thumped his foot on the floor. Joe’d
been right during his last vet checkup. He needed new shoes; something felt
loose down there. “Potentially hazardous?” Her eyes
flashed. “YES!” Rowdy shouted. And he didn’t mean
anything in the boxes. He scooped up the packages and wrenched around. One of
the boxes, the one with the white birch root, shot out from his arms and
thudded to the floor. Rowdy whinnied in frustration, dropped
down and scrambled across the cracked grey linoleum floor. The strong sent of sauerkraut and sudden
eclipsing of the fluorescent light caused him to quickly realize that he was
not the only one on the public side of the counter. A puffy pink hand reached down and
snatched the package up from the floor. Rowdy looked up from his prone
position at the Goddess, her emerald eyes flashing seductively at him. Her lips
painted in pearly bright pink lipstick widened into a lovely smile that made
Rowdy’s large attribute twitch. He quickly looked away willing it to twitch no
more. “Please rise, Mr. Vanderlight.” Her
voice was as seductive as it was commanding. Rowdy, clutching his other two packages,
did as the beauty bade him. Once to his hooves he kept his gaze to the floor. “You cannot harm me, Mr. Vanderlight,”
Goddess said. “Please look at me. I don’t bite…hard.” Rowdy belted out a loud neigh that
sounded more like the squawk of a demented crow. He looked up at Goddess. “Look at me, Mr. Vanderlight,” she said
huskily. “All over.” Rowdy began with her eyes, quickly
sliding his gaze to her pink lips, down her neck and her cotton postal uniform
of pale blue with darker blue pinstripes with a red, white, and blue patch of
an eagle’s head. The buttons of the blouse strained to their limits tenaciously
holding more than generous breasts from bursting forth sending the eagle
soaring from its fleshy outcropping. Rowdy was a breast man and the goddess
had given him an eyeful and second helpings to boot with the civil servant
before him. Yet, as he dragged his gaze away from her mammaries stupendi,
he quickly learned why Gavin had recently admitted to be a “booty man”.
Goddess had booty, hips and booty, and she didn’t need a long swishy tail to
turn him on! Other than about Tulah, Rowdy never
thought with exclamation points about a woman. Suppressing such thoughts kept
the fire in his loins doused, but the pilot light always burned. “That’s right, Mr. Vanderlight, nothing
but you at present is excited.” “I am not,” he said. “Your pants are telling me a different
story.” Earl looked down at the front of his
baggy Dockers. Was that the tip of his impressive appendage sticking out a
little over the waistband? “Who are you?” he asked. “Potentially hazardous,” she replied, or
at least that’s what Rowdy thought she said. “I beg your pardon?” “Portentia Harmonious.” “So you’re not a postal worker?” “When I need to be.” The buzz of the fluorescent lights was
the only sound in the silence that followed. Rowdy still held his packages. Being a
practical man and not one to steal from the parties who were expecting his
wares, he asked, “So, there’s no one here to help me mail my packages?” Portentia sighed and rolled her eyes.
“Those buyers are not human. They are protecting the stupid mortals. Your
eBay seller I.D. red-flagged you Mr. Vanderlight.” “BrokenogginPonyBoy?” “Duh…Yes. You should know better than to
foist your town’s unique trinkets on mortals salivating for proof that folk like
us exist. A man with your particular attributes shouldn’t spend time Googling
himself. You have much to share.” “That is none of your business.” “I offer you a solution for your problem
with Tulah.” “That certainly is none of your concern.”
“It is all of our concern when you nearly
unleash mayhem on mortals, Mr. Vanderlight. Come, we’re going on a picnic.” “It’s morning,” he protested. Then
curiosity gripped him. “Where?” “You know the place. I’ll drive.” They stepped out of the post office just
as Gavin exited the Wicked Pea. The wizard’s mouth dropped open. Rowdy
offered him a shrug as Portentia escorted him to her massive black Cadillac
SUV. *** Rowdy looked through the windshield at
the police cruiser parked beside the entrance sign to Brokenoggin Falls
National Forest. “Janice is here...somewhere,” Rowdy said
leaping down from Portentia’s SUV. “I’d like a bright shiny light on top of
my SUV like that,” she said. “You want to go into law enforcement
now?” Rowdy imagined Portentia pinning down a suspect with those breasts and
handcuffing him until he was helpless— “It would be an appropriate diversion for
me,” she said hefting a wicker picnic basket from the back seat of her vehicle.
“You were thinking it.” Rowdy held up his hands. “OK, look, Miss
Harmonious, I need to know right now what you are and why you are here.” “Bluntly put, Mr. Vanderlight, I’m your
sex therapist.” “I didn’t call for any sex therapist,” he
protested taking the basket from her. He was still a gentleman after all.
“You’re wasting your time.” “You are a very silly man. Come along.” Portentia hooked a finger in the
direction of a narrow path barely distinguishable from the pain path that led
to the dilapidated picnic shelter just a smidgen of a mile from the parking
area. “Don’t you want to take that path?” he
asked. “You want me to, but that’s not the path
you often take, Mr. Vanderlight.” How the hell did she know that? Portentia walked ahead of him, her booty
giving him a show. He was helpless to do anything but follow while carrying
that ridiculous picnic basket. Portentia
was leading him to that place beside the lake where the Wyvern dwelled. This
was dangerous. He had never brought anyone with him when he visited the open
space by the lake. He loved to gallop freely, stretch his legs, and race off
his frustration at not having a love of his own. “Don’t
look so nervous,” Portentia said. “This is for your own good.” the lake. “Godiva?” “No.” Rather than
recite the entire population of Brokenoggin, Rowdy said, “Tell me or I’ll stop
right here.” “We’ve arrived.”
Portentia paused at one particular large and mossy rock. She turned and faced
Rowdy with those shining emerald eyes. “Look into my eyes,” she ordered.
“What do you see?” Mesmerized,
Rowdy stared into Portentia’s wide orbs. She was doing something, but he could
not look away to see what. She had sucked him into some sparkly emerald field.
The feeling overtaking him was warming, giving him confidence as if he was in
Louisville beating all of the thoroughbreds and having the attention of all of
Kentucky’s eligible Southern sweethearts. That was comforting in itself. Then
he felt a cooling sensation, both refreshing and…pungent. The
vixen blinked. sauerkraut lubricant.
Warmth surged up from his toes, to his knees, along his thighs and to the only source of his pride—which Portentia now
possessed. “Stop,” he gasped. “T-Tulah is—” “Me, my darling,” she whispered
into his ear. “Tulah? You?” Portentia sheathed herself over him while
they stood on the lake’s edge. The carpet of pine needles provided good
traction to this dance with Portentia—or Tulah—leading. She lifted her legs
and wrapped them around his waist. Swishing his tail over her ankles, he held
her which was no easy task. She was of Rubenesque proportions. Was Tulah that
large? “I’ve always wanted you,” she whispered. Then the aroma struck his nostrils with a
stench like no other. The sauerkraut was cooking on her body. Steam rose from
his sex therapist. The sauerkraut bubbled and simmered on his flesh. “I want to love you, Rowdy. I have loved
you, have changed for you. But first I had to temper my fire,” Portentia said.
Then this woman lulled her head back as
they both reached the achievement to end all achievements. Rowdy whinnied, and
Portentia-Tulah laughed. After the quaking stopped, she wriggled
off of him. Rowdy said the only thing that came to
mind. “I loathe sauerkraut.” “Well, we might try relish or chunky
diced tomatoes, but sauerkraut works best.” She stepped away from him and gathered
her postal uniform and the biggest pair of panties he had ever seen, her booty
sling. “I have to go now,” she said placing her
bundle of clothes under her arm. “But I’ll meet you here tomorrow.” She turned away, paused, and looked back
at him. “Do me a favor.” “Anything,” he said breathlessly. “Tell that veterinarian to release my
half-brother from his cage or I’ll shape-shift into his worst nightmare—a PETA
activist.” “Go?” he asked. Where were his clothes?
“But we just got started. I didn’t know you were part dragon,
Tulah…Portentia…whoever you are. I don’t care! I love you!” “Tomorrow,” she said. “I’ve got to go. I
promised my brother I’d pay his lair a call, check on things, bring in the
papers and the mail, feed the goldfish.” She winked at him. “Tomorrow, Rowdy,
and don’t forget to bring the sauerkraut. Without it to douse my heat I’ll just
burst into flame when our satisfaction comes.” Portentia-Tulah stepped into the lake.
While holding her clothes, she dove head first into the dark water. Earl stood naked covered in congealed
sauerkraut in stunned silence waiting for his true love to surface. She didn’t.
“I hate sauerkraut. I’ll bring relish.” Just as light dawned in his muddled mind
that the woman he had lusted after had given him the best sex he had ever had,
a harsh female voice assaulted his reverie. “Hands up and turn around.” Rowdy did as Janice ordered. “Rowdy Vanderlight?” she asked. “What in
the Sam hell are you doing?” He could ask her the same question. Her
hair was rumpled, her police uniform was stained here and there with mud, and
her lips were swollen and very pink as if she had been the main contender in a
kissing contest. But he was the one who was naked and decorated in sauerkraut,
and she was the one with the badge and the gun…and a ride back to town, so he
kept his questions to himself. “It’s been a very full morning,” he said.
Janice puffed a stray lock of hair away
from her right eye. “Tell me about it. Need a ride?” “Yes, please.” “Clothes?” “I have no idea.” Janice peeled off her jacket and offered
it to him. Rowdy tied it around his waist with the sleeves. “Thanks.” He walked beside her down the narrow
path. “May we make a stop at the market before
you take me home?” he asked. “I need to purchase some relish.” Janice just shook her head.
“Brokenoggin.” Rowdy smiled. He was glad it was not
just a normal day. “On second thought, Janice,” he said
handing her the jacket. “I’ll just gallop around the lake for a while.” “Naked?” “Free!” He kicked up his hooves and left
her. “You need a new shoe!” she shouted after
him. Later, Rowdy thought, and he would also
speak to Joe about the Wyvern and its cage. For Portentia-Tulah. It was love.
Sweet love. *** Early the next morning, Emma Mincemeat
banged on the post office door. “It’s
eight-thirty!” she shouted into the glass. “You’re supposed to be open!” seeing things. Gotta get them to the
doctor, check their eyes.” “What sort of things?” Emma snorted in frustration
and turned from the door. She looked Gavin in the eyes. “Dead people.” Episode 1.7 FEED YOUR HEAD or The Flaming Faery Queen Closeted at the Bottom of the Garden Closet Tool Shed By Patricia Rice Episode 1.7 Feed Your Head By Patricia Rice With the agility of a trained athlete,
Morgan walked backward on the center rafter of the tool shed at the bottom of
Alice Fairweather’s Wild Herb & Useful Weeds Garden. Artistically swinging
her wings, she hummed acid rock from a tape Alice had left moldering in an old
tape recorder on a back shelf. No Barbra Streisand for Morgan, uh uh. She was
the very model of a modern major general. Or Fairy Queen, if one must be factual
about it. If only she had some fellow faeries to queen it over. Well, she had half of one. She simply
wasn’t speaking to him these days. “White Queen walking backward…” She did
a double backflip down to Alice’s new leather gardening gloves, neatly avoiding
the trap of the birdnetting on the bench beside them. “I am not shallow,” she informed the
mouse snacking on the grass seed bag. Morgan insisted on being labeled
according to her rightful gender inclinations and not by the usual physical
indicators. It wasn’t as if anyone could see beyond her hair and wings anyway,
and she made such a lovely queen. “He cannot call me shallow. I know all the
classics. All of them, I tell you. I can boogaloo and slide, and Bette
Midler would give the best years of her life for my vibrato.” The mouse didn’t reply. The chihuahuas
were chattier but they’d discovered a rat pack earlier and had gone yipping off
on their own. Settling into the cushiony couch provided
by the glove’s palm, Morgan fluttered her wings at the glass witch ball Alice
had tactfully provided. “I tried subtle, and he didn’t even notice.” She
examined the shimmering copper tracing on her wings, tastefully intertwined
with silver and adorned with genuine turquoise. Talking to one’s self grew old, but she
refused to come out of the tool shed again. If her One True Love would not
acknowledge her, she would pine away at home, where no one could see. Perhaps
she could develop tuberculosis and perish dramatically. Or was that Moulin
Rouge? “If he likes green dragon scale so well,
I’ll show him scales!” Studying her reflection in the ball, she narrowed her
spectacularly long-lashed eyes—one of her best features if she did say so
herself—and pictured luminous dragon green. The copper obligingly developed a rich
blue-green patina. “Makes me look like a garden gnome.
Gross.” With a flick of her well-manicured fingers, she created a flaming
kaleidoscope of red, pink, and orange pulsating through the veins of her wings.
“Better. The retro rhinestone Halston, I think.” The adorable little pressed
khaki mini-skirt and fitted jacket she’d chosen for her southwestern subtle
look disappeared with a snap of her fingers, replaced by an iridescent silk and
chiffon confection with a slit up the side to reveal the perfection of her
silky legs. The rhinestone halter top emphasized the breadth of her shoulders. “Not bad, not bad at all.” She twirled
around to catch her reflections in myriad chips of mirror. “No more catering to
Jo-Jo, the tasteless wonder. Let him friggin’ fag a wyvern and singe his baby
blues,” she sang in an increasingly operatic scale that would have rivaled
Beverly Sills if Sills were a contralto. Pleased with the result, Morgan added
amplification and repeated the scale until the tool shed rang with echoes of friggin’
fag a wyvern. “Morgan, it’s three in the damned AM.
Put a sock in it. That doesn’t even make sense,” Alice shouted, before
slamming the window on the perfect June evening. “You need a man, Alice, honey,” Morgan
sang back. “I have the perfect ass I can supply.” Alice didn’t reply. She’d probably
plugged in her earphones. I am not shallow, Morgan repeated to herself, still
stinging from Joe’s rejection. Morgan knew Shakespeare. Really knew
him, if you got her drift. Where did people think he came up with those drama
queens he wrote about? She’d been lovely as Titania. Perhaps she
should go back to red… No, the last time she’d tried red hair, a
hummingbird had tried to sip a hole in her head. She would stay with her
gorgeous, gleaming golden tresses, blonde silk that would dance with moonlight,
should she choose to come out of her closet. No way. She was never coming out again.
Dancing among the toadstools had lost some of its charisma since she’d moved to
Brokenoggin. Perhaps it had been a trifle shortsighted to chuck Oberon and take
Puck’s suggestion to visit the New World. All she’d wanted was a little
freedom to be who she was without all the stuffy expectations of Not so Gay
Olde England. Freedom was just another word for having
nothing left to lose. The damned Chihuahuas kept digging up the
toadstools anyway. If it hadn’t been for them, she might be with Joe right
now, sharing that cozy bed he kept behind the doghouse. So, she’d given the wa-was ass’s heads.
It hadn’t killed them, had it? She could turn them back anytime she liked.
Joe didn’t have to be so…so politically correct about it. Ass’s heads
were traditional, weren’t they? She could be more helpful with a little
guidance. He didn’t have to be so nasty about it. Lost in deliberation over whether she
should accessorize with silver or gold, Morgan leaped three feet off her glove
at a solid whump against the side of the shed. Could that be Joe, stricken with grief
that she’d never returned? Crawling on hands and knees to beg her back? Ready
to admit that she wasn’t an air-headed poopsickle who’d erased her brain with
polish remover? As if she had any need of polish remover. She blew on her nails and changed the
color from turquoise to orange, then added adorable little red stars and half
moons. Being a queen had its moments. A werewolf howl outside the shed ended
that pleasant reverie. So help her, if she’d told Sly once, she’d told him
into eternity that she didn’t want him nibbling on the mushrooms! When she got
finished with furface— “You hell-born hound,” an irritated—and
obviously drunk—male voice shouted from outside the tool shed, “I’ll drink your
furry arteries dry if you don’t get out from under my feet.” Hmmm, male. And she didn’t immediately
recognize the voice. It seemed somehow muffled. Was this an opportunity to
make Joe jealous? Not that she cared if the stubborn dragon-lover had his
eyebrows singed. The werewolf growled a threat the drunken
male didn’t take seriously enough. Morgan truly didn’t like bloodshed. Flitting out of her tool shed closet into
the moonlit night, Morgan tried to warn the stranger, but she could only emit a
squeak of awe at the scene unfolding. Staggering drunkenly through her magic
mushrooms, Sheriff Janice’s naked vampyre Seth tried to grab Sly by his
muscular wolf neck. Morgan could have told him that was a bad move, but the
two powerful males weren’t paying her any attention as they dodged and weaved
in their drunken dance. She had to admit, Seth was a fabulous
specimen of manhood, but blood made her nauseous, and he looked in a drinking
mood. His fangs extended further as he finally gripped the wolf. No wonder his
voice had been muffled. She sighed and rolled her eyes as the
inevitable occurred. Sly pissed on the vampyre’s naked leg. Slimed, Seth swore a blue streak and
flung his prey hard against the tool shed’s scarlet wall. A bit of the pink
gingerbread Morgan had designed for the roof broke off. Sly yipped as he hit,
but landed on all fours and sprang straight at Seth. “Will the two of you cut that out?”
Morgan called, flapping her wings as visibly as she could to catch the
moonlight—and their attention. “I won’t be able to bake brownies if you crush
the damned mushrooms!” As a pacifying effort, the command failed
dismally. The vampyre kicked the wolf and sent him
sailing into the precious little turret Morgan had added to the shed’s roof.
The copper gnome mounted on the wind vane snapped, and Sly slid off the far
side of the roof. Before she could fly into a rage and kick
the big fanged lummox where it hurt, Seth slid in the newly slimed mud, grabbed
for the garden rake Alice had left leaning against the shed, and did a slippery
little cha-cha before plunging headfirst into the marble birdbath jacuzzi
Morgan had just installed in her latest makeover project. The birdbath flew into the air, flipped
over, and crashed down on Morgan’s head. Actually, onto all of her. Trapped
beneath the china bowl, she bounced off the porcelain like a bug under glass.
“I’ll stake you to the church tower for this!” she screamed, more shaken than
hurt. On the other side of the bowl, the
vampyre groaned. She thought she heard the disgusting
sound of regurgitated stomach contents, but vampyre’s only drank blood, right?
Had he been sucking a wino? Not her concern. Flying upward at warp
speed, she attempted to heave the bowl off of her, with no luck. Just because
she had muscles didn’t mean she knew how to use them. “Get me out of here, bloodsucker! This is
all your fault. So help me, if you’ve ripped one rhinestone off this collar,
I’ll sic the chihuahuas on you. You think werewolves are bad? Just wait until
those—” An unnatural howl of agony rattled her
bowl. Well, that ought to scatter any elves in
the vicinity. Gnomes, too. A sick vampyre rated right up there with fee,
fi, fo, fum as a fumigator. Deciding on a different tactic, she got
down on her silk-clad knees and pried the lid up from the bottom just enough to
peek out. She wasn’t about to blow her cover if Seth was hunting for blood. He lay sprawled among the mushrooms,
holding a gleaming white fang in one hand and attempting to shove it back in
his mouth. Since he didn’t seem too interested in
her, Morgan slipped from beneath the bowl and settled on a swaying lavender
stalk to study the situation. The mushroom bed might never recover. Seth the Vampyre was one hunka, hunka
burning masculinity—even with that nasty sawed-off stake in his chest. And he was never going to get that fang
back in without her help. “Wanta talk about it?” She propped her
newly polished fingernails beneath her chin and batted her lashes attractively.
The vampyre only growled and looked at
her blankly. Uh oh, full moon amnesia. Morgan flipped a bit of fairy dust in
Seth’s direction, just enough to rattle his senses back in place. “If that’s you, Morgan, flit your fairy
ass out of here.” Holding his aching jaw, Seth rose from the muck. He located
Morgan with natural instinct and scowled, not showing any gratitude at all for
her helpfulness. “A one-fanged vamp isn’t frightening,
sweetie.” She straightened her newly madeover wings in the moonlight so he
might better admire her artistic talent. Apparently deciding she wasn’t worth
arguing with, he staggered to his feet and moaned again in pain. “Does this
damned town have a dentist?” “No, and I can’t imagine one putting
their hand in your mouth if they did,” she said, almost with sympathy. He was
totally awesome, after all, especially from her vantage point at knee height. For a very brief moment she contemplated
whether Doc Joe might be equally well hung, but the thought of Doc Joe lit a
different bulb. “I bet Jo-Jo knows how to fix fangs. He even brushes that
damned wyvern’s teeth.” “Jo-Jo?” Seth asked warily, clamping his
hand over his mouth and muffling his voice even more than earlier. “The vet?”
he asked in horror as he realized who she meant. “Of course. He sticks his hand in fanged
mouths all the time. Come on, I’ll get him for you.” “I know where the vet is. I don’t need
your help.” Seth started out of the mushroom patch. “Good luck,” she called, standing to show
off her athletically trim figure. “It’s a full moon tonight, so you won’t find
him home.” “It’s always a full moon around here,”
Seth grumbled, turning to glare at her, although one eye had started to swell,
giving him a malevolent look. “Don’t tell me the damned vet is a werewolf
too.” “Hardly.” Morgan flew to land on Seth’s
luscious curls and settled in. “Compared to everyone else around here, he’s
the next best thing to straight. But he doesn’t like to be found when he’s
busy.” “And he’s busy at the full moon?” Seth
asked suspiciously, turning in the direction of Morgan’s hair-pulling. “Sounds
like a were to me, and I’ve had enough of them for one night.” “Oh, and just who do you think takes care
of those stupid weres when they go all testosterone crazy like Sly did
tonight? Go right there at the church and head toward the graveyard.” “How do you know where to find him? I
didn’t think you ever came out of the tool shed. You a friend of his?” “He barely knows I exist,” Morgan
complained. “He swatted at me as if I were a horsefly. And then I heard him
tell Emma all blondes are shallow. He’s so cute when he’s being dumb.” “You’re taking me to a dumb vet?”
Seth growled. “All blondes aren’t shallow, although I suppose a lot of shallow
people might be blonde.” “I’m a natural blonde,” Morgan insisted.
“Except when I’m a natural redhead. And I am not shallow.” “Fey,” he suggested generously. “Fairy fey, and not shallow.” Morgan
flaunted her wings. “Anyone who doesn’t have anything better
to do than paint stars on their fingers isn’t exactly Nobel Prize winning
material. Here’s the graveyard. Where do I go now?” “To hell would be good,” Morgan
suggested, disgruntled by his insult. “But I’m hoping maybe Joe will see me if
I ride in on a patient. I make such a cute little bow on your curls.” She
tugged his hair again to steer him toward a barn at the back of the graveyard. “Why do you like the guy if he ignores
you?” “He’s cute.” “That’s a shallow reason,” Seth pointed
out. “He’s kind,” Morgan added with a slight
growl of irritation. “He’s occasionally smart.” “And?” Seth prodded. “He-takes-care-of-creatures-who-can’t-take-care-of-themselves-and-I-want-to-help-him-and-if-I-don’t-have-some-company-soon-I-will-die.”
She spat out the words so fast that they all ran together, then held her breath
to see if Seth would laugh. If he did, she would magick him so bad he’d wish
he’d lost both fangs. “All the witches around here make being a
Fairy Queen tough, doesn’t it?” he asked sympathetically. “With all that
estrogen floating around, you’d be better off as a Fairy King.” “I found my king,” she said with
satisfaction. “There he is, behind the wyvern cage.” “Oh, shit.” Seth stopped in his tracks as
he saw the baby green dragon. “That thing hates me. She’ll fry the damned town
if I get any closer.” “Pish posh.” Morgan blew a little fairy
dust toward Joe’s pet. “She’ll sleep now. Come along, let’s see what my darling
can do for you.” “He’s not your darling.” Back in
grumbling mode, Seth walked warily toward the cage. “And he doesn’t look like
much of a fairy to me.” Indeed, in his white lab coat, with his
steel-rimmed spectacles, and that adorable lock of barely-brown hair in his
eyes, Doc Joe looked like a scrumptious professor. It was the square jaw and
brown eyes that slayed Morgan every time he glanced her away. “Not everyone can be
gorgeous enough to be a queen,” she lectured. “But he’s fey, all right. How
else do you think he can tame a dragon?” *** Startled when the wyvern fell asleep just
as he was about to feed her, Dr. Joe glanced around suspiciously. He didn’t
fear any of the creatures that walked these woods at night, but he intended to
hogtie the next joker who tried to feed chihuahuas to the dragon. Watching the vampyre cross the graveyard,
he relaxed. No joker there. Pity about that stake he carried with him, but it
was beyond Joe’s capacity to argue with Death. His glance caught the gleam of a flaming
orange-red bow in the vamypre’s dark curls, and his gut knotted. Morganna. It was impossible to ignore a flaming
fairy queen, but Joe did his quiet best. He knew he wasn’t Oberon-handsome or
Puck-witty. He didn’t have any of those qualities most worshipped by the fey.
He couldn’t recall a Barbra Streisand song if he was held at gunpoint. The
only time he’d managed a dance move was when the harpy tried to claw him in a
delicate area. If he was any more boring, he’d be a banker. If he touched her without permission,
Morganna could sizzle his innards into frog legs. No touching allowed. “Seth?” he asked as the vampyre grew
closer. “You need that black eye treated?” Seth removed his hand from his mouth and
held out a gleaming fang. “The eye will heal, but this won’t.” Joe shuddered, just a little. He
preferred to treat the living. But Brokenoggin had lately become a haven for
the dead, it seemed, so he might as well learn to deal with it. He’d thought
Seth a decent sort until he’d showed up with Morganna in his hair. Joe was
doing his best to ignore that fact, although his insides twitched with
jealousy. “I haven’t ordered any books on vampyre
anatomy. You’ll have to let me look in your mouth. I might not be able to
help.” “He’s being modest again,” Morganna
complained, posing with her wings upraised so Joe could see all of her splendid
Halston gown. Joe knew what a Halston gown was. He
might be boring, but he was still fey. He motioned Seth to sit on a stack of
crates beside the barn where he stored supplies. Carrying the right feed and
medicine for the variety of creatures in this town required a lot of space. He
was just glad the living was cheap because creatures didn’t often pay well. He
had doubts about naked vampyres with memory problems summoning cash either.
But he was in this business to help, not become rich. “Open wide.” He waited for Seth to open,
then winced at the bloody hole where the fang ought to be. He tried to place a
finger in Seth’s mouth to test for a fang root, but powerful jaws clamped shut
instantly. Joe was lucky he had fast reflexes or he’d be a nine-fingered vet.
“You have to keep your mouth open,” he admonished. “I don’t think I can,” Seth said
sheepishly. “It’s instinct. I smell the blood and go for it.” “Ooo, lucky Janice,” Morganna cooed,
batting her eyelashes. “Why are you here, Morgan?” Joe demanded
in annoyance. The last thing he wanted to do was look incompetent in front of
his queen. “To help?” she asked with a big smile.
“What do I have to do to win a Nobel prize?” “Be a world-class humanitarian, which we
all know you’re not.” Another reason he needed to stay far clear of Morganna.
She could turn him into an ass with one angry swish, and he was bound to say
something she didn’t like. “Why don’t I start small as a vampyre
humanitarian.” To Joe’s startlement, she dropped fairy
dust on Seth’s nose. Instantly sleepy, the vampyre tilted from the crate, and
Joe had to grab him to hold him up. “Oops.” With what might have been genuine
apology, Morganna flitted down to examine Seth’s sleeping features. “I should
have waited until he was lying down, sorry.” “I can’t put my fingers in his mouth
while I’m holding him up.” Joe shifted his feet to keep from falling over
beneath the bigger man’s weight. “Get someone to help me lay him out.” “Oh, c’mon, big boy. You and me can do
it together.” To Joe’s shock, the Fairy Queen darted
beneath the vampyre’s other shoulder and took some of his weight. A crate
slipped as they lowered him toward the ground. Joe winced. Seth would have a
sore bum in the morning. Or tomorrow evening, when he woke. But with
Morganna’s help, the sleeping vampyre sprawled safely on the grass. “If I’d known you could carry weight like
that, I’d have called you to help me with the wyvern.” Dusting off his hands,
Joe tried to study the vampyre and not the fairy flitting lazily near his ear. “Now what?” Morganna landed on Joe’s
shoulder. It was a trifle difficult to ignore a
flaming fairy queen breathing on his neck. She smelled of cherry tarts, his
favorite dessert. And there was something…exciting…about the flutter of
delicate wings blowing on his ear. “I have to pry his mouth open, shine a
light in there, and poke around to see how the fang attaches. I need three
hands, minimum, now that he’s out.” “Better three hands than nine fingers,”
Morganna taunted. “Hold him open and let’s see what’s in there.” He heard her gagging as he pried the
vampyre’s mouth open. He was used to the stench of blood, but Morganna
wouldn’t be. “This won’t work. Fetch Janice. She can help me.” “It could take me the rest of the night
to find Janice. Am I right, or does Fangtooth there not dissolve at sunrise?” “I have no idea. I’ve never asked. Maybe
I can put something in his mouth to hold it open while I look. You can hold a
flashlight for me.” He could almost feel the burn from her
look of scorn. “Forget your fairy light, Jo-Jo? Forget
what you really are, big boy? Is that what this is all about? Pretending to
be a regular old run-of-the-mill vet who just happens to pet dragons?” Yeah, he was doing his damndest to forget
that and a lot of other things, like sex. Damned inconvenient for his sort
around here. “Look at me!” Joe protested, roused to
frustration with the nagging gnat. “Do I look like I can dance on toadstools? I
have two left feet. I croak like a frog. I like white lab coats. I’m
happy petting dragons. What do you want me to do, get down on my knees and
pretend I can tickle gnomes? And flowers make me sneeze. It doesn’t matter who
my mother was, I’m no more fey than Seth there.” Morganna swatted his nose with her wings
until he sneezed. Dodging her irate assault, Joe attempted to look inside the
vampyre’s gaping mouth. Seth snored, spattering his spectacles with blood. “Hold him still,” Morganna said with
resignation. “If he splatters me just once…I swear, I’ll plant him with my
toadstools.” She darted down to sit on Seth’s lip and sent Joe a pathetic look
that nearly broke his heart. “I’m really not shallow, am I?” “Shallow? Morganna, you’re
sitting on a guy’s fang wearing Halston and asking me that? Will you just look
in there and tell me what you see before he inhales, and I have to cut out his
entrails to fish you out?” She visibly brightened. Fairy lights were
clever as well as useful. “You’d do that for me? That’s
sweet. You’ll see, I’ll be very handy to have around.” Before he could find a horrified reply,
she ducked into Seth’s mouth, taking her light with her. Kneeling on the ground, propping the
vampyre’s mouth open, Joe could easily see the jagged edge where the fang
should be in the light Morganna cast. She was starting to turn green at all
the blood, a true sign of devotion if he ever saw one. Green was definitely
not her color. “Okay, I can do this. There aren’t any nerve endings or muscles
involved, just that duct. Get out of there before you get hurt.” “I’ll hold the fang while you do whatever
you have to do to glue it back,” she insisted. “Out, Morganna, or so help me—” Seth yawned. Without thinking of the consequences of
grabbing a fairy, Joe snatched Morganna from the vampyre’s mouth before she
could be sucked down. His big hand wrapped around her fragile body, and a
flutter of excitement shook him as her wings teased his palm. The sparkle of
fairy dust spattered his skin like a million fireflies. He opened up his hand to see Morganna
sitting in the center, lazily flapping red-gold wings and smiling seductively
up at him. Fairy light glowed in a golden halo that enhanced her hair and
played havoc with his mind. He’d never held a queen before. “Honey, you and me are gonna have a real
good time,” she purred. “Do I have a choice?” he asked, feeling
the fairy dust already coursing through his blood, exciting lower parts
untouched far longer than he wished to remember. The throbbing magic pounded
in his head, and the thrill of possession was about to overrule reason. “Of course you have a choice, big boy.”
She lay down on his palm, wiggled temptingly, and kicked her Manolos. “That’s
what faeries do, offer choices. My size or yours?” Visions of flitting through the flowers
with Morganna at his side danced in his head. Visions of baby wyverns frying them in
flames burned up that fantasy. “Why me, Morgan?” he asked, feeling the
magic penetrating, stripping away all the inhibitions he’d used as a shield for
so long. “Because you care,” she said honestly.
“Because I need someone who cares.” “And you think I don’t?” She looked at him sadly. “I don’t think
you care about me, but I care about you. Want me to reverse the spell?” “I can’t help Seth if I’m small,” he
reminded her, clinging to what remained of his rapidly diminishing
practicality. Lust crazed his mind. “All right. For now,” Morganna whispered
softly. “Later, we’ll try the tool shed on for size. I have a lovely glove
where we can cuddle.” To the shock of Joe’s whirling senses,
Morganna darted into the air, spun around, and an instant later, stood beside
him in white lab coat—with pink satin collar—wings hidden, but whiskers
starting to shadow a handsome jaw. Morgan gathered up his thick golden hair in
a diamond clasp and winked when Joe stared. “I hope that fang glue dries quickly,”
Morgan murmured seductively. “I hate wasting fairy dust.” Joe never quite remembered how he
replaced a vampyre’s tooth, but he had lots of fine memories of a birdbath
jacuzzi to take home with him the next morning. Episode 1.8 A SPELL OF C.R.A.F.T. By Vicki Lewis Thompson Episode 1.8 A Spell of C.R.A.F.T. By Vicki Lewis Thompson (In which Emma accidentally casts a spell.) Emma Mincemeat slipped into Spellbound
Books at ten in the morning and inhaled the scent of freshly brewed coffee. She
would love a cup, would love to sit and munch on a brownie, too, but she didn’t
dare. She had to make her purchase and leave before somebody spotted her. One moist brownie…her mouth watered at
the thought. She was certain they put something in the mix, some secret
ingredient that made her feel wild and uninhibited, but she’d never asked what
it was. Better not to know. The
bookstore’s owner, Jacob Flyleaf, wouldn’t tell her, anyway. She wasn’t like
the rest of the population in Brokenoggin Falls. She was different. Emma
hated that. But ten years ago Peter had insisted on
investing in real estate here. He’d claimed it would appreciate, but of course
it hadn’t. Peter didn’t care because he fit in. That thing Peter could do when
he was in the mood—changing into a black panther—was valued for some ungodly
reason. All twelve of her children were accepted,
too, even little Hortense, who had seemed so ordinary until she’d turned three
and had started speaking in some language Emma had never heard before, not even
in Brooklyn. They all apparently took after Peter’s side. Emma knew of one other person in town who
claimed to be normal—Alice Fairweather. But Alice just happened to be over for
tea one afternoon when Peter had decided to shape-shift as a practical joke.
Alice had run screaming from the house and refused to come back, no matter how
many times Emma had called to explain that Peter wouldn’t ever do that during
teatime again. That left Emma feeling more isolated than
ever, but today she planned to do something about that. She’d cased Spellbound
Books for days to figure out when business was the slowest and Jacob Flyleaf
would be alone. Fortunately Jacob didn’t gossip about a customer’s purchase. A
tongue-knotting curse had struck him mute at the age of thirty. The book she needed was on the fourth
aisle, two-thirds of the way down, second shelf, with a bright yellow spine.
That book was her salvation, a chance to feel less like a freak in Brokenoggin
Falls, and today it would become hers. She’d just pulled the book off the shelf
when who should come bouncing into the bookstore but Maria Drinkwater. “Emma!” she called out. “Hi, there!” Damn it. Emma embraced the book, holding
it against her generous bosom in an attempt to hide the cover. “Hello, Maria.” “It’s good to see you.” Maria’s tone was
patronizing, as always. She thought a person with no magical powers was
beneath her. “What have you there?” “A cookbook,” Emma said. “Well, of course you do, with all those
children to feed. You probably use a stove and actual groceries to make
meals. How quaint.” Emma clenched her jaw. “Yes, isn’t it.”
She was through being insulted by the likes of Maria. By tonight she’d have
engineered a centerfold figure like Maria’s and a vasectomy for Peter. He
wouldn’t consider the surgical kind, but there were other ways, and this book
would explain them. “Well, I’m here for the coffee and
brownies.” Maria smiled her superior smile. “I’m supposed to meet Juan later,
and the brownies have that wonderful aphrodisiac quality. Have you noticed?” “Um, yes.” Emma blamed both her eleventh
and twelfth child on those brownies. “Are you having any, Emma?” “Not today.” Emma edged toward the
checkout counter, keeping her book hidden as best she could. “All righty, then.” Maria strolled toward
the cozy nook where the coffee and brownies were served. She kept glancing back
to see if Emma would lay the book on the counter so she could get a look at it.
When Maria nestled into a plump easy
chair and picked up the plate of brownies, Emma set her book on the counter,
which activated an alarm in Jacob’s office. He scurried out, took one look at
the book and waggled his eyebrows at Emma. Sheesh. You would think she was
buying porn. Instead of responding, she looked bored
and drummed her fingers on the counter. Jacob shrugged and scanned the bar
code into his computer with his index finger. In seconds she’d paid for the
book and was out the door. Witchcraft for Dummies was hers! *** Late that night she sat alone at the
kitchen table mixing the ingredients she’d gathered secretly during the day.
Pots of this and kettles of that simmered on the stove. The stench was
horrendous, but fortunately the Body Bodacious Potion was nearly done. Next she’d brew the Spermatozoa Silencer
Charm for Peter. She’d thought of doing that one first, to be safe, but vanity
had won out. She could hardly wait to get rid of her saggy boobs and her lumpy
waistline. Twelve children took a lot out of a person and left some unwanted
bits behind. And speaking of behinds, hers would be the envy of every woman in
Brokenoggin Falls. Consulting her book once again, she
discovered that she was required to take the potion out into the moonlight and
drink it there. Emma crept quietly into the back yard where there was,
conveniently, a full moon shining. She wasn’t sure, but it seemed as if this
place had more full moons than Brooklyn. If the potion tasted as vile as it
smelled, she’d better go over by the well and draw up a bucket of fresh water.
She set the vial on the edge of the well while she lowered the bucket into the
well. As she pulled up the dripping bucket, two
toads hopped out, startling her so much she nearly knocked over the vial.
Fortunately she grabbed it in time. Then she raised it to her lips and pinched
her nose to keep the fumes from making her gag. But before she had taken so much as a
sip, Mavis Gap, the nosiest woman in all of Brokenoggin Falls, popped her head
over the back fence. Mavis did readings, and it was no wonder they were
accurate. She spied on everybody in town. “Emma!” Mavis didn’t bother to keep her
voice down, either. “I thought I heard someone out and about back there!
What’s up?” “Just felt the need for a drink of fresh
water, Mavis.” Emma lowered the vial and tried to hide it behind the bucket,
but the damned full moon was making secrecy very difficult. Mavis was another woman Emma loved to
hate. She was only thirty, or so she claimed. In this town people could be
three hundred years old and look thirty. In any case, Mavis looked thirty . .
. and gorgeous. It just wasn’t fair. “It appeared to me as if you were about
to drink something besides water,” Mavis said. “I could use a stiff one,
myself.” She laughed. “A drink, that is. The other kind is easy enough to get
around here, but good liquor is hard to find.” “It’s…something for a headache,” Emma
said. “I don’t—” A third frog leaped from the bucket onto
the stone ledge surrounding the well. Emma yelled as the frog
crashed into the vial. She nearly fell in as she made a frantic grab for it
and missed. The vial seemed to tumble in slow motion over the side and down
into the black depths where it landed with a hollow splash at the bottom. ***
Emma finally got rid of Mavis, but by the time she returned to her kitchen she
was too tired and disheartened to start over. She’d tackle the whole thing
tomorrow night. After cleaning the kitchen, she crawled
into bed beside her sleeping husband, but she didn’t cuddle. A hot summer
night was not the time to snuggle in with her man, especially because he was
presently covered in black fur, which often happened during the full moon. He did, however, want to cuddle with her,
which led to other things. She had to admit that the sex was more exciting
when Peter turned himself into a big black cat. If only he would refrain from
biting her neck while he was thrusting, she’d enjoy the session even more.
Still, all-in-all, she couldn’t complain. As for Peter, he went to sleep
purring. *** By about eleven the next morning, Emma
decided she was going senile. She ended up at the local witch store but couldn’t
remember what she needed there. Then she glimpsed a woman in a police uniform
wandering the aisles. She looked familiar to Emma, but no name popped into her
head. Come to think of it, Emma wasn’t sure
what her own name was. Because the woman in the police uniform looked
familiar, and because police were supposed to help citizens in trouble, Emma
confronted her in the roots and berries aisle. “Do you know who I am?” Emma asked. “You look familiar,” said the police
woman. “Are you somebody I should know?” “I was hoping you could tell me my name,”
Emma said. “I wish I could.” The police woman shook
her head. “But lately I can’t even remember my own, let alone other peoples’.”
“But you’re an officer of the law. You’re
supposed to know things.” The woman looked down at her uniform. “I
must be a cop, since I’m dressed like this. So why am I in the witch store?
There must be a reason. I—oh, hello, there.” She glanced over Emma’s
shoulder. Emma turned to discover a naked man
standing behind her, a naked man with fangs, no less. Even more peculiar, he
had a stake through his chest. Emma cleared her throat. “Who are you?” “You don’t know, either?” The man looked
upset. The police woman shouldered her way past
Emma and planted herself in front of the man. “I don’t know, and I don’t care.
You’re one fine specimen, I can see that much.” Her glance dropped to his
crotch. “Oh, hey, you respond to compliments. Excellent.” “Ignore that, Janice.” The man waved a
hand at his erection, which was only slightly smaller than the chunk of wood in
his chest. “Listen, something serious is going on here. Everybody’s losing
their memory. It looks like the town’s been put under a spell of C.R.A.F.T.” “Sounds very serious,” said the woman who
was apparently named Janice. Keeping her attention firmly on his penis, she
linked her arm through his. “Let’s go back to my place and talk about it,
shall we?” “What kind of spell?” Emma asked. “C.R.A.F.T.” said the man. “Can’t
Remember A Fucking Thing.” Emma gasped. She never used that word
except in the privacy of her bedroom when she was engaged in the act. “My apologies for the language, Emma,”
the man said. “But that’s what this looks like.” Emma stared at him and struggled to make
sense of it all while she tried desperately to avoid staring at his penis the
way this Janice person was doing. “You know our names?” “Yes. I’d already lost my memory, so the
spell has the opposite effect on me.” He sighed. “I wish it didn’t. My
memories are coming back and that’s what’s causing this.” He pointed to his
erection. Emma figured she could look at it without
being rude now that he was directing her attention there. It was impressive,
with veins standing out and everything. “You must have some kind of memories!”
Janice tugged on his arm. “Let’s go make
some more, honey bun.” The man resisted her tug. “Believe me, I
do have potent memories. Apparently I’ve been a very naughty little vampyre.” “My favorite kind.” Janice slid an arm
around his waist. “Forget my place. Let’s slip into the back room of this
fine establishment and do it on the floor.” “And risk me getting killed again? No
thanks.” The vampyre turned Janice toward the front of the store. “Besides,
you’re supposed to be investigating a theft of dragon’s breath, which is
probably why you’re here. I’m guessing the C.R.A.F.T. potion got into the
town’s water supply somehow, so after the first cup or two of coffee, it began
to take hold. If I’m right, it was a diluted dose, so it should start wearing off
soon.” “I’d like to go home and wait for that to
happen,” Emma said. “Can you point me in the right direction?” “Sure.” The vampyre walked her to the
front of the store and pointed out her house six doors down on the left. Feeling extremely disoriented, Emma
walked home, in the door and back to the kitchen. A man was sitting there reading a bright
yellow book. He glanced up when she came in. “There you are,” he said. “Just
in time. I haven’t had a good roll in the hay since I can remember. Let’s go
upstairs and have sex all afternoon.” Emma discovered she wanted to do that,
too, but she had a vague feeling she had responsibilities. “Are we alone?” “We are, now. There were twelve kids
hanging around, but I sent them all to the movies. The older ones can look out
for the younger ones.” That sounded okay to Emma. “Did
they…um…drink any water this morning, do you know?” “Are you kidding? They’re kids! They
don’t drink water. They had Grapalicious Goo-Goo juice. There was a ton of it
in the refrigerator.” He stood and held out his hand. “Come on. I want you
naked and squirming in five minutes.” Although Emma was more than willing
because she hadn’t had sex in ages, either, another vague thought came to her.
“What if I get pregnant?” “Who cares?” He closed the book with a
slap of pages. “It’s about time you had a kid, don’t you think?” “Maybe so.” She glanced at the book.
“What is that book, anyway?” “Just something I found tucked in the
closet upstairs when I was looking for my socks, which I never did find, by the
way. It’s Witchcraft for Dummies. I don’t know where it came from.” “Neither do I.” Emma stared at the book,
trying to think why it would be in the closet. “One of the pages was turned down, so I
read that one. It had two spells on it, one called Bodies Bodacious, and the
other one called C.R.A.F.T., which stands for—” “I know what it stands for,” Emma said,
blushing. “Are you shy about such language?” the
man asked. The longer Emma gazed at him, the hotter
she became. For some strange reason he reminded her of a panther. She started
up the stairs. “Not when I’m naked and squirming,” she said over her shoulder. Emma thought about it. Episode 1.9 NIGHT MARES By MaryJanice Davidson Episode 1.9 Night Mares By MaryJanice Davidson “Oh, Gawd, this is soooooo boring!”
Withering Disdaine cried. “I didn’t think it was possible,” her
sister Scornful began, “But this both sucks and blows,” her
sister Derisive finished. None of the triplets pointed out that the
line had, in fact, been stolen from Bart Simpson. The three sisters knew. In
fact, they were liars, thieves, cheats, chronic complainers, hypochondriacs,
swindlers, whiners, and (is this redundant?) pre-teens. To put the cherry on top of their sundae
of evil, they all planned to be student loan officers when they grew up. Among other things. Withering peeked out their bedroom
window. Yep, the guests were still out there, milling around like they were
waiting for an execution or something. Which, in this town, wasn’t exactly out
of the question. “Jeez,” she said, striving for bored, but instead hitting
grudgingly impressed, “looks like the whole town’s out there.” “Wrecking the flowers, prob’ly. Mom’ll
have a fit.” Derisive threw herself face down on her bed. “You’d think we’d be
happy—we’re eleven now.” Since she was speaking directly into her pillow, a
passer-by would have heard, “Mmm mmm mnnn phhhmm bbbb nnnn mmmmwww,” but her
sisters understood her perfectly. “Just a few more years until we can jettison
our virginity and figure out what all the fuss is about.” “You’d do that with a boy?”
Scornful gasped. “Urrrrgggghhhh!” Derisive sat up. “Well. In theory. I
mean, right now, no way. Urrrgggghhhh is right. But maybe someday. Look, how
many people live in this town? And they’re all boy crazy or girl crazy? They
can’t all be morons.” “Compared to us?” “Compared to the general population,”
Derisive allowed. “There’s got to be something more to it than those articles
we’ve been reading. We’re not old enough to figure it out yet, but when we are,
we’ll control that, too.” “I don’t think Food and Wine is
our best source for sex ed,” Scornful pointed out. “Well, that’s all we could get. They’re
so damned overprotective of us. Us! We’re going to be running this weird little
town someday; the least they could do is treat us like adults.” Derisive
snatched the sky-blue ribbon (which perfectly matched her eyes) out of her
butterscotch colored hair and flung it to the carpet, which was pink, and
perfectly matched her rosy cheeks. “I mean look. Just look. Ribbons in
our hair, braids! Jumpers! Pastels! Knee socks! We’re not five
anymore, for the love of Lucifer! We should be in training bras right this minute.”
“No we shouldn’t,” Withering said,
looking at her sister’s flat chest and grinning. “Oh, shut the hell up before I hex all
your food—how’d you like everything to taste like dog shit?” “With Mom’s cooking, I probably wouldn’t
notice.” Derisive laughed; she couldn’t help it.
Meanwhile, Scornful had crept up on one of the twin beds (pastel yellow
bedspread, matching yellow bedskirt) and peeked. “They aren’t going anywhere,”
she announced. “They’re waiting for ‘the darling triplets’—” “Barf.” “Puke.” “—to come out and do our little triplet
song and dance, cut the cake, open presents, blah-blah. Aren’t we cute?
Haven’t we grown? Aren’t we just adorable?” “Aren’t we going to hurt someone? Aren’t
we going to blow something up? Aren’t we in touch with our inner juvenile
delinquents?” “Well, let’s get rid of ‘em. I’ve got
all the Barbie Dreamhouses I need. I want the new Beyoncй CD. I want the
Catwoman DVD. I want to be the new LOTF.” “Co-LOTF,” her sisters corrected. “My point is, I do not want
anything with a Mattel sticker on it. The madness ends here!” she cried,
stomping a Mary Jane shod foot. “We can’t just ‘get rid of ‘em’.” Withering frowned, trying to work that
one out. “You mean, we don’t have the mystical ability, or we don’t have the
will, or we don’t have the moral elasticity, or you don’t want anybody to be
seriously hurt, or—” “The last one,” Scornful said. “If we
kill anybody else, Mom’ll kill us. She carved it right into our desks
with her fingernails, remember? ‘Kill anyone else and I’ll kill you’.” She
sighed fondly. “Tough love. It sucks, but it works.” “So, let’s get rid of them without
hurting them. You know—chase them away. Then we’ll go through our stuff in our
timeline, keep the good stuff, pitch the rest, have cake for supper, and figure
out how
to kneecap that annoying LOTF. Then maybe watch Season Two of The Simpsons.” “Season Three,” Scornful said. “Season Four,” her sister corrected, and
they compromised. Then Derisive added, “Good one, BTW, Withering. And here I
thought you were just the pretty one.” “I am the pretty one, jerk. So how
should we do it? Boils? Nettles? Insects? Girl Scouts?” “Come on,” Derisive said. “Even we’re
not that bad.” “I’ve got it. It’s an outdoor party, poor
suckers...let’s drive them back to the homes. And then...” “...when they think they’re safe, their
nights will be worse than their afternoons!” “And mom can’t nail us for it, because
nobody will die,” Scornful finished gleefully. “Heck, she can’t even trace it
back to us—any one of the freaks in this town could have done it, either on
purpose or by accident.” “It’s good to be us,” Derisive chortled.
She snatched a (pink) Kleenex out of the (pink) box on her desk, blew her nose
into it, crumpled it, and dropped it. Withering leaned over and spat on it.
Scornful stomped on it. The three girls held hands but, before they started to
chant, Derisive had time for one more complaint. “Guys? How come black magic
has to be so damned gross?” * * * After fleeing from the little darlings’
outdoor birthday party, Claudia Choo bolted the doors and, exhausted from an
afternoon of counterspells and running and more spells and trying not to get
trampled, fell into a deep, dreamless sleep. Or so she thought. Moments after her head
hit the couch armrest (she wasn’t sleeping in the marital bed because of, um,
martial difficulties that really were no one’s business and besides, where she
slept was her business, and where was that fucking Earl, anyway?), a horrific
crashing snapped her back awake. “Oh thank God,” she said to the giant
black pony currently kicking up its heels in her breakfast nook. “Thanks for
coming.” The pony stopped in mid-kick. Pardon
me? Is that my power, Claudia wondered, or
the animal’s? Is it projecting its thoughts into my mind, or did I
unconsciously cast a— The animal stomped to get her attention.
No, seriously. Why are you glad I’m here? Nobody’s ever glad to see me, or
my herd. “Maybe because of all the destruction of
property and that sort of thing,” she suggested. We’re not getting on your case for wrecking the planet,
the pony thought at her reproachfully. “Good one. There’s lots of china in the
cupboard to your left.” Her wedding china, as a matter of fact. She tried not
to sniffle. “Smash away.” Thanks. The pony—a striking creature of deepest, unshaded black,
crashed about half-heartedly for a minute, then added, It’s not as much fun
without people screaming and running and trying to chase me out with brooms or shotguns.
“Sorry.” She brightened. “I could conjure
up a shotgun. I’m not so good at brooms, though—I missed that day in school.” No, it won’t be the same. You never did
answer me. “Oh. Well, it’s a long boring story, and
I don’t have any alcohol, so I’ll give you the short version. My husband and I
are—are sort of on the outs. I mean, he doesn’t like me. He’s wonderful and
annoying and handsome and everything a wife could want. But I guess—I guess he
doesn’t like me anymore.” Why? “I think it’s because I’m barren. I
can’t give him any children. So when he married me...” She swallowed a sob.
“He threw away his chance to be a father. I think he resents it. I think...he
hates me.” That’s too bad, the pony projected sympathetically. Here.
Maybe the noise will cheer you up. It kicked over a china hutch and,
Claudia had to admit, the resulting crash was satisfying. “Thanks,” she sniffed. “You seem like you
take pride in your work.” Yes, that’s true. “Maybe I could be your helper? God knows
I can’t do anything right around here. Can’t even make a baby...can’t even
cheat on my husband!” We’re full up, the pony said tactfully. But I’ll
keep your name on file. “Thanks.” She rested her forehead on her
hands. Hands that had held Earl, stroked him in the dead of night. Loved him.
On memorable occasions, slapped him. Oh, you bastard. I’d give anything to
be free of you. What was that? “Nothing. I wasn’t talking to you.” The pony trotted into the living room,
shaking dust off its glossy flanks. Look, you seem like a nice enough
person, for a slavering blood-thirsty member of the most rapacious species the
planet has ever known. “Thanks,” she said, cheering up. So I’m going to help you out. First of
all, things aren’t as bad as they seem with Earl. It fact, the fix is
laughably simple. You just need more information. “But how can I—” I’m talking now, if you please. Pay
attention. For things to get better, you have to tell your dream to the
Vampyre. “What? I have to tell him what? Dream?
You mean, when I go back to sleep I’ll dream about Seth?” Tell Seth about Janice’s beast. It’s very
important: he must know about her beast. “But what does that have to do with Earl
and—” Remember. People don’t always remember.
Or they attach no significance to it. “I’ll remember. But what does any of
that have to do with—owww!” Her neck hurt. Her neck hurt because
she’d fallen asleep on the piece of shit couch they’d bought on her honeymoon,
her neck always hurt when she slept on the thing, and she sat up and
worked the kinks out, and looked around her spotless house. Kitchen—clean.
Hutch—still standing. No pony. No nothing. A dream. Episode 1.10 DANCING IN THE STREAK By Lynn Warren Episode 1.10 Dancing in the Streak By Lynn Warren It was no secret that there was something
not quite right about Brokenoggin Falls. The little hamlet looked like a
normal town with paved streets, charming antique lampposts and sidewalks that
meandered through the shops around town. The climate always reflected the
season, but it never got too cold or too hot, the residents simply wouldn’t
have allowed that. Trees that seemed capable of touching the sky grew at an
alarming rate along with gorgeous blooms of every shape and color for every
season even though weeds never seemed to appear. Everyone in Brokenoggin knew each other.
It was a small place, really. Full of charm and old world ideals. People born
in Brokenoggin grew up and stayed in town. In fact, no one left. At least, not
in anyone’s recent memory. And the residents always lived a very long, long
time. And while those things might be
considered a wee bit odd, that wasn’t the most peculiar thing about
Brokenoggin. No, the most peculiar thing about Brokenoggin Falls was the ladies
some referred to as witches… *** Gavin tossed the box down onto the
bathroom counter along with his reading glasses. He was going to sue the
fucking bastards. All of them. In fact, the more the merrier as far as
he was concerned. Those evil sons of bitches at the pharmaceutical company
didn’t know who they were screwing around with, literally. Gavin moved away
from the counter to examine himself in the mirror once more. The full-length mirror concealed nothing
and it was a good thing. Gavin wouldn’t tolerate an imperfection and if he had
one, well, he damn well was going to know about it beforehand. He looked good. Even if he said so
himself. Not many forty-two year olds, looked as good as he did. He only lied
about his age in public. Everyone in the neighborhood believed he was
thirty-eight, so why destroy their illusions? Gavin was tall, lean and spent a
good deal of time on a weight machine and swimming nude in his pool. He liked his body. A lot. And he didn’t
mind showing it off as he did when he took his morning stroll around the
neighborhood of Brokenoggin nude. His morning walk was a tradition around the
neighborhood. Women kept their underage children inside and went to their
morning paper themselves. He’d seen sexy girls pulling weeds early in the
morning or pulling their trash barrels back into the garage. It made him swell
with pride. But he hadn’t gone yesterday and there was no way in hell he was
walking outside today. Swelling was his problem. Four hour chubby, my ass. He’d had a goddamn steel pole for two
days now and it wasn’t showing any sign of deflating any time soon. Gavin ran
his hands through his short, golden brown hair in frustration. He walked back
over to the bathroom counter and examined the warning label on the box once
more. No, there were no warnings that warlocks shouldn’t take the drug. Ha!
He had them by the balls. Meanwhile, what the hell was he supposed
to do? Running his hands through his hair again, Gavin glanced at the chaos
around his home. His bedroom and bath had spellbooks lying all over the floor.
He’d searched high and low for some sort of shrinkage spell. But all the
specific spells resulted in permanent damage. He wasn’t about to cause any
damage to his prize equipment. Reaching for a pair of sweatpants, Gavin made a
decision. He’d put some clothes on and go visit the witches. Maybe one of
them had a potion or an herbal wrap or something. Because every spell he’d
actually tried on his chubby only made it harder. What was worse was how horny
he was. Gavin had never experienced such and insatiable desire before. It
boggled his mind. No wonder he couldn’t cast a decent spell. He needed to
quench this desire before he could even begin to think clearly. Right now, he
was so damn horny he could fuck every woman in the neighborhood and be ready
for a second go round within minutes. Slipping into a pair of navy sweats, he
examined the tent pole protrusion. Oh wasn’t that just sexy? He couldn’t go
outside like this. No way. Gavin was a proud man. A warlock of esteem and
probably the only sexy man in the neighborhood not tied up in knots over the
witches of Brokenoggin. He walked into the kitchen and poured
himself a glass of orange juice. From his window, he could see several women
milling about in their front yards waiting for something or someone. He drank
half a glass of juice in two large swallows. They’d just have to wait. He
wasn’t going outside like this. A knock on his front door nearly made
Gavin spew juice across his granite countertops. Maybe if he didn’t answer,
the women would go away. Go back into their homes and put their little
fantasies on a shelf somewhere for the next few days. At least for as long as
it took him to get rid of the chubby. The knock came again. This time more
insistent and Gavin walked slowly into his living room. What was wrong with
these women, anyway? His drapes were drawn, he hadn’t been outside in two
days. Why didn’t they think he wasn’t at home? “Gavin! Gavin? Are you in there?” He recognized that voice. It was Maria
Drinkwater, a nosey little witch that somehow managed to entangle herself in as
much gossip and mayhem as she could find around town. He drew the drapes
tighter. He took a chance and peeked out of a small crack in the fabric. “Son of a bitch!” Gavin leaped back as
he saw the pale green eyes of Maria trying to peer into his house. “Get away
from my house.” “Gavin, we’re not going anywhere until
you come out.” Maria put her hands on her ample hips. “The girls and I have
been waiting for two days for you to surface. You can’t deprive us, Gavin.
It’s not nice.” Gavin poked his head through the curtain
careful to keep the rest of his body concealed. “What are you talking about?” Maria crooked her finger at him and
pointed across the street where at least fifteen women of all ages and sizes
gathered. Turning slowly, Maria pointed farther down the block where even more
waited. Gavin groaned. Some of them were even
holding signs. He pressed his face up against the window and squinted to read
one of them: “Where’s our hunk?” “Oh dear god…” “So you see, you’ve managed to create
quite an event over the years. Now get your British ass out here so we can
drool and then get on with our day.” Gavin pulled the drapes shut. “No! Now,
go away.” “We’re not leaving.” Maria’s happy
little singsong voice was just enough to set his teeth on edge. “You might as
well come out.” His lips twisted. His eyes narrowed to
slits. “I’m not well,” he yelled to Maria all the while his mind worked over
scenarios. “Gavin, you’re gorgeous. You’re always
well, and hot.” His head tilted slightly. Maria’d always
had a crush on him. Ever since the first time he’d strolled naked past her
door, she’d practically thrown herself at him whenever the occasion arose.
Well, now he’d risen to the occasion so to speak and there was no bloody way
he’d let her get a look at him like this. The little witch would suck the come
and probably the life right out of him. Pacing in his foyer, Gavin considered his
options. He could sit in his house and hide, hoping somehow this massive
chubby would vanish on is own. On the other hand, he could bravely stride out
his front door and fuck every woman in his path and work it down to a
reasonable size. Obviously, the later was by far the more
pleasurable. He wondered what the vivacious and voluptuous Miss Maria
Drinkwater would think of such a thing. Would her sensibilities be offended or
would she ride him like he was a wild stallion? Part of him wanted to find
out. It really did. The other part of him didn’t think it was a terribly good
idea to mix magicks. Who knew what sort of catastrophe could come flying out
at the moment of orgasm. He’d created many a wild storm in his youth while
toying with the affections of witches. Gavin shook his head. He didn’t need
the excess aggravation. Besides, what made him think it would go
down anyway? He’d pleasured himself three times last night trying to get his
rod to shrink and no luck. All it’d done was drive him nearly insane. He was
so horny now his teeth clenched just to keep a lid on his baser needs. Now, his
jaw hurt. His muscles ached and he wanted nothing more than to sink his cock
into a tight, wet pussy. “Gavin? Are you still there?” “Yes.” It was more a hiss than anything
else, but he couldn’t help it. He could practically smell the magic on her.
He raised his head, his eyes lit with a realization that nearly blinded him.
The woman was a witch. She had been known in the past to stir the cauldron, so
to speak… “Gavin, are you coming—” “No, but if you don’t get out of here,
you will be!” He flipped the locks both magical and mechanical on his front
door. With one hand, he yanked the door open and with his other, he caught
hold of Maria’s wrist. He slammed the door behind her then whirled on the
pretty witch. “Did you do this?” He watched as her eyes turned predatory.
She licked her lips as her gaze traveled down from his face, over his chest and
settled on his rock hard rod. Gavin sighed, now he knew what women with those
big gorgeous tits felt like. She gazed at him as if he was a big, juicy filet
that she’d love to sink her teeth into and it made Gavin a bit uncomfortable. “Stop that.” “Mmmm,” Maria’s mumble sounded more like
a purr. “That. Stop that.” She lifted her eyes slowly, blinked and
seemed to refocus. “You’re kidding, right?” “No, I’m not.” Gavin folded his arms in
front of his chest wishing he’d gone and kept those sweatpants on. “The girls have to see you! My gawd!
They will just turn into puddles.” Again with the sexual imagery. Gavin’s
jaw tightened. Of course, everything right now had sexual connotations as far
as he was concerned. “You need to leave.” “What?” Maria’s eyes shone with alarm.
“Why?” She took a step toward him and Gavin backed up nearly tripping over the
ottoman in his living area. “I’m the president, didn’t you know? That’s why I
came.” She just had to say that particular word,
didn’t she? Another word he didn’t want to hear at the moment. “Excuse me?” “The president of the Naked Wizard
Admirer’s Association.” Gavin choked. Saliva caught in his throat
and turned to ash. He coughed, doubling over and finally hacking his way to
the ottoman. This was outrageous! He’d never heard of such a thing. No wonder
all these women stared at him. They were mocking him. “Oh for heaven’s sake, Gavin.” Maria
pressed a glass of ice water into his hand and knelt down beside him. “We’re
not mocking you. Far from it.” He took a tentative swallow of the water,
not wishing to look at her. He didn’t believe her. The women of Brokenoggin
made a laughing stock of him. “Go away.” “I’m not going anywhere.” Maria pushed
to her feet, using his arm for support. A tingle of magic ran through his
bloodstream and naturally settled in his cock. “Do you have any idea how many
women in town want to sleep with you? Outside of old Ms. Dunbar who can’t see
well enough to tell a man from a bull, I don’t know any female within a thirty
mile radius that doesn’t want to have a fling with you.” Gavin’s head lifted, she looked sincere.
But you couldn’t trust those witches. And the little glimmer of realization
that kept tickling around his head all this time finally shone like a beacon.
“Does that include you, Maria Drinkwater?” She smiled. Her pretty lips, full and
glossy pink made him long for a taste. Funny, he’d never actually looked at
her in that way. Until now. And that made all the sense in the world. Maria shifted her weight from one hip to
the next. “What? Do you think I’m nuts or something? Of course I want you,
Gavin. Why do you think I cast—” Gavin stood slowly. He angled his index
finger toward Maria. “You cast?” He approached her slowly as the magic
tingled through his entire body. Part of him was thinking Lightning Strike
while the other thought Fireball. It trickled over him in a searing
heat. “What did you cast, Maria?” She turned her head away. “Well, you’ve
never noticed me before so I figured I’d help the issue.” “I see.” “Of course, I didn’t think it would have
such startling results. I mean, who would’ve thought I’d get it so hard.” “Maria…” His tone warned, but a weird
part of him found himself already intrigued by her behavior. “I’ve got some gorgeous lingerie that I
just picked up. I think you’ll like it.” Maria started for his front door.
“All you’ve got to do is walk over to my house and—” “And what?” “I’ll reverse the spell.” She winked. “But
first, you and I are going to have some fun.” Maria opened his front door and
held out her hand. “So I’d advise you to come along and prepare yourself for
the best sex you’ve ever experienced. Unless, of course you want to go through
life with that jack hammer.” Gavin raised an eyebrow. “What did you
have in mind?” “Oh, lot’s of things…” What the hell did he have to lose? Only
a massive, aching hard-on that showed no signs of retreating on its own. He
took her hand and stepped up to the door. Outside, he could hear gasps of
pleasure and applause. Gavin looked out and swore one woman even fainted. A
small smirk played about his lips before turning into a sexy grin. He walked outside, his hand in Maria’s
and reached back to close the door. “I hope you’re ready for a wild ride.” She laughed. “Oh, I’m ready. And there
are always reinforcements.” Episode 1.11 X MARKS THE G-SPOT By Shelly Laurenston Episode 1.11 X Marks the G-Spot By Shelly Laurenston Mavis brought the binoculars back up. She
was bored and uncomfortably hot. Even her sleeveless sundress and sun hat gave
her absolutely no respite. Truly, this kind of weather did not give her
comfort. In fact, it did the opposite. It made her horny as a tiger in heat.
But she couldn’t do that anymore. Nope. People would start getting
suspicious. Exactly how many husbands could leave one thirty-year-old woman?
As it was, six might really be pushing it. She simply couldn’t risk seven. She sighed. All of this celibacy was
making her depressed. She didn’t like being depressed. It went against her
naturally perky nature. She scanned the streets of her little
town, looking to see what people were up to. That’s why she always loved this house.
The top floor porch circled her entire home. On a really good day she could
witness all sorts of things from here…and she often did. At the moment, she could see Officer
Thinksalot cruising down Main Street. She snorted. She never could find the energy
in her to like that woman. Snotty miss know-it-all as far as she was
concerned. And kind of boring. Besides, she never came in for a reading. So
she was of no use to Mavis whatsoever. She swung her sights into her neighbor
Emma’s backyard. It was a very rare occasion when Emma did anything remotely
interesting. And those toads the other night just didn’t count. Oh, who was she kidding? She could care
less about Emma, her toads, or the boring town cop. No there was only one thing
she really had any interest in at the moment. Only one thing she really wanted
to watch that closely…but she shouldn’t. She really shouldn’t. Biting her lip and disgusted at her own
weakness, she swung her binoculars over to her front yard. That’s where she
left that damn gardener. Goddess, he was gorgeous. Tall, his body one big
rippling muscle, shoulder-length mane of black hair and crystal-clear blue
eyes. Eyes that stared straight through her. Loose-fitting blue jeans hung low
on his lean hips, and his sleeveless blue T-shirt did nothing but bring out
those divine blue eyes. She almost tripped over her own tongue when she opened
her front door to him. And the way he looked at her…like a
starving man just offered a slice of prime rib. Thank you, Maria. Her friend recommended
him…although she should have known better. Leave
it to Maria to send the hottest man on the planet over to trim her hedges.
Maybe it wouldn’t be so bad if she weren’t so damn horny. But she was…and that
would just make it harder to resist him. She had to, though. She had no choice.
The town would definitely notice if this one went missing. She leveled her binoculars at the front
of her house. She’d hired him to re-design her front lawn. Maybe plant some
new flowers and bushes. Maybe…maybe…uh-oh. Her breath caught in her
throat. He wasn’t there. Oh, damn! She whipped her
binoculars around to her backyard. And sure enough, Mr. Tall, Dark, and
Well-Hung stood in her backyard. And right by those pesky graves. *** She slid to a stop in front of him. “Now
how did you get back here?” She knew her voice sounded way too high at the
moment, but trying to pretend she was being light and unconcerned was killing
her. “How about some iced tea? Or a soda?” He stared down at her, those clear blue
eyes sizing her up. He didn’t seem remotely disturbed by her sudden
appearance. In fact, he looked amused. Very amused. “No, thank you.” His voice, low and heavy
shot her senses into overdrive. Gritting her teeth, she tamped down the Wanton
Whore ready to throw the man to the ground, fuck him until his heart stopped,
and then bury him with the others. She and the Wanton Whore had been fighting
for dominance since she put on her first training bra. And every day it got
harder and harder to win. “You know, I can’t afford to have you
passing out on me from this heat.” Grabbing his, she gently pulled him toward
her back patio. His arm, hard as steel, felt wonderful and strong against the
tips of her fingers. He allowed her to pull him to her patio
and into the back of her house. Opening the refrigerator, “Let’s see.
Bottled water?” He nodded as he carefully examined her
kitchen. Strange young man. He didn’t say much but there seemed to be a whole
lot going on inside that handsome head. Mavis took out a bottle and handed it to
him. “You know, I really don’t need any help with my backyard. I just let that
grow wild. I like it that way.” He opened his water and chuckled, “Is
that right?” She frowned. Was the man laughing at her?
“Yes. That’s right. So if you’ll concentrate on the front…” “You
sure you just didn’t want me to find those bodies you’ve got in your backyard?”
herself to smile and speak. “Where ever
did you get such a ridiculous idea?” “From the graves I found. Most of them
mostly contain bones. But one is still…percolating.” She kept tight control
over her emotions, it wasn’t easy. It wasn’t easy at all. “There are no bodies
in my backyard. You…” With a shake of his head, “Don’t lie to me, Mavis. Don’t
ever lie to me.” “How dare you speak to me that way!” “So you’re trying to tell
me you didn’t fuck your husbands to death?” “That’s insane. And
insulting!” “So where are your husbands, Mavis? If not in your backyard.”
“You can call me Ms. Gap. And my husbands left me, if you must know.” “All six
of them? There were six, right? I counted six graves.” She turned away from
him, huffing as if in anger. But it was panic. Pure, unadulterated panic. None of her usual
charm was working with this one. And what bothered her most was the fact that
he didn’t seem too concerned with the multiple graves in her backyard. If she
didn’t know better, she’d swear he expected to find them. Mavis
shook her head. She should kill him. But to be honest, she didn’t know how.
And she wasn’t entirely comfortable with the whole concept. Was it her fault
her mother’s demonic genes cursed her to always be alone? She’d only had six
lovers in her life and she’d screwed them all to death. She didn’t mean to.
But once she got going, the succubus buried inside her DNA, made its
appearance. So, although technically she may have murdered her husbands, she
really didn’t. They just couldn’t handle her. No man on the planet could. “I
think you need to get out.” She
felt him brush his hand or fingers across her bare shoulder. “Don’t worry,
Mavis. I have no intention of telling anyone. I’ve been waiting too long for
you. But we can’t leave those bodies there. That cop will stumble across them
eventually.” Staring
at him over her shoulder, “What do you mean? You’ve been waiting too long for
me?” He
stroked her shoulder again, but he had one hand shoved in the pocket of his
jeans and the other gripping his bottled water. She looked at what touched her
and stumbled back, cold fear slamming into her heart. “Is
that a…a tail?” Casually, he glanced down at the
flesh-colored tail whipping lightly around her leg. It angled down into a point
and should have scared the beejesus out of her. But she was much more
concerned with the fact that he actually had a tail. A long strip of
muscle that angled down into a point. “Yup. I got my mother’s eyes…and my
dad’s tail. Trust me, it would have been worse if I got his eyes.” “Who the hell are you?” He smiled. A beautiful smile that made
her pussy clench and her mind scream in panic. “Didn’t your precious cards
tell you I was coming for you?” He dropped his half-drunk bottle of water on
the counter and took a step toward her. “Didn’t you see me?” Mavis stumbled away from him, her back
slamming into her stove. Thankfully she hadn’t turned it on; otherwise, she’d
have burned her entire backside. And she wasn’t sure she would have cared. “Who are you? What are you?” His grin widened as he stood in front of
her, bracing both his arms on either side of her. “My name’s Cade.” “I know your name!” She looked for a way
around him, but he blocked her in. “I just don’t know who the hell you are.” “You sure, Mavis? You really have no
idea?” The way he looked at her with those eyes. Suddenly they seemed
unnaturally blue. Freakish, even. He leaned down until they were eye to
eye. “You don’t know me at all?” “Get…get out.” “Why? What are you afraid of?” “You have a tail!” “And you have six dead husbands in the
backyard. And I don’t see me running screaming into the night.” She glared at him. “It’s daytime. And
exactly what is this? Some kind of blackmail? You want money or something?” “This isn’t blackmail.” His eyes swept
down her body and she knew he was absorbing every detail. “And the last thing I
want from you is money.” “Then what…” She stopped as his lips touched hers. A
soft, gentle kiss. No! She couldn’t do this. She could overlook the tail, but
not his dead body in her kitchen. He was huge. It would take her hours to get
rid of him. She brought her hands up and pushed
against his shoulders. With great effort she pulled her mouth away. “No! I
can’t.” He smiled, his mouth easing down to her
throat. “Why?” “Because…oh!” He bit her neck. Hard.
“Don’t.” At this moment, she was having a flat-out fist fight with her inner
succubus. “I just can’t!” “Afraid you’ll kill me?” She couldn’t concentrate enough to come
up with a lie. Besides, he seemed to know so much already, why bother? “I will
kill you…Goddess, stop!” She grabbed his hands with both of hers before they
could grab hold of her breasts. “Please, Cade. I don’t want to hurt you.” “Do you really think I’m that easy to
kill?” He closed his big hands around her smaller ones, his callused fingers
rubbing the knuckles of each hand. “Are you?” “No. But I’m…I’m not…” “Human?” “Not completely. No.” “Well…neither am I. Completely.” She let out a little gasp as he nibbled
his way down her throat. Three of her husbands hadn’t been completely human
either. After she fucked the first three to death, she decided to try
something not nearly as human. She tried a werewolf, a demon from the fourth level
of hell, and a Marine. And none of them could handle her either. “I’m not just not human, Cade. I’m…I’m
a…” She’d never admitted this out loud to anyone, and she really didn’t want
to admit it to him now. Damn him! Didn’t he have some roses to plant or
something? Growling, he stood up. So much taller
than her, she felt dwarfed by the man’s presence. “I know what you are, Mavis.
I know…and you’re just what I need, woman. So stop fighting me.” “Don’t bark at me!” She snatched her
hands back from him and crossed her arms in front of her chest. “I’m trying to
protect you!” He crossed his arms in front of his
chest, mimicking her. “I don’t need your protection. Not from you. Not from
anybody.” “Maybe not. But I can’t afford to bury
another body in my backyard. And it’ll take me forever to drag you out of my
house and down to the…oh! Oh!” She reached back and gripped the stove,
her head thrown back. “You were saying, Love?” Mavis tried to breathe, but that wasn’t
working. So focused on where he’d placed those hands, she’d completely forgotten about his
tail. That goddamn tail! It slipped under her sundress and the tip slid past
her panties. Now it rubbed her clit. Tiny, tiny circles right around it. She couldn’t
believe how well he maneuvered that thing. “Do you want me to stop, Mavis?”
She opened her mouth to say “Yes! Stop!” But he twirled his tail the opposite
way and all she could manage was a
choked high-pitched sound. “You
know what I hate? I really hate this hat.” Snatching the sunhat from off her
head, he tossed it across the room. The whole time his tail just kept working
her. Dragging her closer and closer to orgasm. “Much
better. I don’t like you hiding that pretty face when we’re in the house. I
like seeing it.” just kept playing
with her. “And
let’s get this off you.” He grabbed her sundress by the neck and with one
mighty pull rendered it in shreds. Then he casually stripped it from her body.
She wore no bra, which only left her panties. “You really are beautiful,
Mavis.” Cade
stepped closer, examining her near-naked body from head to toe. “I didn’t
think you’d be so beautiful. Although that wouldn’t have mattered. What we
need from each other goes beyond anything so trivial.” She
had no idea what the hell he meant. What they needed from each other? forefinger and
squeezed. Hard. Her eyes snapped open. “Don’t ignore me, Mavis.” His
other hand grabbed her untended breast. “Don’t ever ignore me. I don’t care
what you do to the rest of the idiots in this town. Spy on them. Ignore them.
Lie to them. I don’t care. But with each other we’ll always be honest. We’re
partners in this, Love. Don’t forget that.” What in hell was he
talking about? In this together? In what together? He released one breast and
she bit back a moan of disappointment as his hand reached up and brushed the
dark hair out of her face. “I want you to come for me now, Love. Right. Now.”
She screamed as the orgasm tore through her, her body shaking in release. She
felt her world tilt and slide
away beneath her feet. *** Mavis opened her eyes and found herself in her bed,
a white sheet pulled up to her chin. The windows were open, letting in a
slightly cooling breeze and the bright afternoon sunlight. Really, with a little effort, she could
have made herself believe what happened with Cade was nothing more than a
dream. A hot, wet nightmare the Wanton Whore dug up hoping to send Mavis out
on the hunt for Husband Number Seven. She could have made herself believe all
sorts of things if she tried. But that head between her legs apparently
wasn’t having it. Mavis pulled up the sheet and gazed down
at the top of Cade’s dark head. Her legs began to shake, another orgasm
imminent. How did he do that to her? She usually didn’t come until the men
were in their final death throes. Not the best way to get off, but it wasn’t
like she had any choice in the matter. Cade’s hands slid under her and gripped
her ass tight. She gasped as he lifted her so that his mouth could feast on
her comfortably. She reached out blindly and grasped the headboard.
Instinctively, she tried to close her legs, but Cade held them wide apart,
letting his tongue roam freely over and in her pussy. She tried not to think
too hard about the fact that his tongue felt longer than anything she’d ever
experienced. Who the hell was this man? How did he
seem to know so much about her? She’d heard about him as soon as he moved into
town. Maria practically knocked her door down trying to get to her so she
could give her all the details. Yet with all the gossip and “investigation”
Mavis had done, she’d yet to find anyone who seemed to have had any kind of
relationship with him. And she’d looked. New stud comes to town and a lot of
these whores…uh…housewives fell all over themselves being the first to break
him in. But from what she could tell, no one had been with Cade. Now she
couldn’t help but wonder if he’d truly been waiting for her? An orgasm slashed through her and her
entire body clenched hard. Cade held her tight to keep her on the bed and she
barely reigned in the Wanton Whore in time. The fact that she’d been able to
hold her back this long amazed Mavis. But the difference between Cade and her
past husbands was her very real desire not to hurt him. Cade pushed her body back into the bed and
then started licking her all over again. No, no, no. She couldn’t do this
again. One more time and the Wanton Whore would have her way. And she’d never
be able to protect him. Not from that bitch. She released the headboard and lifted the
white sheet, staring at the man who’d turned her whole life upside down in a
matter of a few hours. “Cade…Cade, please stop.” Blue eyes looked up at her. He smiled and
dragged himself up her body, kissing her flesh the entire way. Everywhere he
touched tingled with lust. He set her blood on fire and she knew she wouldn’t
be able to hold back who she really was any longer. “You all right, Love? Feel better?” She shook her head. “No. I don’t feel
better…just who the hell are you?” Gently, he pushed her hair off her face.
“I’m Cade. My mother was a Rhode Island blue blood. My father was an incubus.
And as entertaining as demons can be for lovers, I wanted something more
human…but something I wouldn’t kill. A witch I know cast a spell for me. A
location spell. To find my true other half. My dark-soul mate. To find you,
Mavis. And don’t worry about the tail…I can totally retract that in public.” Mavis snorted out a laugh. “Okay.” One hand brushed her cheek. “I’d dreamed
you for years before I went to Fanny for the spell. I just never thought I’d
find you. And now that I have…” He didn’t need to finish. She saw the
desire in his blue eyes. He wanted her. Desperately. “Are you sure, Cade?”
She’d only known the man for several hours but it felt like she’d been waiting
for him all her life. If she hurt him or worse, she’d never be able to forgive
herself. “Honestly, Love. I think I’m the only man
who can handle you.” He lifted the sheet and, frowning, Mavis glanced
down. Her eyes widened at the enormous cock between his legs. Even the demon
ex didn’t have anything like that. He grunted. “This is usually where the
screaming would always start.” Mavis didn’t scream. At least not yet.
Instead, she reached down and grasped the hard shaft in her hand. It pulsated.
Hot and powerful against her palm, her long fingers unable to close around it.
Her pussy wept in excitement. She’d been waiting her whole life for this
cock…oh, and the man attached to it, of course. He sighed as she eased her hand down the
entire length of him. She’d seen porno movies at bridal showers where the men
weren’t this well-endowed. She released the Wanton Whore who had been
impatiently waiting. Released her and didn’t look back. Black talons burst from her hands. Her
dark, sassy bob, grew several feet long, streaked with white and blond hair.
And she knew her eyes turned completely black, tinged with red. Just like it
always did when she got like this. “Fuck me, Cade,” she grumbled out in that
demonic voice her exes really hated, “Fuck me now.” He smiled down into her face, not
remotely disturbed by her transformation, and for the first time she saw four
fangs. Two on top and two on the bottom, right behind his incisors. He
stretched out between her legs, his hot cock right against her pussy. He
grabbed her wrists and pinned her arms above her head. His black hair fell
across her face, the silky strands heating her to fever pitch. “Take a deep breathe, Love. The first
time is always the roughest.” She did, as he slowly pushed himself
inside her. She spread her legs wide, letting all of him sink in. They both
gasped in surprise as he went in to the hilt quickly, her body accommodating
him immediately...like he was always meant to be there. Her smile as wide as
his, Mavis arched into him. “Do it, Cade. Do it! I want to see if we
both survive.” His thrusts started off slow and Mavis’
body immediately reacted to them. Her flesh on fire as she shuddered and
whimpered beneath him. She wrapped her legs around his waist, urging him on
with her body and her cries. Cade sped up, his body slamming into hers,
seemingly unable to hold back any longer. She tried to pull her wrists away so she
could bury her talons into his back and tear flesh from his body. But he just
chuckled and held her tighter. He controlled her body with ease and she loved
it. He dipped his head and laved one breast.
She gasped at the feel of his harsh tongue against her. Then he roughly sucked
the nipple into his mouth and she cried out. His free hand grabbed her other
breast, twisting and tweaking the nipple until she thought she might explode.
Cade growled against her flesh, his
movements becoming stronger, more forceful. And Mavis loved it. She arched
again as her orgasm rushed through her. And that’s when she felt it. His tail
snaked around behind her and the tip slid into her ass. She exploded, her scream only stopped
because he slammed his mouth over hers. She’d experienced nothing like it before.
Even when she’d killed her husbands, she hadn’t erupted like this. Mavis felt the Wanton Whore, finally
satisfied and content, go back to the safe place in her body. Her talons
retracted, her hair went back to its sassy bob. And even her eyes felt normal once
more. It took Mavis, however, a moment to
realize something. Cade wasn’t dead. Far from it, in fact. Actually, he was
still going strong and there didn’t seem to be any signs of him letting up. “Cade,” she panted out as he continued
pumping into her. Over and over again. “What, Love?” His mouth happily returned
to her breast, gently worrying the nipple with his teeth. She shuddered as another orgasm prepared
to release itself. “Exactly…ah! How long do you normally keep this up?” He glanced up at her, blue eyes digging
deep into her soul as if afraid she’d bolt. He didn’t release her gaze or
breast when he spoke. “Days.” Mavis raised an eyebrow as her toes began
to curl from the earth-shattering explosion getting ready to rock her. “Days?” He nodded slightly, waiting for her
response. “Well…okay…oh. Oh! Do that again, Cade.
Oh, yes…yes…that feels really good. Um…but I promised to make my cheesecake
for the church bazaar this weekend, so…ooooooooh!” He shrugged as he went back to sucking
her nipples. “That shouldn’t be a problem.” She smiled as her orgasm worked its way
up her spine. “Okay, then. That’ll…that’ll work…Oh, God!” Episode 1.11 THE TOAD PRINCE By Terese Ramin Episode 1.11 The Toad Prince By Terese Ramin (In which Murphy’s Law arrives in
Brokenoggin Falls, and a demonstration of “Be Careful What You Wish For” is
brought to bear.) “Rrrrrriiiiiiiibbb-iiiiiittt,” trilled the Giant Toad (quite literally
genus/species Bufo marinus, if anyone
is keeping track) that sat across the breakfast table from Alice Fairweather.
Its slow, low-pitched voice sounding almost exactly like the exhaust of a
far-off tractor, the toad spoke again somewhat reproachfully, “Rrrrriiiiiiiibbb-mmmmeeeeepppp
rrrrriiiiiiiibbb-iiiiiittt!” From behind Alice’s husband Greg’s
black-rimmed Clark-Kent-style glasses-frames, it blinked curiously human
hazel-brown eyes and waited for her to do something. Alice stared back at it aghast. But I
am NOT a witch, was all she could think. I couldn’t have done
that. Not just by getting super-upset and calling Greg a giant toad for
forgetting our wedding anniversary for the thirteenth year in a row… And yet the evidence of her dubious
prowess and long-denied heritage put its three-toed left foreleg atop the
morning paper—the Thursday new technology section, Greg’s favorite—and Greg’s
hi-tech titanium watch and plain platinum wedding ring thunked solidly
onto his salsa-and-scrambled-eggs-with-a-side-of-Russian-caviar-and-gourmet-biscuits
plate. (It was their anniversary for crying out loud!) Alice eyed the
further evidence that this particular Bufo marinus (a toad species definitely not
indigenous to Michigan’s Upper Peninsula, nor indeed to anywhere in the
United States north of extreme south Texas, Miami, Stock Island, southern
Sonora, or the pools and arroyos in the Rio Grande Valley) was, in fact, her
husband. Taken together with the emotional upset
over yet another forgotten anniversary, the evidence— glasses, human
hazel-brown-eyes, watch and ring—was all too damning and made her feel like
crying. She loved Greg to distraction but sometimes he was such a… She stopped herself from even thinking
anything accidentally lethal just in case, just in time, and burst into tears.
“I AM NOT A WITCH,” she sobbed loudly, “I-am-not-a-witch-notawitchnotawitchnotawitch…”
*** “Trevor Fairweather!” Claudia Choo knocked on her kitchen
bay window in an attempt to get the
attention of the Golden Retriever digging industriously in her herb and rhubarb
bed just below. “Stop it. Stop it this instant!” Normally a well-behaved canine of
immaculate grooming and joyous but exceedingly beautifully-mannered
temperament, Trevor suffered occasional bouts of rebelliousness and went, what
Claudia had heard his young mistress Amy Fairweather refer to as “rogue.” Instead of desisting, Trevor pointed his
impressive golden muzzle directly at Claudia, barked once, and moved over to an
exquisite patch of lavender and dragon’s breath. He nosed through the expertly
tended growth, chose his scent, clamped his teeth around the stem and tore out
the largest lavender plant Claudia had. Then he started to excavate in earnest. Speechless with fury, Claudia darted for
the first available exit and dashed catty-corner across Crestfallen Lane to the
Fairweathers’. She was damned straight going to give Alice a piece or two of
her mind, tell her to come get “that dog!” and have her—somehow—replace
the prize rare English-East-Indian Lavender-Mint plant Trevor had
just destroyed. *** “I am not a witch, notawitchnotawitchnotawitch…”
The more Alice Fairweather chanted the
mantra to herself, the more hysterical she became. It was a simple statement really, and one
that shouldn’t need justification or explanation, but every time she said it,
her need to justify herself to the universe got worse. She glanced at the sunlit kitchen table
upon which sat the usual, normal Fairweather family accouterments: the
breakfast dishes and morning paper, the French press coffeepot, the
too-cute-for-words unicorn-creamer and salt & pepper set Amy gave her last
Christmas because they were what the nine-year-old thought her mother should
have… An almost imperceptible keening joined
the mantra when she glanced at Greg’s place. “—notawitchnotawitchnotawitchnotawitch…”
Dear Lord, what had she done? What had
she done? Nothing, that’s what. She couldn’t have
because she wasn’t a witch, which meant this whole thing had to be… Greg’s own fault. The keening trickled down to a hysterical
giggle. That’s right, had to be Greg’s fault. He’d been the one to insist
they move back to this godforsaken place after all. Said it would pay to live
near his biggest and most lucrative clients. She’d never wanted him to
own an Internet company called SpookYour-Mama.com in the first place. Or to
specialize in items that the magickally enhanced scarfed up like free fresh
cookies at a blood drive. She was also not the one who’d forgotten
their thirteenth anniversary, or their fourteenth—which meant he’d forgotten thirteen
times in a row! Screwing with double-thirteens was just asking for bad
luck no matter how not superstitious you were or how much you were
definitely not a witch. Which she couldn’t be. Otherwise, she’d
probably like the number thirteen, black cats instead of Golden Retrievers and
turning her husband into a Bufo marinus whether accidentally or on
purpose. Right? “Rrrrriiiiiiibbbbb-bbbbaaaaaaappp?”
the toad trilled in its tractor exhaust voice, sounding for all the world as
though it wondered if she was all right. Alice took in Greg’s Clark-Kent-glasses
perched askew on its nose, the all-too-human hazel-brown eyes that blinked
behind the this-man-is-a-geek-but-a-really-hunkly-one nearsighted-thick lenses
and choked, “N-no, I’m n-not” and started to sniffle into tears. But
just then Claudia burst through the never-locked kitchen door, surprising her
out of them. “Hot damn it, Alice! That dog of Amy’s
is tearing up my prize lavender and if you don’t stop him, I’m going to hex him
into—” She stopped dead in mid-sentence and
stride, assessing the situation in the Fairweather kitchen in the blink of an
eye. “Oh, Alice,” she said in disgusted
sympathy, “what is it with men and anniversaries? The giant toad forgot again,
didn’t he?” A tiny bubble of hysterical laughter
squeaked out of Alice before she collapsed at the table opposite the Giant
Toad, crying as though her heart had broken. Ribitting madly, the toad hopped
onto the table and headed toward Alice. Claudia grabbed a potholder and a
dishtowel, scooped up the toad and dumped it into the deep ten-gallon soup pot
Alice kept on the one end of the counter and used to cook fish stew or chili
for the town festivals. “No you don’t,” she told the toad,
“you’ve caused enough trouble already.” She covered the pot, dropped the towel
and hot pad, grabbed up the phone and went to pat Alice’s back. “Don’t worry,
sweetie, it’s not your fault. We’ll convene the coven klatch and get you back
to normal in a flash.” *** “Giant Toads are
toxic, aren’t they?” Vanessa DuMal peered closely at the deeply pitted
paratoid glands that extended far down the sides of Greg’s new body. Hesther
Bellhallow leafed through one of several regional A Field Guide to Reptiles
and Amphibians she’d thought to bring with her at
Claudia’s summons. “Highly—to dogs and other animals if they bite it,
according to the Peterson’s.” She climbed Alice’s kitchen stepladder to get
her own look at the Bufo marinus, asking Claudia as she did so, “I’m a
medium, not a witch, so why am I here again?” “In case we need a spirit guide to help
us figure out which spell to cast, and because you’re part of the coffee
klatch,” Claudia said for approximately the seventh time. “So I guess that would mean the second
part’s true for me, too,” Emma Mincemeat suggested apologetically, “but what
about the first? I’m only human.” Vanessa tapped the somewhat dogeared Witchcraft
for Dummies clutched tight to Emma’s bosom, her forefinger tucked firmly
inside to mark a possible solution to Alice’s problem. “You at least want
to be a witch,” she said, “unlike some people who don’t even know when
they’re casting a spell.” Alice snuffled back indignation—and fear.
“Maybe your ancestors weren’t evil arts witches, but mine were. I
don’t want any part of what they did. I can’t be tempted. I have Amy to
consider. She needs to be raised right. Brokenoggin Falls Community Church is
the only—” “Alice.” Harmony Faithfull, pastor of
Brokenoggin Falls Community Church, who didn’t normally attend the coven coffee
klatches, slid an arm around her most faithful service attendee and squeezed.
“The church is open to everyone. Why Mavis Gap is one of our most active
members, and you know she’s just recently announced she thinks she’s a
succubus, so I don’t imagine you need to worry if you think you’re related to
black magick…” “She needs to worry,” Claire Stalwort
assured Harmony in her primmest little girl voice. “We don’t take kindly to
the black arts in this community.” Gerda Tawdry snorted impolitely behind
her hand a word that sounded like “Harpy,” and Gladys Tawdry sneezed something
behind hers that sounded so much like “Where’s Sam?” that Claire immediately
withdrew to the far side of the kitchen, a cup of coffee in one hand and a
pitcher of warm nutmeg-enhanced milk in the other, and pouted. Then Gladys
stuck out her tongue at Gerda and Gerda flipped Gladys the bird and… “The point is,” Godiva Tawdry said
firmly, stepping between her sisters before the hair pulling started, “we all
have stuff in our pasts we wish we didn’t. That’s why AnnMarie—” “I’m here.” Mussed and dripping with
perspiration, AnnMarie Hathaway blew in through garage breezeway. “I’m sorry
I’m late, but I’m a little worried about the skeleton closet. I had the lock
fixed at the beginning of the summer, but something’s not right. Has anyone
put something besides a skeleton in there recently? A Big Bad, maybe?” Everyone looked around the kitchen at
everyone else. “Well…” AnnMarie chewed her lip.
“Probably my imagination then.” She didn’t look like she thought it was, but
as though she knew there was nothing she could do about it even if it wasn’t
her imagination. At least not here and not now. “Did we get thirteen of us?”
She started counting heads. “I brought extra brooms.” Vanessa’s jaw dropped. Claudia’s mouth
worked, trying to form speech but failing. Gladys and Gerda clung together for
a change, cackling in perfect accord. The tip of Hesther’s tongue showed
between her teeth when she bit it to prevent herself from saying something;
Maria clapped a hand over her mouth to prevent the same. Harmony, Emma and
Claire looked at each other, puzzled, and Alice stared at her in dismay. “Brooms?” she asked aghast. “I don’t
even want to be a witch and you brought brooms!?” Tsking, Godiva simply shook her head. “AnnMarie, AnnMarie,
what will we do with you? Brooms? You’ve just set witchcraft back a thousand
years.” “Oh for god’s sake, grow up, all of you,”
AnnMarie snapped. “They’re to sweep up the salt when we’re done with the
circle.” This time she got several winces and some
deeply guilty stares from everyone except Vanessa and Claudia, who sent each
other, “Uh-oh, did you bring the salt–I didn’t bring the salt” looks.
“We do plan to cast a protective
circle, right?” “Uh huh.” “Sure.” “Yep.” “Oh definitely.” “Yes, absolutely.” “Right.” “We’re just waiting for Candy Cox to get
here with the, er, kosher sea—” “Celtic,” Claudia murmured out of
the corner of her mouth. “Er, yes, Celtic Sea salt,”
Vanessa finished, improvising. “Since Alice doesn’t like to practice, you
know, we thought we’d better use the best and clearest stuff we could find for
the first circle cast in her house.” AnnMarie’s lips twitched. “There’s a five
pound bag of Morton’s Iodized in the front hall,” she said as gravely as she
could. “I brought it just in case Alice didn’t have enough in the house because
she doesn’t practice.” Usually the most gracious and seemly of
women, Claudia nevertheless stuck out her tongue at AnnMarie. “Witch.” It was
plain she meant it with a capital ‘B’. AnnMarie grinned. Candy Cox breezed in at that moment. “Am
I the last one?” Hesther put down the phone. “Hi, Candy.
That was Janice. She’s trying to get here, but the Disdaine triplets screamed
for her and she says she’s a literally tied up right now.” “Don’t you mean a little…?” Godiva began,
and stopped. On second thought and where the Disdaine pre-adolescents were
concerned, Hesther no doubt meant exactly what she said. Emma tapped her foot, stuck her left ring
finger in the page she’d marked for Alice’s situation and began to leaf
determinedly through Witchcraft for Dummies. “As the mother of twelve,”
she said furiously, “someone should tell their parents that something has
to be done about those girls before they come into their most powerful
years as a charmed trio. But right now we have to un-scream-summons Janice the
way you’ve been promising to all summer, and do something to make sure
she doesn’t have to respond to the bogus any more!” They didn’t even need a second to think
about it. “Agreed!” the other eleven women chorused. Even Alice didn’t
hesitate to join them. She didn’t like the way the Disdaine’s sometimes eyed
Amy, and she was also beginning to realize that being in the company of women
who’d help each other at the drop of a tear might not be so bad even if they were
witches…and other things. Harmony Faithfull joined them, too. She
wasn’t one of them, not really, not in any spiritual or magickal system yet
invented, but they’d called her in to help Alice, a member of her congregation,
and she was part of their community: their needs were hers. Whatever it was
they were about to do here, she had absolute faith in the fact that their
intentions were pure and honorable: they meant to help and not harm, not
hinder. She could get behind that one hundred percent. There were, after all,
more things on heaven and earth and all that… She would simply have to ignore the fact
that she was just a little fuzzy and more than a trifle skeptical about the
means. “But without Janice—” Alice cleared the
timidity and teary roughness out of her throat. “Didn’t you say, Claudia, that
we need thirteen for this because of all the thirteens involved in it?” Claudia nodded. “Most of the time I
wouldn’t think about it, but since the number seems so specific this time, we
should probably stick with it.” “What about Mavis?” “No one’s seen much of her since Cade…” “Maria?” Emma interrupted quickly. If
anyone even talked sex around her she was likely to wind up pregnant
again by morning. Peter could smell the mere thought of the word on her
and responded
to it as though it was Viagra and Cialis and oysters all packed into one potent
punch. No one knew where Maria was. “Morganna’s down in the garden tool
shed,” Alice said, “she’d come.” Vanessa peeked out the kitchen window.
“Is that Joe’s truck?” A collective sigh went up. “Gavin?” “Eeeeeuuuw! He’d probably come naked.” “Tulah-Portentia?” “Still pissed because Rowdy hasn’t been
able to talk Joe into turning her half-brother loose.” “I should say not.” Claudia sounded
peeved. “Little twerp’s a menace, burning up everything in sight and eating
whatever he feels like. Why he even tried to dust my Earl…” Vanessa patted her shoulder and bit her
tongue to prevent herself mentioning her own husband’s father, Vicomte de la
Gryphon, the actual munching scientist culprit. “I hear there’s a new gal in
town. Dorothea something. Maybe—” “What about me?” Eight-year-old Amy
Fairweather crawled out from under the kitchen table where she’d been hiding
and eavesdropping all along. “I’m a powerful witch. It’s my daddy. I want to
help.” “Oh, Amy!” her mother exclaimed,
horrified. “What are you…you’re not supposed to be…you should be out…how did
you…?” Overcome with questions and admonishments without direction, Alice
fishmouthed into silence. For the space of five heartbeats she stared at her
daughter. “No,” she said finally, resolutely. “Absolutely not. I forbid it.” “But moo-oom!” Amy stamped her foot.
“You know I can help. You know it! You know we could do it all by
ourselves together, just you an’ me, but you’re too afraid of what might happen
and how you’d feel afterwards, but I’m not cuz you wouldn’t.
You’re the best witch ever-ever-ever, else I can’t be and I am!” “Child, what are you talking about?”
Vanessa stooped in front of her. If she and Jean-Luc were ever able to
conceive, she hoped she’d be able to make more sense out of their offspring
than she was making out of Amy right now. “If you have any magicks at all,
which is unlikely, you’re much too young to have come into them.” “Technically,” Claire said slowly,
glancing from Alice’s dead-set, frightened face to Amy’s equally determined,
completely unafraid countenance and back. “Technically. I’ve heard of
circumstances…” “No!” Alice shouted. “Yes!” Amy yelled. “Rrrrrrrriiiiiibbbbbbb-bbbrrrrreeeeepp-oooooowwwrrrr!” the Giant Toad rumbled metalically from
the depths of the ten-gallon soup pot. Mother and daughter stared at each other
without giving ground. Everyone else gazed from them to the soup pot then
anywhere else in consternation, uncomfortable as they’d ever been in their
entire existences. “You know it’s me ‘n you with them or
nobody.” Amy, stubborn: Alice’s mother’s image to the core. “I know it’s me and them and you visiting
Aunt Cecilia for the day if you don’t mind your manners now,” Alice tossed
back, equally stubborn, and firmer than any of the other ladies had ever seen
her. Clearly the fruit that was Amy didn’t fall far from Alice’s oak tree. Amy stamped a threatening foot. “I’ll
show them!” She flicked the small fingers of her left hand at the unicorn
creamer and the salt-and-pepper shakers and the ceramic trio came to life and
started to dance. A collective gasp burst from the coven klatch.
“Oh—” started Vanessa. Alice said nothing, merely sent Amy a
chastising stop-showing-off glance then pursed her lips in the direction of the
dancing ceramic unicorns. They stopped in a blink and went back to being
nothing more than simple decorative accouterments atop the breakfast table. “—shit,” Claudia finished for
Vanessa. They looked at each other, at the rest of
the women, at the toad in the pot. AnnMarie gave voice to their thoughts.
“This is—” At that instant, Trevor fitted his
beautiful, furry Golden Retriever body through the doggy door into the kitchen,
dashed into the center of the room leaving muddy footprints in his wake,
dropped a pair of finger bones on the floor and barked three times. As if on
cue, the finger bones unfurled and began to creep across the floor toward
AnnMarie who viewed them with fascinated horror. “No, this
is really not good at all,” the keeper of the skeleton closet said. *** The
finger bones decided things for Alice. She pointed a brook-no-nonsense finger at
Amy. “You’re to stay within touching distance of me at all times and don’t let
go of Trevor’s leash.” “Yes, mommy.” Amy nodded solemnly. Alice dropped a green silk cord over her
daughter’s head, tapped a forefinger against the delicately hand crafted silver
amulet of the Green Man with the broken noggin and the waterfall foaming out of
his head that now lay over Amy’s heart. “And don’t take this off ever.” “I won’t,” Amy promised. Then, “Where’s
yours?” “Right here.” Alice clipped a silver
chain about her neck. An amulet identical to Amy’s except for the diamond
chips in the falls and the tiny emerald, amethyst, and aquamarine points
dangling from the Green Man’s beard rested in the hollow of her throat. “Daddy
made me one, too. Just in case.” “In case of what?” Candy sounded anxious.
“In case I ever stopped living in denial
and started practicing.” Alice grimaced. “He thought if he designed something
with the falls and the trees in mind, maybe it’d offer some protection for Amy
and me from my ancestors.” “Honey,” Claudia
observed nervously, “I don’t think you need to practice, I think what you need
is to take control.” “Yeah,” Alice said dryly, eyeing her soup pot. “Consider
that done. Cast the circle, AnnMarie. Cast it wide.” *** The afternoon waned and evening set it.
The salt circle glowed moonlight-bright from the protective power it held, but
every single one of the dozens of cast spells failed. Exhausted, the women
looked at each other. “What haven’t we tried?” Claudia. “Dancing naked under the full moon?”
Gladys, poking Gerda, both of them on the verge of giggly hysteria. Harmony sank to her knees. “Maybe it’s
me,” she offered gloomily. “I’m here for Alice and I’m pretty sure I saw something
this morning when she and Amy did…whatever they did even if I don’t know what,
but…” she hesitated. “I can’t believe that’s really Greg in that pot, and maybe
a believer’s what you really need.” “Nonsense,” Emma said briskly. “This
isn’t like voodoo. My book says so.” “Voodoo!” AnnMarie snapped her fingers
and looked hard at the finger bones fidgeting idly away inside their own
separate salt circle. Trevor lay with his nose an nth of a degree outside the
circle, guarding the bones. “Maybe,” Amy tried for the sixth time in
as many hours, “It’s like that story daddy—” This time Janice’s arrival interrupted
her. Looking somewhat the worse for wear after her afternoon with the
Disdaines, she strode through the house, stopping short of the circle.
“Haven’t you de-toaded the man yet?” “No, but we’ve un-screamed you,”
Hesther told her. Janice’s face relaxed into an
uncharacteristic smile. “I thought someone screamed when I was on my way over
here, but I didn’t leap, so…thanks.” “Yeah, thanks.” Seth stepped up behind
her. Clothed for once, he was merely remarkably handsome instead of
godly-gorgeous. “It’s a whole lot more convenient when she doesn’t leave in
the middle of—hey, I know those bones.” AnnMarie started. “You do?” “Sure.” Seth shrugged. “They belong to—” The full moon rose abruptly, pink and
friendly, a harbinger of things not to come. “Yes?” AnnMarie prompted. Confused and frightened, Seth looked
around wildly. “Where-who-what…?” Janice turned and took hold of his fly
and Alice covered Amy’s eyes. “Brokenoggin Falls, Seth, a vampyre. I’m
Janice. See? You’ve got it written on your arm. Let’s go and get you
undressed, help you remember what else you’ve forgotten…” “Get him to remember who the finger bones
belong to,” AnnMarie called after them, “It’s important—” “That’s it,” Alice said flatly, putting
her foot down. “I’ve had enough. I appreciate everything you all have tried
to do, but we’ve got too many things going on here to solve one little
anniversary problem. Because that’s all this is. It’s just between Greg and
me, and I might need help, and he might be a toad about remembering some
things, but most of the time he’s my prince and—” “Mommy.” Amy tugged at her arm hard.
“That’s the thing we haven’t tried. Daddy’s story, you know the one he always
tells me, his favorite one, about the toad prince. He says it’s how he found
you and you made him the man he is. Remember?” Brought up short, Alice could only stare
down at her daughter, blinking rapidly, mouth agape. “Oh dear God,” she
breathed at last, teary-voiced, “how could he remember what I’d forgotten?”
She dropped to her knees beside the soup pot. “Oh, Greg! You wonderful,
glorious, ridiculous toad of a prince!” “Rrrriiiiiiibbbbbiiiiittttt,” the Giant Toad thrummed deeply in its
distant-tractor-exhaust voice, “Rrrrrriiiiiiibbbbbb-wwwwwoooooowwww!” “Alice?” Claudia asked. “What? Oh.” Alice offered her a watery
laugh and smudged the heel of her hand across her eyes. “I’m sorry, girls.
You’ve all been wonderful, but we can break the circle now. I really do have
to do this on my own. Emma, would it be all right if…” Emma, wife who’d survived countless
anniversaries and mother of twelve, caught Alice’s drift at once and held out
her hand to Amy. “Of course. Amy, how about you come spend the weekend at my
house? The quadruplets are dying to show you—” she shuddered delicately,
knowing that no eight-year-old worth his or her salt would ever be able to pass
up this opportunity no matter how gross “—this new thing they can do with dead
people. You can show them that thing you did with the salt-and-pepper
shakers…” Alice turned to Trevor who pushed himself
up on his haunches, wagging his tail and waiting for instructions. “Take care
of those bones.” “No, wait!” AnnMarie cried. “There’s
something wrong with them, I know it. They need to be locked in the skeleton
clos—” But before she could finish or stop him,
Trevor pushed his nose deliberately through the salt circle around the bones to
break it, scooped them up in his mouth, dashed to the edge of the large circle,
pawed it open and was gone. “You don’t know what you’ve done,”
AnnMarie told Alice gravely. Alice made a face. “No,” she agreed,
“but with my ancestors, if Trevor brought those creeping fingers here and then
a vampyre from out of town thought he recognized them before he forgot what he
was again…” She offered up a lopsided shrug. “I’m just thinking the skeleton
closet might not be the safest place for them, and maybe that’s why they were
separated and buried someplace else to begin with.” “On your head,” AnnMarie advised her, and
Harmony Faithfull gasped, took out her cross she wore around her neck out of
her blouse and automatically countered, “Let the ties between the dead and the
living be parted and peace exist between them.” Something calm settled in the air around
and within Alice’s house and stayed there. AnnMarie eyed Harmony sharply. “I
thought you weren’t a witch.” “I’m not.” Proudly Harmony drew herself
up to her full height and stared AnnMarie squarely in the eye. “I’m a pastor.” “Hunh,” AnnMarie said puzzled.
“Interesting.” She linked elbows with Harmony. “I wonder if there’s anything
you can do with my closet…” They wandered off, chatting. With their departure, Trevor’s absconding
with the bones, and Emma leaving with Amy, the rest of the group began to drift
away, too. Only Vanessa and Claudia lingered, unsure that leaving Alice
unsupported was the right thing. Touched to discover that she did indeed
have something in Brokenoggin Falls that she’d always thought she lacked, Alice
fingered the gems in the exquisitely crafted Green Man pendant at her throat
and smiled. “Thank you, really. You don’t know how
much. But it’s fine—better than.” She glanced again at the soup pot where the
toad sat watching her every move through its all-too-Greg-like eyes. “I know
exactly what to do now. In fact it was stupid of me to take so long to remember
it. So…” She grinned shyly. “Come for coffee tomorrow afternoon, I’ll tell you
about it?” Then for
the first time in her life, Alice let herself be hugged by her friends. *** The
light pink moon shining down on the rippling upper end of Corkscrew Falls
created magical shadows under the spreading branches of the great fox oak where
Greg and Alice first met. “I can’t believe you remembered this,”
Alice repeated, setting Greg’s warty body down on the huge, craggy,
shaped-by-the-falls rock where she’d first seen him. “I didn’t even remember—didn’t
want to remember what my parents and grandparents…” “Rrrriiiibbbb-mmmeeerrrpppp,” the toad rumbled gently, “Rrrrrreeeerrr-mmmaaaapppp.”
Alice nodded. “Yes, I know. They thought
they were clever. They thought I’d never do it. But they were the ones who
sent me to summer camp. That’s where I heard the girls say you never find the
prince without kissing a lot of toads so, stupid me, I thought they meant
literally. I figured bad taste, warty skin, bufo toxins and all I should get
it over with, maybe get to my prince faster. And there you were.” She pulled a
tall, cone-shaped princess hat with a long, flowing blue gauze scarf-thing
trailing off it out of the duffel bag she’d brought with them and put it on,
tying its iridescent blue-green-purple-y ribbons beneath her chin. “Right there
on this rock.” She perched carefully beside her
transmogrified husband, picked him up and brought him to eye level. “It’s a
good thing princess hats are shaped like dunce caps,” she told him
apologetically, “because that’s what I am—a dunce for not figuring this out
earlier.” “Rrrrriiiiibbbbuuurrrppp,” the toad disagreed soundly. It inched
cautiously forward in her palms, reached out a three-toed forefoot and touched
her nose. At the same time, Alice tipped her head and kissed it. On a breath, her husband’s mouth formed
under hers, his fingers found her face and tunneled into her hair, his bare
body took shape and fitted next to hers; the rigid length of his cock nudged
her gauze covered thigh. Alice gasped and tipped her head back, baring her
throat to his tongue and teeth, catching his cock in her hand. “Oh god, Greg, don’t stop, don’t stop!” “I couldn’t if I wanted to. The only
thing I’ve eaten all day is flies and fish eggs. I’m starving.” Alice laughed unsteadily. “I brought
sandwiches.” His voice was dark, carnal. “I’m in the
mood for something creamier.” He dragged her across his lap, all the
while hunting avidly for her breasts with his mouth. The peek-a-boo
gauze-and-lace tunic she’d changed into before driving them out here dragged
roughly, erotically across her skin and his, teased them both, so that by the
time he found an aureole it was puckered tight, the nipple at its crest a hard,
thrusting bud bursting for relief. When he rolled it finally between his
tongue and the roof of his mouth, tunic and all, Alice pressed into him hard
and begged for more. “Touch me while I suck you, Alice,” Greg
whispered, “and touch yourself, too. Bring up your cream for me, baby, I need
you…aaaahhhhh.” Alice stroked his tip, arched her back
and let him watch her run her other hand down her own belly until she tucked
the filmy nearly see-through skirt tight over her mons and began to stroke
herself, too. The heat from his gaze made it difficult to split her concentration
equally, but she did her best to keep her attention focused on him and only on
him while she sheathed her hand around him and wet him with his pre-cum, moved
the fingers of her other hand rhythmically against her clitoris and lightly
inside her own sheath… When Greg clamped down hard and pulled
her nipple deep into his mouth, Alice’s focus threatened to shatter. Her
breath stuttered, her hands clamped and nearly stalled. Greg tilted his head
sideways and looked up at her. Their gazes locked. While his mouth massaged
one aureole, his tongue and teeth the nipple, he teased her other aureole and
nipple with the pad of his thumb—slowly, gently, exquisitely manipulated them
so that the breast itself had to plump and strain to make sure it felt the
pleasure. His other hand simply steadied her, played lightly over her skirt,
slowly ruching the fabric higher and higher along her leg and easing his
fingers closer to the inside of her thigh. His cock strained her hand, outgrew its
span, spilled a measure more of pre-cum that she used to slicken its generous
bulk while her breathing thickened and quickened, and her breasts rose higher,
faster, harder into his hand and mouth. “Please,” she whispered darkly, working
her inner thighs against his tempting fingers while hers continued to slide her
now saturated skirt against her clit. “Please.” Driven by the word, he let her breasts
slip away, moved to ease the gauzy skirt beneath her hand. When she would have
withdrawn it, he clasped her fingers in his and shook his head. “I need my cream first, wench.” Then he waited for her to grasp his
meaning, nod and grin wickedly at him before he pushed her back and spread her
legs wide, dipped both their fingers inside her—two of hers and two of his—and
urged her to thrust while he manipulated their hands. It didn’t take long to get what they
wanted. Her sweet pearly cream spilled over their hands even as her soft moans
started to spill into the night. “That’s the spot, right there?” Greg
asked, pressing both of their index fingers to the soft little button of flesh
inside her that sent Alice’s hips bucking high. “Ye-es!” she gasped, shuddering
and bucking when another pleasure-spasm sent more thick moisture trickling down
her backside. “Cum inside me right there, right now, Greg, yes!” Grinning his beautiful, intensely “Greg”
smile down at her, her husband scooped their messily dripping joined hands to
his lips and said, “Sustenance first,” and sucked their fingers clean. Then while she was still giggling over
that bit of nonsense, he flipped one of her knees over one of his shoulders and
drove his cock into her hard. She moaned with pleasure. He did it
again; so did she. And the rest of the night went exactly
that way: celebrated precisely the way fourteenth wedding anniversaries are
supposed to be celebrated—with good, hot, lusty, loving sex and plenty of it. And also a few promises to do it again
exactly the same way next year. Only maybe without the forgetting the
anniversary part. Or… Alice came hard and long, simultaneously
with Greg, wrapped around him, clutching at the stars. …Maybe with the forgetting would be okay,
too. As long as they celebrated number fifteen together, among their friends
in Brokenoggin Falls. Episode 1.12 A DANCE THROUGH THE GARDEN OF GOOD AND
EVIL By Susan Grant Episode 1.12 The Garden Of Good and Evil By Susan Grant The Devil scowled at the dirty, sweating
demon that had been brought before him in chains. “Kneel before me and prepare
to receive your sentence!” “Aye, Master.” The demon crouched and
bowed his head. It would not do to act arrogant, not after the torture. At
least he still possessed all his important body parts. It could have gone much
worse for him. And perhaps it still would. The devil, as always, was in the
details. “Prepare to receive your sentence,
Demon.” They were all named Demon down here in Hell. The only being with his
own name was Lucifer Himself. “Aye, Master.” The demon’s hands, bound
at the wrist, rested awkwardly at the small of his back as he tried to focus on
Lucifer’s fiery red eyes, the black goatee, the horns, the pitchfork, and the
crimson suit--proof that the whimsies of fashion in Hell had been at a
standstill since the birth of time. Fashion? Why was he thinking of
fashion? His concentration simply wasn’t what it used to be after the century
of torture he’d endured for his crimes. Or had it been two centuries that he’d
been paying for his terrible deeds? Ah, but what was an extra century or two
in the grand scheme of things? He’d been on this earth for more than 10,000
years, tasked to bring the worst sort of doubt into the miserable, pitifully
abbreviated lives of human beings. For he was a High Demon-Lord, one of the
most ancient of them all: the Lord of Self-Doubt and Second Thoughts, the bane
of many a human failure, simpering creatures all too eager to listen to the
doubts that he could so easily plant in their weak minds. You can’t,
he’d whisper until they believed it. You won’t. Try and you will surely
fail. Countless men who could have ruled the
world had never stepped beyond their front doors because he had made them doubt
themselves, made them afraid to take chances, to risk failure. Nor were women
any safer from his dark murmurings through the eons. He’d frightened countless
wenches, silencing their voices by playing up their fears of sounding too
shrill, too stupid, too...different. Humanity’s failures--he’d been the force
behind most of them. Until that fateful day he glimpsed true courage and
couldn’t bring himself to destroy it, giving the Will-To-Go-On to a small,
starving band of settlers wandering in the snowy woods of Michigan’s Upper
Peninsula. He wasn’t sure exactly why he’d spared them, why he’d given them
the inner strength to push themselves until they reached warmth and shelter,
but he had—and it had felt damned good, too. In fact, it had felt so damned
good to be good to the damned that he repeated the deed all around the globe,
losing himself for years in a virtual frenzy of beneficence, until he was
finally caught, red-handed, in the midst of one of those random acts of
kindness. The demon’s crimes had been considered so
heinous that the Devil Himself had dragged him back to Hell. First, there had
been the fruitless, futile explaining, then the torture. Now this, his
sentence: “For your crimes, you are
banished—banished from Hell for all time!” The demon’s head jerked up. Banished?
He’d expected a reduction in rank, the loss of freedom to come and go as he
pleased, but banishment? His salary, his benefits--poof, gone! Just
like that. Heaven’s Gates, he’d slaved ten thousand years—for nothing! Done
the Devil’s deeds only to end up like this: out of date, out of use, and
without a transferable retirement plan! It’s your fault. You have no one to
blame but yourself. “Is this to be forevermore?” he almost croaked. Lucifer chuckled. “Not forevermore, no.
For I have made you mortal, as well,” he added glibly, cutting short the
demon’s premature sigh of relief. “Never fear; you won’t have many years ahead
of you to fret your fate.” He waved a clawed hand. “You can thank me
anytime.” “Where?” the demon asked instead. “Where
will you send me?” Something told him it wasn’t mortality itself he needed to
fear as much as the locale in which he would suffer it. “Why, to the very epicenter of your
initial act of kindness.” He spat out that last word. Literally. The glob of
moisture sizzled in one of the many fires burning deep within the bowels of the
earth. “Brokenoggin...” the demon whispered. Devil’s red eyes appeared positively
gleeful as his forked tongue darted out to moisten thin, malice-curved lips.
“Yes,” he hissed with the very faintest of lisps. “The hamlet of Brokenoggin.
Such a peculiar little place.” The demon mulled over his options, which
were near zero, as far as he could tell. Time was running out to reverse this
course. So, he did what he did best: “Are you certain this is the best plan for
me, Master? The best punishment?” The Devil’s voice turned deadly. “What
do you mean?” “Let’s think this through. What if it
doesn’t work?” You can’t...you won’t. Try and you will surely
fail... “The High Lord of Self-Doubt and Second Thoughts living across the
street? Shopping at the local market? Dropping in at the Cub Scout meeting?”
The demon forced a weak laugh. “Absurd, is it not?” The sound of a thousand screams filled
the chamber as the Devil roared in incredulous rage. “How dare you!” Goblins
and gargoyles somersaulted through the shadows, fleeing the chamber as a
rumbling began under the cold stone slab of a floor. “Your dark magic does not work with me,
Demon!” “No magic intended. I merely suggest
that you look at all sides of the equation.” Lucifer roared again. Somewhere far above
them, on the surface, the ground also shook. The demon half-wondered how many
casualties there would be this time. But that was no longer his job. He’d been
fired. He was no longer be tasked with sowing seeds of defeat in the survivors’
minds, riddling their psyches with despair. At that, something close to relief
filtered through him. Doing good had taken the fun out of doing evil. He sensed
he’d never be 100% good. Yet, nor could he ever return to being 100% bad. Pulsing like hot coals, Lucifer’s eyes
glowed brighter, his fangs glinting. A tantrum was coming; the demon could
sense it. “I do not doubt, fallen one. I do not err. I do not have second
thoughts!” Lucifer grew and grew until he towered above the demon, his
clothing splitting and hissing as muscled flesh bulged and tore it apart.
Horns sprouted from a ridged skull, curling upward, until they, too, were lost
in the swirling mist of the chamber. How many times had the Demon witnessed
such showy outbursts during his long existence? In fact, it kindled his own
temper, long dormant. It was as if something wrenched open deep inside him.
For the first time, emotion, true emotion, filled him: anger, resentment, shame
at his past. Just like the humans, he thought. What was happening to him? “I
am sorry,” he said under his breath. It was the only way to express what
boiled up inside him. “I am so very sorry...” “You don’t look sorry,” the Devil hissed.
He looked up slowly. “Ah, but I am. I’m
very sorry. Sorry for all the centuries of planting doubt, of turning back
those beings better than I. In fact, I hereby repent.” Take that, Big
Guy. “You...re-what?” “I repent. R-e-p-e-n-t.” Wasn’t that an Aretha
Franklin song? Oh, he was going to suffer mightily for this, but it didn’t stop
him. “I ask forgiveness all the deeds I ever did in your name. I truly do.”
And he truly did. The demon threw back his head. “Forgive me!” “I...do...not...forgive!” The demon smiled; perhaps it would be his
last. “It wasn’t of you that I made my plea,” he said. It was the first time in all of history
he could ever remember hearing the Great Satan sputter. Then the screaming
started up all over again. Two jets of searing red heat shot out from the
Devil’s eyes and hit the slab where the demon crouched. Rocks exploded,
pummeling him. The air was on fire, something that the demon should have been
used to—Lucifer’s temper was legendary—but this felt different. There was a
horrific wrenching, and the demon could no longer see or hear, or even, after a
blessed while, feel the pain that wracked him. Bathed in white light,
floating...he wondered if this was what it felt like to die. If so, perhaps he
would not mind. But he knew, as he spun into oblivion—or, rather, the wilds of
Michigan—that Lucifer never would let him get away as easily as that. *** In a
clear, sweet voice, Harmony Faithful concluded her sermon. “Now, go in peace
and enjoy this beautiful day that God has given us.” The sound of her
six-month-old puppy’s tail thumping on the hardwood floor was all that broke
the perfect silence. “Thanks, Bubba.” Harmony smiled and
glanced up from her eight-page, handwritten sermon that had taken all of ten
minutes to read to the twelve rows of empty pews. “It’s nice to know someone
appreciated the homily today.” Sometimes, she wondered what she possibly
could have been thinking, relocating to the remote Upper Peninsula: her, a city
girl, thinking she could make church goers out of the people who lived here
who, um, weren’t anything like any people she’d ever met anywhere else. But
after her two tours as an air force chaplain were up, she was ready for another
challenge. Six months ago, this chapel had been a
tumbledown farmhouse. With the help of her father and brothers, she’d
remodeled the old place. Then they’d returned to Detroit, leaving her to grow
her flock. Except that aside from a few curious townspeople, no one had showed
up. “You can do this, girlfriend,” she told
herself. She’d simply have to drum up a little of the faith in herself that she
always tried to drum up in every one else. After all, she was Harmony
Faithfull, the daughter of Jacob Jethro Faithfull, IV, Detroit’s most famous,
and often infamous, but always ebullient pastor of Elm Avenue Church.
“Remember that, Harmony,” she said out loud. “It’s in your genes. God sent you
here because you have a job to do.” Bubba seemed to agree, a long pink puppy
tongue draped over one side of his open mouth. Boy, lately she sure was
spending a lot of time talking to herself or to the dog. She needed to get out
more, meet of the locals, maybe join in on some of those oddly named “coffee
covens” Janice—the town’s only law enforcement officer—and the Fairweathers—incredibly,
seemingly normal couple—had told her about. Most of the women in town
seemed nice, if a little, um, racy. Black lace bra types, Harmony had dubbed
them in private. Not meaning any disrespect. Her own sister was a black lace
bra type. And
not that Harmony had anything against a woman knowing her own charms or being
confident about sex. God had never dissed procreation. In fact, He encouraged
it—within the context of a committed, monogamous relationship, of course.
Something she sure didn’t have to worry about, considering her current state of
isolation. Have some faith. Give it time. Time... Yeah, she had plenty of that
lately. She gathered up the sheets of lined paper, crushed them in her fist,
and aimed the ball of paper at the wastebasket across from the pulpit. It
clipped the rim and spun inside. “Two points!” She tapped a finger against her chin.
“Maybe we can start an after-school basketball team. What do you think of
that, Bubba-licious?” The puppy wagged his long black tail. The idea had worked for her preacher
father and some inner-city kids in Detroit. The hoops had brought the kids,
and then the mothers, who’d dragged the fathers and the boyfriends, and within
the year there was an entire community with Sunday potlucks and a
fifty-two-member choir. Not that she could picture the Disdaine triplets
shooting hoops, but it’d be a start. It was all about getting people through
the door. Brokenoggin Community Church. Where all
faiths are welcome.
That last part she’d painted onto the sign as an afterthought when weeks had
gone by and nary a lost soul tromped through the door. Well, save Janice, the
town sheriff. She’d drop by sometimes to see how Harmony was settling in,
staying for coffee but not the good word. But then Harmony firmly believed
everyone was welcome here, for whatever reasons they chose to come. She was
taught as a child that a true heart excluded no one, and that the church was
the heart of the village. Except in Brokenoggin, that honor was held by the
town tavern. How could she convince the townspeople to
congregate here instead? What did she have here that they couldn’t find
anywhere else? “God, help me figure this out. Give me a sign.” Please.
The floor rumbled. At first she thought
it was the old furnace kicking on, but it was warm today, too warm for the
heat. The earth moved again, and then stopped. Strange. Everyone knew a fault line ran
through Missouri. But Michigan? Just then, a breeze kicked open the front
door, carrying in the scent of freshly turned dirt. Bubba bolted out the door,
barking. Something outside was making the puppy bark like crazy. Was that
strange pack of nasty little Chihuahuas on the loose again? Harmony stepped outside. Grabbing the
frilly cotton of her skirt, she lifted it higher, her long legs carrying her to
the garden she’d planted under an ancient, gnarled apple tree. Birds chirped.
The sky was a pure, clear blue. And the sunshine, she could almost taste it.
There was another reason she’d come here. Something about this little patch of
land drew her. She was so entranced by the outdoors that she swept right past
Bubba who was barking at the naked man lying on his side in the shade of the
tree. The naked.... ...man? Harmony froze, the skirt falling out of
her hands. There was no naked man. Oh, yeah? Then how do you explain the
after-image that just seared itself onto your retinas? Heart thumping, Harmony whirled around.
He was definitely naked, lying on his side, one thick, muscled thigh thrown
forward, the sunshine bouncing off his butt. His skin was tanned, smooth, and
his dark hair curled long and loose around his neck. He had the well-hewn body
of a NFL running back— powerfully muscled, but without a linebacker’s bulk. She’d asked God to send her a sign. But
she never expected anything like this! Then she blinked. What was she doing,
staring? The man was out cold—drunk probably—but still, she should be
helping. Her military first-aid training kicked in, and she dove to her knees,
her fingers going to his corded neck to feel for a pulse. There...a
heartbeat...slow, distant, almost forlorn, as if the man had grown tired of
living. Harmony sat up straight. Gosh, that was
a weird thought. Tired of living? And yet when she studied him, his face, she
could believe it was true. Well, she’d have to fix that. No man was going to
give up the goat on her watch. And especially not while naked and crushing her
best zinnias. Bubba growled, low and deep. “Stop it,”
Harmony scolded. “I’m a third-degree back belt, baby. If he turns out to be
the town serial killer, we’ll team up and put him away. Until then, Bubba-boy,
you behave.” The puppy obeyed, its brown eyes huge. Harmony tapped the man on the cheek. “Hello?
Are you okay?” He needed a shave and the bristles pricked her skin. But his
face was warm, almost as if he was sunburned...or had stood too close to a fire
and got burned. More likely, he collapsed after a night of carousing. He was
going to be pretty embarrassed once he realized he’d left wherever he’d been
hanging out without his clothes. “Come on, wake up. I’ll brew you a pot of
coffee. Lord knows, I make a mean pot of java.” He didn’t make a sound, not
even a snore. She took hold of his solid shoulder and shook hard. “Let’s go.”
Nothing. She tried her air force officer voice. “Time to wake up, soldier! Now.
Move, move!” The
man cracked open one eye. At first she thought she saw a red glow, but it
seemed to be a trick of the sun. His eyes—or rather the one eye she could see,
the other one being buried in the peat— was beautiful, the mellow gold of good
scotch, the kind her father would reverently pour out in a glass once each
week, late on Sunday night—”Now that God’s work is done, Harmony,” he’d
explain. “How’re
we doing?” she asked. administered
emergency caffeine, she’d better make sure he wasn’t wounded. Anywhere. She
gave him a thorough inspection. After all, it was her citizen’s
responsibility. There wasn’t an ounce of fat on him. Or a single scar. He
was as sculpted as a statue of a Roman warrior, except with body hair, the
perfect amount, too, short and coarse and dark.... Something
drew her eyes back to his face, where she discovered he was watching her with
something close to amusement. “You seem very much...whole,” she said quickly
explained. “Whole.
Aye, lass,” he murmured in the strangest-sounding accent, almost a Scottish
burr. “They kicked me out, but I got to keep all my parts and pieces.” He
flashed a blinding grin. “You like what you see, then.” She
stopped her blush before the heat of it could reach her cheeks. She’d grown up
with three brothers. Like heck if she’d let the fact that a man was sprawled
naked in her garden in all his very magnificent glory distract her. “No,” she
lied. “As a matter of fact, I don’t like what I see.” Was that something
wounded that flashed in his eyes? Certainly it was surprise. She let the sin
of pride curve her mouth. “I don’t care for the sight of a drunk, lying naked
in my flower garden on a Sunday morning.” She gathered her skirt around her and
stood, brushing the dirt off her hands. “But I did pray for someone to show up
today, I prayed for a sign, and I suppose I shouldn’t complain, because I
didn’t spell out the specifications.” “I
am not drunk.” His eyes confirmed that. They were clear, not bloodshot, as
they searched around the garden with curiosity and maybe even wonder, as if he
were only just now becoming aware of his surroundings. She
thought of his strange reference to keeping his body parts. “Were you in an
accident?” onto the dirt with a soft thud. He looked
so beaten, she softened her tone. “Would you like some coffee?” “Water.” His
voice was a bit hoarse. “Cold water.” “I hear you on the water.” She’d prefer
hers in the form of a shower. “Can you walk? Or should I call the
paramedics?” He
seemed to test his arms and legs. Long muscles flexed, moving under firm skin,
and his tight stomach brought new meaning to six-pack abs. Harmony...
she warned herself. Be professional. “Where are your clothes?” she asked as
calmly as she could as he didn’t seem to care that he wore none. “They
were taken from me.” that in a way that half left her breathless. “First
things first.” She pulled off her sweater and handed it to him. “Here. Cover
yourself, and then you can come inside. I’ll find you some clothes. My family
was here a while back. They left some things. You can dress and use my
phone. I’m Harmony, Harmony Faithfull. Who are you?” “My
name...” pastor’s flower bed. “De–er, Damon...of Brokenoggin,” he
announced with the strangest mix of pain and pleasure. Well, she thought, the name was no less
strange than any of the others in this town. “Come on. I’ll get you fixed up.”
Bubba trailed Damon to the door at the
back of the chapel where Harmony’s living quarters were. The growling had
stopped, but Harmony knew the dog would protect her if need be, although
Harmony trusted her instincts, which told her Damon held no menace—raw,
smoldering male sexuality, yes. But no menace. Inside she found him some work clothes of
her big brother’s. When Damon retuned to the kitchen after changing into them,
she saw she’d guessed right on the size. He sat at her little table, smoothing
large hands over the lace cloth. It was as if everything were new to him,
everything a wonder. Even her, she realized with an tiny twist of her heart
when his gold-brown eyes found hers for a moment before focusing on the glass
of water she about spilled in his lap. Sometimes, their eye contact seemed to
knock him off balance as much as it did her. She took a seat as he drank with thirsty
gulps. “You feeling better?” she asked after a bit. “Aye.” He winked, pressing the back of
his hand to his mouth to dab at the droplets of water left behind in a truly
medieval way. “Tended by a beautiful wench.” She lifted a brow. “Wench. Is that a
Scottish term for a strong, capable, intelligent woman?” He laughed, rich and deep. “Aye.” She balanced her chin on her hand. “I
don’t know what to make of you, Mr. Damon of Brokenoggin.” “Make of me whatever you like, fair maiden.”
“Fair maiden. I like that a lot better.”
His gaze went soft again. “It fits ye
better, too.” She swallowed against the feelings his
gentle, sexy tone fired up inside her. “Do you have family you need to call?”
she asked quickly. “To let them know you’re okay?” He shook his head. “Nay. I have no one.” “You’re not married?” She immediately
bit her lip. His mouth curved. “Nay. Never thought of
it. But then my...former job didn’t allow for it.” His eyes took on a faraway
look. When he returned his attention to her face, it was with such bold
intensity, such raw consideration, that this time she did blush. “Perhaps,
now, that has changed,” he murmured. Harmony got up too quickly, sloshing
water out of the pitcher. She grabbed a dish towel and started mopping at the
puddle. Damon grabbed her wrist. Heat and fear spun up her arm to her
heart, nearly stopping it. She stared at his big hand and then his face. “I’m
a third-degree black belt,” she said softly. “And my dog will rip your throat
out if you try anything stupid.” He let go instantly. “I did not mean to
frighten you.” And she believed him. Gut instinct was
her best friend and it hadn’t failed her yet. “Listen,” she said, sitting back
down. “I’m the local pastor here. I’d like to help you in any way I can. But do
you think you can be honest with me? How did you really end up in my flower
garden, um, butt naked?” He leaned forward, folding his thick
fingers on the table. “The real story?” Rolling her eyes, she felt her mouth
quirk. “No, I want you to lie to me.” “I was the ten-thousand-year-old High
Demon-Lord of Self-Doubt And Second Thoughts until I was expelled from Hell by
Lucifer Himself after he caught me committing random acts of kindness. Then
last night, after several hundred years of torture, I was made mortal and
banished to live out my days here, in Brokenoggin, the site of my original
‘crime’ of beneficence.” Harmony stared at him, and Damon stared
back. Gosh, he looked dead serious, too. “I was just kidding about the lying.”
“Aye, I know.” He drummed his fingers
nervously, glanced out the window as if seeking inspiration, before returning
his gaze to her. “I will tell you this way: I worked for a corrupt boss. I,
too, was corrupt until I learned what it was to be good. I learned that I liked
being good over being bad. My boss, he punished me for it, for changing, and
then he let me go. And so now I am here, with no job, and no clothes.” Thank you, Lord. Ask and ye shall
receive. Harmony smiled as inspiration hit.
“Listen, I could use a groundskeeper.” She opened her hands so he could see
the calluses and paint stains. “In fact, just this morning I was praying for
some help with the heavier work around here. The barn needs fixing—I’d like to
make it into a social hall, eventually, maybe a school, or even a gym—and I
thought if I had some help, it’d leave me more time for recruiting more
parishioners. In fact, any parishioners.” “No one comes?” She shook her head. “If I could figure
out a way to lure them here, I would. If I could have something here that they
couldn’t find anywhere else... In fact, just this morning I asked God to help
me figure it out. To give me a sign. And he sends me you: a naked Demon—I
mean, Damon.” All of a sudden she began to laugh, laughing so hard that she
had to throw her face into her hands. “Oh, my,” she gasped. Sniffling, she
dabbed at her eyes with her sleeve. “Is this what they call Divine Intervention?”
His sparkling eyes seemed at once
impossibly ancient and that of a newborn baby. “Aye, more than you know, fair
maiden.” “If I’m the fair maiden then you can be
my knight in shining armor. But I can’t afford to pay much.” She sobered. “I
can’t really afford to pay you at all.” This was crazy. She pushed back from
the table. “I’ll give you a ride back to town.” “I don’t require money. I’ll work
for...sustenance.” She shivered at the look in his sexy
eyes, the way he drew out that last word. “Food,” he clarified. “And a place to lay
my bones at night.” Bones...bones...she tried to keep her
mind out of the gutter. “Okay, you’ve got yourself a deal.” Why was she
whispering? She shook her head and thrust her hand at him. He took it, and she
got the most curious feeling that he wanted to lift it to his soft lips. But
he shook it and let her go, and she closed her fist under the table so she
could secretly hold onto the feel of him. *** Damon started work that afternoon. The
weather was hot and he so easily worked up a sweat. He tossed his shirt on the
grass and continued bare-chested. By the end of the week, word had gotten
around about the new groundskeeper down at the new church. “Devastating,” Maria confided to the
ladies over coffee one morning. “He’s built better than any man in this town.
You have to come see.” And so they did. That first Sunday the
pews were filled with eager women. The next Sunday the men began trickling in
to see where the women were going. With every passing week more townsfolk
came, until after a few weeks Harmony had to ask Damon to build her some more
pews. At dusk he came to her kitchen where
she’d promised him a special meal. As he sat, showered and dressed in clean
clothes, she stood next to him and lit some candles. His hand slid around her
waist. She held her breath and met his eyes. They’d never touched, never
kissed. It wasn’t for the lack of wanting to, either. But, suddenly, she
wondered what in the world she was waiting for. And so she bent down and kissed him. He didn’t let her escape when she was
done. Pulling her onto his lap, he pressed his mouth between her breasts and
held her tight, as if she somehow anchored him here on Earth. Which made her
heart ache when she remembered how lost he seemed when he’d first arrived. When he lifted his chin to see her, his
eyes were dark, very dark. “You have the devil in your eyes
tonight, Damon of Brokenoggin,” she murmured, imitating his accent. “Aye, and
you’ve got a bit of the devil in ye, too, I see.” She traced the curve of his
mouth. “But I have the feeling that I’m about to find a little piece of heaven
in your arms.” Chuckling deeply and with confidence, Damon drew her close for
the longest and best kiss of her life, proving just how right-on she was. *** Belting out her words in a rush of sweet
inspiration, Harmony Faithful delivered her sermon to a full house. At the
front of the chapel, the door half-open, Damon stood listening, his arms folded
over the end of a pitchfork as he leaned against the outside wall. He wasn’t
yet ready to come inside the chapel during a service, but one day soon, he
would. And, just as Harmony hadn’t yet come to Damon’s bed, she knew that
someday soon, she would. Then all would be right with the Fair Maiden and her
Dark Knight—or as right as life ever could be in the bizarre little town of
Brokenoggin. No sooner than Harmony conjured the
thought than a tremendous screeching filled the tiny chapel, chased by an
unseasonably cold breeze. The wind whooshed between the pews, tossing off hats
and whipping hair, until it found her, whirling around her like her own
personal tornado, scattering the pages of her sermon. One hand fisted in the
fabric of her cotton skirt to keep it from flying up, she tried to snatch back
her papers from the whirlwind, but it only blew harder, whipping her hair
around her face. It was almost as if something—or someone—was tormenting her on
purpose. Now, this sort of thing happened all the time in Brokenoggin, only,
never on the grounds of the church. What had changed? What had made her fair
game? As Harmony fought to hold down her skirt
against the force of the wind that didn’t seem to be affecting anyone else, she
stumbled away from the lectern, exchanging a glance with Janice, the sheriff,
that somehow made her feel better and worse at the same time. Janice’s
expression was something between annoyed and a little tired as she focused
somewhere outside the front door. Harmony followed the woman’s gaze. Outside,
shadows arced and swooped, but there was no sign of Damon. Her heart dropped. Harmony joined the crowd exiting the
church. Outside, shadows arced and swooped. Harmony squinted in disbelief.
They were...flying...monkeys. Yes, just like the winged assistants from the
movie The Wizard of Oz! “Damon!” At the sound of fear in Harmony’s voice,
Damon paused in his battle with the sub-demons, which were still pouring out of
a crack in the earth he’d so carefully tilled the week before. Harmony’s
autumn vegetable seedlings were tossed aside like so much dust as creatures
exploded from the ground. That angered him even more. She was running toward him as the
sub-demons tugged on her hair, her skirt, but her concern seemed to be only for
him. Heading toward her, he lifted his pitchfork and began whacking the
creatures, solid little thuds, leaving as many as he could writhing on the
ground. The Sub-demons were dark monsters with little power, but enough of
them could kill a man. Could kill a mortal. An unfair fight that, he thought.
But who said Lucifer was fair. Damon had thought his sentence of being mortal
would have been enough, but it was obvious his former boss wasn’t through
torturing him yet. He wanted to take from Damon the only woman he’d ever cared
for. “Damon!” “Stay back, Harmony!” He spun, taking
out several of the more brazen of the sub-demons with a sweep of the pitchfork.
The creatures lay dazed on the ground. The townspeople ran every which way,
complicating his efforts, some screaming, others laughing. He’d seen a lot of
scenes during his long years working for the Devil, but none as chaotic as this
one taking place on the front lawn of Brokenoggin Community Chapel. Smacking left and right, he fought his
way to Harmony. Just as he reached her, one landed on his shoulder like a
parrot. It hunkered down, snuggling against his neck, and with a sinewy hand,
caressed his cheek. He grabbed it by the scruff of its neck and threw it aside.
Harmony’s eyes glowed with disbelief. “Do you know them?” “Nay.” Nay? Was he slipping back
into the lies that so characterized his past life. “Aye,” he amended, taking
another swipe with the pitchfork before another could land on him. “What is it? No or yes?” Harmony ducked
as a monkey swooped over her head. “Damon, what are you not telling me?” “They’re...acquaintances of mine,” he
explained rather weakly. Harmony gaped at him. “Acquaintances...” “Well, perhaps co-workers is the better
term.” He smacked another with his pitchfork. “Former co-workers.” One look at Harmony’s expression told him
that he had a lot of explaining to do. She knew nothing of his being a former
High Demon Lord, nothing of what he was. He’d wanted her only to know what he
had the potential to become, but alas, that was not to be. His mouth twisted
furiously. Thanks to Lucifer. There was more shrieking, but a human
sound this time. Well, semi-human. The Disdaine triplets were on the loose,
one of them aiming a weapon of some sort. “The riot gun,” Damon heard Janice
shout. “How did they get hold of the riot gun?” The triplets squealed with laughter as
they took shots at the sub-demons. A bullet clanged off his pitchfork. He dove
with Harmony to the ground, along with almost everyone else. “Hit the deck,” Harmony shouted at the
same time Janice yelled, “Cease fire!” The creatures squeaked, and suddenly
began pouring back toward their hell-hole. Damon’s mouth quirked. The
sub-demons had encountered something worse than the creatures of hell: they’d
met the Disdaine triplets. Damon fancied that he’d like a family of his own
someday. But five minutes with the triplets was enough to convince any man to
drop all thoughts of procreation. “Damon,” Harmony said in a hiss of a
whisper. He turned his head to find her lips an inch away from his. His body
was wrapped around hers as they lay sprawled on the ground, the same body that
now reacted rather briskly to that pleasant discovery. He was beginning to
quite enjoy the sensations of his very mortal self. There were advantages to
being mortal that he’d never realized. But Harmony didn’t look pleased at all.
Ah, yes. The sub-demons. “I can
explain,” he said. Her lips pursed. “Uh huh.” The last of the sub-demons disappeared
down the hell hole. Then, as everyone began to rise to their feet, thinking it
was safe, the Disdaine triplets fired off one last shot as they fled their
parents. Seth, who had come with Janice, flew backward, clutching his chest. The sheriff ran to his side, her face
revealing her feelings for the man Damon knew was a vampire, even if Harmony
did not. Janice tore open Seth’s shirt. “His
stake—it’s been knocked loose!” The next thing Damon knew, the town vet
was rushing to her side. Physicians, real physicians, were as scarce around
these parts as pastors. Harmony ran to Janice. “Is he...?” “No.” Janice swallowed. “He’s not dead.”
She touched her fingers to the man’s broad chest. Not as broad as his chest,
Damon thought, but broad nonetheless. “The stake was shot out,” Janice said,
almost gasping. “Normally, it would have killed him. But the rubber bullet
plugged up the hole.” She frowned. “What were those things?” “I don’t know,” Harmony muttered. “But
Damon does.” Damon tried charming the sheriff with one
of his smiles, but her gaze sharpened. “Is there something you want to tell
me?” Before Damon could reply, a clattering
noise filled the air. “AnnMarie’s skeletons!” one of the
townsmen shouted. “It’s true!” a woman Damon recognized as
AnnMarie stated. “It’s them. And they’re angry. Run.” The chaos started
all over again. AnnMarie bolted off toward the church with everyone in her
trail. Damon and the vet carried Seth to safety. “AnnMarie has skeletons in her closet?”
Harmony asked. Alice Fairweather glanced at her. “You
didn’t know that?” Janice interrupted. “Those...things must
have woken them.” Even the Disdaine triplets fled the storm
of approaching skeletons. Either that or they were out of ammo. They got the door closed just in time.
Damon could hear several skeletons trying the door, which he, the vet, and the
local warlock kept shouldered closed. From outside, an enraged howl rose up
like a North Sea wind, cold and bitter. A skeleton clattered against a window,
but it was too fragile to shatter the glass. Furious that it could not get to
them, it howled and spread its bony hand on the glass. It was missing a finger
bone, and looked angrier than everyone else. Something told him it was the
ringleader of the skeleton crew. Then, with a sound so horrible that it
reminded Damon of what he’d left behind in hell, the fingerless skeleton flew
off. Janice, kneeling by an unconscious Seth, shouted, “No! Someone, try to
stop it! It’s going to destroy....” Episode 1.13 Due to unforeseen Technical Difficulties (superstition and
the fact that the skeletons from AnnMarie’s closet ate it) there is no episode
13. Episode 1.14 A DRAGON’S TALE or There’s No Such Thing as
A Dragon By
Mary Jo Putney Episode 1.14 A Dragon’s Tale By Mary Jo Putney She winged through the air with steely
determination, more intent on her mission than the moon-touched forest below. Where
was that blasted town? Ah, that was it ahead, the lights a bright splash in
the northern forest even at this late hour. She swooped down when something odd
caught her eye. How interesting, a vampire apparently rising from the dead.
Quite the handsome stud, if one liked humans. Or former humans. She swooped
down on him like a strafing fighter plane, startling him into falling over
backwards. Pleased, she resumed her journey, serene in the knowledge that
there was nothing abroad in the night more fearsome than she. All houses looked much the same from the
night sky, but she found her destination easily, using senses other than sight.
She landed and entered through the back door, opening the lock with her magic,
before settling in to wait the hours until morning. She yawned, glad there was
time for a nap. It wasn’t as if her teeth and claws needed sharpening. After a night of restless dreams, Claudia
gave up trying to rest and swung herself out of bed. Earl, blast him, still
slept the sleep of innocent, which he most surely wasn’t. She sighed as she studied his taut,
golden-skinned body. How had they come to such a pass? They’d loved each other
when they married, she was sure of it. She’d been crazy for Earl, with his
half-Chinese elegance and tantalizing air of mystery. He was her dream man,
both exciting and reliable. Reliable had meant a lot to her after a
childhood traveling with a succession of tacky carnivals where her mother
played Madame Zaza, Authentic Gypsy Seer. Her mother actually was a good seer,
though she used witch wisdom and black hair dye instead of anything remotely
gypsy. Claudia had left the carney life as soon
as she was old enough to go to college. There she studied botany to become a
thoroughly modern witch who understood herbs and potions in a scientific way.
She’d learned to grow herbs of greater potency, and understanding how species
related to each other had allowed her to create new mixtures far beyond
anything made with traditional witchcraft. Her internet potion business had
made her one of the best known witches in the world. She’d met Earl when she went to him for
tax help. He swept her off her feet, literally—the first time they’d made love
had been on top of scattered Schedule Cs. He adored her blond, All-American
girl looks as much as she’d loved his Eurasian exoticism. When he brought her to Brokenoggin Falls
and proposed, she’d accepted in a New York minute. She delighted in the town’s
wild energy and its crazy, charming residents who would accept anyone. Here she
could have children and raise them with a normal, stable life. Well, sort of
normal. So they married and moved to Brokenoggin
and everything went to hell. How could she ever have believed that life with an
accountant would be exciting? The word passionate was not in Earl’s
vocabulary. It had been her initiative that laid them out among the tax forms.
He always treated her like a spun glass angel that had to be handled with care.
At first she liked that, but the pedestal soon palled. No wonder she never
became pregnant. It took passion to create new life. She slid out of the bed, thinking that if
she had a couple of kids to chase around, she’d be so exhausted that she
wouldn’t mind his disinterest in sex. Instead, she was bored and hot and
horny. Earl was bored with her, too, or they
wouldn’t both have started having crazy flirtations. So far nothing
irrevocable had happened, at least on her part. She didn’t think Earl had
cheated on her, either. Yet. But it was just a matter of time. Maybe she
should file for divorce now, before she lost the last remnants of self-control
and turned into the town slut. That hunky young landscaper was looking awfully
good….. Resisting an idiotic impulse to caress
Earl’s bare shoulder, Claudia headed to the bathroom. After a quick shower, she
released her long blond hair from its braid and brushed it loose so that it
cascaded over the shoulders of her green robe. It was witch hair—unnaturally
lush and shiny—and Earl loved it. She suspected that was why he married her. Maybe she should whack it off and give
him her shining locks as part of the divorce settlement? He could own the
golden tresses he loved, and she’d be free. With her Hair Blaze potion, she
could grow a new crop quick enough. Maybe she’d go to California and turn into
a surfer girl. No, at thirty she was too old for that sort of thing…. Yawning, she ambled down the stairs to
the kitchen to get the coffee started before she dressed. She adored her
kitchen. As soon as she had laid eyes on the warm wood and cool tile, she told
Earl this was the house. The kitchen stretched along the back of the structure,
looking into the green depths of the Michigan woods. Witches drew their
strength from nature, so the kitchen was Claudia’s own private cathedral. She
had dreamed of teaching her daughters to bake bread and distill potions…. Cutting off the thought, she stepped into
her kitchen—and screamed. Sprawled across the Spanish tile
countertop was a…a creature of glittering silver scales and slithering,
inhuman motion. A dragon. “Earl!” “Oh, for heavens’ sake, child,” the
dragon hissed. “Don’t carry on so. I’m your mother-in-law.” *** Earl jerked awake when he heard the
scream, his blood curdling. Claudia! Before his brain had processed the
scream, his body was halfway down the stairs clad only in his sleeping shorts.
In this crazy town, anything might turn up at any moment. Though Claudia was
an excellent witch, humans were so fragile. He skidded to a stop in the door of the
kitchen, horrified. His beautiful Claudia was flattened against the wall,
cowering from a menacing beast with smoldering breath and malicious eyes. He
stared at the dragon with dismay. “Mother, you promised.” The dragon snorted, flame bouncing off
the tiled counter. “Yes, and for seven years I’ve abided by my word and
pretended to be human. Seven years, and you have yet to fulfill your part of
the bargain and give me a grandchild.” Her exhalation of disgust scorched a
hickory cabinet opposite her. “If you can’t get this useless human female
pregnant, it’s time you left her and found yourself a dragon bride. A proper
scaly maiden who will value the family jewels and give me grandchildren.” “There’s no such thing as a dragon,”
Claudia said, her voice shaking. “I’m hallucinating from the locoweed I used
in yesterday’s brewing. That happened once before and I hallucinated harpies
and animated garden gnomes.” “Uh…that wasn’t really a hallucination,”
Earl pointed out. “Brokenoggin does have harpies and live garden
gnomes.” “Not a hundred of them dancing like the
Radio City Musical Hall Rockettes,” Claudia snapped. “After I’ve had my coffee,
this horrible creature will vanish back into the mists.” “You fool of a girl!” The dragon launched
herself across the kitchen, clumsy because she couldn’t unfurl her wings
properly. “I’m Mei Ling Choo, and I was at your wedding! I never liked you or
the marriage, but I didn’t think you were so stupid!” Reflexively Claudia cast a magical
damping spell. A burst of green light engulfed the dragon. When it cleared, a
petite Chinese woman in neat traditional tunic and trousers sprawled on the
Mediterranean floor tiles. “Mama Mei!” Claudia gasped. “It really is
you!” Earl reached his mother before Claudia
did and offered a hand up. “Are you all right, Mother?” With a disdainful sniff, Mei Ling brushed
wrinkles from her tunic. “It takes more than a tumble to damage a dragon,
boy. Your betrayal of your true nature hurts worse than anything that witch
you married can do.” Many women might call their
daughters-in-law witches, Earl reflected, but seldom with such accuracy. He
punched the button on the electric kettle, then guided his mother to the
kitchen table. “I’ll make you a nice cup of tea. Then we can discuss this
like civilized people.” Claudia stared at him. “You’re not
denying any of this, Earl. But you’re…you’re not a dragon.” Her voice trailed
off. “Are you?” “I’m only half a dragon, I think.” He
scowled at his mother. “Mother can’t remember who my father was, but she’s
pretty sure he wasn’t a dragon.” “None of your business who your father
was,” Mei said with no logic but total conviction. “Since you’re both being so
uncooperative, I’ll have that cup of tea and be on my way.” The electrical kettle began to steam,
then clicked off. Claudia filled a cup with boiling water to warm it. “What
kind of tea, Mama Mei?” “Earl Grey. Hot.” Mei smiled, showing
small, sharp teeth. “My favorite. I named my son for the tea—Earl Grey Choo.”
Claudia dumped the warming water, added a
teabag, and filled the cup. “I didn’t think you hated me,” she said in a low
voice. “I’ve always liked you.” “She doesn’t hate you,” Earl assured his
wife. “It’s just that being in dragon form tends to…bring out one’s aggressive
tendencies.” “Which is why you never shape change—you
prefer being a wimpy human,” his mother said waspishly. “Are you still capable
of taking dragon form? If not, you are no son of mine.” She removed her tea bag and drank the
scalding contents of the cup in one long gulp. Then she rose to her feet, an
unsettling wisp of steam accompanying her words. “Enough. Earl, I order you
to resume your dragon form, if you can. Then you must leave this woman and
find a proper bride and get her pregnant. I have Spoken. Good-bye.” She
vanished in a shimmer of magic, leaving silence thick enough to choke an
elephant. Leave Claudia? The mere thought paralyzed
him. Sure, they’d been going through a bad patch lately, but they’d find their
way back to each other. They had to. Longingly he watched Claudia’s luscious
figure as she made a pot of coffee with meticulous precision. He liked
precision. That’s why he’d become a CPA, and it was one of the reasons he fell
in love with Claudia. A witch needed to be as precise as an accountant. Claudia poured herself a cup of coffee as
soon as enough had dripped into the pot. After slugging back half the cup, she
crossed the kitchen to inspect the cabinet Earl’s mother had flamed. Her expression turned grim.
“The scorch marks are still there.” She ran her fingertips over the blackened
wood, then turned to her husband and said dangerously, “Earl, you have a lot of
explaining to do.” *** As Mei vanished from her son’s house, she
transformed into her dragon shape, glad to stretch her wings properly. The
seeds she had sowed would take time to bear fruit, which meant she had a few
hours to kill. Maybe she should visit the young wyvern Earl had told her
about. The beast sounded as if it needed a good spanking and a lesson in
manners. Mei was well qualified to dispense both. And she wouldn’t mind
getting a look at the chalcedony the little dragon was guarding…. *** Claudia studied her husband’s nearly
naked body: the smooth, strong muscles, the shining black hair, the entrancing
tilt of his dark eyes. She’d always sensed he contained mysteries, but how
could she have missed the magic that swirled about him? “Have you been masking
your dragon nature the whole time we’ve been together?” He glanced away, unable to meet her
gaze. “As soon as I saw you, I wanted you. I…I was pretty sure you wouldn’t
want a half-breed Chinese dragon who doesn’t even know who his own father is.” “Well, it’s not as if I know who my
father is. My mother got around.” Her calm exploded into anger. “But I hate
the fact that for all these years, I’ve been married to a stranger. Was I just
another jewel for your dragon horde? A blonde for your collection?” “No!” Earl exclaimed. Then he paused, an
incurably honest accountant. “At least, that was only part of it. I can’t deny
my nature, and you are a rare and precious beauty worthy of any dragon’s
collection. But it was you I fell in love with. Your warmth, your kindness to a
geeky accountant, your earth magic strength. I…I tried to become what you
wanted. Reliable.” So he’d sensed her need for stability
from the first, and shaped his image to that. She didn’t know whether to be
touched or furious. Yes, she’d wanted reliable, but she’d also wanted exciting.
“You could have been reliable and still told me you were dragon born. Did you
think I was some kind of bigot?” “No!” He bit his lip. She hadn’t really
appreciated how sharp and white his teeth were. “Maybe it’s best if I
demonstrate my true nature. If I still can.” He closed his eyes, concentrating hard.
A shimmer of magic began to gather around him, blurring his outlines. He was
shape shifting, she realized. Or trying to. Snarls and curses sounded from
inside the fog of magic, and the dimly seen shape of his body began to change.
A—forepaw?—shot out, and then Earl’s body switched orientation from vertical to
horizontal. “Dammit!” he snarled. Claudia retreated across the kitchen,
fascinated and appalled. Shape changing was obviously not a gentle process.
More swearing, this time in a distorted voice and words that sounded like
Chinese. The shape began to enlarge rapidly, and
then suddenly the magic dissipated to reveal a magnificent dragon. He was
perhaps the size of a large horse and his opalescent scales were colored every
shade of indigo and teal, dark at the spine and lightening to silver on his
underbelly. His eyes were pure gold and magnificent wings lay furled along his
back. “Earl?” she whispered. “Is that really you?” “Indeed it is,” he rumbled in a deep,
sexy baritone that made her think of Darth Vader. “Do you see now why I hid
myself?” “But you’re beautiful!” Reminding herself
that this was Earl, who would never hurt her, she approached and laid a
cautious hand on his shining flank. He quivered under her touch. She couldn’t
help noticing that dragons were—well hung. “A pity I can’t turn into a female
dragon.” He gave a long, scorching sigh. Her
kitchen cabinets were not having a good day. “The fact that you can’t is the
main reason I’ve concealed my identity. I…I fear that if I let my inner dragon
loose, I might incinerate you when we’re making love. That could happen even
when I’m in human form. So I’ve locked down my dragon nature.” “The bottom line is that you’re afraid of
burning me alive?” she said, startled. “That’s no problem now that I’ve
perfected my fire protection potion.” He blinked at her. Who knew that dragons
had sexy long eyelashes? “You’ve created a fire protection potion? I didn’t
know that!” She sighed. “We haven’t talked much
lately.” He looked down bashfully. “Every day I go
to your website to see if you’ve posted any news about your work or new
products. It’s been a way of keeping in touch, sort of. But I didn’t know
about this potion.” “I haven’t posted anything about it
because I haven’t figured out how to produce it in commercial quantities,” she
explained. “But I have enough for personal use. I gave some to everyone who
comes in contact with the wyvern. The silly beast can’t be trusted not to fry
people, but the potion has prevented injuries.” Earl’s opalescent eyes widened. “When
you work out a method of large-scale production, you’ll be rich!” “Hush your mouth, Earl,” she said,
annoyed. “I plan to sell it at cost to fire departments. Firefighters deserve
all the help they can get.” His eyes glowed even brighter. “That’s
one of the things I love about you. Your idealism is so…so undragon-like.” Briefly she wondered if her lack of
interest in getting rich was part of why Mother Mei didn’t like her. Luckily,
Earl had enough human in him to appreciate something besides hording jewels—he
did pro-bono tax returns for most of the old folks in town. So her husband was a dragon, a creature
of fire and passion…. The knowledge sent waves of heat through her. She
stroked her hand slowly along his sinuous spine. “I have some of the fire
protection potion here in the kitchen. Should I drink some?” “Oh, please,” he breathed. “By
the time you’ve taken it, I’ll be back to human shape.” Lips parted and heartbeat accelerating,
she murmured the spell to unlock her potion cabinet, which was always sealed to
prevent anyone from breaking in. It wouldn’t do to let the town teenagers get
at her frog potion…. Ah, there it was. She took the bottle,
unscrewed the cap, and swigged down a large dose. She could feel the cool
power as it slid down her throat, then filled every cell of her body with
protective light. Yessss…. It would be at least six hours before the
effect started to fade—and she knew exactly how she wanted to spend those
hours. More cursing and swearing from across the
kitchen, then a thump. She turned to see Earl back in human form, sprawled on
the floor. His shorts had gotten lost along the way and….her eyes widened.
“Sweetie, is your shape shifting ability something that applies to your human
body? Because part of you certainly looks…enhanced!” “This is what happens when I let my
dragon nature loose when I’m in human form.” His voice retained some of those
sexy Darth Vader vibrations. “That isn’t all that changes.” Lithely he rose
from the floor and stalked across the kitchen, and she could see the fire in
his eyes. A step away he hesitated, sounding like
the old Earl. “You’re sure that potion works?” “Guaranteed.” Since he was being
cautious, she pounced. His mouth and body were dearly familiar, but at the
same time new and exciting. Hot. She bit his ear, then gasped as he
ripped her robe away to reveal her naked body. From then on, they mated like dragons,
flame rolling through them, raising passion to unimaginable heights. Sex and
fire and dragon blood. And dragon endurance and shape shifting magic that made
everything fit just right. By the time Claudia regained her senses,
the sunshine had shifted from early morning to full day, and then some. She
lay gasping, her head pillowed on Earl’s shoulder while she luxuriated in the
sweet/sharp pain of love bites in numerous places. “A good thing I insisted on
tile for the floor, or we might have burned the house down,” she murmured. “Oh,
Earl, why didn’t we do this years ago?” “You hadn’t developed the potion,” he
said practically. His sated eyes began to glow golden again. “But now that you
have…” he nipped her shoulder. “Dragons are very possessive, my jewel. No
more flirtations with anyone!” She smiled with lazy mischief. “You
think witches aren’t possessive? If you so much as look at another female,
you’ll lose a few cherished body parts.” She rolled onto him, secure in the
knowledge that neither of them would ever look at another person again. “Now
about that dragon endurance….” *** Having sorted out the wyvern and acquired
some really fine pieces of chalcedony, Mei flew back over her son’s house and
scanned it with her dragon senses. Ah, so the silly children had worked things
out. Claudia might not know it yet, but she was pregnant with twins, a boy and
a girl. And dragon nature was a dominant. Cross breeding with a really good
witch wouldn’t hurt the blood line. If anything, it would strengthen it.
Hybrid vigor. Luckily, Chinese dragon magic and Western witch magic were so
different that mixing caused no problems. She smiled toothily. The two of them
certainly had plenty
of vigor. Satisfied, she banked and swung west toward her San Francisco home.
Her work here was done. Now it was time to get to work on Earl’s
sister, who’d also been fool enough to marry a mere human…. Episode 1.15 LOF-T: ROGG 1 (Lord of the Forest Trolls: Return of
the Garden Gnome episode 1) By Linda Wisdom Episode 1.15 LOF-T: ROGG 1: Trolls Gone Wild By Linda Wisdom All those beautiful tall leafy trees were
better than any house for protection. The lush green canopy overhead filtered
out the sunlight while the rich earthy smell of moss caressed my nostrils and
the feel of grass beneath his gnarled toes was bliss. The rustling sound of
insects serenading the night was better than any music concert. It was all so
dark and inviting. No wonder his kind considered it heaven. Sam knew he was smiling. He didn’t just
love running through his world. He also loved dreaming about it. His legs twitched with the anticipation
of waking up and running through the forest. How he loved sunny days when he
could scramble up trees and scare birds even without going out into the
sunlight. Cats had nothing on him for scaring birds. Or eating them. Such a
tasty treat for the non-discriminating troll. Then he would jump out of the
bushes and scream at the faeries before running through puddles. Rain? Inside his dream his smile
slipped. He didn’t smell rain in the air. So why was he getting wet? His nose worked. What was that
disgusting smell? Wait a minute. That wasn’t rain coming
down on him. He opened his eyes to find a little tan dog’s leg way too close
to his nose. That creature was daring to piss on his head! Trolls might not have many powers, but
they could zap creatures that taunted them. He blinked, concentrating harder
than usual it seemed. Surprised he watched the little beast continue its
disrespectful business. He knew just where to send that current. So why
wasn’t the dog now a pile of ash? Where in the Goddess’ name was his power? Sam looked up at the sky where he’d been
told She resided. “Just tell me what I did!” he screamed.
(Even at the best of times, trolls are excitable. This wasn’t the best of
times.) Silence. “Okay, whatever I did, I didn’t mean it. I had too much
ale. I was caught up in the moment. It was just one of those things.” That was his story and he was sticking to
it. He didn’t know what he’d done, but he didn’t see where it was anything
unusual for one of his kind. Trolls weren’t sweet little angels. They just
weren’t. He rolled his tongue around inside his mouth and spat out something
dark brown. His mouth felt like he’d tasted something disgusting. He swore it
tasted like that gross stuff the witches of Brokenoggin thought was so great.
He had no idea why they thought chocolate was ambrosia when there were so many
tasty mushrooms, along with that oh-so-tasty moss to munch on. Or even a good
chewy slug. He had to figure out where he was and
exactly what had happened to him. This wasn’t like a hangover from too much
Goran ale. But all he could see was domestic blue lawn grass that wasn’t very
well tended, and flowers that weren’t all that special. He noticed a nearby puddle of water and
used that to see why he felt so different. Whatever he expected it wasn’t
this. Shock sent him rearing back. He was a…a…Garden Gnome, banished to
suburbia! If it were possible, he’d have fainted
from the shock. He wondered who hated him so much they’d turn him into a
gnome. Trying to pick and choose among his enemies, he knew, could turn into a
very long list. He tended to make more enemies than friends. Not to mention he could see something
bright and glittery hanging off his head. Wait a minute, this didn’t feel like
his head! If felt…pointed! He didn’t have a pointed head. Or what
looked like disgusting pink paint on him. All right, so now he basically
looked like a gnome dork. He decided he should thank the Goddess the thong was
on his head and not riding up his ass. That would have been the ultimate
humiliation. I must have royally pissed someone off to
end up like this. Time to do some hard thinking so I can get off this ugly
lawn. No self-respecting troll should be forced to be near this sorry excuse
for a lawn when there’s a perfectly good forest nearby. Sam the troll turned garden gnome turned
his head to watch a police cruiser roll slowly down the street. He might be a
creature of the forest, but he recognized the driver of the vehicle. “Lookin’ hot, babe!” he called out,
flashing what he thought was a sexy grin, but which actually looked downright
scary to the uninitiated. Namely, anyone who didn’t understand a troll’s
expressions. The Caprice pulled over to the curb and
stopped. Brokenoggin’s main, and only, police officer, Janice Thinksalot,
climbed out of the patrol car and walked over to him with an animal-like grace
he had to admire. The admiration evaporated when he realized she wasn’t going
to even show the decency to crouch down to his level, thereby forcing him to
tip his head all the way back until he had to scramble for balance. She might
be one hot mama, if you liked their kind, but she was also a cold and
rude bitch who didn’t respect the lofty trolls. “What the hell are you doing here?” she
asked. She wrinkled her nose in distaste as a nasty smell emitted from the
troll-turned-gnome. She stepped back but it didn’t make the odor any less
offensive. “You smell like Chihuahua piss.” “That’s because one of those tiny
monsters pissed on me. As for how I got here. Beats me.” He kicked up his
heels. “But you gotta say I add some class to this ugly place.” He waved his
hand in the vicinity of the house. He didn’t like seeing his once gorgeous mud
colored skin now painted a pastel pink to resemble human skin. Janice’s eyes swung downward then back
up. Her lip curled echoing the disgust on her face. “That is so sick.” He looked down at the protuberance poking
out of his bright blue shorts. Even his expression of pride couldn’t make him
look even remotely harmless. He tried to stuff his erection back in his
shorts, but it refused to remain hidden. He had an idea it wouldn’t be going
down anytime soon. He did a hop and a skip across the lawn then spun around. ““I can’t help it if I happen to show
what I think of a lovely woman.” He defended his body’s reactions with the
same kind of haughty attitude he’d seen the faeries use. “Claire doesn’t mind
when I’m showing my affection.” “Then Claire has more issues than I knew
about. Of course she also has the sad task of being married to you.” Janice
took a deep breath. “Do us both a favor and get out of here before one of the
triplets comes out here and gets rid of you in a very painful way,” she told
him. “You know how much they hate trolls.” He lifted his white-bearded chin.
Something else he wasn’t happy with. He usually had no more than four hairs
sprouting from his pointed chin. “I can’t go anywhere.” “Wanna bet?” Janice grabbed his arm and
practically pulled him off his feet as she made her way across the lawn. He yelped a protest at her
trollhandling. “Police abuse!” he shouted at the top of his lungs. “We’re
talking cruel and introll punishment here! Next thing I know she’ll try to
strip search me even if my clothes are painted on me.” He waggled his
eyebrows. “Not that I wouldn’t mind you checking out all my orifices.” “Shut up you sick and disgusting thing!”
she ordered between gritted teeth as she dragged him across the lawn with his
dug in heels leaving furrows in the grass. It appeared turning him to a garden
gnome added a few, or thirty, pounds to his roly-poly frame. Except when
Janice’s feet touched the sidewalk a strong force pulled her back to the lawn.
She frowned and tried once more but was pulled back again once the troll’s toes
touched the lawn/sidewalk boundary. She rounded on him with a fury that
rivaled his harpy wife. Frankly, he was impressed. Not to mention more than a
little turned on. “Dammit, Sam! Stop whatever you’re doing! You need to get out
of here!” “I told you!” he shouted. To prove his
point, he ran toward Janice as if he had the intention of mowing her down. In
the back of his mind, he hoped he could make a run for his beloved forest where
he might have a chance of finding someone who could break the spell. His toes
barely breached the edge of the lawn when a spark of light snapped at him and
he was abruptly thrown backwards. His arms windmilled as he desperately fought
for balance. He lost the battle and ended up on his butt. He promptly bounced
to his feet. “Talk about lousy taste in grass,” he muttered. He didn’t care
that bits of grass and dirt clung to his shorts since they remind him of
home—sort of. But then, considering there was a turquoise-glittery thong
hanging off his head, nothing could embarrass him. “There’s no cushioning to
this grass at all. They need to hire a new gardener. Don’t they know a lush
lawn makes a dwelling look more homey? It’s not like they don’t have the money
to maintain a nice yard. It would be nice if they planted something that had
actual green in it.” Janice shook her head. “Who do you think
you are? The new member of Extreme Home Makeover? I just want to know
why you’re here.” Sam snarled. “If I knew how I got here
I’d have a better chance of getting outta here, wouldn’t I? All I know is, I
woke up when one of those little skanky Wa Was pissed me,” he said. “It has
not been a good day.” The sound of the front door opening and
high-pitched shrieks assaulting Janice’s ultra-sensitive ears had the officer
stepping back and Sam frantically looking around for a place to hide. The Disdaine triplets were bitch witches
and they hadn’t even hit puberty yet. They looked alike, acted alike and
created mayhem in tandem. While they were dressed in their mother’s choice of
cute pastel-colored sundresses, their faces looked as if they’d gotten into
their mother’s make-up complete with Witchy Woman lip colour smeared red across
pouty mouths, Vamp Tramp purple eyeshadow and Demon Glow blush covering rounded
cheeks. “That’s nasty!” Scornful Disdaine shouted
running up to Sam with a finger outstretched as if a flame would erupt from the
tip at any moment. Her yellow ruffled sundress and matching tennis shoes made
her look like a little angel. Unless one looked closer and saw the little
devil lurking in her eyes. “That smells nasty!” Derisive
Disdaine screamed, holding her nose with thumb and forefinger. She glared at
Janice. She stamped her sky-blue tennis shoe shod foot. “You’re the police and
you have to do what we say. Get rid of it!” “Manners. Manners are good,” Janice
growled at her as a reminder she was no mere human. “We don’t like gnomes. They’re nasty,”
Withering Disdaine announced with a haughty toss of butterscotch curls.
“Especially ugly ones like him.” She tried to grab at the thong that danced on
his head but a breeze lifted the ends and tossed them in the other direction.
She frowned as Sam grinned at her before running off to turn a cartwheel. The
thong magickally remained on his head. “Why is his thingie poking out like
that?” “Oh come on, Sam, that is so sick!”
Janice yelled. “And it’s not my fault!” He jumped up
and down in a typical troll-tantrum-when-imprisoned-in-a-gnome-body. “Not my
fault, not my fault, not my fault!” The sisters clasped hands and circled the
troll-turned-gnome. “Nasty troll, nasty gnome, make us happy and go home!”
they chanted. “Nasty troll, nasty gnome, make us happy and go home!” “Yeah, like that’s gonna happen,” Janice
muttered. She raised her voice. “You girls want him to leave? Why not drag
him out into the street where I can drive over him?” Three pair of eyes lit up with malevolent
glee. “Hey!” Sam’s protests were drowned out by
the girls’ screams of delight as one took one arm, one took the other and the
third pushed from the rear. Sam cursed them every tiny step of the way. His
words turned into maniacal laughter when they reached the sidewalk and all four
were catapulted backwards. “My dress!” Scornful screamed, brushing
dirt off her backside. “That hurt!” Withering wailed with
ear-splitting sound. “Bad gnome!” Derisive bounced to her feet
and ran over to Sam who was awkwardly scrambling to his feet. “You need to be
punished!” “Like I haven’t been punished already by
being imprisoned on this ugly lawn.” He turned to Janice. “Get me out of
here.” “Tell me who sent you here and I’ll
appeal to them to take off the curse.” Janice kept a wary eye on the triplets.
They weren’t known for their ladylike behavior. “I don’t know who sent me here!” he
shrieked, turning his pink skin a bright red. “I don’t know, I don’t know, I
don’t know!” He jumped up and down so hard he left holes in the grass. Janice threw up her hands. “You’re on
your own.” She turned around and walked back to her cruiser. “No!” Sam ran down the yard but had the
smarts to stop short of the edge. “You can’t leave me with them!” “Watch me.” Janice’s words floated back
to him amid the triplet’s ear-splitting shrieks of malicious joy as they danced
around him. Sam spent the day learning just what the
phrase “hell on earth” meant. By the time the sun went down and the
triplets were called inside the house, he was ready to beg the devil himself to
take him away. Nighttime wasn’t much better. He spent
an hour on his tiptoes looking in one of the Disdaine windows watching the
family consume dinner. He didn’t think much of the menu and all it did was
make him hungry. He discovered the hard way that gnomes didn’t have stomachs
to process food even if he could have found a toadstool somewhere. He stamped
his foot in frustration but it didn’t have the scary impression an angry troll
could make. No wonder people made fun of garden
gnomes. They were the clowns of the magickal world. Gnomes also couldn’t sleep. Sam listened
to the triplets protest bedtime and their whispered chants that were downright
scary. “Little birches,” he muttered, settling
for making a bed among the flowers ringing a tree set in the center of the
yard. What he wouldn’t give for a nice large hollow tree trunk. He stiffened
as a lean black animal appeared at the end of the street and moved gracefully
down the sidewalk. It was too large to be a dog and its eyes gleamed with a
fierce hunger not seen among the canine set, and Sam was suddenly grateful he
was stone and not skin and bone. He might have ended up a late night snack. The werewolf loped over to him and
sniffed him from the top of the thong to his toes. The way the were kept
returning to the thong made Sam wonder just who or what had worn it before it
ended up as a colorful accessory. “Do you happen to know how I got here?”
he asked, but only received a growl for his trouble. “Fine, see if I tell you
how to get in the house where you can find three tasty treats. ARGH!”
If he thought Chihuahua piss was bad, he soon learned that werewolf piss was
even worse. As for were-shit…well, that was downright indescribable. By morning, Sam was convinced he’d endured
more than any law-evading troll-turned-gnome should endure. The only good thing
that happened to him was the sprinklers going off at six a.m. and washing him
clean. Promptly at eight, the triplets were back
outside ready to make his life hell again. Sam wailed like he’d never wailed before,
but no one bothered to come to his rescue. Not when it was more fun to stand
on the sidewalk and watch a show that was more entertaining than anything found
on cable. Emma Mincemeat showed up with her book Witchcraft for Dummies,
but none of the reversing spells she uttered did the trick. He feared he was
doomed to spend eternity as a lawn ornament tormented by the Disdaine
triplets. As his last bid for self-defense Sam
began singing his favorite song. A troll-turned-gnome singing the Lumberjack
Song from Monty Python was a sight—and sound—no witch could forget. Especially
since singing wasn’t one of his few gifts. As he pranced around singing at the
top of his lungs, the thong now hung around his neck like an obscene necklace.
The tapping on the sidewalk was a sound
he was afraid he would never hear again. The vision approaching him looked
like something out of a dream. Petite, barely five-foot-one-inches, with
cornflower blue eyes, hair the color of spun gold hanging down her back in
spiral curls and Faery pink glossed pouty lips looked ready for a kiss. Her
dainty shell-pink dress matched equally dainty high-heeled open-toed sandals
that displayed pink painted toes Sam vividly recalled sucking on more than
once. Her large eyes widened in shock as she stood in front of him. He could
smell the scent of spring on her skin. His penis wasted no time in popping out
in search of a familiar place. “Euuwww, his thingie is looking at me!”
Scornful screamed. “Oh Sammykins!” The Vision wrung her
hands in front of her. “I didn’t mean for this to happen.” Sammykins didn’t need a real brain to
figure out what she meant. “Claire, you did this to me?” He didn’t
have to pretend feeling hurt. His beautiful Claire was behind his punishment? Her lower lip trembled. “You were mean
to me,” she said in her little girl whispery voice. “You made me cry.” “We were having an argument! No one says
anything nice during a fight! And I didn’t say anything mean to you until you
called me a gross mushroom eating trog,” he reminded her. He stood up as tall
as he could. “I am not a trog.” A teardrop hovered on the curve of her
cheek before slowly making its way downward. “And I am not…” she sniffed,
unable to continue in front of what looked like fifty witches, a few interested
weres, a naked vampyre—to name only a few of the Brokenoggin residents lining
the sidewalk. The smell of popcorn filled the air as they settled down to
watch the show. Sam wiggled his fingers. If Claire was
behind his change, then it was only fair she share his humiliation. “Not a…?” he prompted. “This isn’t nice, Sammykins,” she
whispered. “I don’t want to say it.” “Not a-a-a-a…?” he drew out the last word.
Her tiny chin trembled. “You said I was
flat.” Men’s gazes immediately zeroed in on her
double-D breasts. “Man, that is one Wonder Bra,” John
loudly announced. Claire glared at him. “I am not flat!”
Her whispery voice suddenly rose in pitch. “I am not flat!” “Whereas I have perfect pitch,”
Sam announced to one and all with a dramatic sweep of the arm—except the
gesture lost its sense of drama since his arm was merely a tiny pink painted
extension with even tinier fingers. He began singing his favorite ditty, the
Lumberjack Song from Monty Python complete with his favorite gestures. What he
didn’t realize was that while he thought his singing voice was magnificent, it
sounded more like a wood chipper in serious need of a grease job. “I hate that song!” Claire
screeched loud enough to crack more than a few windows. “HATE IT! HATE
IT!” She reared back and looked down at the grinning and singing Sam with
bulging eyes. She was no longer the pretty and dainty little darling she was
two seconds ago. Her porcelain skin shimmered into a
brownish color and her body suddenly elongated, bones popping as her arms
lengthened to papery wings. Her perfect doll features receded with her mouth
turning into an ugly V and razor sharp teeth glistened white in the
afternoon sun. She flapped her wings until she hovered a foot above the grass,
her stick-like legs kicking thin air. As Sam kept singing, she lifted her head
and screamed a shrill sound that might have shattered more than a few eardrums
if it wasn’t for most of the residents being protected by magick, and the fact
that those who weren’t knew who to go to, to have new ones conjured up. The screeching harpy flew higher, her
large wings flapping heavily. With one last scream that shattered windows in a
five-mile area, she flew off. “Flat!” Sam shouted after her, his tiny
arms waving. “Your scream is flat!” “Good going, dog hydrant,” Janice said
from the sidelines. “After the way you just humiliated her, she’s not going to
allow the curse to be lifted anytime soon now.” Sam froze. As the police officer’s words
sunk in, he realized the mistake he’d just made was the biggest he’d ever made
in his life. “I’m sorry, sweetheart!” he shouted after
the diminishing figure in the air. “I didn’t mean it! You have a beautiful
voice. And I’ll only sing in the shower!” When she didn’t turn back, he
shrugged. “She’ll be back. You’ll see.” He settled down in the grass. “She
never holds a grudge. It’s not in her.” A little after midnight when the black
were stopped by to piss on him, Sam knew there wasn’t a chance in his lifetime
that Claire would be back to take the curse away. He wrinkled his nose at the
pungent smell on his clothes. He sat down to wait for the sprinklers to come
on. “Good thing I never said what I think of
her mother.” Episode 1.16 PIECES OF DESTINY By Michelle Rowen Episode 1.16 Pieces of Destiny By Michelle Rowen “Only a matter of time,” Destiny Hopewell
said into her tiny, pink cellphone. “And I’m finally getting the hell out of
this town. For good.” “Yeah,
yeah,” her friend said. “You’ve been saying that for eighteen years.” “You
won’t be hearing it much longer. I’ve got a date with Tad tonight.” “Tad,
the hotty college guy you’ve been emailing for, like, forever?” “That’s
the Tad.” “Hey
Des, that’s great. Just don’t get your hopes up, okay?” Destiny
stopped walking. The warm, summer evening air felt like it was closing in on
her. “What did you just say?” she snapped. There
was a pause. “Uh…” “Look,
Pru, I don’t care if you want to stay in this town of freaks for the rest of
your life. don’t. I want to go somewhere normal where I don’t bump into naked
vampires or where garden gnomes don’t try to look up my skirt as I pass them.
Don’t even get me started on those trailer trash witches who have it in for
me. I can’t take it anymore. There’s a whole world out there that I want to
see, and when I get out of here, I’m not looking back.” “What about your
parents?” Destiny
rolled her eyes. “When did you become the voice of reason? My parents are a
huge part of why I want out of here. Look, I have to get home and get changed,
okay?” “That’s
cool. I have to get ready myself.” “Why?
What are you doing tonight?” “I’m
babysitting the Disdaine triplets.” “You’re
kidding.” “They’re
paying me amazing money, too. You babysat for them before, didn’t you?” Destiny
reached down and tenderly rubbed her knee as she thought back to her
babysitting stint with the Disdaine triplets. They hadn’t been happy with their
assigned bedtime and hidden her kneecap for a few hours. She’d dragged herself
around the garden looking for it while the brats stayed up watching TV and
eating candy. When she finally found the kneecap she had to fight with a
talking squirrel over it for a half an hour. Talking squirrels were hard to
reason with. Ever since, she’d been walking with a bit
of a limp, more pronounced when wearing fashionable footwear. Should she warn Pru? Not that it would
be a surprise for anyone living in town that the triplets were evil incarnate.
But still... Nah. Let her figure it out for herself. “I’m sure it will go fine,” she said.
“Nothing to worry about. Anyhow, I’ll tell you all about my wonderful date
tomorrow.” There was a long sigh on the other end of
the line. “Have fun, okay?” Destiny hung up. Oh, she was going to
have fun, all right. Nothing was going to go wrong tonight. It wasn’t every
day an outsider came into town who wasn’t a total freakazoid. Like that naked
vampire guy. What was his name? Seth…Stephen… something like that. Granted,
he was a major hotty. But way weird. He’d fit in just fine in Brokenoggin
Falls. But Destiny didn’t. Never had. And she never
wanted to. She pulled her notepad out of her purse,
and flipped forward to her to-do list. FRIDAY – D-DAY 1.
1.
Shift at Brokenoggin Burger — 2:30 – 7:30 pm 2.
2.
Date with Tad – 8:00 pm 3.
3.
Make Tad fall madly in love with me — 8:15 pm 4.
4.
Have Tad propose marriage — 10:00ish pm ** Note to self: Remember to
scrape windshield of Toyota to remove remnants of Tad Anderson was the answer to all her
problems. He’d take her out tonight and she’d make him fall madly and
passionately in love with her. He’d see her plight, her pain, her naturally
large breasts, and want to rescue her. They’d drive off into the sunset
together in his Porsche—in her mind he drove a red Porsche—and bye-bye
Brokenoggin. Forever. The thought made her very happy. But
nothing could go wrong tonight. Nothing. She had precisely, she looked at her
watch, less than a half hour to get gorgeous, and wash the french fry smell off
herself from working a six hour shift. No time to waste. As soon as Tad took her away from town,
she’s never work for minimum wage again. She was going to be a model. Or
maybe an actress. She had the looks, after all. Just another thing this lame
ass town had kept her from achieving. She picked up her pace, but at the end of
the block two familiar figures stepped into her path. She stopped. Great, just
what she needed. The two trailer trash witches she’d been talking about a
minute ago. Sabrina and Tabitha Wartly. Tabitha had been in her computer
class at Brokenoggin High and had made her life practically unbearable. She sure was one ugly bee-yotch. “Well, looky here,” Tabitha sneered at
her. “Destiny Hopeless, walking home from the greasepit.” “I’m not walking home from your face,”
Destiny said. “And that’s the only greasepit I can see.” “Ha ha, that’s so funny I forgot to
laugh.” Sabrina didn’t say anything, but even in
the near darkness Destiny could see her eyes were red and puffy from crying.
They finally matched the rest of her face. Destiny tucked her notebook back in her
bag and crossed her arms. “What do you want? I’m in kind of a hurry here.” Tabitha glared at her. “Like the hurry
you were in to steal my sister’s boyfriend?” Destiny stared at her blankly for a moment
trying to figure out if she’d just gone insane. Sabrina’s boyfriend was a
troll. Literally. She started to laugh. “Yeah, I so stole your boyfriend,” she
said. “Not.” “He told me he’s in love with you,”
Sabrina sputtered. “I saw the love letter he wrote you.” She stomped her
foot. “You stole him from me!” “Look, loser-girl. I didn’t steal your
boyfriend. If he has a fixation with me because I’m the only girl he’s met who
isn’t covered in ugly warts, it’s not my fault.” Her bottom lip wobbled. “My mom calls
them beauty warts.” “Riiight. Look, I’m going home now. I
have an important date with a normal guy. Do you know what normal means?
No, I didn’t think so.” She started walking but could hear the
girls whispering behind her back. Then one of them laughed. Destiny turned
around to look. They were holding hands and had their eyes closed while they
chanted something through their giggles. Oh shit. Maybe I shouldn’t have said
anything about the warts,
Destiny thought. It was obviously
a sensitive issue. “What are you doing?” she demanded. “Important date, huh?” Tabitha grinned.
Her two good teeth glinted in the moonlight. “Wouldn’t want it to come apart at
the seams, would you?” Destiny stared at her. “What are you
talking about?” Sabrina snickered. “Just try to keep it
together…Destiny. Geez, don’t fall apart on us, okay? Wouldn’t want anything
bad to happen to you since you’ve always been so nice to us.” Destiny felt tense. The girls had done
something—some spell. That much was obvious. But she didn’t feel any
different. Shit. She’d been stupid to tease the two of them. Apart it was
okay. Together they were…well, evil. But before she could ask
them what they’d done to her, the sisters waved at her and laughed. Then they
turned around and ran away. *** Tad arrived right on time, and Destiny
raced down the stairs at the sound of the doorbell. Didn’t want her father
answering the door. Or her mother for that matter. If she could help it, he
wouldn’t meet her folks at all. Ever. She took a deep breath and opened the
door. Tad stood there looking as hot if not
hotter than the photo he’d emailed her. Six feet tall, blonde hair, high
cheekbones, full lips. He even had a damn dimple in his chin. She could have
sworn she heard a chorus of angels singing, but noticed that the next door
neighbors were having a karaoke party. Two furry people she didn’t recognize
were outside howling at the moon in the key of G. She grabbed Tad’s sleeve to pull him
inside so he wouldn’t witness the weirdness. She worried he was going to be
disappointed in her since the picture she’d sent him was from a distance. A
prom photo. It was a good picture of her, but she’d tried to cut out her prom
date, a wizard by the name of Willard who’d brought her an enchanted corsage.
They’d had to leave the dance early after the corsage ate a good chunk of the
front part of her dress. “Wow,” Destiny said. “You look amazing.”
“Thanks.” Tad smiled—a bright, handsome,
completely normal in every way smile. “You know, it’s weird. I could have
sworn I saw a naked guy with a piece of wood sticking out of his chest on the
other side of town.” “Really? That’s weird.” Change of subject, she
told herself. Pronto. “Ready to go?” She grabbed her jacket and made for the
door just as she heard a very familiar voice behind her. “Not quite yet, young
lady. Don’t I get to meet the young man?” Destiny tensed. “Dad, I thought you
were in your workshop. I didn’t want to disturb you.” Her father came towards
the door. Destiny tried to block the view but it was too late. Tad had already gotten an
eyeful. Well, a mini eyeful, anyhow. Destiny’s
father stood barely four feet tall. He wasn’t officially a “little person,”
though, since he was perfectly proportioned to his height. His nose came to a
curving point as did his ears, and he wore green and red striped stockings
underneath a red sweater and green shorts. His shoes were handmade, and
jingled as he walked. Destiny’s
father was an elf. A Christmas elf, that is. Twenty years ago he’d escaped
from the North Pole. “Damn slave labor it was,” he always told her. “That
Claus is a tyrant!” He’d heard about a small town called Brokenoggin Falls that
welcomed unusual people, and packed up his best candy canes and toy-making
tools, and then stole a reindeer for his getaway. He
hadn’t been in Brokenoggin for much more than a year when he ran over a dog
with his car (an Austin Mini, of course), a big, black, shaggy dog that he took
to the vet and then helped nurse back to health. But it turned out it wasn’t a
dog at all. It was a wolf. A
werewolf. She wasn’t even sure she
understood most of the time. “Look here,” her father said with a great smile on
his diminutive face. “I’ve made a gift for your friend.” Tad stepped forward to accept
the small, carved wooden sailboat. “Da-ad,” Destiny whined. “Don’t
embarrass me.” “Embarrass you?” he exclaimed. “I wouldn’t dream of it.” Yeah,
right. “Okay, we’re like, leaving.” Destiny grabbed Tad’s very firm and
nicely muscular arm and tried to steer him outside. “This is amazing,”
Tad said to her father as he inspected the boat. “Where did you learn to do this?” Destiny’s father gave a little
bow. “Thank you, my boy. I was well taught from the time I was a child by none other than—” “Leaving,”
Destiny cut him off before he said too much. “Now?” “Give your poppa a kiss
first.” Kill me, Destiny thought. Just kill me now and put me out of
my misery. But she forced a smile, leaned way, way over,
and air-kissed her father’s cheek. *** Perfect date. It
was going to be perfect. Stamped it, no erasies. Turned out Tad didn’t drive a
Porsche after all. It was a Mercedes. Destiny decided she could live with that. He
hadn’t seemed mortified by meeting her odd father. Thank God her mother was
out that night at a laser hair removal
seminar. And her brother? She’d thought she’d seen him earlier out of the
corner of her eye. But it had just been her imagination.
Luckily, too. He was extremely overprotective of his sister and was guaranteed
to hate Tad on sight. They
sat in his car in the parking lot of Brokenoggin Burger. The thought of eating
the greasy food made Destiny’s stomach turn over, but she forced back the
cheeseburger and fries with a smile. She glanced at the clock on the dashboard.
Eight-thirty. According to her schedule Tad should have fallen madly in love with
her fifteen minutes ago. She wasn’t positive, but she didn’t think it had
happened yet. It
was okay. Fifteen minutes off schedule was nothing to worry about. her head to the side so she could fish
out whatever it was. Hard, small, white… A tooth. Holy shit, she’d just lost
a damn tooth on a Brokenoggin fry. But it wasn’t that hard. The tooth had
just…slid out…all by itself. She eyed Tad. He wasn’t paying attention while he
fiddled with the car radio to find some “mood music.” She
took the tooth and tried to slide it back into place. She expected to feel
pain, but there was nothing. There. All fixed. He finally found a decent station, and
leaned back in his seat clearly proud of himself. The music cut through the
uncomfortable silence in the car. Destiny had been trying to think of
something incredibly witty and intelligent to say. But since Destiny was
neither witty nor terribly intelligent, she was coming up blank. “You’re so beautiful,” Tad finally said. A dribble of ketchup landed on Destiny’s
shirt and she grabbed for a napkin. “Oh? Um...thanks.” “You know, I was hoping to meet a girl
like you.” “Really?” “Everybody thinks I’m weird, see? Because
I’m sort of mature for my age. My friends, my folks, they all tell me that I
should just have fun. But I really want to do is settle down with a nice girl.
Get married. Have a couple of kids. Like, right away. I don’t want to wait
until I’m too old to care about those things anymore.” She nodded sagely. This was perfect.
Everything was going according to her plan. He reached over and tucked a strand of
her freshly highlighted auburn hair behind her ear. “I just figure, when you
know what you want, you just gotta go for it.” “I totally and absolutely agree.” “You’re special, Destiny. I knew that
from the first moment you uploaded your picture.” How romantic was that? Destiny sighed
with happiness. He leaned towards her and she closed her
eyes, waiting for the kiss. Hoping that she didn’t have anything stuck between
her teeth. She waited. And waited some more. Then she opened her eyes. Tad was chewing on a french fry. “The guy
at the drive through was kind of weird, huh?” She cleared her throat and tried to
compose herself. “Yeah, that’s Cy. I guess he is a little strange, isn’t he?” “Something was up with his eye. What was
that? Kind of freaky if you ask me.” Cy was a cyclops. So there was nothing
wrong with his eye other than the fact that he only had one of them right in
the middle of his forehead. Nice guy, though. Always let her leave early.
Plus, for a guy with only one eye, he had a very nice body. It was a trade-off.
She didn’t think it was all that nice for
Tad to pick on him and was about to say something, but her nose started to
itch. She absently rubbed at it and after a moment it came clean off her face
and fell into
her lap. Horrified, she immediately ducked under the dash to try to reattach
it. “Destiny?” Tad asked. “You okay down
there?” “Yeah, fine. I just dropped something.” “Should I turn on the light?” “No! No lights!” Destiny gently turned the nose in the
right direction and pressed it to her face. She touched it, waiting to feel
blood, waiting to feel pain, but there was nothing. She took her hand away and
the nose stayed exactly where it was supposed to be. She was just about to start freaking out
over what the hell was happening to her when she remembered something the
Wartly sisters had said earlier. “Just try to keep it together…Destiny.
Geez, don’t fall apart on us, okay? Wouldn’t want anything bad to happen to
you since you’ve always been so nice to us.” A spell. That’s what this was. A spell meant to
ruin her date by those ugly bitches. Really funny. Not. She’d show them. Nothing they could do
would stop her from making Tad fall completely in love with her. After the
night was over…then, and only then, would she think about her revenge. Just because she didn’t have any magical
powers didn’t mean she didn’t have ways of paying them back big-time. “Let’s go somewhere else,” Tad suggested.
“Out of town?” she suggested hopefully. “Nah, there’s got to be somewhere,” he
lowered his voice and grinned at her, “private where we can get to know
each other better?” Since the entire town of Brokenoggin was
surrounded by a thick thatch of evergreens, there were plenty of private places
Destiny could think of. She directed him to a little nook where she’d made out
a couple of months ago with Johnny Franklin. At least until the full moon came
out and he bolted from the car and into the woods. Wonder what ever happened to him after
that? she thought. Were-chipmunks
were so unpredictable. “Damn it!” Tad swerved the car, snapping
her out of the memory. “Almost hit that stupid dog. Where do all these little
dogs come from anyhow?” She just shrugged. “This
town is messed up,” Tad said. “How can you live here without turning into a
freak, yourself?” It was on the tip of her tongue to tell him it wasn’t that
bad. And that it was okay for her to say those things about Brokenoggin, but not
for him—a total stranger to the town. But she bit her tongue. Which then fell
out of her mouth. “Shit!” she yelled, but since her tongue was gone it sounded
more like, “Shhhd!” She undid her seatbelt and scrambled to the floor to look
for the elusive appendage. She thought it had bounced over on
the driver’s side of the car so she crawled in that direction and grabbed onto
Tad’s knee for support. “Oh yeah, baby,” Tad said. “That’s what I’m talking
about. But can you at least wait until I pull over?” There it was, under the brake
pedal. She grabbed the tongue but it slipped away from her. “Shhhhddd!” She
finally got her hand on it and shoved it back in her mouth. It was covered
with dirt that tasted disgusting, but it reattached
itself right away. Then she tried to get back into her seat, but Tad now had
her hand pressed firmly against his lap. Just like a guy, she thought.
Didn’t matter if they were human or not. Only one thing on their mind. If Destiny had been in a laughing
mood any more she’d think it was funny. “Let me up,” she said. “Now you want
up.” He looked down at her. “But you just got down there.” She pushed herself
up with one hand and tried to wrench the other away from him. It popped clean off of her body and Tad was left
holding her entire arm without the rest of her attached to it. Great, just
great. He looked at her, as she calmly put her seatbelt back on, and then at
the warm limb now laying in his lap. His eyes widened. “Don’t freak
out,” she told him. “I can explain.” He started to scream. Then he swerved off
the road and slammed into a tree. So much for the perfect date, Destiny
thought as she dragged herself out of the car. “Tad, you okay?” she asked. Tad
was still screaming. She saw her arm shoot out the window as if Tad had thrown it
as far away from himself as he could manage. She frowned. Talk about rude. She walked over to it and picked it up
gingerly. Then pressed it back into place. She helped Tad out of the ruined
Mercedes. His wallet fell out of his now ripped leather jacket. “Don’t touch me.” He shuffled away from
her. “Okay, okay. Look, just relax.” “Just relax? “Yeah, it’s just a spell. I’m not
normally like this.” “What do you mean, it was a spell?” She sighed. “Look, Brokenoggin is a
little different, okay? That’s why I want to get the hell out of here as soon
as possible.” “Bunch of freaks.” Tad looked around
nervously. “I’d heard that about this town.” Her frown deepened. “Freaks is a
little harsh, I’d say. Unusual occurrences, sure. Witches, werewolves...maybe
an elf or two.” He nodded. “Freaks.” “Look. They’re not freaks. You don’t even
know them to make that kind of judgment.” Why was she defending Brokenoggin now?
This was not part of the master plan. She just didn’t like somebody else
insulting her hometown. Ironic? Perhaps a tad. “I’d heard it was different here. I just
didn’t realize how different.” He eyed her. “So what are you, anyhow? A
werewolf?” “No way. I’m human. One hundred percent.
That’s why I want to go live somewhere else.” “Good luck with that.” She grabbed his arm and he flinched.
“No, listen to me. I like you. You’re great. You’re perfect, in fact. That’s
why I wanted to go out with you. I figured you and me...maybe we could do
something together.” “I was thinking the same thing.” She took in a deep breath and let it out
slowly. She could salvage this. It wasn’t too late. She smiled at him, and he smiled back.
She leaned over and picked up his wallet. “So were you serious about wanting to get
married right away?” she asked. He nodded. “Very serious.” A photo was peeking out of the top of his
wallet. She pulled it out to take a look at it. It was of a pretty blonde
girl. “Who’s this, your sister?” He laughed, and grabbed the wallet away
from her. “No. That’s my fiancйe.” Destiny blinked. “Your what?” “My fiancйe. Did your ears just fall off,
too?” She reached up to check them just in case
he was right. No, they were exactly where they were supposed to be. “You have a fiancйe?” she repeated in
disbelief. He shrugged. “Kind of helpful to have one
when you’re planning on getting married, right?” He paused, and looked at her
strangely. “Shit, Destiny, your eyeball just fell out. That is messed up.” She leaned over and picked it up,
absently popping it back into its socket. “If you’re going to get married, then why
are we out on a date?” He studied her for a minute, then started
to laugh. “Oh no, you didn’t think...” He pointed at the car then back at
her. “...you thought I was going to ask you to marry me?” Destiny wasn’t laughing. She didn’t think
she’d ever laugh again. “Look,” he continued when he caught his
breath, “this doesn’t have to end this way. We can still have fun tonight. I
know you want to.” She narrowed her eyes. “You know I want
to what?” He grinned. “My girlfriend doesn’t want
to put out until the honeymoon. That’s why I came here.” Destiny waited. “You came here
because...” “Because Brokenoggin girls are easy,” Tad
said. “It’s a well known fact. Now come over here, baby, and I’m going to rock
your world.” She kicked him in the groin. Lost her
entire foot in the process but it was worth it. She hopped back towards the
car to grab her cellphone so she could call her dad to come pick her up. Maybe Brokenoggin wasn’t so bad. If Tad
represented the men she would find outside the town, then maybe she didn’t want
to leave after all. She wondered what Willard the wizard had
been up to since prom. Maybe she should give him a call. “Hey,” Tad yelled from where he was
writhing in pain on the ground. “Is this your dog? Get it the hell away from
me, will you?” There was a chihuahua standing three feet
away from his prone form. It growled viciously at him. “That,” Destiny said, holding a hand over
the speaker of the cellphone while she balanced precariously on one foot, “is my brother ChiChi. And he is sooo
going to kick your ass.” Episode 1.17 SUZI STILETTO: RECOVERING DEMON SLAYER By Alesia Holliday Episode 1.17 Suzi Stiletto: Recovering Demon Slayer By Alesia Holliday “You’re through, Stiletto,” the chief
roared at her. “You broke Union rules five months in a row. You’re out. You’re
done!” The assistant chief, Herman Milquetoast,
smirked at her. He’d wanted her out for ten years. Guess the little prick was
finally going to get his wish. She took a menacing step toward him and had the
satisfaction of watching him flinch back. Then she turned back to the man who’d
been like a father to her since somebody had dropped her off at Slayer Academy
when she was only six, ‘Take care of this freak’ scrawled on a note pinned to
her dress. He couldn’t just throw her out. She had nowhere else to go. “But, Chief,” she held up her hands,
dropped them again. “If I’m not a Slayer, I’m nothing.” For a moment, she though she saw tears
glimmer in his eyes, and she had hope. He looked at her and sighed. “Then you’re
nothing.” Then he walked away, never looking back,
stepping over the bodies of the seven Lawyer Demons she’d slain that night. *** Six months later “We’re totally screwed.” Suzi’s grip on the steering wheel of her
used neon-green VW bug tightened until she was sure she’d leave fingerprints in
the plastic. “I don’t want to hear it. We need to make rent and the car
payment, plus buy you some more of those eucalyptus leaves you insist on
eating,” she said, shooting a glance of sheer disgust at her so-called best
friend in the passenger seat. “I don’t care,” Jimmy whined in that
screechy voice of his. “There are more important things than money. Suzi slammed on the brakes so hard the
car fishtailed, finally shuddering to a stop. The headlights illuminated an
ancient sign creaking off a rusted pole. She peered at the writing, trying to
make it out. “Is that Latin?” Jimmy was struggling to jump back up on
the seat from where he’d fallen on the floor. “I wouldn’t know Latin from Pig
Latin, remember? I was monolingual even before you got me changed.” She sighed and clenched her eyes shut for
a moment, struggling for patience. She lost. “Look, you little insect. I told you five
times to stay home that night. Lawyer Demons are the worst—their powers are
unstable and they always want to closing argument me to death. Thank God
Shakespeare started the Slayer Academy when he did. ‘Let’s kill all the
lawyers.’ Brilliant. And people thought he was a writer.” She snorted.
“Anyway, you’re the one who stowed away in the back of the Jeep.” “Yeah, and saved your fine ass from the
big ugly one,” Jimmy squeaked back at her. “You promised no more insect
cracks, too. Don’t make me tell your mother on you.” Suzi looked at her best friend,
transformed by a random blast of a Death Affidavit Ray into a cricket. The
irony smacked her in the face, as it always did. Her foul-mouthed,
trouble-causing, total instigator of a best friend was now, quite literally,
Jimmy Cricket. “I’m sorry. Look, this traveling
lingerie and sex toys sales job was the best I could do when they kicked me out
of the Union. Overuse of powers, my ass. Anyway, suck it up. The woman who
invited me, what was her name—Hillde Foster or something? She said the town
definitely needs more sexy lingerie, whatever that means.” Suzi glanced up at the road sign again,
then felt her mouth fall open. Hard. “Um, that sign was in Latin not two
minutes ago. I swear it was.” Jimmy, who’d probably been preparing one
of his zingy comebacks to bug her, twitched his little antennae in the
direction of the sign. “Well, it’s not now. Plain as day: Welcome to
Brokenoggin Falls. Brokenoggin—what is that? Ojibwa? Algonquin? Anyway, I
don’t like it. This town was clearly marked in the Slayer Handbook as OFF
LIMITS.” Suzi clenched her jaw,
then threw the Bug into gear. “Well, I’m not a Slayer anymore, am I? We have
nighties and nipple clamps to sell. Let’s get going, already.” *** “It’s just like a Tupperware party, but
no nobody is allowed to practice burping anything—or anybody!” The same line
she’d said a hundred times in the past half-year rolled off her lips as three
grown women rolled off the couch. Literally. They were the something triplets,
and they were a pain in the ass. They’d bickered so much, she’d finally started
pushing the hostess’s champagne at them, hoping they’d get sloshed and shut up.
Now they kept trying to take their clothes off. Hillde had been right, though. There had
to be forty…women…at the party. Except they weren’t all human. Not many were, in fact. Suzi’s Slayer
instincts had kicked so far into overload the minute she’d stepped out of the
car, it was a wonder she hadn’t flashed into a killing frenzy and slain the
potted palm tree in the foyer. Or the weird guy who kept lurking at the
doorway, trying to catch somebody undressed, probably, given the six cameras
dangling from his neck. “Okay, okay, now to the very best part of
our evening—the modeling show! Who will go first? How about you?” She held up
a red corset and panties and smiled at the pastor, stepping a bit closer to the
woman to confirm what she’d smelled earlier. Yep. She smells like demon. She’s not
the demon, but she’s been rubbing naked flesh with one really recently. Must
be some interesting church. “Um, sounds good. I’m…trying to break
away from being ‘white lace girl’,” the woman answered, turning a little pink
and taking the scarlet silk set from me, then backing away. Probably wondering why I’m sniffing at
her, like a freak. I need to chill. But Holy Freaking Gates of Hell, I sense
so many vampires, demons, and witches in this town, I can hardly breathe. As the women swarmed around the couches
where she’d set out her samples, Suzi wandered over to the table where snacks
and drinks were displayed with fresh flowers, pepper sauce, and…hair removal
cream? She leaned down and whispered to Jimmy, who was hiding behind the
cheese ball. “Do you smell it? Demons, demons, everywhere, and not a stake in
sight.” Jimmy’s tiny green body quivered. “No,
no, no. I don’t care if a demon steps right up and smacks you with one of your
own sample dildos. You’re sanctioned. If you slay now, you’re on automatic
death sentence. No kidding around, Suzi. I can’t lose you.” She softened, staring down at what was
left of her friend. “Aw, you say the nicest things.” Jimmy hopped on top of the cheese ball.
“At least until you find a way to change me back. Hey, did you see the tits on
those Tawdry triplets? Butter me up and call me a triple-decker, baby.” Suzi choked on her cracker. “Right.
Sentimental to the last.” Just then, one of the guests touched her
arm. “Excuse me, honey, I have a serious saggy boob issue, after having twelve
kids. Do you have anything even more wondrous than a WonderBra? We’re talking
Miracle Bra, here.” Suzi put her plate down and turned to her
new client. “I happen to have just the thing. It uses titanium underwire.
And I think you’re the miracle, if you don’t mind my saying so, with
twelve kids. How do you do it?” As they threaded their way through forty
half-drunken women—did THAT woman smell like Dragons mating? No way
are there dragons this far north!—all laughing hysterically and in various
stages of undress, Suzi noticed a sheriff lurking in the doorway. She
stiffened and nodded toward the woman. “Is there trouble?” Miracle Mommy glanced over, then shook
her head and laughed. “Nah, that’s just Janice. I don’t think she’s had sex
since way before I got my first stretch mark. She’s probably looking for a
little action, if you know what I mean.” “Well, I’ve got BOBs, no problem,” Suzi
responded absently, looking for that latest shipment of bras that out-of-work
NASA engineers had designed. “Bob? Bob who?” “Battery-Operated Boyfriends. We even
sell batteries, so you can go right home and let ‘em rip. Here we go—are you
about a 44D?” *** Never piss off a Gypsy King. Don’t Rile a Romanian. Life Sucks, Then You Die. He’d had seven thousand years to think up
a damn motto, and this was the best he could come up with? Don’t Rile a
Romanian? Shit, he deserved to be cursed to never know happiness. He was a
freaking loser. Ever since he’d defiled the virgin Antonia (and let’s face it,
if Antonia was a virgin, he’d been an aqueduct), and suffered her father’s
wrath, Lucius had been doomed to absorb the Anguish, Vitriol, and Suffering of
mankind for all time. Which, with jerkoffs like Satan in action, pretty much
sucked. Yeah, he’d picked up some colloquialisms
in the past few years, too. Doomed never to Enjoy. Never to
Appreciate. Never to Love. Never to Laugh. It had to be a helluva curse, too.
‘Cause if there was ever a bunch of screwballs destined to crack him up, it was
the residents of Brokenoggin, located straight up, a hundred and fifty feet of
rock and dirt over the stupid, dank, smelly cave he called home sweet prison.
But he’d been hatching a plot for the
past seventy or eighty years. Just one night. That’s all he wanted. One night
to see the sky again—the sun would sear him with agony without the benefit of
death, agonizing or otherwise—so he’d planned just one night of freedom.
Seeing people again would give him the courage to endure another seven thousand
years of solitude and isolation. Or
maybe he’d squash a few of the suckers, just for fun. create
a resonance in the very rock that binds me—maybe half a hundred. Laughing and
laughing and laughing… He hadn’t heard laughter since the night
of the curse, and that was more of the Mwah Ha Ha variety. Prick Gypsy
King. Laughter—Tonight’s the night, then. Now.
Stretching up from the
hunched position in a corner he’d taken about three hundred years previously,
give or take, Lucius stretched for the rock ceiling. Then he began to smash
through it. *** The rumbling started off low and quiet,
but Suzi’s Slayer senses were so jazzed, she picked up on it first thing. She
was trying to find a Merry Widow that wasn’t just flame-retardant but actually
fireproof for one of the guests, when the first vibrations started. Now the
framed photos on the hearth were rattling around, but the drunken party guests
were too busy shrieking with laughter and dancing around the room with the
dildo assortment to notice. Jimmy did, though. He hopped up on her
leg, and she picked him up and put him on her shoulder. “Hey, Suzi, what the
hell is that? Earthquake? This freaks me out.” It freaked her out, too, but she wasn’t
going to admit it. Not with her damn Slayer gear locked up at Union
headquarters. “What’s the matter, Jimmy? Spidey sense going haywire?” “I’m a cricket, not a spider, you
overgrown freak of nature. And, yeah, something is seriously wrong here—” Before she had a chance to make a
smart-assed comment about insects that said I told you so, the
earthquake rumbled out of control. The guests finally noticed when a giant
painting smashed to the floor. Everybody started shrieking and trying to pull
their clothes back on, except for the sheriff, who was pretty calm—like most
sheriffs, no surprise there—and the triplets, who howled even louder and
ripped their remaining clothes off. Jimmy hopped off her shoulder in the
general direction of the couch. Suzi didn’t have time to worry about any
of them, though, because the floor in front of her started to buckle. She
slammed her arms out and shoved everybody in reach back and away from the huge
hole that was opening in the floor. This was going to be the mother of all
sinkholes. Holy crap! “That’s my new coffeetable!” her hostess
screamed, not seeming to get that the whole house might go at any minute. “Everybody down!” Suzi shouted. “Try to
stand in a doorway or under a table, until the shaking stops!” But the shaking wasn’t stopping. At
least not the shaking in her knees. Because the biggest hulk of a butt-ugly
demon she’d ever seen shoved first his fist, then his head, then his entire
rock and mud-encrusted body up out of the hole in the floor. “We’re screwed,” Jimmy squeaked. “Shut up, Jimmy,” she said, scanning the
room frantically for something—anything—that she could use to beat the foul
fiend. Nothing sharp and stake-y—except the heel of her new Jimmy Choo. Dammit!
“Begone!” she said, Firmly and
Dramatically, like it said on page one of the Slayer Handbook. (She’d never
made it past chapter three: Succubi and the Men Who Love Them). “Get
thou Demon Self back to Hades where thou art more…welcometh!” She grabbed the
first thing to hand, cursing the lack of her Slayer bag. Okay, two vibrators in the shape of a
cross is not quite Union protocol, but who’s gonna report me? The Demon cowered in front of her,
clearly in awe of her fury and righteousness. The sounds it made were truly
hideous: the rending of flesh and the gnashing of teeth, and the…laughter?
Okay, that totally pissed her off. Did
even the freaking demons know about her getting dumped by the Slayers’
Union? She marched closer to the demon, fearless
in her fury. “Departeth, thou Foul Fiend from Hell! Get thee back to the
depths of slimebucketness from whence thee came!” The demon fell over with a resounding
crash onto its side. She’d killed it with only her words! The power of that
last Mucous Demon she’d slain must have stayed with her—it could kill with mere
words, too. (Well, that and copious quantities of green phlegm, which made her
want to hurl just thinking about, but with a name like Mucous Demon, what did
she expect?) The foul fiend gasped its final breaths.
Rattled its final death rattle. Laughed at her again. Shit! This is totally not going my way. Jimmy piped up from where he’d been
hiding on the couch, behind the leather bustier. (He’d had a thing for leather
when he’d been a human, too. Go figure.) “Suzi! You know you’re not allowed to
do any unsanctioned slaying. The Union Decree was very clear.” The demon howled even louder, then it
started to talk. Suzi backed away, wishing for holy water or at least her
crossbow; something to hold firm between herself, the partygoers who crouched
trembling on the floor behind her, and the evil monster. She tried to
understand its words, hoping she would recognize enough of its fiendish
incantation to effect some sort of blocking spell with the remains of the
powers of the Succubus Sorceress she’d slain in January. “Oooniast Inga VayVairs Eeen,” rumbled
the demon. What? Oooniast, oooniast, what was that?
Ancient Atlantaen? One of the Sixty-Six Demon Dialects she hadn’t studied as
well as the others? Not that she was much of a book-learner, in fact. Oh, holy transformation. The demon
started glowing; first the faintest golden glow played over it—skin? Scales?
Ugly rock-like protrusions?—then a nimbus of pearlescent light covered it
from head to–to whatever the heck was attached to its legs. This was not a guy
you’d take home to mother, to loosely quote from a song about another Super
Freak. She backed away even more, holding her
cross of vibrators out in front of her, but suddenly a massive sonic boom of a
blast thundered through the house, and the demon disappeared in a burst of
light, just before everything else in the room disappeared in a burst of black.
*** Suzi woke up to find herself cradled in
the massively-muscled arms of the most astonishingly beautiful man she’d ever
seen. She stared into his pale silver eyes for a long moment, captivated by
their shifting shimmer, before allowing her gaze to drift over his sculpted
cheekbones, classical Roman nose, perfectly kissable lips, and firm jaw. Then
she had to stare at his eyes again, just to check that they really were silver,
and it wasn’t just a delusion caused by her temporary blackout and ensuing
concussion. Nope. Definitely silver. Which went well,
you know, with the wickedly black waves of hair that hung down to his
shoulders. His naked shoulders. Oh, crap. She stole a glance down. His naked shoulders were on top of his
very naked and majorly muscled chest and the naked arms she’d noticed earlier.
She squirmed a little, trying to stand up, and his arms tightened around her.
Oh, holy hard-on, Suzi. Either he was very, very happy to see
her, or she was sitting on the world’s largest roll of quarters. In his very naked lap. “But where the hell is the demon?” Silver eyes smiled fondly down at her.
“You’re the funniest thing I’ve ever seen, little Slayer.” She jerked in surprise. “How did you know
I’m a Slayer? Er, was a Slayer? And let me up,” she said, pushing
ineffectually against his chest. “You…wait! ‘Funniest thing I’ve ever seen?’
Oooniast Inga VayVairs Eeen? You’re the demon?” He smiled again. “Not any more.
Experiencing laughter after seven thousand years broke the damn curse. Now I
am your Eternal Love Slave, little Slayer.” Suzi sighed and watched as Jimmy fainted
dead to the floor, little cricket legs pointed straight up at the ceiling.
“I’m totally screwed.” Episode 1.18 LOF-T: ROGG 2 (Lord of the Forest Trolls: Repentance
of the Garden Gnome episode 2) By Judi McCoy Episode 1.18 LOF-T: ROGG 2 – SAM’S REPENTANCE By Judi McCoy Sam was worried. Ever since he’d last
seen Claire, things had grown fuzzy, murky even, in his mind and his body.
He’d been finding it very difficult to move and, if one pardoned the pun,
harder and harder to get an erection. Stranger still, last night he’d actually
slept for the first time since he’d found himself in this miserable
condition. It was as if the sight of his wife,
coupled with the knowledge that he’d hurt her, had caused some kind of
off-kilter reaction in the spell. Never in a million years, had he thought
she’d turn postal on him and resort to spousal abuse, but there was no doubt in
mind that’s what had happened. Weird thing was, she’d taken his derisive
comment totally out of context. When he’d said she was flat, he’d meant
she was off key when she screamed her incredibly frightening—though he loved to
hear it—harpy’s song. Poor Claire thought he’d meant she was flat in the boobs,
which to her was a huge insult, and she’d cast the retaliating spell. After hearing her side of it, Sam
realized Claire had every right to do what she’d done. He’d been unkind, and
his baby doll wife didn’t deserve his nasty or cutting remarks. Today had been a long day filled with
little motion on his part, and a lot of pain in his stocky limbs. Now that it
was evening, and he felt like the trunk of a dead tree, he was afraid to nod
off for fear he might never wake up in the morning. If that happened, he
wouldn’t be able to talk to Claire and explain that a guy was a guy. He was
sorry he’d caused her grief. He now realized he hurt her whenever he spoke to
other women or let his joystick get out of control. But she had to understand that he was a
horny bastard and proud of it. Women turned him on, but he would never be
unfaithful to his lamby-pie. Ever. If only he had another chance… Thunder rumbled in the distance, pulling
Sam from his thoughts. Great. Just what he didn’t need. Another night of
standing in the drenching rain on the Disdaine triplets fucking front lawn
smack in the middle of town. Since being held prisoner here, he’d been soaked,
spit at, and peed on, not necessarily in that order, at least a dozen times a
day. Him! The man who was once in charge of
the entire forest that surrounded this pitiful community. To think that those
nasty triplets had laughed at him while they told him how they planned to take
over his territory. When he caught those miserable creatures, he was
going to turn them into toadstools. Or gnats. Or maybe three blind mice. Then
he could feed them to a cat. That would certainly fix their dirty little
wagons once and for all. More thunder had him raising his eyes,
the only part of his body he was able to move easily. How could it be flood
weather when he could see stars in the remarkably clear sky? Then again, this
was Brokenoggin Falls, a place where the curious happened on a daily basis.
And the citizens liked it that way. He glanced around the lawn and sighed.
There were a few other gnomes spaced apart on the grass, but Sam felt certain
he was the only one that had a heartbeat. Still, he felt sorry for them,
mainly because the kids in town sometimes used the garden gnomes as
skateboarding cones or goal posts. Sam had yet to see his exact form, but
imagined he appeared very much like the rest of them: short and stocky with
flowing white hair and a beard to match. Not to mention ugly. Only with him, the rhinestone-studded
thong he’d been forced to wear as a crown was now somewhere down around his
neck. And the humiliation continued… Besides being the Disdaine triplets
titillation du jour, people passing by pointed and laughed. Teenagers spit on
him. And the dogs, werewolves, and other assorted townsfolk used him for their
own personal port-o-potty. He’d enjoyed egging them on, until he’d seen Claire
and started experiencing this strange freeze-form existence. It was enough to make a once powerful and
commanding troll cry. The thunder grew to a deafening roar. He
heard screaming, then watched helplessly as a few of the party goers who’d been
living it up in the Disdaine’s garden came running frantically from the back
yard. Then he saw the reason why. With hooves flashing in the darkness,
wild horses thudded from the far end of the estate. And leading the charge
were those miserable spoiled brats, the banes of his existence, the boils on
his ass: the Disdaine triplets. Riding bareback on the lead beasts, the
spawns of Satan were screaming at the top of their nasty little lungs, shouting
with glee as they trampled, ripped apart, and generally destroyed whatever they
plowed over. Sam winced when he saw a few of the
plaster gnomes smashed to smithereens. In an instant, he was knocked flat,
certain he’d be ground to powder. He held his breath, closed his eyes and
waited… *** Sam awoke to morning sunshine and a
headache the size of Lake Michigan. Lying on his side, he couldn’t move a
muscle, and there in front of his nose sat the top of his once pointed head.
He’d been spared the powder crushing, but he’d definitely been flattened. He
was probably the only person in Brokenoggin with a truly broken noggin. He wriggled, trying to make his muscles
work, but nothing happened. He was well and truly stoned. His only hope was
that someone, maybe Janice Drinksalot, the town constable, or Earl Choo, the
mayor, would be along to survey the damage that had certainly spilled into the
town center. Instead, the pack of roaming Chihuahuas that had recently arrived
in the area descended and used him as a pissing post. Footsteps in the distance told him a
savior might be at hand. Rolling his eyes upward, he saw a woman ambling
toward the square, reading a yellow book as if she had no idea of the
destruction. Sam could only see her legs and the top of her head, bent in
concentration as she strode slowly in his direction. When the woman reached the square, she
raised her head and glanced at the trampled lawn. Emma Mincemeat, one of the
few normal—if there was such a thing—residents of Brokenoggin Falls, frowned as
she stopped and sat on the only bench that hadn’t been decimated under the
Disdaine triplets vengeful romp. Sam remembered that Emma, a nice woman
who had migrated here from Brooklyn with her husband and twelve—count ‘em twelve—children,
always wanted to fit in when she was, in actuality, one of the village
misfits. “Hey, Emma, it’s me,” thought Sam, throwing her a silent
plea. Maybe she would stand him up, dust him off, and glue back the top of his
head in order that he regain a shred of his former dignity. She raised the book up and the title
became clear. Emma was reading Witchcraft for Dummies. He imagined it
probably was her latest, and surely her most worthless, attempt to ‘fit in’. Just then, Emma set the tome down and
took a second survey of the lawn. Raising a brow, she ran her gaze over a
gnome broken in four or five pieces. Her eyes darted to another and its
decapitated body. Heaving a sigh, she finally looked at Sam. “Oh, you poor thing,” she said aloud.
Walking over, she stood him on his tiny flat feet. To Sam’s mortification, his erection
sprang to life. Immediately, he reminded the miscreant body part that it was
getting the hots over a mother of twelve, for Goddess’s sake. That was all it
took to make the offending member calm and allow him to enjoy the moment. Emma swiped a tear from her eye.
“Someday, those rotten triplets will get their comeuppance. At least, I hope
so. In the meantime, not one of my children is going to be allowed near them
and their crazy, misguided, and altogether evil ideas. Ladies of the Forest
Trolls, indeed.” She tsked again. And then she did
the unthinkable. She picked him up and carried him to the bench like a baby,
where she cradled him in her arms. Wonder of wonders, though his body was
frozen stiff, the force field that had kept him on the lawn was gone. Sam felt Emma’s heart beat against his
shoulder as she brushed the dirt and grass from his wizened face. “Poor Sam,” she whispered. “Someone
should do something to help you.” She ran a hand over his flat head. “It’s not
so bad, really.” Then, with a twinkle in her eye, Emma sat
him beside her on the bench and again perused her book. Smiling, she picked it
up and began to thumb through the pages. “Bring boils…bring frogs…bring warts…”
she muttered. “Bring hail…bring a hurricane…bring rain…” She turned the
page. “Bring to life,” she said with a grin. Then she gave Sam a forlorn
smile. “Do I dare?” Sam worked to give his eyes an
encouraging expression, but feared the attempt was lost on Emma. Then he
realized the enormity of the situation and changed the look to one of denial.
She wasn’t a witch. She was a no-talent mortal. She was reading a book written
for dummies for Goddess’s sake. No telling what might happen to him if
her spell or incantation failed. He wasn’t ready to be her experiment! Besides, once Sam realized Claire had put
the spell on him, he assumed she’d be the only one who could set him free. But
getting help from Emma? The one Brokenoggin citizen with the least amount of
magical ability…? That was stretching it by a mile. Emma closed the book and stood. Then she
tucked it under her left arm and hoisted Sam under her right. Turning, she
headed in the direction from whence she’d come, mumbling under her breath as
she walked. *** Emma
arrived at the clock tower and knocked as politely as she could with a book
tucked under one arm and a two-foot garden gnome wedged under the other. She
had never made a house call to any of the citizens of
Brokenoggin, but Sam’s predicament was too serious to ignore. Besides, she
was married with twelve children. It wasn’t right for her, a happily married
woman, to allow a rift to continue between a husband and his wife—at least, not
if she could be of some help. She’d
seen the anger and pain in Sam’s eyes and the despair and plea for forgiveness
in Claire’s the day the two had last met, and knew they were both sorry for the
things they’d said. Sam and Claire just didn’t know how to put things back the
way they were—no, better than the way they were—and begin again. “Who’s
there?” came a timid, breathy voice from behind the heavy oak door. with the book faced the tower. “This had
better be important,” said Claire, peering through the narrow opening.
“Because I’m really not up to entertaining visitors.”
“May I come in?” asked Emma, who prided herself on being polite, even under duress.
Claire narrowed her baby blue eyes. “Is this a trick?” Emma crossed mental
fingers. “Not really. But I do have something you need to see.” Shrugging,
Claire stepped back and opened the door. Emma slipped inside and leaned on the
door, slamming it shut. Then she turned fully. With a hand to her mouth,
Claire gasped. “No…please take him back. I can’t bear to see my Sammykins in
that horrid condition.” She held her hands to her lovely face. “What have I
done? Oh, what have I done?” Emma’s
heart swelled with pride. Her suspicions were correct. Claire did love her
husband. Now if only Claire could reverse the spell, all would be well. She
marched through the hall with Claire wailing from behind. When she reached the
kitchen, she set her book on the table, then did the same with Sam. Claire’s
eyes grew round as dinner plates. “His head! What happened to Sam’s head?”
Walking around the table, she eyed him from the top of his flat crown to his
gnarly toes. “Why does he look like as if he’s made of plaster? And how did
you manage to remove him from the Disdaine’s front lawn?” “I
don’t know why he’s stiff as a board, but I suspect it has something to do with
being able to bring him through that force field. I can tell you this. Last
evening, the triplets rode the night mares and wreaked havoc through the entire
town. I suspect Sam got caught in the upheaval and had his head trampled.
You’re lucky he wasn’t smashed to pieces or decapitated.” “What
have I done?” cried Claire, pulling Sam to her chest. When she held him to her
ample bosom, his erection sprang to life. Giggling through her tears, she
stepped back and threw him a sappy look. “Oh, Sam, you naughty troll, will you
ever change?” “Surely
whatever you’ve done can be undone,” said Emma, pleased to see that Claire was
showing her husband a little sympathy. “Something tells me he’s had time to
think about all this and he’ll have that nasty projectile under better control,
once we free him from the spell.” Claire’s
beautiful face grew red. Her eyes leaked tears as she shook her head. “I
can’t.” that I wished he would
suffer. He was always poking fun at the garden gnomes, so I imagined one of
them in my head and the next thing I knew—” she snuffled a watery sob “—he
looked like this.” Emma sat down with a plop and opened her book to the page
she’d turned down. It was time to find out whether or not she’d gotten her
money’s worth. “I found a spell…” she began. “You did? Truly?” Claire rushed
to read over Emma’s shoulder. “I’m not a witch and neither are you. Perhaps we
should call on Claudia or Gerda—” “Don’t be stupid. The last time they got
together at Maria’s to cast a spell they blew up her kitchen. This is merely an
incantation, no ingredients or dynamite. I say we try it ourselves.” Claire
worried her lower lip. She’d missed her Sammykins these past few months,
missed him so terribly she couldn’t even come to the triplets’ house to look at
him. The one time she had, they’d argued in front of strangers, which had
humiliated her further. She wanted her husband back, but only if he promised
to behave. “I
have conditions,” she stated. problem.” “So look him in the eye. Last
time I checked, that’s where I saw a spark of life.” Folding her arms, Claire
gave her husband a thorough examination, and couldn’t help thinking how much he
resembled a piece of garden statuary. His face was set in a scowl and his arms
stuck out rigidly at his sides. The only part of him that appeared different
was his flat-as- the-bottom-of-an-iron head. Then she gazed into his eyes and saw a
tiny drop of water creep from the corner of the socket and onto his rounded
cheek. Her heart lurched in her chest. “Are you still alive in there, Sam?” He blinked, but she could tell it took
quite a bit of effort. “Emma,” she said, still staring at Sam.
“I think he’s fading fast. If we don’t do something…” “I agree. So finish what you have to say
while I go over this spell again.” Claire focused on her husband’s eyes. It
was too painful to look at him fully. “Sam, I want you to promise me there
will be no more poking fun at my chest.” Sam’s eyes moved up and down. “I’ll take that as a yes,” said Claire.
“And there will be no more erections for any woman, except me.” Again, his eyes went up and down. “And no more fighting. I hate it when we
fight. We don’t have to agree, but I want to talk over our differences in a
rational manner. You cannot continue to sing that stupid lumberjack song to
annoy me, or shout out slurs in front of strangers.” This time, his eyes moved more rapidly in
agreement. A feeling of hope fluttered in her chest.
“I’ve come to realize that I, too, need to make a few promises in order for
this marriage to work. For one thing, I’m going to try to control my temper,
and be less…harpish.” She sighed. “And I promise to work on
expanding my bustline. Since you seem to find my boobs deficient, perhaps Emma
can find a spell that will make them bigger.” “First things first,” muttered Emma,
still perusing the book. Claire grinned when Sam’s eyes moved
‘yes, yes, yes’ in a frantic motion. Bending forward, she kissed him full on
his grim lips. “I’m so sorry, my darling. But we’ll make it right.” She
turned to Emma. “I’m ready whenever you are.” *** “Ah, this is the life,” said Sam sometime
later. He gazed at his beloved, who was smiling as she sat across from him on
their picnic blanket under an oak tree in the woods. “Naked, with the woman I
love, and fully sated. It can’t get any better than this.” He and Claire had thanked Emma and raced
here, to the forest, as soon as the spell had been lifted. Then they’d made
love, ate, and made love again. He grinned when his wife gazed down at her
bountiful breasts. “You’re sure they’re not too small?” she
asked in a breathy little voice. “Because I’m willing to let Greta or Claudia
experiment, if it will make you happy.” Sam reached out and ran a finger over one
budded nipple, happy to see it pucker at his touch. Claire shivered and he
smiled. “I don’t want anyone, especially those idiot witches, doing anything
to your perfect body. If they do, they’ll die.” “What are you planning to do to the
Disdaine triplets?” she asked, snuggling closer. “What would you like me to do?” “Something righteous, but nothing cruel,”
Claire answered. “They are only children.” “Hah! Children of the devil. I’m planning
to speak to their parents. If they don’t discipline those girls, the town will
do it for them, and I’ll lead the charge.” “Those rampaging Chihuahuas have made a
mess of the city’s streets. How about a week of picking up dog droppings?” “Make it a year.” Sam’s smile grew wide.
“And they have to do it with their bare hands—no pooper-scooper.” “Sounds like a plan.” “I say we take it to the next Brokenoggin
town council meeting, first.” “Can I go with you to the meeting?” “Of course, you can. I promised you we
would never be apart again, remember.” “Oh, Sammykins,” said Claire, squirming
when he cupped her breast and bent forward to suckle the tip. “You do such
wonderful things to me. I love you so.” Sam’s penis grew to its full length,
prodding Claire’s belly as it begged for attention. She reached between them and caressed the
rigid digit with both hands. “Maybe we should leave? Someone might find us,
and I’d be so embarrassed if they did.” He used a knee to part her legs and slid
into her, sheathing himself fully in her moist, silky heat. “Let them see us,”
he said, kissing her. “I don’t care.” Settling himself atop her, Sam pumped his
hips, slowly at first, then with abandon. Claire arched beneath him and met every
thrust. When her cries of pleasure turned to her harpy wail, she didn’t change
into her other self. Instead, she gazed up at him and drew him to her lips
where their tongues tangled in a duel as old as time. He drove her to the brink of exquisite
madness, and she did the same to him. And Sam finally realized the secret to
taming a harpy. Episode 1.19 DOROTHEA’S WIZARD By Jennifer St. Giles Episode 1.19 Dorothea’s Wizard By Jennifer St. Giles “Well, Yodo, this isn’t Kansas or
New York.” Sheltering her toy poodle from the drizzling mist with the edge of
her cherry-red jacket, Dorothea Davenport tentatively followed the ebony brick
road leading to Dr. O. Zexton Zinclair’s residence. She hadn’t considered rain as a factor
when she’d concocted her plan to meet the author of Pleasure Potions. A
flat tire on her rented Jaguar, courtesy of a well placed nail, and one dead
cell phone for show would hopefully gain her entrйe into the recluse’s home and
make use of her nearby, bodyguard driven limo unnecessary. But she hadn’t
realized that the town of Brokenoggin would resemble an adult Jumanji either,
dogs as large as wolves running loose, women wearing hopeful expressions and
Victoria Secrets best but least lining the streets, and a fanged man parading
around naked while the sheriff sat in her cruiser ogling rather than
arresting. This place wasn’t just over the top, it was stratospheric. And none
of it compared to the unfolding scene before her. Droplets of water dewed her skin and
dampened the silk of her dress, giving her an eerie chill that stood at odds
with the increasing, sultry heat of the surrounding air. She’d noted the
change in temperature the moment she’d passed through the gargoyle studded
gate, but at first attributed it to nervous exertion. Now she wasn’t so sure.
The further she intruded, the stranger her surroundings became, and the warmer
the air turned, reminding her more of a tropical beach than a late afternoon in
Michigan. Even stranger still were the ghostly tendrils of Spanish moss hanging
from the twisted branches and the tangy scent of sea flavoring the breeze. Her
heart beat double to the click of her red heeled boots and her cherry slick
mouth went dry as the dark, spire-ridden mansion rose from the shadow of the
gnarled trees. Yodo yipped in protest and she brushed a
comforting hand through his dark curly fur. “It’s okay boy. If there had been
anything unsavory about Dr. Zinclair, I’m sure Dr. Susan wouldn’t have mentioned
meeting him or the successes he’d achieved in his clinic before dropping off
the face of the earth.” But then Dr. Susan claimed Dorothea’s anorgasmia was a
self imposed response to her material rich emotionally bankrupt life, like a
patient with hysterical blindness or amnesia. Deep inside, Dorothea supposedly
didn’t believe herself worth loving and couldn’t accept a man’s love. The
sexual dysfunction had cost her a marriage and two other relationships, and she
wasn’t going to give her heart again until she conquered her problem, no matter
what. And she was determined to find the answer before her thirtieth birthday,
which, according to the ruby studs on her watch, gave her twelve hours to get
the elixir the AMA—not the FDA—had banned and make her day. Clutching Yodo and her red leather bag
closer, Dorothea quickened her pace. The blending of stone and iron in the
mansion bred a monolith filled with forbidding shadows and hidden threats, but
none were as dark as the one clouding her life. The faint strands of a sexy
instrumental tune thrummed in the air, informing her that someone was home.
Drawing a bolstering breath, she marched up the steps and rang the doorbell,
nearly jumping from her skin when theme music to “Jaws” surrounded her. She swung in a circle, catching herself
looking for an approaching menace of yawning teeth before stopping and then
sighing with self-disgust. Undeterred, she rang the bell persistently, and
followed each echoing sound bite with a firm rap on the lion faced brass knocker.
“See, Yodo, how’s that for courage.” Sweat now beaded her brow, adding to the
dampness of the humid rain. The temperature near the house was like that of a
steam sauna, forcing her to slip off her jacket or grow faint from the heat,
but even the droplets of rain hitting her bare shoulders and sliding beneath
the halter-top of her dress provided little relief. After five attempts to
rouse someone from the mansion, she decided to follow the music and walk around
to the back. Grass and fecund earth gave way to diamond bright sand that
immediately swallowed her heels as the sight before her boggled her mind. A
vast, misty playground of turquoise pools, lush vegetation, and waterfalls
stretched for acres. “Beware, beware, beware.” The squawking
warning came from a large green and gold parrot perched on a nearby cushioned
lounge chair big enough to pass for a bed. Yodo, yipped and squirmed to be let
down. Realizing that any forward motion would only occur bootless, Dorothea set
Yodo down and sat on the damp sand. She unzipped her boots as she kept one eye
on Yodo who sniffed a circle around the turning parrot. They seemed to be
sizing each other up, more curious than antagonistic, so she decided to let
Yodo walk. She stuffed her jacket and boots in her bag and left her red fishnet
thigh highs on to keep some semblance of formality. If she wasn’t careful, she
could easily find herself naked and comfortable in this kind of heat. The music played softly over some sort of
surround stereo system, providing her little help in locating what she hoped
would be Dr. Zinclair. As she moved down the beach, the rain turned to mist
then stopped. It wasn’t until she reached the edge of a steamy pool with Yodo
close behind that she saw him. A naked and sun bronzed him. He stood beneath
the spill of a soft waterfall less than ten feet to her left with his back to
her, a scarred back. The whitened skin of lash strokes crisscrossed his back
and whipped across her heart. Dear God, what had happened to him? Who’d carried
out such a barbaric punishment upon him and why? She clenched her fist as the
urge to soothe long healed pain coursed through her, making her almost forget
why she’d come to him. His muscular arms held onto a bar over his head, and as
she watched, he pulled his lean body slowly up, lowered himself, and then
repeated the motion several more times as rivulets of water poured through his
dark hair and down his tanned body. She stepped silently back, planning to
return to the man’s porch and wait, but couldn’t quite stop watching his
powerful, fluid movements. He was pure sensual magic in action. “What in the hell do you want?” he asked,
suddenly dropping from the bar and turning to face her. His snarling deep voice
had more fear impact than the “Jaws” theme and the dark countenance of his
sharp brow, determined nose, and square jaw were just as threatening. For the
first time she wondered if maybe her desperation to know a moment’s pleasure
was going to cost more that she was willing to pay. Really? She asked herself. Could she
resign herself to an anorgasmic fate or would she rather die trying to change
it? “I need help. My name is Dorothea and
this is Yodo. My car has a flat.” She spoke the lie lamely. “Right. Dorothy and Toto. And I’m the Tin
Man. You’re in the wrong place, lady. Get lost. Go back to Kansas.” He turned
his back on her and grabbed the bar he’d been exercising on. “I’m called Thea. My cell phone is
dead!” she shouted, feeling the bite of tears sting her eyes. Had she really
thought it would be so easy? Can I use your phone? And by the way, aren’t you
the man who wrote that book? I have this friend who really needs help. Surely
you could sell me a bottle of Nymph. Desperation had a way of making any
action sound good. Yodo, buried closer to her ankle, trying to comfort her. “Do us both a favor, lady. Drop the
pretense and just leave. I don’t have what you’re looking for.” “Are you Dr. Zinclair?” “Not any more. Get lost.” Dorothea exploded. “I want an orgasm
before I turn thirty tomorrow. You had a clinic. You helped women like me.
Dr. Susan praised your success rate. All I want is to buy a bottle of Nymph
and I’ll leave.” He laughed, turning to face her again.
“Do you really want the drug? Are you willing to take it regardless of its side
effects?” “Yes,” she whispered, her heart
hammering. “Yes,” she said louder. “I can’t live this way anymore.” His humor died. This time he stepped
into the pool and strode toward her, unashamedly naked. Not that he’d had any
reason to hide anything. His assets rivaled her trust fund and appeared to
ready make any deposit he wanted to. She had to fight to keep her gaze
somewhat aimed at his face. A feat that grew less difficult as she met his
intense gaze. Long ebony lashes framed sea-green irises, creating a
mesmerizing study of light and dark. He stopped when his arousal brushed her
silken covered stomach, making her gasp at the shock of sensual heat lightning
through her. It was unlike anything she’d ever experienced. Her purse slid
from her grip and landed on the ground. She considered backing up, but
didn’t. Yodo yipped then sounded like he jumped into her purse for a nap,
something he often did whenever she went shopping. The tangy scent of salty air
gave way to the doctor’s heady cologne, something that urged her to breathe
deep and relish. “Since we’re being so truthful here,” he
said, his deep voice vibrating sensually. “There is no Nymph. It was nothing
more than a concoction of brandy and peach liquor.” Dorothea shook her head, refusing to
accept his answer, or back away from him. “No. You cured women, made them
whole, normal. How?” Instead of answering, he smiled, slowly,
sending another fissure of heat right to an unfamiliar, almost clenching core
inside of her. Grabbing her hips, he pulled her tightly against his erection,
pressing hotly to her damp silk. Then he ran his hands up to brush the sides of
her breasts, stopping where the cut of her halter covered her soft skin. Dorothea gasped as her hips automatically
pressed to him. “How?” He lifted a dark brow. “Usually
counseling worked, but on rare occasions when it didn’t, my touch did. I made
love to them, Dorothea. I’m the drug.” To prove his point, he slid his thumbs
beneath her top and flicked them over her nipples. She gasped as the tips
hardened beneath the assaulting tingle of heat his touch gave her, a tingle
that lingered long after he’d moved his hands back to her hips and stood
looking at her, waiting for her reaction. “Cure me,” she whispered, finally. Every
ounce of her agonized desperation echoed in her voice. She’d come this far, and
at this point in her life she was ready to try anything she hadn’t before, even
sex with a charismatic stranger. His grip on her hips tightened, but he
didn’t move. He just stared at her and she saw both indecision and a shadow of
pain flicker in his eyes. “What if I chose not to? Do you think that I don’t
pay a price? Besides the toll on my own body and soul to be used for sex,
there’s no guarantee that tomorrow you won’t wake up in the same condition.” Shamefully, tears filled her eyes and she
took a deep breath, edging back from him. “You’re right. I’m sorry.” She’d
given no thought to him, only of herself. He released her hips and she averted her
gaze to stare out over the water and falls, as she desperately tried to come to
grips with her situation. “How is all this possible?” “Brokenoggin’s hot springs, a lot of
ingenuity, and a little magic,” he said the last in a wry sort of tone that had
her glancing back at him for a moment. He was looking at her as if puzzled, but
her pain at having to walk away into anorgasmia was too great to try and figure
out what he found so odd. “I’m sorry to have disturbed you, Dr. Zinclair.” “Ozz,” he said. “I go by my initials.” She laughed sadly. “So you’re the
wizard?” “That’s right.” She reached for the handle of her bag
where Yodo napped. “And Dorothea is going home.” He caught her hand.
“That’s it? You’re willing to walk away from your heart’s desire after coming
here?” “I’ve no right to assuage my pain by inflicting it on others. Besides,
from the looks of your back, you’ve suffered enough. What happened?” “A curse
I’m powerless to avoid,” he said, softly, running his finger across her palm
and then up her arm. “Take your dress off, Dorothy. I’ll take you to OZZ.” She
gasped from the pleasure and the tenderness in his touch. “Thea,” she said.
“Dorothea.” She meant to ask him what he meant by a curse, but forgot as his
hands splayed over her bare skin. “Dorothea,” he whispered in her ear.
Spreading fire with his touch, he slid his hands to the nape of her neck and
pulled the tie of her halter loose. The damp silk fell away, exposing her
breasts. Her nipples tightened, this time just from the intensity of his gaze
as he looked at her. He moved behind her and a shiver followed the path her
zipper took down her spine. When she stepped from the puddle of her red dress,
she wore only her thigh high fishnet stockings and a matching thong. Dressing
as sexy as possible and becoming comfortable with her own body were at least
two positive results from the years she’d spent in therapy. She went to slide
down a stocking. “Leave them,” he said gruffly. “Come with
me.” Taking her hand, he led her into the water that seemed to cool and warm at
the same time as it swirled around her legs and lapped at the flesh between.
Reaching the cropping a rocks and waterfall she’d first seen him under, he
patted a large flat rock that was about hip high to him. “Climb up here and sit
on the edge facing me.” She gave him a questioning look, yet did
as he asked, surprised to feel that the rock wasn’t rock, but some softy spongy
foam. Once settled, she met his gaze. The “now what?” on the edge of her
tongue disappeared as he slid between her legs and kissed her, his tongue
gaining entry into her mouth as his arousal pressed intimately against her lace
covered sex. The moment she shut her eyes, the fireworks and heat disappeared
as a familiar numbness and a killing anxiety raced through her. She froze. “Open your eyes, Dorothea. Don’t close
them again. To get to where you want to go, you have to fill yourself with
me. The sight of me pleasuring you and you pleasuring me, the feel of me
touching you and you touching me, the taste of me on your tongue and the taste
of you on mine, the smell of me in your soul and the scent of you burned into
mine. I’m the drug you need to drink, eat, and, inhale.” He kissed her again and she kept her eyes
open, at first fixed on the mesmerizing passion in his gaze then watching his
hands palm her breasts, kneading them to aching points that his mouth covered
and sucked. She filled her hands with the silk of his hair, the slick feel of
his water-beaded skin, and the supple heat of his flexing muscles as he slid
off her thong. Running his tongue down her stomach, he
hooked his thumbs into the edge of her thigh highs, but instead of pulling her
stockings down, he used the leverage to lift and spread her legs, opening her
sex to the searing heat of his mouth. She shuddered as pleasure rippled
through her. On fire, her hips arched to him, forcing her back to her elbows.
Her eyes fell shut and suddenly the pleasure stopped. She remembered her
condoms were back on the beach in her purse and a thousand other thoughts
intruded. “Watch me, Dorothea,” he demanded. She
opened her eyes and he slid her knees over his shoulders, lifting her hips
high, giving her no choice but to see his mouth devouring her. When he reached
up and plucked her nipples, a coiling tension began to build inside of her and
spread, catching her pulse and her breath, rushing them forward, leaving her
gasping and writhing and more on edge than she’d ever been before. “Please,” she cried, reaching for him.
“I need…” He lowered her back to the padded rock.
“This,” he said, snapping his fingers and a half dozen foil packets appeared in
his hand. She sat up and stared at him, taking a
condom from him. “How did you do that?” “Magic,” he said. She glanced around to see where he could
have a box stashed, but he slid his finger up her thigh and along the groove of
her sex to flick at the swollen spot that throbbed to feel more. He was
beautiful in a dark, rough, majestic way. Intense eyes, shadowed jaw,
determined brow and nose, jutting, demanding erection. He was so purely
masculine that he made her feel utterly female. Breaking open the condom, she ran her
hand down the rippled muscles of his stomach, feeling his abs clench beneath
her fingers. But before she put it on him, she met his gaze, lifting her mouth
to his and kissed him softly, thankfully, tenderly. Pressing him back, she
slid her hands over his shoulders and the flat disks of his breasts, enjoying
the dark silky hair smattering his chest and tapering down his stomach. The
ridges of scars on his back, gave her pause, and she pressed her hand against
them. “I’m sorry for your pain.” He groaned as she cupped his heated sex
in her hand. She bent, pressing her lips to his sensitive tip and swirled her
tongue softly around him. She could feel his racing pulse throb in his shaft
beneath her fingertips and she took the satiny, hard heat of him into her
mouth, tasting him, wanting and needing to pleasure him, to excite and comfort
him all at the same time. He pulled her up, kissing her deeply,
more searchingly than before, as if he were now trying to connect with her
soul. Then he eased the condom from her fingers and covered himself. Sliding
her hips to the edge of the foam rock, he opened her with his fingers and drove
inside, filling her completely. She tensed, suddenly afraid that what she
wanted to happen, wouldn’t. “Don’t close your eyes, Dorothea. Lie
down and watch the pleasure. Yours and mine.” He pushed her back and hooked
her knees behind his hips. Moving slowly, he eased almost, but not quite out
of her and pressed slowly in, again and again as he flicked his finger over the
tender hot spot of her sex. The coil of tension inside her curled tighter and
tighter, sending her heart racing and stealing her breath. His gaze met and held hers. “Come with
me. Ride with me. Let yourself go, free your body, mind and soul to feel
nothing but the hot pleasure burning through us both. Pleasure that is going
to wipe everything from your mind.” His deep voice vibrated through her as if
he entered her mind, taking away every thought but her need and feel of him.
He captured her and nothing mattered but what she felt with him. Her hips met
the thrust of his faster and faster as a whirlwind of passion spun her around
and around. Her toes curled, her muscles clenched and…and… “Now,” he demanded, thrusting deeper than
ever before. “O, O, O,” she cried, her body shuddered
with the orgasm that erupted through her. “More,” he said thrusting again, driving
another fissure of pleasure into her heart. Moving his other hand to her
breast, he pulled gently on her nipple and sent her sky-rocketing higher. “Oh
God,” she screamed as white hot pleasure seared her soul. His body shuddered forcefully against
hers and he fell forward, bracing his weight at her sides and resting his head
against her chest. She wrapped her arms around him, pulling him closer, though
he was closer to her than anyone had ever been. Then his body tensed, jerked,
and he exhaled forcefully as if in great pain. In fact, Dorothea, could feel
the pain ripping though him into her. “Oh God,” she whispered. “What just
happened? I feel your pain. Did I hurt you?” He lifted his head, surprise and deep
pain in his eyes. His arms trembled at her sides. “What do you mean, you feel
my pain?” “You’re hurt. I feel a burning pain
inside me almost as great as the pleasure.” He rose up and pulled himself from her
body, leaving her bereft, taking both the pleasure and the pain. “You must go
now.” He braced an arm against the rock as if needing help to stand. The color
had washed from his face. She sat up, and on shaky knees, eased
into the soothing pool of water, turning to him with her hands on her hips.
“No. Not until you tell me the truth. Not until I know how I hurt you. I’m
not blind and something has.” He stared at her for a long moment, then
reached out and brushed a shaky finger down her cheek. “You are different.” He
smiled sadly. “I can never experience pleasure without pain. The greater the
pleasure, the greater the pain. My pleasure with you was greater than ever
before.” Dorothea shook her head, not wanting to
believe him. “How? Why?” He snapped his fingers and a soft robe
appeared in his hand. “I’m a wizard and it is a curse from the realm of
magic. It has nothing to do with you or what you did.” She took the robe and tossed it on the
rock, amazed and still unsure if she believed in magic, but wasn’t going to be
distracted from his pain. Then it hit her and emotion deep and strong gripped
her, squeezing into her heart. “You knew this before, yet you still…made love
to me.” Then she saw a slight discoloration in the water behind him. “Turn
around.” “Dorothea, it doesn’t matter. You got
what you came here for, now just go.” “No. Never.” Pulling on his arm, she slid
around to see his back. A fresh, deep laceration crossed from shoulder to
shoulder. She gasped, tears filling her eyes. “How long has this been
happening to you?” “All of my life.” Moving to face him, she cupped his rough
cheeks in her hands and pressed a soft kiss to his lips. “Is there a way to
break the curse?” He wrapped his arms around her, pulling
her tight. “Not that I have found. I’ve learned to live alone and minimize my
pleasure.” “I live alone and had no pleasure,” she
said, pressing closer to him then plunged headlong into the emotion filling
her. Her whole life seemed to zero in to this moment. “Can I be your pleasure
and share your pain?” “Why? Because there is magic in my
touch?” “No, because there is magic in what I
feel for you after just so short a time. I’ve had everything in life except
for real love. If there is a chance that love can grow from this, I can’t walk
away no matter how great the pain.” Groaning and leaning
down, he kissed her deeply, as if searching through to her soul. Careful not
to hurt him more, she wrapped her arms around his waist, responding with her
heart. Heat, pleasure, and his arousal grew between them. She pulled back. “You’ll hurt yourself.” He smiled. “I’ll heal. Right now, I want
you more than anything else.” “Then let me make love to you.” She
patted the foam rock. Climb up here.” He lifted a questioning brow, but did as
she asked. She grabbed a condom, slid it lovingly on his erection. Then
climbing up, she straddled him, guiding him inside her, and the magic began
again, taking her to an even greater peak as bits of her heart again followed
OZZ to heaven, whipping intense pleasure through them both. The pain hit in
the last throes of her climax. She gasped and tensed, crying at its strength.
He tried to push her away, but she clung to him. “No. I’ll share your pain.” He groaned pulling her closer to him, as
tears filled his eyes. “God help me, but I cannot deny you. I need you.” Suddenly, the world around them spun in a
dizzying circle, catching them up in whirlwind, tearing them apart. He reached
for her, but the second their fingers touched, he disappeared. “No!” she
shouted to the whirling wind, feeling as if she were being ripped apart. “No! I
love him! He’s my heart’s desire. You can’t take him!” She landed on the beach next her bag,
where Yodo yipped at her. She was clothed again, dress, jacket, boots on—even
her thong, which had been floating in the pool the last time she saw it.
“Ozz!” she called, immediately searching for him. He stood under the
waterfall, naked. His back to her. A back with no scars. “Can you hear me?
What happened?” He turned, smiling, stepping from the
shower of water. “I think you broke the curse.” “How?” “Brokenoggin is a magical place but—” She clicked her heels and laughed.
“There’s no place like Brokenoggin.” “You didn’t let me finish.” He walked
toward her and didn’t stop until his erection brushed the silk of her dress.
“But you’ve proven love is stronger than magic.” She grabbed his hips pressing harder
against his hot arousal. “Are you sure the curse is broken?” “Let’s go inside and find out.” He swung
her up into his arms and she wrapped her arms around his neck. “By the way,” she said, as he strode
across the sand. “What is your name?” “The truth?” “Yes.” “My mother, being a naughty witch from
Brokenoggin had a wicked sense of humor. Like you, she was anorgasmic until
she encountered my father. She named me after that encounter. Later in life I
added the T-O-N to Zex and Zinclair.” Dorothea gasped. “She didn’t.” “She did.” “Orgasmic Zex?” He reached the huge, cushioned lounge
chair and dropped her on it. “I’d thought you’d never ask.” He stripped her in
seconds and in minutes proved himself worthy of his name. This time no pain
followed the pleasure. Dorothea had found her wizard and her home. Episode 1.20 SOULLESS FROM SEATTLE Or The Big Bad By Fiona MacLeod & Terese Ramin . Episode 1.20 Soulless from Seattle (aka The Big Bad) Written by Terese Ramin With background story &
extra characters by Fiona MacLeod Seth stretched in the late
August moonlight and scratched around the Duct-tape-and-Goop patch on his itchy
chest. With his other hand, he reached around to scratch the identically
patched opposing area in the middle of his back. The edges of Janice’s blunt
nails slipped gently under his on his back. “Here, let me,” she murmured
huskily. Briskly, she rubbed the area all around his wound while he continued
to massage his chest. “Must finally be healing if it’s this uncomfortable.” Seth shook his head, didn’t
look at her. “I think the hole’s getting bigger and the riot bullet’s
slipping.” Janice’s fingers stilled. Her forehead dropped to his shoulder in
silent protest. He rested his cheek against her hair. “I’m sorry, but I can
feel it, Janice. A little jab in the right place and…” Her “no” slipped out
before she could stop it. She wasn’t a panicky person, or at least not one good
at showing it, but he’d come for her, done for her, been there for her in ways
no one ever had in her two and a half plus centuries, and… It had only been a summer,
but she loved him. “What can I do, Seth? Ask
anything—take anything, my soul, my heart, my blood…” “I don’t drink blood,
Janice,” he reminded her patiently. “I don’t remember why—exactly—but
we’ve established that. It’s disgusting. See, I wrote that right here…” He
showed her the bright red laundry marker caps on his left forearm where he
couldn’t possibly miss it that read: NO MATTER HOW FAR MY FANGS EXTEND, I DO
NOT DRINK BLOOD. YUCK! Her slow, wry smile kissed
his arm. “Not to drink, idiot, in a transfusion. It’s shifter blood, were
blood, ancient tribal blood. The regeneration factors are strong. Joe
can do it for us. Maybe…” She stopped. Grabbed his arm
and swung him about. “Wait,” she said in a voice that Seth knew meant she was
excited. Used by anyone else no one ever would have guessed they’d changed
expressions. “You said you don’t remember exactly. Does that mean you
remember sort of?” “Ah…” Seth cocked his head
and took stock of the muddle his brain had become ever since his arrival in the
unconsecrated section of Brokenoggin Falls Community Cemetery after Nihil
staked him with the Womanized two-by-two— “Holy shit,” he swore. He tugged on the much-washed
Levi’s 505 button-flies Janice had given him so he wouldn’t have to wander
around town naked and embarrassed by the huge and constant hard-on any thought
or visual of her seemed to produce and caught her hand. “Come on.” “Wha– Where…?” Janice hung back, trying to
catch up and pull on her own clothes as he tugged her along. Seth might not
have remembered telling her that since he’d found her in Brokenoggin’s cemetery
he wanted to make love to her for the next century, but his body certainly did.
“The Falls.” He halted long
enough for her to put on a bra and T-shirt, tug her pants over her hips and
grab her boots. “Huh?” Bewildered she splayed a hand
across his abdomen to steady herself. He responded the way he always did:
instantly, by drawing her into the deepest, most drugging kiss she thought
she’d ever die and go to heaven from, and falling into it with her. This time, though, when her
boots hit the floor, startling them both, he called them back from heaven. Resting his forehead on hers,
he scraped his thumbs across her cheeks. “Later,” he promised. Then he picked
up her boots, reached for her hand, and pulled her out the door. “Which falls, and what’s at
them?” Seth opened the driver’s door
of Janice’s personal vehicle—an old military jeep—and ushered her in. “The high
end of Brokenoggin Falls where not even the Gryphons or the Wyverns go.” Realization hit Janice like a
freight train. She swallowed hard. Seth nodded. “I know,” he said simply.
“Your beast, the secret, who you are, why I came here, where I came from, what happened that night, who the
finger bones belong to, the only thing that will save me…I remember
everything.” For a minute Janice gazed at the night shadows, carefully thinking
nothing. Then she turned over the ignition and the jeep roared to life. “Get
in and let’s go,” she said. *** Nihil and the few skeletons
that weren’t recaptured, laid to rest or revealed and forgiven in the currently
destroyed version of episode thirteen watched from the rocky hillside nearby as
Janice’s jeep pull out of her isolated, wooded driveway onto the highway. “Hunh,” Nihil ventured.
“Looks like I’m not the only one got my memory back.” Unable to speak, the
skeletons rattled their bones together and flapped their jaws in a gruesome
semblance of laughter. The one missing the finger bones Trevor Fairweather had
dug up then re-hidden gesticulated wildly at the moving jeep, itself, then
Nihil, clearly making a statement of things they needed to get cracking and do.
The barrel-chested vampire waved off the skeleton impatiently. “All right, all right. Hold your pelvis
together, Leroy, climb aboard, we’re goin’.” Thus invited, the skeletons
clambered onto Nihil’s back and shoulders. The vamp took a few warm-up steps
downhill after Janice’s jeep then started to run. Fast. *** Simon Drake, chief of the
Naga—Seattle magick’s deadly police force—and next in line for the throne of
the Principality of the Mists (as long as he found himself a soul within the
next few months) stepped out of his rental car in front of the Chat ‘n Chew.
Leaning this way and that, he tried to stretch the cricks out of his back.
Irritated when the simple isometrics didn’t work, he straightened. What the
hell use was being undead if he still got stiff from traveling? It was a damn
long way from Seattle to Brokenoggin Falls, with no direct flights, and way too
many connections—Dallas, Denver, Minneapolis, Marquette…and then he’d gotten
stuck in this damned compact Honda when he’d wanted a full size Town Car or
something even bigger. A Hummer would have done. He glanced around
Brokenoggin’s marginally deserted streets under the bright light of the
melon-colored full moon. Something about the place creeped him big time.
After working Seattle’s iniquitous Underground nothing should do that. Especially nothing as
innocent as this innocuous little hamlet. Suddenly three werewolves and
a were-panther still on its way to full change burst out the door of the Spiked
Pig Saloon across the street and ran off howling into the forest behind the
parking lot. From out of nowhere a pack of yapping Chihuahuas dashed excitedly
after the weres, tumbling over each other in their haste to keep up with the
larger beasts. Down the middle of the road behind them galloped a
panicked flight of Night Mares, whinnying in fear. And after them came a
pissed-off Centaur wearing a pink tutu, ballet slippers, a ruffle-covered jock
and a daisy chain harness, and bearing three snickering, identical-looking
eleven-year-old girls on his back. Simon was just about ready to
recant his thoughts about the “innocent, innocuous little hamlet” when three
identical-appearing adult women witches with substantial bosoms and a naked
witch man spilled out of the Chat ‘n Chew. Two of the women immediately
started arguing and fell to the parking lot gravel wrestling and pulling each
other’s hair. The third stamped her chastised them, hauled them apart and got
them moving again while the male witch observed it all in a state of
semi-arousal. Then all four went off into the woods to—if Simon heard
correctly—“dance naked and anoint the early harvest moon with fertility
spells and couplings.” Okay, yes. Simon grimaced.
He, Simon Drake, soulless vampire, bound by oath to protect if not serve
magick’s powerful—and oftentimes cruel—aristocracy truly thought he’d seen
everything. But apparently Brokenoggin Falls had a thing or two to teach him. So maybe Seth wasn’t out of
his mind when he’d talked the wild crazy about all the legends surrounding this
place. Maybe this was the only place a vamp like Seth could find his twainnoctu—soul
mule, the person born to carry a vampire’s soul until he found and mated with
her. If Nihil hadn’t killed him yet. Growling
at the thought, Simon strode to the door of the Chat ‘n Chew and stepped
inside. He’d find his brother, by God, if he had to destroy every last
resident of Brokenoggin Falls to do it. *** The forest night was alive
with shadow and sound the way forest nights always are: a rash of insects
sounded off here, a chorus of frogs there; the sough and sway of the tall
cedars and pines wove erratic patterns across clear patches of ground, teasing the
imagination to strange thoughts. Ahead, upper Brokenoggin
Falls gurgled and rushed, shaping hill and stone, carving its path into the
lower, grander falls and the loch below. Though he’d never been here before,
Seth stepped surely along the treacherous trail that led to the upper falls,
tugging the even more sure-footed Janice along in his wake. At the edge of the forest
they paused. “Look.” Seth pointed at the
melon moon. “The moon’s full again and I haven’t lost my memory.” Janice smiled tremulously.
“That’s good.” She didn’t sound sure. At least when he lost his memory with
each full moon she had a chance to shift and start over in her best skin with
him instead of having him remember what she looked like by the end of the moon
cycle: a little more dumpy, somewhat older, a lot less fresh… “Hey.” Grinning slyly, he
slid a hand up under her T-shirt to cup a breast that would be a great deal
perkier after she shifted. “I like the puppy ears. They speak to your wisdom,
intelligence and longevity, and those are all things I want in my mate.” “Ummm…” Janice squirmed
uncomfortably, though her body was certainly behind the erotic things his
fingers were doing to her flesh. Then, stunned, “Mate?” Seth pulled off her shirt and
bent to nip her ear with his fangs. “Of course. You carried both our souls for
close to three centuries, who did you think you were if not my beloved, my
mate?” “Uh,” Janice mumbled panting,
“Just Janice. Tribal scourge, pariah, cursed were-thing, keeper of the beast,
town cop and jailer, and virgin for all time.” “Hmmm,” Seth murmured,
dropping to his knees to plant pinprick fang bites down her belly while he
stripped her out of her pants. “Hardly.” He tongued and nibbled the sensitive
skin of her inner thighs, knowing exactly how to drive her mad. “You’re the
mother of my unborn children, and the only creature in the world who can help
me get back my heart now that you’ve given me my soul.” “Seeeeetthhhhh…whaa-aaat?”
On the verge of losing all sense of what he was talking about and giving
herself up to the pleasure of simply having him, Janice yelped. “Children?”
Pleasure forgotten, she shoved his mouth away from her mons. “What the hell
are you talking about? I’m menopausal.” “Pausal,” Seth said
earnestly, scrambling after her, “but not yet fully paused.” Janice wrinkled her eyebrows
and fish-mouthed him. “Are you nuts?” she managed finally. “I’m two hundred
and sixty-something years old. I look fifty…ish. I don’t care how hot you are
or how much I feel for you, I can’t have your children. I can’t have anybody’s
children. I wouldn’t know what to do with ‘em. I’d be a disastrous mother. I
don’t have enough imagination to raise kids. Why every time I see the
Disdaine girls all I want to do is turn into the big bad wolf and eat
them. And Emma’s kids? Hell no! And they’re good kids even if they do see dead
people. Even Amy Fairweather and Destiny and Chi-chi Hopewell aren’t up my
alley. So what the devil would I do with vampyre-ancient-tribal-were-beast
mixes, Seth? Tell me that.” When he stopped laughing long
enough, Seth chased her down where she’d stalked off to when he started
laughing—the upper falls lowest whirlpool—took her hands and again knelt before
her. “Janice, Janice…” A chuckle
threatened him. Heroically, he swallowed it back. “You wouldn’t have to do
anything with our kids except bear them. Then you can go straight back to work
and I’ll stay home with them.” Janice regarded him
suspiciously. “I’m sorry. That doesn’t fit with this all-alpha-all-the-time
vampyre image you’ve been showing me all summer in between bouts of amnesia—not
that I mind it from the alpha thing from lover standpoint, you understand.
It’s just that I’m not sure I can accept your word about the other from the
I’m-an-alpha-bitch-wolf-and-the-only-cop-in-town standpoint. And I really
can’t let people fuck with me because as a cop they tend to try to lie to me a
lot so I’ve got a few trust issues—if you catch my drift.” Seth’s lips twitched. “All
right. Let’s just say that I’m a whole lot of alpha with gamma rising, and
that’s why I seriously don’t fit into the whole Seattle Underground scene,
which is only part of the reason I left it. The main reason was you, just like
I told you that first night—” “Sethanimus Drake once of the
Daimonos aristocracy, now condemned for treasonous behavior,” a hard, heavy
voice roared out of the night. Whipping around fast, Seth
shoved Janice behind him. “Annihilation Jones,” he called back, voice
thunder-deep and storm-savage. “I thought you were dead.” “After you, noodle fangs,”
the thinks-fast-with-his-weapons-but-not-with-his-brains vampiric hitman said. The sound of running feet and
rattling bones surged across the damp earth toward Janice and Seth. With an
oath, Seth shoved Janice hard away from him and turned to meet the onslaught. “Now would be an excellent
time to trust me with your other beast,” he suggested, “the one you haven’t
turned loose for almost three centuries. Because it looks like I could use a
little help.” Then he leaped forward to
engage the Naga’s annihilator and his vicious Brokenoggin allies: the leftover
skeletons from AnnMarie’s closet. *** The Forest Trolls were having
a party. It wasn’t every day that the
last full moon of August arrived full and melon-ripe, heralding September and
Labor Day on the immediate horizon, which meant, like death and taxes, the
certain return of the Brokenoggin Falls school year. School meant Strictly
Enforced Bed Times, and Strictly Enforced Bed Times meant no more Disdaine
triplets to wreak havoc upon them at all hours until All Hallows—unless some
witch threw in a Sabbat they’d forgotten about, and the Disdaine parents let
the triplets attend that in between times. Forest Trolls preferred to
forget things that weren’t in their best interests to remember. Life made a
better—and longer—rock-out! that way. “Come, my little harpy
pelican,” Sam Stalwort, Lord of the Forest Trolls, beseeched his wife Claire.
“Let down your taloned birdy feet, release your wings and screech for me. You
know how I love it when you screech your harpy song when we join…” A short distance away in a
far less private glade other FTs danced and cavorted more openly with each
other and the lesser forest elves and pixies who’d come to join them,
uninvited. The taller, aristocratic Elves would never be caught dead,
unconscious or drunk near a gathering of trolls—Forest or otherwise. Faeries,
on the other hand… Morgan-Titania-Morganna
flitted lightly among the revelers, pausing now and again to dip up a drop of
troll ale—dreadful stuff, unless one added a drop of faery nectar to it, then
it totally rocked. She’d done her hair up in a rather violent shade of
neon chartreuse and was a little nervous about showing it to her lover, Joe. He
seemed to stand in awe of everything she did, no matter how potentially
disastrous or unsuited to her complexion, but she worried nevertheless. She
was his Queen, and it had still taken so long to get his attention… Of course that was because he
was so shy to begin with, the big, darling, macho fey. Going into the half-swoon she
feigned every time she thought of their first kiss, and then their first time
together back in her madeover tool shed at the bottom of the Fairweathers’
garden, Morganna didn’t he/she was flying. Consequently she flew straight into
the chin of a larger-than-life vampyre who clapped his hand around
her/him and brought her up to eye level. It could probably go without
saying that the vampyre didn’t look happy to see her. “What are you doing
here?” Simon Drake asked. Morganna posed in the middle
of his palm, arms akimbo, and drew herself up to her full height. “I might ask
you the same thing, vamPYRE. I’m the Faery Queen and I belong here. You’re
not Seth, so you don’t.” “You’re not the queen,” Simon
said rudely, “you’re a guy.” Morganna fluffed her hair and
dangled her queenly ring hand in front of him, suggesting he might want to kiss
it. “I beg to differ. Ask anyone who the fey Queen is hereabouts and they’ll
tell you, it’s me.” She stomped to the edge of Simon’s palm and shook her fist
in his nose. “And call me a guy again and I’ll stick my chartreuse
stilettos so far up your snout you won’t be able to sneeze for a week.” Simon’s lips compressed
either clamping back an ill-advised grin or a frown. “I see,” he managed at
last. “And that would certainly be unfortunate.” He swallowed a few times as
though digesting something difficult. Then, finally as light dawned, “Did you
just mention Seth? A vampire?” As was usual for most places
outside of Brokenoggin Falls, Simon did not emphasize the second
syllable in vampire but put slightly more emphasis on the first, less
combustible syllable. Morganna changed her hair
color to hot Titania red and switched her clothes to battle black leather and
tall boots. “Maybe.” Fists on her straight hips, she stuck out her square chin
belligerently. “Who’s askin’?” “His oldest brother, Simon
Drake.” Simon tipped his head. “I haven’t seen him for three months, but I
finally tracked him here. If he still…exists…I’ve come to bring him home.” He
hesitated while the unaccustomed words stuck for a moment in his soulless
craw. “Or at least save his worthless hide.” *** The battle along the edge of
upper Brokenoggin Falls raged up and down, back and forth, in and out. From
forest to grassy glade to rocky whirlpool to slippery streambed, Seth and Nihil
fought hand to hand and foot to face, fist to chin and jaw—grappling, bobbing,
weaving, dancing and wrestling. Stripped naked, Janice fought
the skeletons three-on-one, first in human form, then in wolf. She chomped
their bones in her great, wolfish jaws, shattered femurs and ulnas, radiuses
and thighs— destroyed cervical spines and ripped apart rib cages. But the
skeletons found a way to piece themselves together and keep coming. Especially the one with the
missing finger bones. It warred savagely, used its
sharp, bony digits to try to score her pelt and tear it away. She bit and
slashed at it, but it did not give ground, parried every move, wearing her
down. Devoid of flesh and muscle,
it had less weight to carry and memory weighed little, adrenaline born of the
thirst for revenge counted for much. Janice was disadvantaged by her desire to
survive, her thirst for life. Her adrenaline surge was half concentrated on
Seth and her desire to make sure Nihil didn’t destroy him. The skeleton knew that. With the few teeth left in
its jaw it bit down into her wolf shoulder and hung on even when she yelped and
shook its skull free of the rest of its bones. “Your beast, Janice.” Seth’s
deep voice, faint and fading. “Loose your beast. It’s now or never. Use it to
save us both.” Tortured by doubt and in pain
from her wounds, Janice tried to see where Seth was, how he fared. She saw him
give Nihil a swift roundhouse kick to the side of the head and then snap back
and reach stiff-fingered for the other vamp’s chest. At the same time, Nihil
came back from the kick and aimed a powerful punch straight at the Goop-and-Duct-tape
patch in the center of Seth’s chest. “No!” Janice howled. She lurched sideways, away
from the skeleton fray, and lunged madly across the slick ground toward the
vampyres. There was a sickening, sucking spluurrtch of sound and Seth’s
hand drew back from Nihil’s chest full of something pulsing and reddish. At
the same time Nihil’s fist connected solidly with Seth’s chest, sent the rubber
riot bullet bouncing out of his back and into the upper falls with a sploonk-plop.
For a moment time paused long
enough for everyone to register shocked surprise, then the vampyres fell
backwards away from each other, Seth holding Nihil’s heart aloft, while Janice
started to scream and change… *** The minute the…whatever it
was started to scream, Simon whipped around, his heart cold with dread. The
Seattle Underground was full of tormented pieces of magick, but none of them
sounded like that. “What’s that?” Morganna blanched and went
from her Titania red and battle black leather straight back to the alarming
neon chartreuse hair and shocking lime and purple dance outfit she’d been
trying out before Simon showed up. “I’m not sure.” She flittered about
Simon’s palm making sure her strappy chartreuse “do-me” pumps were strapped on
securely. “But whatever it is, it sounds like it’ll need a vet in the very
near future, so I’d better get mine.” So saying she fouffed
her hair, dashed to the edge of Simon’s hand and flew off at speed. Open-mouthed, Simon stared
after her until she was almost out of sight—at which point he thought to ask,
“Wait! Where…?” “The falls,” Morganna shouted
without looking back—or at least that’s what Simon thought she said. “Get some
trolls and meet me at the faaaalllss…” “Trolls?” Feeling deeply out of his
depth, Simon looked around at the drunken, troll-ish revelers. Then he gazed
in the direction from whence the horrible screams came. Sized up the situation
and weighed the possible abilities of drunk Forest Trolls against whatever the
bellowing wounded thing might be against his brother’s existence and what he
knew of Annihilation Jones’ capabilities. And turned and loped off
toward the screaming beast alone. *** There was, Simon realized
almost at once, something wholly magnificent about the monster and the way
she—it could only be a she—protected and defended his brother’s inert body on
the treacherous shoreline beside the stepping-down falls. Part wolf, part dragon, part
demon—or so she seemed—she fought with fury and fire, crushing bones to powder
under her feet, crunching them between her jaws or swallowing the pieces
whole. The skeletons—Simon could see they were skeletons, and that both
stunned and frightened him because Seattle, for all its savagery was still more
civilized than this—fought bitterly. They re-formed with whatever pieces were
left, battled to get around her, to reach Nihil and the bloody, dripping piece
of him clutched aloft in Seth’s unmoving hand until, nearly exhausted, she
captured the last metatarsal, gleefully chewed it up and swallowed it. Then she turned her wrath on
Nihil’s body. A wrench of her huge, clawed
paws tore of the hitman vamp’s head; a gulp and it was gone. Simon watched in
fascination while she destroyed what was left of Annihilation Jones’ body—
devouring certain bits and burying others deep at a distance from each other.
A small pile she even set aside and coated in her apparently acidy wolf-dragon
demon venom; it disintegrated into a residue of damp reddish-brown chalk that
she ground into the bank beside the falls with the pads of her feet. Finished at last, she swung
her head around to look at Seth. Her grief was palpable. That’s when Simon finally
realized he hadn’t made a move to help his brother. It’s also when he knew what
his brother held clenched in his hand: Nihil’s heart. He could still smell the
blood pulsing through it. It was alive. That meant whatever was wrong
with Seth, there was still time to save him. Galvanized by the thought,
Simon started forward. The great creature heard him. Her head swung in his
direction and she positioned herself defensively over and around Seth and
despite the glittering tears in her eyes she growled. “Whoa, baby.” Simon went
still. “I don’t want to hurt him. He’s my little brother. I’m here to help.
Just let me help.” Clearly not in the mood to
believe anyone she didn’t recognize, the monster took two steps forward, thrust
her muzzle at Simon and pulled her lips back in a deeper, more menacing, more convincing
growl. “Oh dear Goddess and her
seven sisters,” someone behind Simon swore softly. “What the holy Sam Hill is
that and where did we get it from?” “You ask me,” Morganna said
brightly, buzzing up beside Simon to size up the situation and flitting away
again, “That’s the beast Janice’s been hiding all these centuries. Or
maybe…” She fluttered to the ground
in front of Simon and took a few mincing steps forward. “Janice, honey, is
that you? You’re looking awfully snarly tonight, you don’t mind my sayin’.
Did you and—oh my sweet Jimmy Choos, Seth!” With a come-on flick of her
hand behind her, she darted forward, straight under the beast’s massive muzzle
to light on Seth’s shoulder and peer closely into his face. “Dear Goddess,
Janice, no wonder you’re upset. Why the boy’s on his last legs! Joe, Joe!
Get up here my beautiful, darling lover and do something this
instant!” She shoved at the
dragon-wolf-demon’s foreleg. “I know you’re worried, dear, but you’re going to
have to move and let the veterinarian in to have a look at him. Come on—” she
hopped down and patted the ground beside Seth’s head. “You sit right here and
hold his head in your paws. Ooooh, and look at those tears!” She flew up,
pulled off her hat—a cunning little number if she said so herself, just right
for searching out Janice-beasts and misplaced vampyres—and collected a single
diamond tear. “If I know my folklore, this’ll be the perfect thing to help
heal a transplanted vampyre heart…” *** “…And that, children, is how
daddy got to be the first vampyre to ever have a heart transplant in the
history of the known universe as well as Brokenoggin Falls.” “Cool,” Karen Thinksalot
sighed. “Awesome,” her brothers
Michael and Leroy agreed. “But what about the finger
bones?” the youngest Thinksalot, Andrew asked. “And Uncle Simon?” his five
minutes older twin sister Delores put in. “Well,” said their father,
who’d been better than his word about the staying home with them part, and even
happier when Janice shyly asked if she could stay home with them sometimes, too,
“Remember how your mother first found out about her beast and everybody got
scared and made her hide it?” All the young Thinksalots
nodded. They’d heard the story before, of course, but it tended to get better
with age and telling. “The finger bones belonged to
the first man who tried to slay her. She bit them clean off in battle. Her
family never forgave her for it because that man was an important tribal chief
who wanted to marry her. But she knew she was made for me and couldn’t
possibly marry anyone else, so she fought for her honor and virtue like a
demon—” “Until she turned into one,”
Karen finished excitedly. “I can hardly wait until that happens to me.” “Well…” Seth cleared his
throat as Janice walked into the room and made a gagging face at him. “I think
you’ll find if you ever reach that point, darling, that you’ll wish it happened
any other time than when it does.” “No I won’t,” Karen said
firmly. Janice shuddered
theatrically, then announced, “Bed time.” She reached for a twin. “But Uncle Simon—” “Is in Seattle and has his own story for
another time.” “And then there’s the part about daddy becoming a Thinksalot
instead of you becoming a Drake…” “Because I’m Indian and our group is matriarchal which means the
men marry into my tribe instead of the other way around,” Janice said
patiently. “You would think I’m explaining this to a television audience the
way you like this story repeated.” “We just like to keep the facts straight,” Michael told her. Brokenoggin
Falls blue moon and briefly contemplated what interesting things puberty might
have in store for them in a few years when they found out exactly what kind of
creatures they’re vampyre/ancient-tribal-werewolf-dragon-demon beast might have
created. And then they got right down to the bare facts
of things and fucked each other’s brains out.
Bewitched, Bothered &…Be-Vampyred… By
www.triskelionpublishing.com Published by Triskelion Publishing www.triskelionpublishing.com
15508 W. Bell Rd. #101, PMB #502, Surprise, AZ 85374 U.S.A. First
e-published by Triskelion Publishing First e-publishing April2005 ISBN 1-933471-00-X Copyright © Mary Jo Putney, MaryJanice Davidson, Vicki Lewis
Thompson, et al…March 2005 All rights reserved. PUBLISHER’S NOTE: This is a work of fiction. Names,
characters places, and incidents are the product of the author’s imagination.
Any resemblance to persons living or dead, business establishments, events or
locales is entirely coincidental. Edited by Terey daly Ramin
& Gail Northman Cover design by Michelle Rouillard For anyone in need of an escape
from harsh reality, a good dose of laughter and a random act of kindness
anywhere, anytime This is for you. Triskelion Publishing is pleased to announce
that 100% of the advances, royalties and digital profits from the sale of this
eBook will be donated directly to the International Red Cross to aid the
victims of international disasters. 100% of the advances and royalties from the
sale of the print and other editions of this work are also earmarked for
donation to the International Red Cross to aid the victims of international
disasters. The Legend of Braugh-Naughton (Or: How Brokenoggin Got its Name) By Jennifer St. Giles Within
the verdant forest boughs Once a man of brawn and valor Renown, the great Braugh Naughton Until he met a maiden so fair But she to another was chained So
hidden in the forest boughs “I’ll fight to the death to save you maid,” At sunrise, they did duel And
when the battle turned its favor To
this day, and forevermore The
wizard’s magic became not his own For The lady fair with the silver hair And
the great Braugh Naughton Who
for his lady love he cries Episode 1.0 Series Premier NAKED CAME THE VAMPYRE By Terese Ramin Episode 1.0 (Premiere) NAKED CAME THE VAMPYRE By Terese Ramin i: Janice Now Entering BROKENOGGIN FALLS
NATIONAL FOREST RESERVE AREA For
Your Own Safety Please Observe The Following: .
• Remain
in your locked vehicle at all times; Do not leave it under any circumstances .
• Keep
windows rolled up & doors closed .
• Keep
hands, fingers, feet, heads and all appendages inside your vehicle without fail
.
• Do
not — Repeat, DO NOT — pick up strangers within or near the reserve; they are
always strange and NEVER harmless .
• Encouraging
the residents is strictly forbidden .
• In
case of emergency — SCREAM! Someone will be right along to investigate the .
• Enjoy
your stay & have a nice day! Janice Thinksalot swept the headlights of
her rebuilt Chevrolet Caprice police cruiser across the wood-burned
sign in a broad arc when she made the shoulder-to-shoulder yoo-ey back into the
confines of her patrol jurisdiction. Michigan’s scenic highway 28 was darker
than usual, she realized, the sky starless despite the clear night. There was also no moon. She grimaced. Boded ill, that. No good
ever came of a fine, cloudless, moonless summer night without stars in
Brokenoggin. You could be sure of it. Fine hairs on preternatural alert, Janice
powered down the Caprice’s front windows and sniffed the air that flowed
through. Pine, spruce, cedar, fir, sand, loam, rich forest decay, moss, wild
turkey… She turned her head quickly, eagerly
after the bird scent, muttered an oath and snapped her attention back where it
belonged. Damn it! She was not out here to dog turkeys no matter how
much the thought made her mouth water and her belly grumble. She was on
Periwinkle Moon Patrol (the literal color of Brokenoggin’s third full moon of
each and every month), and there was a lot of potential mayhem left for the
Falls’ area’s sole town cop slash police chief slash medical examiner slash
sheriff-jailer-forest ranger-state smokey to handle. Not to mention that she was having a
little trouble with her own inner beast lately. She glowered at the black upon black
non-reflection in the inside review mirror. Came of starting to look—and
sometimes feel—fifty-ish, no doubt. Sag-to-the-knees boobs, cottage cheese
thighs, scraggly chicken neck, jaw jowls and all. Damn it. Vanity, thy name be Janice, she thought dryly, rolling her eyes.
Nothing like a long night and a lot of empty blacktop to send a person’s
thoughts down the least attractive inner roads. Speaking of which… She made an abrupt turn onto a narrow
fire road thickly bordered by old growth forest. Gray sand grabbed the
Caprice’s tires, caused its butt-end to slew before the car settled into place,
straddling the scrubby-growth weeds and grasses between the tire tracks. In the darker-than-darkness, Janice
switched off her high beams and gave the suddenly lighter shadows on either
side of her a thorough appraisal. If she remembered correctly, the Lord of the
Forest Trolls (LOF-T, as his royal annoyance was also known) had called a
meeting of all the forest creatures for tonight to see if they could determine
who was throwing trolls into the sunlight and turning them into stone Garden
Gnomes. Maybe— Whump! The sound of something hitting the
Caprice’s roof and bouncing off the light bar startled Janice in a way she
hadn’t had her heart jumped in a very long time. One hand already on the door
handle and the other on the shotgun ever-ready in its rack on the front seat
floor hump, she stamped on the brakes and jammed the cruiser into park with a
free finger even as she hauled the shotgun out of the vehicle with her. For a few moments night bloomed, then… “Yooooooowwwwwl, yaaaa-haaaa!” “What the—?” Reflexively, Janice snapped on the
shotgun’s safety, let it slide through her hands until she could use it like a
fighting staff, and crouched, rising when instinct told her the timing was
perfect to smash the huge, slavering male wolf hurtling down upon her across
the jaw. The blow brought the beast to earth in fine smack-down mode,
whimpering and howling. The darkness shimmered slightly and the
wolf-shifter’s—for such he was—human face formed first. “Hot damn, Janice.”
The rest of his naked human body emerged quickly. “What the hell you tryin’ ta
do, eh? Lighten up, eh? I’m just havin’ a little fun.” “At someone else’s expense, Remo.”
Janice returned the shotgun to its meant-for position and thumbed off
the safety. She stepped up close and prodded her—what was he, maybe seventeen
times removed?—relative in the balls with the twelve gauge’s business end. “I
keep tellin’ ya, mess with me when I’m on the job and it’s your tail—bushy or
human at the time, makes no difference to me.” Remo shrugged, unfazed by her threats or
the shotgun barrel’s location. “It’s Romeo now, ya know, Janice. Romeo
Bighorns. I changed it legally on my centennial. And I think the ladies
around here would miss me sure ‘nuff.” “Privately—” Janice gave the shotgun a
little shove around the soft parts, and Remo-Romeo flinched. “I think there’s
something you’d miss more than they would. Eh, Remo Nohorns?” “Mmghtp gbftohs ghriop,” her
not-removed-far-enough-from-here cousin muttered under his breath. “What was that?” “No wonder you don’t have
any friends, you menopausal old bitch,”
Romeo enunciated clearly, but very, very sotto voce. Janice blinked once, then smiled her
toothiest and most menacing law enforcement I-am-so-sure-you-didn’t-say-that
smile, tipped her head and viewed him sideways, eyebrows lifted. “Again?” “Uh…” The self-named Lothario shuffled
quickly in place. “I said, maybe I better pick up the garden gnome someone
pitched at my head before it bounced off your whoop-whoop bar and get in the
back-a your cruiser and let you drive me over to AnnMarie’s—which, by the way,
is where I was headed before someone tried to kill me—so I can shore up the
door to her skeleton closet before they get out and all manner-more-a hell
breaks loose—” “Janice, Janice!” The radio inside
the Caprice cruiser squawked to panicked life. “You’ve got a
sixty-seven-eighty-two with a possible six-six-six in progress in the
unconsecrated sector of Brokenoggin cemetery grid forty-nine. I repeat
six-seven-eight-two with possible six-six-six in unconsecrated sector
four-niner, Brokenoggin Falls cemetery. This is not a drill. Repeat, no drill.”
“Sixty-seven-eighty-two?
What the…?” numbers.
Then, with maddening calm, Janice dropped the shotgun barrel dirt-ward and went
to reach through the cruiser’s window to retrieve her radio mike. Unhurriedly
she brought it to her mouth and pressed the on button. “Get a grip and say again, Hesther,” she
instructed Brokenoggin’s volunteer dispatcher. At four-foot-three-inches,
Hesther Bellhallow was a petite Medium of largely interesting-repute who felt
it was only smart business on her part to know everyone else’s. How else could
she be expected to properly traverse the spirit world and give them accurate
readings? “It sounded like you called an Apocalypse in the cemetery with
Undead walking. Over.” “Vam-PY-res, Janice,” Hesther gibber-shrieked. “On
unhallowed ground. Walking. Fighting. Stabbing each other with two-by-twos or
four-by-fours or something big and pointy and wooden. The end is coming, I’ve seen
it! If you don’t get back here and do something about it, we’ll all be undead
in our beds and having wild sex by morning.” She stuttered uncertainly to
a stop on the last pronouncement, sounding as though she might be rethinking
the entire this-is-bad-because?…scenario. With a population of only five
hundred and sixty-seven (sometimes), Brokenoggin Falls’ singles scene often
left something to be desired. “There’s no such thing as Vam-pэres,
Hesther,” Janice said reasonably, accenting the ‘Y’ in Pyres exactly as
Hesther had, and making it sound as though the whole “undead thing” had more to
do with funeral pyres than Vlad-the-Impaler or bats or Dracula legends. “We’ve
discussed this. The dead can’t be not. Over.” “Well,” Hesther sobbed, “something isn’t dead that should be,
and it’s walking around with a great big long piece of lumber through it’s
chest right where its heart should be. If that’s not a Vampyre, I don’t know
what isss—” The last word broke off abruptly. There
was the sound of scrambling and clattering, then clattering and scraping—as
though furniture was being dragged across a wooden floor—then Hesther was back,
more hysterical than ever. “It’s coming, Janice. It’s coming right
here. OmiGoddess, what am I going to do? You have to help me, you have
to—Janice?” And then
she screamed. Resigned, Janice dropped the mike. “Oh
shit.” She had time to gesture a thumb at the Caprice and say, “Bring it in for
me, eh, Rom—” before the elements that ruled the atmosphere surrounding
Brokenoggin Falls swirled her up and whisked her to Hesther. When the sign said, “In case of
emergency scream and someone will be right along” it meant literally. 12 It also meant Janice. ii: SETH Scream re-entry was rarely precise and
often painful. Janice was never sure if she’d enter a
scene of chaos and mayhem, wind up flattening the person who’d screamed, or
landing head first at the source of the scream’s cause. All too often she found
herself only half-dressed and ill prepared to deal with the situation—which was
no doubt why she felt like she’d been cursed with the position as town sheriff,
lo, those many moons ago. Literally speaking, she had been cursed—and cursed
but good—by her entire tribe after they’d caught her attempting to free… The Beast of Brokenoggin Falls. Now she was its—and the town’s—guardian,
jailer and ward. It was a damned lonely and thankless job,
and she… Well, she disliked it. Strongly disliked it. But it did have the occasional perk. Now, for example, when she arrived out of
the scream summons sprawled across the southern half of the sexiest naked torso
she’d ever seen—er, felt—in her life. Considering that was some two
hundred fifty-ish plus at least eighteen puppy years or so… For a split second, it occurred to her to
wonder why the guys who dropped into Brokenoggin Falls after midnight never
seemed to be wearing any clothes. Then she saw that, sure enough, Hesther had
called it spot on, there was definitely a four foot two-by-two staked through
the center of Studly Gorgeous’ chest and he was, by all that was holy, not
dead, which left him… Undead, in the flesh. And he appeared to
be fighting to stay that way. Something unfamiliar trickled through
Janice. An emotion, perhaps, or something even more rare and therefor more
frightening and exhilarating and connected to her long unused and oft-rejected
libido—or possibly both. She didn’t know and it didn’t matter—she didn’t stop
to analyze it because she rarely stopped to analyze anything. In less than a
heartbeat, she chose sides and acted. Right hand wrapped around the
twelve-gauge barrel that had apparently survived the jump cradled through her
elbow, she put her left had down between his magnificent rock hard, tree trunk
thighs to push herself erect. It landed on a long, thick, equally solid and
very alive something. Startled, she looked down then up into bold eyes
the color of the night sky, rimmed by the longest, densest black eyelashes ever
created. Surprise and wry amusement sent black eyebrows fleeing upwards toward
the tumble of curly, jet hair mussed over his forehead. Embarrassed, Janice moved her hand.
Teased, the cock thickened and came to greater attention. “Not now, Janice,” a voice one shade deeper
and six shades sexier than Barry White’s rumbled, “I’m busy.” He shoved her upright, used the momentum
and a tug from her to haul himself after. “But I promise—” He dropped a full-of-tongue kiss on her
open mouth (an awkward move, what with the stake protruding from his chest and
all). “—we get through this without dying, do
something about this thing in my chest, and—” He pulled her to the side and blocked an
imprecise round of flying stakes with an upraised arm. “—we’ll go somewhere and screw for a
century because that’s how long I’ve been searching for you, my entire life and
beyond. You’re the only one who can make me whole. You complete me—” A volley of rocks and arrows fell around
them this time, followed by a barrage of bottles filled with… Janice tasted the
droplets that fell on her. Water? The gorgeous, not dead being who’d been—
according to him—searching for her forever and who’d just promised to fuck her
for a century and who… Wait! Janice stopped dead in the middle
of the action and gulped. What had he said? He knew her name and she completed
him? Was that a movie line? She didn’t watch a lot of movies; with so many
people screaming around Brokenoggin and whisking her wherever, she didn’t have
much chance. But no. Even if it was a line of some
sort, the object of her instant infatuation still hadn’t let go of her hand.
And just as an object of unknown origin came hurtling toward her face, he once
again yanked her out of the way, reached out and snatched the missile out of
the air. It was another of the small, water-filled
bottles. Janice’s Undead looked at it, snorted in
disgust and flung it back from whence it came, growling, “Holy water, Nihil? As
I lay dying the first time, they baptized and named me with the stuff. If it
doesn’t work on you when you begged the demon to make you a vampyre, what
idiocy makes you think it’ll work on me when I fought like hell not to?” “Yet here you are.” The voice in the
darkness was oily and unholy, a poisonous thing crawling down Janice’s spine.
Of all the unnerving creatures that resided in Brokenoggin Falls, Janice knew
there’d never been anything as evil here before as what she faced now. She
retrieved her captured hand and unhinged her right elbow, slid the shotgun into
place, even as the voice continued, “Still a vampyre, Seth, one of the damned,
in love with a legend that doesn’t exist.” The voice was closer now. Night
vision tuned, Janice could just make out the too-pale outline of a
human-looking face above a powerful-if-beer-bellied, leather-clad, biker-built
form. “Where there is no beast, there can be no beastkeeper. If she doesn’t
exist, you can’t save her nor she, you…or anyone.” “Brave words for a bloodsucker about to
be put down by the myth herself,” the naked, staked hunk called Seth roared. He
looked over his shoulder at Janice, bloodless face alight with faith and
fervor. “Do it, love. I’ll run interference. You raise the beast they’ve forced
you to deny for centuries, and annihilate the very devil they’ve sent to
enslave us all.” Then he flung himself forward, straight
at the murderous Nihil. The Hell’s Demon threw back his head, laughed and
raised his deadly crossbow, and the unconsecrated earth quaked beneath their
feet. Grave markers shifted, the earth opened wide, unleashed the slavering
hounds of hell. From wherever she was, Hesther Bellhallow
screamed and screamed. Clueless as everyone but Seth and the
vampyre demon he called “Niall” seemed to be about what was going on Janice
nevertheless tucked the twelve-gauge tight and leveled it. The hellhounds bore
down on her, but she stood her ground, concentrating on not hitting the first
male person or thing to ever call her love, to ever come looking for
her—no matter how insane he might be—or to know her name without ever being
told. It was the sort of fairy tale every little girl dreamed about no matter
what manner of creature she was, and no woman could quite bring herself to stop
believing in no matter how many centuries she lived or how inactive her tamped
down libido became. In the middle of disaster, he acted like
he full on believed in her so crazy or not, how could she not believe in him
back? She started to squeeze the shotgun’s
trigger at the same moment that a scream-leap jerked at her when someone
elsewhere within Brokenoggin’s borders shrieked in terror. “Not now,” she swore, but the jolt had
already joggled her aim. She tried to correct and fire again
quickly, before she was whisked completely away from the scene, but Hesther was
screaming again and the two scream-needs crossed wires somewhere in the magick
ether and— Seth cried out and fell
blunt-stake-end-first across Nihil who looked simply stunned and dropped
without a sound. The hounds of hell closed on the spot where Janice was last,
snarling and snapping, a freak thunderstorm sprung out of nowhere, and— Janice crashed butt first onto the light
bar atop her rebuilt Caprice cruiser, breaking it, and causing
Remo-Romeo to swerve off the highway and into a ditch outside the gates of the
Brokenoggin Community Church cemetery, consecrated section. Then chaos really
broke loose. *** iii: Janice & Seth Later, when things died down, (meaning
when Janice finally got back to the scene of the Vampyre Brawl and pumped a lot
of spelled hemlock-and-foxglove loaded shells into things that didn’t normally
reside in Brokenoggin Falls, and Remo changed into a werewolf and dined on what
was left) Joe the town’s veterinarian and general practitioner (who better to
look after werewolves and other…preternatural…creatures?) arrived on the scene
to minister emergency aid to the survivors and supervise the disposal of the
dead. “This is bad,” Joe said, eying the
cemetery full of upheaval before going down on his knees beside Seth. He gave
the four foot two-by-two stake a gingerly stroke. “This is very bad.” He looked
up at Janice, trying hard to be stoic and unemotional and cop-like on the
vampyre’s across from him. “I thought we’d decided there was no such thing as
Vam-Pэres.” Janice shrugged. “Myths and legends,” she
said. “We harbor all the myths, guess now we’re getting the legends, too, eh.”
She gestured at the stake. “Can you take it out? Can you save him?” “Tricky.” Joe shook his head. “Made a big
hole—” he indicated the entry and exit wounds “— through and through. Took his
heart clean out, ‘cept fer mebbe a piece the size of my thumb. Should be dead,
but if he’s a vampyre, means he’s already dead…” He scratched his head. “I
guess. “Anyway, lumber’s treated, Womanized.
Figure that’s what’s keepin’ him from not turnin’ to dust. Either that or it’s
because it didn’t take out his whole heart. But I’m a veterinarian and a
cryptozoologist, a mytho-zoologist. The things I work with have working
lungs and a heart that beats, blood that flows. All the people in Brokenoggin
are special, but they live and breathe. This…” He shook his head. “This is out
of my purview.” “So you’re sayin’ leavin’ the lumber in
would be better’n taking it out?” Joe shrugged. “But…” Janice hesitated, eyeing the two
feet of stake that stuck out Seth’s chest and back. She knew that as a law
enforcement official she sometimes had the imagination of a flea, but still…
“Won’t it be a little, er, awkward for him to have all that wood
sticking out of him all the time?” Joe gave her a look that said she’d
suddenly developed Medusa hair—which unfortunately in Brokenoggin Falls was
entirely possible. Janice patted her long, inky black hair back up under her
sheriff’s hat, bit her lip and dragged an embarrassed regulation-clad toe along
the bloody ground. If it was a stupid question, she didn’t know. And if she
didn’t know, she had to ask, right? “He said he came here for her, Joe.”
Hesther rose uncharacteristically to her defense. “I heard him. Said he
wanted to screw her brains out for the next century cuz that’s how long he’s
been looking for her. Kinda difficult to do with that chunk of lumber growing
out of him. Might make positioning chancey—” She paused to lick her lips
significantly. “If you catch my drift.” “Holy heck, Hesther.” Joe grimaced. “The
dead here caught your drift.” He sighed and reached across Seth to pat
Janice’s hand. “Look, what I meant was, I’ll cut the two-by-two flush to his
chest and back, make sure it’s secured in there with Super Glue around the
seams, slap on a coat of Goop back and front to seal the wood over, then add a
Duct Tape strapping. Oughtta hold until I can find out enough about his
physiology to come up with something better’n more permanent. Meantime…” He
smiled slightly. “We’d probably better see if we can get the town coven to do
something about those scream summonses you keep getting. This guy’s going to
need a lot of TLC and since you saved him you’re responsible for keeping him ali–,
er, in existence now…” Janice’s throat muscles tightened once on
a convulsive swallow. Just what she needed, more responsibility. And yet… Seth stirred restlessly, moaning, and
reached for her hand. When he found it, even in unconsciousness he brought it
to his mouth, held her open palm there as though to absorb her, her scent, her
presence. “Thanks, Doc,” Janice murmured. She used
her chin to indicate the vampyre who’d attempted to annihilate Seth. “What
about it?” Joe raised an eyebrow. “How do we get rid of it so it doesn’t
come back?” Hesther elaborated. “You’re asking me?” Joe coughed in
disbelief. “Until tonight these things didn’t exist. How the dickens should I
know how to get rid of one? I don’t know. Cut off its head, cut out its
heart and bury that in consecrated ground, burn the carcass—no, in fact
do all the other stuff, then give the carcass to The Beast to crunch up and
burn. If there’s any bone dust and ashes leftover, take it out of
Brokenoggin Falls and bury it with a dozen cloves of garlic in a grove of
wolfbane.” “Yes, but what do we do with the head?”
Hesther asked earnestly. Joe’s jaw dropped. Before he could form an adequate,
non-sarcastic response, however, Remo loped over to nuzzle Hesther’s hand and
change back into a very naked, very happy-to-see-her man. Hesther’s breath caught. A hand fluttered
to her breast. “Oh my, Romeo! Whereforever have thou been? Come home with me
this morning, won’t you? I believe I have some heaven and earth for you to
move in me.” “Sure, Hesther.” Remo grinned. “Let me
find my clothes and finish up here and with the skeleton closet lock over at
AnnMarie’s. Meetcha at your car outside dispatch—you drive the Jetta, yeah?
See if we can put a little hum in your squeezebox right th—” “Whoa, T.M.I.!” Joe coughed,
interrupting. Embarrassed he busied himself tending Seth. “Way Too Much Information,” Janice
agreed, grimacing. Were there no seriously committed couples in this burgh or
did she just not run into them on the job? She sent her cousin a, boy I
wish I didn’t know you and wasn’t related to you look. “Hound.” Then to
Hesther, “I don’t want to hear it over the radio, understand? And
whatever you do, don’t scream! I’m sick of getting screamed up by kids
who want to see how fast they can conjure me, frustrated adolescents,
pre-menstrual and mid-life witches of all genders, and everyone in the throes
of get-the-fuck-out-of-here-Janice-so-we-can.” Hesther nodded. “Gotcha, sheriff. Don’t
kick the broadcast button, and keep the verbalization to a minimum. Copy.” For
a moment she studied Janice shrewdly. Then very woman-to-woman, she twitched a
significant eyebrow at Seth. “Want me to touch any, ah, part of him,
see if I can read him?” she stage whispered. “Find out what his real intentions
are toward you?” “No!” Janice’s usually impassive face mobilized itself into
disbelieving, absolutely mortified horror. She knew that’s what it did because
she felt it pull itself in wild directions, eyes to jaw to chin and mouth, each
of them stupefyingly shocked. At the same time her insecurities shouted, ‘Fuckin’
A, babe, go for it! Touch the boy’s cock and tell me abso-freaking-everything.’
But her self-respect—or maybe that should read her innate stoicism—made her
say, “Leave me alone, leave him alone, leave well enough alon—” Woozy and unbalanced, Seth suddenly sat
up and sagged against Janice’s athletically supported bosom. “Mmmm,” he mumbled dreamily, “nice.” He reached up to fluff her breasts more
comfortably under his head, instinctively it seemed, searching out her aureoles
and nipples in the process. Janice’s Ennel athletic bra, however, made her
bosom regretfully immune to such shenanigans: once hooked into it, her bustline
didn’t move and her sensitive areas didn’t feel. Useful for those highly active
moments on the job when she had to kick butt, but generally a bust (pardon the
pun) for moments like these when a gorgeous, partially out-of-it guy who’d
seemed genuinely attracted to her when in full possession of his faculties
wanted to feel her up. Nobody in real life ever did. “Huhnnn,” he sighed in what sounded like
disappointment, using his left hand to smoosh her right breast under his cheek
as best he could while his thumb grazed the spot where her nipple probably was.
“They’d be beautiful you know, if you let them go free. We’d both enjoy it so
much.” “Oh…brother,” Joe groaned
disgusted. “Et tu, Janice? I thought we were supposed to be lonely
Norwegian bachelors together.” “I’m not Norwegian,” Janice mumbled,
blushing as fiery red as her native coppery-bronze skin would allow. No one had
ever said anything so…so…lecherously romantic to her before in her life.
And at two hundred fifty-seven plus eighteen or so puppy years, that was a lot
of unlechered-at life. Joe rolled his eyes. “Even so, Janice Thinksalot.”
“Thinks a lot? Who’s thinking? Who
wants to?” Echoing Janice’s exact sentiments, Seth stirred and sat up again.
“And who’s Janice?” “Ummmm…” said Hesther. “Hoooo boy,” said Joe. Janice sat back on her heels. “Seth?” she
asked tentatively. “I don’t think so,” he said doubtfully,
“but I don’t know. Maybe I am. Do you know? And where I am?” He touched his
tongue to his overlong incisors curiously. “And what? And what I’m doing here?
And—” Grimacing slightly, he shoved a careful hand through the hair at his
temple revealing a bloody gouge and a pair of stray hemlock-and-foxglove
shotgun pellets that must have struck him when Janice shot Nihil and he was in
the way. “Who that is?” He pointed at Nihil. “Oh, Seth.” Janice, defeated,
disappointed and aghast when she saw his head wound. “We’d better get you over to my surgery,”
Joe said briskly, “take care of this stake and that wound.” Out of the
corner of his mouth to Janice, “I guess now we know what hemlock and foxglove
does to vampyres when you shoot ‘em in the head with it—gives ‘em amnesia.” “Go to hell, Joe,” Janice swore. She
felt like crying she really did. Because just when she finally had
someone—vampyre or whatever—who might be for her, he wound up not knowing who
she was five minutes later because of her damn shotgun, which she hardly ever
used. “Just go to hell—” “Shhhh, sweetheart.” Seth stroked her
cheek with a cool finger. “Shhh. It’s all right, don’t worry.” He caressed her
lips with a rough, sensuous thumb, and his cock lifted high. “So pretty. Do we
know each other…” He sent a significant glance to his lap. “Well?” If whopping big lies were among the
skeletons AnnMarie kept in her closet, Remo had better get over there and put a
big damn lock on the door. Because if this one got out, or if Seth’s amnesia
cleared up, Janice was about to buy herself a packet more trouble than she
already owned. Janice’s heart jumped. She swallowed.
“Omigod.” Inside the Ennel bra her nipples wanted room to tighten and bud, but
didn’t have any. Her breasts wanted to swell and bloom, but couldn’t do that
either. And her libido leapt up from between her thighs like a supertrain
leashed but revving for over two centuries, tore out of the station on a squeal
of hot pheromones released to the warming predawn air and a low moan. “Yes,
Seth” she breathed and, leaning very close, played her fingers lightly down his
chest. “Maybe you should write this down so you won’t forget again because we
know each other very well indeed.” “Holy crap,” Joe muttered. Then he put a stop to the flirtatious
byplay right then and there before things got completely out of hand,
convincing Janice the medical emergency was best served first before its, hers
and her inner beast’s passions were further inflamed. Or something like that. When Janice and Seth both agreed on the
spot, they were out of there. As to Nihil… Left alone with the apparently lifeless
spawn of Satan who’d tried to annihilate Seth for reasons now known only to him
(and whoever’d sent him), Remo (who made a much better Romeo than he did a
vampyre-disposer-of or a handyman) studied the situation for about six
seconds. Unable to ascertain if anyone was actually serious about all that
stuff Joe’d suggested they do with the vampyre’s body and too alpha male to
stop and ask for directions, he carted Nihil’s remains off with him to
AnnMarie’s. There he shoved Nihil—whole—through a very small crack between the
door and the doorjamb into the closet with the rest of Brokenoggin’s skeletons
before he slammed the door tight and installed six shiny new keyless locks,
floor to ceiling… Wrong way in. Episode 1.1 THE HARPY IN THE CLOCK TOWER By Rachel Carrington Episode 1.1 The Harpy in the Clock Tower By Rachel Carrington The screeching was loud
enough to wake the dead. Add to that the interminable flapping of wings and
the thump of a body against the stone walls inside the clock tower and every
citizen within a thirty mile radius of Brokenoggin Falls was lying awake in their
beds. And not happy. “For the love of God, will someone please do something
about that damned creature!” The shout came seconds on the heels of a pop that
sounded suspiciously like a small caliber pistol. Janice climbed from her bed
and reached for her uniform pants. Sometimes, being a police officer really
sucked, especially, when she had no idea what in the hell she was supposed to
do about the noise. She’d asked for volunteers, but not too many people were
willing to risk their own lives to deal with a harpy. “Welcome to Brokenoggin,”
she grumbled. *** Last call came too soon for Maria Drinkwater’s tastes. She
still hadn’t finished scanning the room, looking for her date for the remainder
of the evening. The blazing neon sign above Brokenoggin’s only tavern blinked
half-heartedly. The owner had never taken the time to fix it, but Maria kind
of liked it that way. It added a dirty appeal, which fit with her persona. She
slid off the barstool just as the door banged against the far wall. “That damned
harpy won’t shut up!” Bare feet slapping against the plank floor, Gavin surged
into the room, naked as the day he was born. He stomped past a line of fallen
drunks and plopped down, three stools away from Maria. Her immediate departure
forgotten, Maria took notice. Why was it she’d never really paid attention to
the disgraced warlock’s attributes before? She plopped back down onto the
wooden stool and slid what was left of the rum and coke closer. Perhaps this
night had promise, after all. “Evening, Gavin.” He barely spared her a glance.
“Go away, Maria. I’m tired and a little bitter right now.” Hope escalated.
Perfect. A man without a mission. She scooted the barstool closer and bumped
her elbow against his. “Want to talk about it?” Making sure her cleavage
dipped low enough to give him a birdseye view of her own abundance, she placed
her hand on his wrist. “You look like you could use
someone to talk to.” He raised one eyebrow. “Are you sure
talking is all you had in mind?” “I ain’t serving no more drinks,” the
bartender interrupted with a growl in his voice. “That’s okay,” Maria said with more perk
in her voice than even she’d heard in a while. “We weren’t staying long.” Gavin watched Maria pour herself off the
stool once more. “Why don’t you come on home with me? You
could use a friend.” He couldn’t hide his interest, not that
Maria was complaining. He had more than enough ‘interest’ for her, as a matter
of fact. She sashayed toward the door, pausing to peek over her shoulder.
“Don’t worry. I have plenty of things at my place to keep you warm.” “You better be careful around that one,”
the bartender warned. “I heard she eats her mates.” Gavin grinned. “Oh, but I can certainly
hope so.” He thumped his way to the door. *** “Order, order. This
meeting will come to order.” Earl Choo banged the gavel, his ruddy face even
redder than ordinary. The room fell silent while chairs scooted and feet
shuffled on the floor. Expectant faces gazed upon Earl. He cleared his
throat. “That’s better. Now, Mayor Dumas asked me to preside over this meeting
since
he can’t seem to make it back to town right away. He’s stuck in Flagstaff.” “Probably means Falstaff,” Maria
whispered as an aside to Gavin. Morgan Falstaff flitted down, landing on
Maria’s shoulder. “I take offense to that. I’m particular about my
dalliances.” He folded his legs primly, resting his painted nails atop his
knees. “Right now, I have my eye on that cute little Cuban.” Maria’s antenna went up. “Cute little
Cuban? Who are you talking about?” “You mean you don’t know? Mavis told me
that’s he’s been in town for only a few days, but he looks like a displaced
Cabana boy. Hubba-hubba.” He wiggled his eyebrows suggestively. Maria leaned back against the plastic
chair, her mind whirling. Cabana boy and a wizard. Could life get any better
than this? “If everyone would pay attention, please,
we’re here to discuss the harpy situation.” Earl raised his voice over the
hub-bub. Janice took a step forward from her usual
spot as peacekeeper at the front edge of the room. “I’d like to discuss
changing the terms of my scream summonses,” she said firmly. “I’m getting too
many bogus scream calls and it’s mighty inconvenient winding up where I’m not
wanted or needed when I should be elsewhere.” “I’m sure that’s all very valid, Janice,”
Earl placated, “and no doubt the coven can come up with something, but right
now we’ve got to do something about the harpy—” “Her screams call me every five minutes,”
Janice said—and as though to demonstrate blipped out of and back into the room
when the harpy screamed shrilly twice in rapid succession. She held her head,
swaying dizzily. “See?” “Yes, but—” Earl tried. “Shoot her!” someone yelled from the back
for the room. “She could be a mother,” a woman inserted
in a disgusted tone of voice. Earl sent Janice a helpless look and
banged the gavel. “Look, I don’t think violence is the answer.” “Like she wouldn’t rip us to shreds if
she had half the chance,” Gavin muttered with much disgust. “Just like a
woman.” Maria elbowed him. “I didn’t hear you
complaining about women last night.” The wizard shoved a hand through his hair
and coughed. “Yeah, well, that was different.” Maria checked her watch and held up her
hand. “Could we move this along, please, Earl? Some of us have things to do.” “Or people to do,” Morgan took his turn
at cattiness, but Maria only chuckled. She wouldn’t deny that most citizens in
Brokenoggin considered her somewhat of a tramp, but she’d long given up denying
her assets. And she’d been blessed with many. Of course, praying to her
sister witches helped. They were more than willing to keep her body parts in
the shape and position they were supposed to be in. Could have something to do
with Maria’s own willingness to turn a blind eye to some of their less than
favorable activities. And their newest recruits. She leaned in closer to whisper in
Gavin’s ear. “Can you meet me at my house around eleven this morning?” She
trailed a finger around his ear lobe. “I have an idea.” Her gaze dropped to
his lap. “And if you’re going to stay with me a while, you should really think
about putting some clothes on. I think it will be most uncomfortable to walk
around with such a noticeable boner.” Gavin shifted and crossed his legs, but
Maria caught the wince on his face. Feeling naughty, she made a particularly
vivid suggestion in his ear and watched his face turn beet-red. He cleared
his throat loudly as Maria slithered out of her chair. “We’ll be done shortly, Maria, if you
could just take your seat, please,” Earl’s voice held a note of desperation
which made Janice get to her feet. “Maria, please.” The law enforcement
officer swept a hand toward the chair. Maria huffed out a breath. “Very well.” *** Gavin couldn’t breathe and it wasn’t any
wonder considering Maria had taken to stroking his leg. He’d only meant to
sleep with her once, just to piss off the other wizards who couldn’t bang a
witch if their lives depended on it. Oh, Maria would never admit she was a
witch, but he knew. He might not have all of his sensory perceptions, but he
recognized a witch when he saw one. He smirked and moved again, an action
that brought Maria’s hand dangerously closer to his male member. He gurgled
and tried to brush her away. He felt eyes on the back of his skull and knew
Morgan Falstaff hadn’t taken his gaze off the action. “Could you please stop?”
he snapped. Maria gave him an impish smile and
continued to rub him. Damned little vixen, he snarled
silently. The door creaked open behind them and steps echoed across the tiled
floor of the cafeteria where all town meetings were held. The local high
school was the only place big enough to house five hundred and some odd
citizens. Well, actually, Gavin’s mind, they were all odd. “Oh my,” Maria breathed beside him. His head swiveled as a swarthy young man,
wearing snug-fitting jeans and a white t-shirt, strode past the row of chairs
to the front of the room. “That must be Mr. Cabana.” Her strokes
intensified and Gavin wanted to complain, but what the hell? Did it really
matter that her instant attraction to the Cuban had brought about a renewed
increase in her ministrations? After all, he was the one reaping the benefits.
“I will take care of the harpy,” the
young man announced in a tone loud enough to draw every eye in the room. Gavin’s lips curled into a sneer. So he
wanted attention, did he? Maria leaped to her feet again. “We would
be so in your debt, Mr.…” She paused for information. “Just call me Juan.” Gavin saw Maria’s hips twitch and he
wondered if the sex was, indeed, over. He couldn’t mask his surprise when she
snatched hold of his hand and practically dragged him from the cafeteria. *** The harpy screeched. Maria moaned and
sweat broke out on Gavin’s forehead. She hadn’t given him time to figure out
what she wanted after they’d left the town meeting before she launched herself
at him. Her lithe body curved around his, her
legs going around his waist. She fisted her hands in his hair and smeared
lipstick kisses across his face. It didn’t matter anymore that they’d barely
made it to the bottom floor of the high school and that any minute, the meeting
could adjourn. Maria assured him they were safe enough in the stairwell, but
Gavin didn’t really think she cared. Sex, sex, sex. The woman had it on the
brain. And she was damned good at it. “Pardon me,” came a heavily accented
voice from over Gavin’s left shoulder. Maria’s head popped up
and her eyes lit with delight. “Oh, this is perfect,” she cooed. “Hello,
Juan. Could I interest you in a small party?” *** “Perhaps we should wait until
we’re invited.” Claudia Choo traipsed after her sister witches as they
followed the beaten path to Maria Drinkwater’s Colonial-style house. “She
could be entertaining.” A snort. “She’s always entertaining.” Claudia looked over her shoulder. “Earl
will be expecting me home soon.” “Honey, you’re not going to want to miss
this spell. We’ve been working on this for days and if all goes well, not only
will that harpy be history, but so will all of our troubles.” A chorus of cackles made Claudia more
uneasy, but as Maria’s house came into view, she relaxed somewhat. Maria
always made them feel welcome. And she always had coffee and some of the
best-tasting donuts in town. She could really go for a donut right now. The quartet of witches neared the front
door and as Claudia opened her mouth to speak, the head witch, a tall, spindly
woman who preferred to be called Greta, didn’t bother to knock. A tangle of limbs, brown, creamy, and
tanned, poured into Claudia’s line of view. She clapped a hand over her mouth
as other body parts became visible. “Hello, Maria,” Greta sing-songed. Maria’s dark head shot up, her make-up
smeared and breathing heavily. “Greta?” Her head swiveled to the clock over
the mantle. “Is it noon already?” One brown hand curved over her breast and
she moaned, holding up two fingers. “Two minutes. That’s all I need. I’m
almost there.” Greta muttered her disgust and stomped
past the threesome. “I’ll be in the kitchen.” “I’ll just wait outside,” Claudia
suggested hopefully. Never, in all her years as a married woman, had she ever
seen anything so outrageous. Or exciting. Maria struggled to extricate herself from
Gavin’s arms and as she stood, hands on hips, her breasts
sat right where they were supposed to sit. Claudia hated her for that. “Don’t
run away, Claudia. There’s plenty to go around for everyone. How long has it
been since you’ve had a good romp?” Before Claudia could answer, an explosion
rocked the kitchen and Greta bounded out into the living room, face dirty, hair
askew. “What in the hell did you do to my kitchen?” Maria demanded, shoving
her aside to inspect the damage. Greta looked forlorn. “The spell
didn’t work.” Maria’s head whipped around. “You used some kind of concoction in
my kitchen?” “It was a spell,” Greta defended. “Now, we’ll never get rid of the
harpy.” “I got rid of the harpy.” Juan launched himself to his feet. “Who is
that?” Greta pointed, but her eyes dropped to Juan’s crotch. Maria shouldered
her way to stand in front of the Cabana boy. “He’s mine and who told you that you could concoct
your spells in my kitchen? I’ve told you I don’t like that stuff! Look.” She
clamped her hands on her hips. “I agreed that you and your sisters can come
here and hold your meetings, but I didn’t say anything about using my home as a
laboratory.” “Aren’t
they your sisters, too?” Gavin spoke up from the floor. smoke disappeared,
the soot evaporated and the chrome appliances gleamed as before. “Thank
goodness at least one of us was paying attention when you were reading aloud
from the Book of Spells, Greta.” “Shhh,”
Maria interrupted with a finger against her lips. “Do you hear that?” look over her shoulder. “So tell them how
you did it, Sugar.” With a swagger to his step, he came forward and whispered
in Maria’s ear. Her eyes widened for a brief moment and then she laughed out
loud. Claudia exchanged glances with Greta.
“What? What did he say?” Juan, his brown skin glistening with
sweat, bowed low. “I promised her a night she would never forget.” Gavin scrambled to his feet. “You
promised sex to a harpy? She’ll tear you limb from limb!” “Actually,” Juan corrected, “they’re
quite docile if you know how to tame them.” Gavin gave him a look of disgust and
marched toward the door. “Well, I’ve had enough of this. I thought I was
sleeping with a witch, which by the way, would earn me great points with the
wizards, and now, I discover I’ve only been used and I wouldn’t be surprised if
that harpy was summoned by this quack crew of witches.” Two of the witches behind Greta grumbled
in disagreement, but Greta held up her hand to silence them. “We do not summon
harpies, Mr. Wizard.” Her eyes narrowed. “Although, had we thought of it, we
might have considered it, especially if it meant ridding the town of
wizards.” The door slammed shut behind Gavin and
Juan began gathering his clothes. Maria snagged hold of his arm. “Where do you
think you’re going?” Juan stroked his knuckles down her cheek.
“I fear I must be on my way. My work here is done.” Maria pursed her lips. “I beg to differ.
I can think of many more jobs for you to do.” He winked at her and leaned in to kiss
her once more. “Ah, but there are other harpies in other clock towers. The
world needs me.” He waved a hand as he disintegrated into a cloud of dust, the
room fell silent. Except for the chiming of the clock
tower. Episode 1.2 THE
WITCHES OF BROKENOGGIN AND THE DEAD WHO LOVE THEM By Gena
Showalter Episode 1.2 The Witches of Brokenoggin & the Dead Who Love Them By Gena Showalter The witches always came
at midnight. Gripping his flip phone camera in his hand, John crouched behind
the thick marble headstone of Agnes McCloud, the biggest slut he’d ever met.
The woman had tried to tell his wife about their affair. Had tried to ruin him.
Bitch. She’d done the world a favor the day she’d decided to take a hike around
the block and his Cadillac had accidentally (cough, cough) slipped into another
lane, jumped the curb, burned rubber, and slammed into her. Anyway… Overhead,
the blood moon drowned him in crimson shadows, and he licked his lips in
anticipation of the coming ritual. He was a breast man—God, he loved a nice
rack—and the Tawdry triplets had some of the finest boobs in Brokenoggin. He
should be home, sitting at the dinner table across from his wife, chatting
about their respective days—and wishing like hell he were dead. Instead of
slicing his wrists to escape the constant whine of Hillde’s voice, however,
he’d come to the cemetery. He knew the triplets would strip to their luscious,
lickable, kissable, completely edible skin and dance naked atop the graves,
casting their spells and generally causing his slacks to expand. Better than Playboy.
Every time. He glanced at his wristwatch and frowned. Six minutes past.
Where the hell were they? Didn’t they realize he was on a time crunch here?
If he wasn’t home within the next hour, Hillde would freak and come looking for
him and then he’d never be able to work up a good erection, something he hadn’t
been able to do lately but wanted to real bad. Erections were the most
important part of a man’s life. And he if didn’t have another one soon, he’d—
A twig snapped. Hallelujah! The witches had arrived. His muscles tightened
with eagerness, and his lips lifted in a grin. Oh yeah, baby, let the good
times roll. Or rather, let Mr. Givemeattention out of his cage. John quickly
ducked further into the shadows, inching the lens of his flip phone around the
tombstone and waiting… *** “I hereby call this coven to order.” Godiva Tawdry
removed the band from her hair, letting the long pale strands cascade down her
back. She breathed deeply of the night air. “Get naked.” “Yeah, yeah,” was her sister, Gladys’,
reply. Of course, Gladys remained in place, not stripping. “What are you waiting for? Hurry and
take off your clothes. I need to get home and feed Romeo.” Romeo was her pet
wolf. He’d shown up on her doorstep a few weeks ago, sad, alone, and wounded,
and had been her constant companion ever since. Already she missed him. Her other sister, Gerda, anchored her
hands on her hips and frowned. She’d been opposed to this meeting from the
first, preferring to let the good citizens of Brokenoggin Falls suffer. Godvia
even suspected Gerda was the one responsible for unleashing the recent havoc in
town. Ever since Marko, the love of her sister’s life, had a heart attack in
bed, she’d been, well, a witch, capital B. “We wouldn’t be running late,” Gerda
snapped, “if Tubby over there hadn’t made us stop and grab a bag of Doritos, a
roll of doughnuts, and an Icy Big Gulp.” Gladys gasped. “How dare you call me
Tubby! I have low blood sugar.” “No, actually, you’re just a cow.” Another gasp. “Whore!” “Fat ass!” “You want a piece of me?” Gladys tossed
her broom to the ground. Eyes narrowed, she stepped into her sister’s personal
space, squaring off nose to nose. “If your greatest wish is to be bitch
slapped, color me Genie in a Bottle because I’m about to grant it.” “Girls, please.” Godiva knew interrupting
the argument would give her sisters yet another reason to call her Goody, Goody
but that was okay because she secretly called them Bitch #1 and Bitch #2. “We
have spells to cast and your bickering is slowing us down. Now, a lot of weird
things have been happening in town. Naked vampires, screaming harpies, deadly
ponies.” “Emma Mincemeat getting a man,” Gladys
added, thankfully calming down. “That, too. I’m thinking we need to call
on the spirits of the dead to guard the city limits and protect everyone
inside.” As she spoke, Godiva unbuttoned her dress and shimmed it down her
voluptuous hips. The buttercup yellow material pooled at her feet. Everyone
knew a good spell only worked if the witch casting it was naked. A chill night breeze wisped around them,
and with a sigh, Gerda stripped. Gladys quickly followed suit. “There,” she said, relived. “Now we can
begin. Form a circle and clasp hands.” “I’m not holding onto her.” Gerda
motioned to Gladys with a tilt of her chin. “I don’t know where her skanky
hands have been.” Godiva rolled her eyes. Great Goddess,
could they never get along? Romeo was probably prowling the house right now,
wondering where she was. “Why couldn’t I have been an only child?”
Gladys muttered. Gerda flicked the long length of her
snow-white hair over her shoulder. “Because the Great Goddess hates you and
wants you to suffer.” Her smart mouth finally pushed Gladys
over the edge. “Take that back, you dirty slut. Right now!” “Make me.” In the next instant, Gladys launched
herself at Gerda. The two grappled together on the ground, clawing,
screaming and tugging hair, their limbs tangled together. “Ding, ding,” she
sighed. “Round one.” With a sigh, she plopped onto a tombstone and waited for
them to finish… *** While her husband, John, cavorted with
the witches, Hillde used her time alone to invent new ways to torment him.
Look at other women, would he? Despise his time with her, would he? Secretly
get a vasectomy so she couldn’t have children, would he? Hillde paced her bedroom, steps clipped.
She’d replaced John’s prescription of Viagra with sugar pills weeks ago, but
that wasn’t enough. She needed to do more. He needed to suffer more. The
bastard was even now spying on the naked witches and their perfect tatas. What can I do? Immediately a few ideas drifted through
her mind, and she smiled an evil, scorned-woman smile. Twenty minutes later, pepper sauce was
blended into his aftershave, Nair was mixed into his shampoo, his tooth brush
dripped with toilet water, and his mother’s face was glued onto every female
face in his Playboy. Bastard! He always shaved, showered and jerked off
when he returned from his peeping activities. Now all she had to do was await
his return… *** How long had passed since her sisters
decided to play Wrestle Mania, Bitch Addition Godiva didn’t know, but she was
tired of waiting for it to end. Twice she’d thought she heard the tortured
howl of a wolf. Her wolf. Had Romeo somehow gotten out of her house and
now stalked the woods, searching for her? Another howl erupted through the night. Her sisters heard this one and stopped
for a moment, their ragged breath echoing around them. “Oh, Goddess.” Panting, Gerda shoved her
hair out of her face. “We better stop. I think the wolves are out again. Last
time they humped my leg for hours, and I’d rather kick your ass later than
endure that again.” “Me, too. At least in the old days we’d
get dinner first. Now it’s just eighty pounds of fur, fangs and bad breath.” “I think it’s Romeo,” Godiva told them,
scanning the forest for a glimpse of him. “Oh.” Gerda. “Oh.” Gladys. “Okay, then.” They jumped back into their fight. “Girls,” she said, exasperated. They ignored her. Gerda even jerked out a
lock of Gladys’ hair, and Gladys yelped and pinched her in retaliation. Godiva was just about to pull her sisters
apart when, a few feet away, a click, click sounded. Startled,
she searched the graveyard until she spotted the source of the noise. A cold
sweat broke over her skin when she spied a flip phone camera aimed at her
sisters. “Girls,” she whispered frantically.
“Someone is taking pictures of you.” Instantly their struggles ceased. Dirt
and dried flower petals streaked their skin. Both were sucking in shallow
breaths, crouched, their pale hair hanging in their eyes. “Did you say someone is taking pictures
of us?” Gladys’ silver eyes narrowed. “Nobody takes secret pictures of me
unless I’ve had time to diet.” “Don’t worry. I’ll handle this.”
Scowling, Gerda pushed to her feet, her hands rising into the air, a spell
slipping easily from her lips. A startled scream echoed through the
night. “What did you do?” Gladys bent down and
swiped up her broom. “See for yourself.” The girls closed ranks on the tombstone,
circling the intruder and blocking him from escape. They found the flip phone
hovering in the air in front of a trembling, horrified man, the phone clamping
and snapping its way down his body. Only after it had bitten his favorite appendage
(twice) and he screamed like a little girl (twice) did it fall to the ground. “John Foster,” Gladys gasped. “You big
pervert. Does Hillde know you’re out here? And staring at our breasts, no
less?” “Please don’t tell her—your breasts are
so big.” Eyes widening, he said, “I mean, I don’t want her to know—I want to
touch your breasts.” He shook his head, but his gaze remained glued on Gladys’
chest. He licked his lips. “What I mean to say is—double-D fun bags are my
favorite.” Gladys smacked him over the head with her
broom. “Letch!” “Bastard!” Godiva grabbed her own broom
and popped him dead center in the face. “Dickweed!” Gerda didn’t have her broom
in hand, so she raised her arms high in the air and uttered a quick
incantation. “You like breasts so much, you can have a pair of your own.” His shirt ripped down the middle as a
huge pair of breasts grew on his chest. He stared down at them, his mouth
gaping open. “What the hell! Get them off, get them—Hey, these are nice.”
Closing his eyes, he reached up and kneaded his new breasts, a rapturous smile
spreading across his face. “Mmm,” he muttered. “Undo the spell!” Gladys scowled. “Undo
the spell right now. We’ll punish him another way.” “No, this is punishment,” he cried, covering
the man-boobs protectively. “I swear. Don’t take them away. I’ve got to learn
my lesson.” After Gerda did as commanded, and John’s
chest had shrunk back to its normal size—and he was bawling like a baby—he
tried to dart out of their circle, but Godiva quickly muttered an incantation,
locking his feet in place. “Not so fast,” she said. His
eyes widened with horror. “What are you going to do to me? I didn’t mean any
harm. only wanted a peek at your hoohoos.” Without saying a word, the three sisters
tugged at the rest of his clothing, peeling it from his middle-aged body until
he wore nothing but a few teardrops. Since he’d gotten a look at their goods,
it was only fair they got a look at his. “We’re going to cast our spells around
you—” Gerda’s gaze darted between his legs, “—little John, and you’re
going to stand there like a good boy and pray the Goddess takes mercy on your
soul.” That dried his tears real fast. “You
mean you’re not going to hurt me, and I get to watch you dance? Naked?” He
tried real hard not to grin. “Thank you, Great Goddess. Have mercy. Oh, have
mercy. Lots and lots of mercy and breasts and mercy. Amen.” “I swear,” Gladys growled, “you’re the
scum of the earth.” “Ignore him,” Godiva said after another
wolf howl echoed through the night. “We need to get to work.” “Fine.” “Whatever.” Gerda found her broom buried
in a mound of dirt, snatched it up, and rejoined the circle. The three sisters closed their eyes,
blocking out John’s image and his voice, and in perfect sync began their
protection spells. Round and round they danced, their hips undulating, their
hair swaying, their brooms raised high in the air. Each one chanted under her
breath. While she danced, Godiva stumbled over
the spell’s words, unable to push Romeo from her mind. That last howl had
sounded pained. Was he hurt? Should she go looking for him? He was one of the
biggest, strongest, fiercest wolves she’d ever seen, but he possessed a gentle
and loving nature and other beasts of the forest might trample him. Suddenly Gladys stopped, her breasts
jiggling with the abrupt halt. “What are you doing? Keep moving,” John
whined. “I’m still praying.” She frowned. “Does it feel like the
ground is shaking?” Godiva stilled, followed quickly by
Gerda. In the next instant and seemingly without provocation, Gladys stumbled
backward and landed on her butt. “What’s going on?” Godiva gasped. Dirt began cracking at their feet. Grass
began splitting. Flowers tumbled off of tombstones… and then the tombstones
themselves tumbled to the ground. “What’s going on?” she asked again, her
tone more frenzied. Gladys popped to her feet, and Gerda
paled. “I think—ohmygod—I think the bodies are rising!” “That can’t be.” Gladys sucked in a
breath, whirling around to scan the surrounding area. “We only called forth
their spirits.” “Well, the dirty bastards didn’t listen!”
A bony hand shot through the cracked dirt
and latched onto John’s ankle. Startled, he screamed and would have dropped
into a fetal ball and sucked his thumb if his feet hadn’t been frozen in place.
All over the cemetery bodies rose. Most were completely decayed, but all still
wore their worm-eaten burial clothes. As they emerged, they limped, lumbered
and trudged toward the triplets. Deadly moans echoed across the distance. “What should we do?” Gladys gasped out,
holding out her broom like a sword. “What the hell should we do?” In the next instant, Agnes McCloud
climbed all the way out of the ground. Seeing her, John started shaking like
an epileptic. “Help me,” he cried. “Please, help me.” Godiva swatted at the skeleton with her
broom. “Shoo.” Big chunks of dirt fell out of the dead woman’s remaining
hair. “Get back in the ground. I command you.” Agnes hadn’t yet fully decayed, and it
was freaky seeing her half-on, half-off face lift into a grin when she spied
John. “John! Oh, my darling Johnnie. I missed you so much.” “We’ve got to send them back.” Gladys’
mouth formed a large O as she counted the number of bodies headed toward them.
“They’re multiplying like rabbits!” “Demons of the Dark,” Godiva shouted,
“return to your graves!” They kept coming. “Spirits of the Nether World, be gone!” Still, they kept coming. Meanwhile, Agnes had leapt on John and
was feeding him kisses like she was a buffet of sensual delights and he had
been on a year long fast. Except, the man looked like he would rather eat his
own vomit than the dead woman’s tongue. He kept gagging, but that didn’t stop
Agnes. If she’d had time, Godiva would have
snapped a picture of the two with the flip phone. As it was, the rest of the
dead bodies finally reached them and closed her and her sisters in a circle,
moaning and groaning and reaching out to caress them. Having been without
human contact for so long, they were probably desperate for it. Or maybe they
were simply hungry and she and her sisters looked like a triple stacked Egg
MacMuffin. Gladys shrieked. Godiva swatted at the
bony hands with her broom. And Gerda broke into a frenzied run. One of the
corpses sprang after her, his laughter ringing through the cemetery like nails
over a chalkboard. “Is that…Marko?” As she defended her and
her sister’s honor, Godiva watched the tall corpse who wore the same black suit
Marko had been buried in chase the flailing Gerda around a tree. Finally Marko snagged her, wrapping his
arms around her waist, spinning her around and tossing her over his shoulder.
Without a pause in his step, he absconded into the nearby forest with her. Her
furious shouts echoed from the trees. Then…she giggled. An
honest-to-the-Goddess giggle. What the hell were they doing? Having a
slap-and-tickle fight? Playing find-the-bone? Godiva and Gladys continued to fight off
their molesters with their brooms, all the while uttering spell after
ineffectual spell. Well, not so ineffectual. Each spell conjured
something—just not the help they wanted. A harpy. A horny troll. A demon. Each
creature materialized at the edge of the forest and stood, watching the
proceedings, grinning. One of them even produced a bowl of popcorn and a large
soda. “Two dollars the one with worms in his
eyes snags the witch on the left,” the demon said. “You’re on,” the troll agreed. Suddenly a fierce growl overshadowed
every other noise, and a pack of wolves raced into the graveyard, snapping and
snarling. “Romeo,” Godiva cried, her relief nearly
a palpable force when she recognized her pet. His teeth bared in a scowl, Romeo leapt
up and latched onto the bony arm reaching for her and snapped it off. The
corpse glanced at his armless side, then at the wolf. His armless side, then
the wolf. Still holding the bone, Romeo sprinted away. “Give that back,” the corpse shouted. The rest of the wolf pack chased the
skeletons in every direction. All except Agnes, who was still sucking John’s
face. Godiva and Gladys dropped to the ground in relief. “Well, that went well,” Gladys said
dryly. “I never thought I’d be grateful to the wolves.” A few minutes later, Romeo appeared in
front of them. “Come here, boy,” Godiva said, reaching out for him. He
dropped the arm bone at her feet as if it were the greatest prize in the world
and nuzzled her with his nose. She luxuriated in his soft black fur as his
tongue flicked out and licked her collarbone. “That’s my good boy. Thank you
so, so much for saving me.” “Eww.” Gladys pushed to her feet with a
sigh. “I know I’ve said your boyfriends were dogs in the past, but hello. This
one is a dog. Don’t let him lick you like that.” “He’s my special sweetie.” She rubbed
her cheeks against his. “My hero.” “At least have him neutered or he’ll
start to hump you.” With barely a breath, Gladys turned on her heel and
lumbered out of the graveyard. “I’m outta here,” she said over her
shoulder. Romeo growled at Gladys’ retreating back,
then looked up into the sky and howled. As he howled, his body elongated and
his fur fell away, leaving bronzed skin in its place. Godiva’s mouth went dry,
and her heart pounded against her ribs. “Romeo?” The name emerged on a
breathless catch of air. Pale blue human eyes suddenly
stared down at her, and she drank in the most beautiful face she’d ever seen.
Perfectly chiseled cheekbones, perfectly sloped nose. Full, lush pink lips made
for kissing. Her gaze traveled downward, taking in the rest of him. His chest
was wide and muscled, like velvet poured over steel. And his dick…? “Oh my
god.” Hello, Satisfaction. He grinned wickedly. “No
neutering. Please.” His voice was rough and husky, and so sexy she shivered.
Gulping, she blinked up at him. “No neutering. Promise.” He licked his way up
her neck. “You’ll be real glad for that decision in a minute.” *** Later that
night, John trudged into his house. He muttered and cursed under his breath.
Hillde was
sitting on the couch, looking relaxed and at ease while she flipped through a
magazine. He’d had to do the Karate moves he’d seen on TV to escape Agnes,
then run like hell. Thank God her bony legs hadn’t allowed her to
follow him. If he didn’t wash his mouth out with antibacterial soap soon, he’d
vomit. God, he smelled like a rotten corpse. “I’m taking a long, hot shower,” he
growled, already moving up the stairs. “Don’t interrupt me.” Hillde smiled sweetly. “Take all the
time you need, dear.” Episode
1.3 Candy Cox and the Big Bad (Were)Wolf By
PC Cast Episode 1.3 Candy Cox & the Big Bad (Were) Wolf By PC Cast “Godiva! Wait—wait—wait. Did you just say
that you and your sisters called forth the dead last night?” Candice said,
rubbing her forehead where it was beginning to pound. “Yeah, but you missed the important
part. Romeo was…spectacular,” Godiva said breathlessly. “So he actually did more than hump your
leg this time?” “Candy Cox—I swear you haven’t been
listening.” “You know I hate it when you call me
that.” “Fine. Candice you haven’t been
listening,” Godiva said. Candice kept muttering as if Godiva
hadn’t spoken. “It’s not like I don’t get enough of that name crap at school.
Why the hell I ever decided to attempt to teach high school morons I’ll never
know.” She cringed inwardly, remembering the countless times some hormone
impaired sixteen year old boy had made a wise-ass remark about her name. God,
she was truly sick and f-ing tired of Brokenoggin High School—Home of the
Fighting Fairies. “You could have kept one of your
ex-husband’s names,” Godiva said helpfully. “Oh please,” Candice scoffed. “I’d rather
sound like a porn star than keep any reminders of exhusstupid number one, two,
or three. No. My solution is to change careers. As soon as I finish my
internet Masters in Creative Writing I can dump the Fighting Fairies and snag
that job as a copy editor for Full Moon Press.” “I could work on a spell that might help
shut those boys up whenever they try to speak your name. Maybe something to do
with testicles and tiny brains…” “That’s really sweet of you, but you know
that magic doesn’t work around me, so it probably wouldn’t work on my name,
either,” Candice sighed. It was true. She lived in a town full of witches,
warlocks, vampyres, harpies, werewolves, etcetera, etcetera, and her magic was
non-magic. It figured. She did magic like she did marriages. Not at all.
“Men are such a pain in the ass.” Without losing a beat at her friend’s
sudden change in subjects, Godiva giggled. “I agree completely, and I know
exactly what you need—a werewolf lover.” “Godiva Tawdry! I’m too damn old to roll
around the woods with a dog.” “A werewolf is not a dog. And forty-five
is not old. Plus, you look at least ten years younger. Why
do you think high school boys still get crushes on you, Ms. Candy Cox?” “Put boobs on a snake and high school
boys would chase after it. And don’t call me Candy.” Godiva laughed. “True, but that doesn’t
make you any less attractive. You’ve got a killer body, Ms. Cox.” “I’m fat.” “You’re curvy.” “I’m old.” “You’re ripe.” “I’ve sworn off men,” Candice said,
exasperated. “No, I remember exactly what you said.
‘Godiva,’ here you raised your fist to the sky like Scarlet O’Hara. ‘I will
never marry again.’ So you’ve sworn off marriage, not men. And anyway, a
werewolf is only a man part of the time. The rest of the time he really is the
most adorably cuddly sweet furry—” “Fine.” She cut Godiva off. “I’ll think
about it.” “Really?” “Yes.” No, she thought. She
hurried on before Godiva could press the point. “I’ve really gotta go. I’m
deep in the middle of Homework Hell. I have to turn in my poetry collection to
the Internet creative writing professor next week, and I still haven’t figured
out a theme for the damn thing. I’m totally screwed if I can’t get rid of this
writer’s block.” “Well,” Godiva giggled micheviously, “I
don’t know how it’d work on writer’s block, but Romeo sure unclogged me last
night.” “You’re not helping me.” “I’m just saying—a little werewolf action
might fix you right up.” “You’re still not helping.” “Sorry. I’ll let you get back to your
writing. Remember, you said you’d think about a werewolf lover.” “Yeah, I’ll think about it right after I
think about my poetry theme. Uh, shouldn’t you and your sisters be frolicking
about the graveyard making sure the dead stay dead?” “Oh, don’t worry about it. I’m sure the
spell wore off when the sun rose.” Godiva paused, thinking about how her
sister, Gerda, had scampered off into the woods with one of the corpses.
Yeesh. “Uh, on second thought. Are you going jogging today?” “Yes.” “Do you think you could take a spin
through the graveyard? Between you and the sun, that should make sure the dead
are, well, dead. Again.” Candice sighed. “I suppose.” “Thanks! You’re a doll! Bye.” Godiva hung up the phone and sat tapping
her chin with one long, slender finger. Candy was getting old before her
time. Goddess knows she really did need a lover. A young lover. A young
werewolf lover. Her fingers itched to swirl up a little love spell, but magic
wouldn’t work on her friend. Godiva’s eyes widened and her full, pink lips
tilted up. Magic wouldn’t work on Candy, but it would work on a werewolf… *** She’d never get this damn assignment
done. “You’d think after teaching for twenty years I wouldn’t have any problem
doing homework.” Candy grumbled at herself and ran a frustrated hand through
her thick hair. “Poetry themes…poetry themes…poetry themes…” Death, time,
love, the soul, happiness, sex… “Sex,” she muttered, chewing the end of her
well-sharpened #2 pencil. “That’s one I can’t write about. Like I’ve had sex
in…” She clamped her lips shut, refusing to speak aloud the ridiculous amount
of time it had been since the last time she’d been laid. As if the last
time(s) even counted. Ex-husidiot number three had been, in politically correct
terms, the penis impaired. Spoken plainly, he’d had a pathetically small dick,
and an incredibly large wallet. Unfortunately, one did not make up for the
other. Candy grimaced. Quite frankly, women who said size didn’t matter have
clearly never been with a man with a small dick. The remembrance alone was
enough to turn her stomach. “Theme!” she said, forcing her thoughts
back to the blank notebook page. She wanted to create poetry that would dazzle
her professor, replete with complex symbolism, witty phrasing, and possibly
even a few clever slant rhymes. She’d come up with exactly—she glanced at the
naked page—nothing. She was screwed (figuratively speaking). “Okay, so write something…anything…write
what you know…” What the hell did she know? She knew she
was sick of teaching the Fighting Fairies and she knew she would never get
married again. Well, she sure as hell didn’t want to write about high school,
which left… “What the hell. At least it’ll get me
writing.” …She drew a deep breath and let her
pencil begin moving across the blank page. Keep your Errol Flynn’s, Paul Newman’s,
Mel Gibson’s all puppets—empty mascarades.
She blinked and reread the
first two lines. Not Shakespeare, but it did have a certain ring to it. Candy
grinned and continued. Tom, Dick, and Harry, too the boy next door I want no more. Wasn’t that the truth. Her
pencil, with a mind of its own, kept moving. You ask, what now? Well… And the self-moving pencil
stopped. What now? What now? What now? She jumped as the clock in her study
chimed seven times. Seven o’clock already? How long had she been on the phone
with Godiva? Now she’d have to hurry to get in her five mile jog, complete
with graveyard detour, before the sun set. Crap! She certainly didn’t want to
be outside alone long after dusk. Weird things had been going on—and it took
some doing for anything to be classified as “weird” by a Brokenoggin native.
Candy put down her pencil and began pulling on her running shoes. *** The beat of her shoes against
the blacktop road beckoned to him. He’d heard it while he was still deep in the
woods and it had called him away from the disgruntled and unsatisfied young
thing he’d been licking. It was unlike him to leave such a delicious tidbit,
but the steady slapping sound seemed to somehow get into his body. It thrummed
with his pulse…his heartbeat…it pounded through his loins making them feel hot
and heavy. He scented the warm evening breeze. Woman…hot, sweaty, and ripe.
And not far ahead of him. He growled deep in his throat as he hurried to catch
her. *** Candy kept her eyes half
closed as she sprinted through the graveyard, totally ignoring the creepy
shadows that flitted past the edge of her vision. Bleck. She shivered and
increased her pace, thinking that the burn in her muscles actually felt good.
Godiva had been right about one thing—she did still have a killer body. Sure,
she’d like to lose a few pounds, but who wouldn’t? Her legs were long and
strong, her boobs were full and womanly, and—best of all—she had seriously big
hair. With a burst of speed, she
shot out of the graveyard and pounded down the empty blacktop road that would
eventually circle around and back to her house, which had been build, log cabin
style, at the edge of town. Maybe she could keep up this pace the rest of the
way home. Hell, she might even run an extra mile or so! Which was a lovely thought
until the cramp hit her right calf. “Shit!” She pulled up,
hobbling like one of the crones from Macbeth. Breathing a sigh of relief, she
realized that the little rise in the road was the bridge that covered Wolf
Creek. She could sit on the bank and rub her calf back into working order. So
much for sprinting home. She had just pulled off her
shoe and thick athletic sock when she heard the growl. Low and deep it drifted
to her on the breeze, tickling up her spine. She looked nervously around. It
sounded too big to be a dog. It was probably a werewolf. Candy rubbed harder at
the cramp. She wasn’t actually afraid. Werewolves were rarely more than
annoying. Spectacular…Godiva’s breathy moan whispered through her mind.
Candy ignored it. “Did you hurt yourself?” His voice was deep, with a
husky velvet sound that was very much man. She swiveled around in time to see
him step from the edge of the pine trees. And her mouth dropped open. He was
easily 6’4” and probably 230 pounds. Broad shoulders seemed to stretch on
forever, and a wide, scrumptious chest tapered down to a well defined waist.
And those legs…even through the relaxed jeans she could see that they were
heavily muscled. His face was in shadow, so her entire attention focused on
his body and the way he stalked towards her with a strong, feral grace that
made her breath catch and her mouth go dry. Then, like he’d walked into a
tree, he stopped. “Miss Cox?” “Yes,” she said hesitantly,
trying to figure out who the hell he was. “It’s me, Jason.” He started towards her again,
and she blinked up at him as his face emerged from the shadows. And—good
lord—what a face it was! Strong, well-defined cheekbones and a rugged,
masculine chin. His hair was thick, with a sexy, mussed curl, and so black it
reminded her of a raven’s wing. His eyes…oh shit…his eyes were intense Paul
Newman blue and were almost as inviting as his beautiful mouth. “Jason Thinksalot. You know,
Janice’s uh…” Here he hesitated. “…well, I’m related to Janice. I had you for
sophomore English.” She mentally shook herself.
He was an ex-student. Did it just figure. Candy frowned, trying to pull her
thoughts from the bedroom into the classroom. “Oh, that’s right. Wow. Time
flies,” she said with forced levity, feeling suddenly old as hell. “What was
that, ten years ago?” “Twelve,” he said. He
crouched next to her and nodded at her bare leg. “Did you hurt yourself?” “Oh, no. It’s nothing. Just a
cramp.” He was so close to her that she could feel the heat of his body and smell him—young and
virile and masculine. Holy shit he was sexy! “I can fix that,” he said.
Without waiting for her to respond he took her foot and propped it in his lap.
Then he began to massage her cramping calf. His hands
were strong and his touch was incredibly warm. “Lay back. Relax.” His voice had
dropped to the deep, throaty tone he’d used when he’d first come into the
clearing. “Let me take care of you.” She stared at him. She should tell him to take her foot out of
his crotch and take his hands off her leg. But his touch was doing the most amazing
things to her body. His fingers were sending little ripples of shock from her
calf up the inside of her thigh and directly to her crotch, filling her with an
unexpected rush of heat and wetness. “Don’t fight it. There’s no reason to. It’s just me,” he said.
His breath had deepened and his eyes kept traveling from her mouth to her
breasts. She realized that her aroused nipples were clearly visible through
her damp tee shirt and sheer white sports bra. What would it hurt? It had been years since a beautiful young man
had rubbed anything on her body. Why the hell not? She deserved a good time.
After all, she wasn’t planning on being a Fighting Fairy much longer. With a
sigh, she lay back. His smile was knowing. “Does that feel good?” he asked. instep. “You know, I had a
huge crush on you in high school,” he murmured. “I thought you were the sexiest woman I’d ever seen.”
Candy couldn’t seem to find her voice. “You’re still the sexiest woman I’ve
ever seen.” Slowly, he raised her foot to his lips and kissed the delicate arch his fingers
had warmed. She shivered. “You shouldn’t do that,” she said, but she didn’t
pull her foot from his grasp. “Why not?” His tongue flicked out and touched
her foot. “Because you’re my ex-student!” she blurted. He smiled and scooted
forward so that his mouth could move from her foot to her ankle. “I’m of
age. Well of age. I’m twenty-six.” “Oh, God!” She said as his teeth teasingly
nipped her bare leg. “I thought you were twenty- seven.”
As if one year actually made a difference. He was an infant! Practically a
teenager. “I’ll be twenty-seven if you
want me to be,” he said huskily. “Oh, God!” she gasped
(again), and all thoughts of statutory rape and moral turpitude fled from her
mind. “Sssh,” he breathed against
the sensitive spot behind her knee. “You taught me twelve years ago. Now it’s
my turn. Let me teach you what I’ve learned since I left your class.” “You really shouldn’t,” she
said breathlessly, making no move to stop him as his lips grazed her inner
thigh. He continued as if she hadn’t
spoken. “What I’ve learned is how to use my tongue and mouth to bring a woman to
orgasm before I fill her body with mine and stroke her into another climax and
then another.” “So you do this often?” The
thought of the possibility that she might be just another in a long line of
female conquests began to dissipate her horny haze. “No,” he moaned, his mouth
against her skin. “Don’t think that. It’s you I want to taste—you I want to
pleasure. I’ve fantasized about you for years. You have no idea how much I
want you and only you. Let me make my fantasies real.” “But I’ve sworn off men,” she
said inanely. Between his husky voice and his clever mouth, she was quickly
falling back into a mindless horny haze, and was barely able to form a complete
thought. “That’s perfect because I’m
not a man,” he said, his eyes shining up at her from between her legs. “I’m a
werewolf. You can make love to me and still keep your oath.” Her breath caught in
surprise. Had she ever known that he was one of Brokenoggin’s werewolves?
Janice certainly wasn’t. Was she? And then, Candy automatically glanced up at
the darkening sky, where a full moon would soon be rising above the trees. “If I remember correctly, Candy,”
his voice caressed her name, “your magic is non-magic. Which means I am unable
to shift my shape around you. I am in man form right now, and as long as I’m
close to you I’ll stay in that form.” He nuzzled her thigh. “Let me make love
to you, my sweet Candy. Let me be your lover.” I know exactly what you
need…a werewolf lover. Godiva’s voice whispered through her mind. Maybe her friend was
right. And why the hell not? It had been so damn long. A young, virile
lover... With a fierce smile, she made
her decision. “If you can’t change form as
long as I’m close to you, I guess the right answer is for me to keep you very
close to me.” She pulled the young werewolf to her and let his victorious
growl vibrate against her naked skin. *** Jogging home her pace was filled with newfound energy and her
smile never wavered. Godiva had been right. A werewolf lover was spectacular.
Especially such a young werewolf lover. God, she’d almost forgotten the
incredibly sexy strength of a young man’s body. And recovery time! Jeesh. The
boy/man/wolf had been better than a recharged vibrator. She jumped the steps
into her house two at a time. He made her feel twenty again. And the day
after tomorrow…they were meeting again the day after tomorrow. He’d wanted to
see her again the very next day, but then he had suddenly remembered that he’d
promised Janice that every odd day of the week he’d help her with…well,
whatever. Candy couldn’t remember exactly what job he’d promised to do for the
sheriff every other day. She had been too busy staring at his wonderful
mouth—there was a whole other world waiting for her in that mouth— and she
looked foreword to discovering new territory in it every other day. She could
hardly wait. Gulping a glass of water, her
eye caught sight of the notebook and pencil sitting on her desk where she’d
left them. Candy grinned. Again, Godiva had been right. He’d certainly unblocked
her. Eagerly, she sat down and put pencil to the unfinished page, taking up
easily where she’d left off. You ask, what now? Candy giggled. You see…a wolfman is the man
for me. The ringing phone jarred her. The caller ID said Tawdry, Godiva.
Blushing, Candy answered the phone. “So,” Godiva’s voice was smug. “How was your jog?” Candy’s breath came out in a rush. “You know! Did you do it?” “Do what?” “Don’t play innocent witch with me. How did you manage it? Magic
doesn’t work on me.” “It might not work on you, but it definitely works on werewolves.”
“You made him want me!” she shrieked. “Certainly not,” Godiva
sounded offended. “All I did was to cast a lupine drawing spell. If it caught
a wolf that didn’t find you attractive, he would have never approached you.
Think of it like baiting a hook. If the worm—which was you—wasn’t juicy and
tender and appealing to the fish—or in this case, werewolf—he would never taste the bait.” “Oh,” Candy grinned and
twirled a thick strand of hair around her finger. “Details, please.” “Let’s just say this worm was
well eaten.” They both dissolved into
giggles. “And,” Candy said
breathlessly, “I’m meeting him again, day after tomorrow. And then every other
day after that. He said he can’t get enough of me, and, honey, let me tell
you. I definitely can’t get enough of him!” “Sounds delicious! Who is
he?” “You mean you don’t know?” “No. I told you—I just baited
the hook. I had no idea which wolf would bite.” “Oh, Godiva, it’s so
deliciously naughty. He’s young, and,” she dropped her voice to a
whisper, “he’s an ex-student of mine.” “Oh, Goddess! How yummy.
Give. Who is he?” Godiva gushed. “Jason Thinksalot,” she said
breathlessly. “Who?” “Jason Thinksalot. You know,
he said he’s related to Janice.” “Oh, Goddess.” “What? What’s wrong? I know
he’s young, but it’s not like he’s still a teenager—which would be totally
disgusting—he’s twenty-six. Practically twenty-seven.” “Oh, Goddess.” “Godiva Tawdry what is it!”
Candy was beginning to feel sick. “I should have known,” Godiva
groaned. “But how could I have known? I didn’t think it would be him.” “Godiva. Tell me.” The witch drew a deep breath
and then blurted. “He’s a slut.” “What?!” “He’s the most promiscuous
werewolf in town—or out of town for that matter. The pack tramp. Truly a dog
in all the worst connotations of the word.” “Oh, no…” “Oh, yes. The every other day
thing? That’s probably the only way he could work you into his busy schedule.”
“And all that stuff he said
to me…” “You mean about making a
woman orgasm with his mouth?” Candy gasped in horror. “Let me guess—he licked your
foot?” Godiva said. “Yes,” Candy squeeked. “That’s his move. He does
that with all the girls/wolves/whatever.” “I may be sick.” “Hey, don’t worry about it,”
Godiva forced perkiness into her voice. “You had a good time, right?” “He played me for a fool,”
Candy said quietly. “No, he’s just—” Candice cut her off. “He’s
just not going to get away with it. I said I was too old for this kind of
shit, and I am. But not because I’m dried up and unattractive. I’m too old to
be lied to and cheated on. So tell me the truth. He’s obviously not working
with our sheriff tomorrow night. What is he really doing?” “Uh, if I tell you, what are
you going to do?” “Well, my witchy friend, I
can sum that up in one word. Retribution.” *** The full moon was so white
against the deep black of the starless sky that it almost looked silver.
Sitting at the edge of the clearing, Candice breathed deeply of the warm night
air and waited. It wasn’t long before she heard them approaching through the
trees. They weren’t being stealthy—there was no reason for it. They were being
young and uninhibited and very, very horny. Godiva had been right
(again). It was easy to tell which of the wolves was Jason. That thick black
pelt was as distinctive as his eyes (and his tongue). She stood up and stepped into
the clearing. Keeping the hand that clutched the collar hidden behind her back
she cocked her hip and shook back her hair. With a sexy purr to her voice, she
called to him. “Jason, come here boy!” The
big black wolf quit rolling around the ground with the little bitch he’d been
licking and cocked his ears at her. Candice ran her hand suggestively over her
body. “I have something special for you that I just couldn’t wait till
tomorrow to give you.” With an enthusiastic woof, he
bounded towards her, his all-too-familiar tongue lolling. With one quick
movement, she dropped to her knees beside him and slipped the heavy duty choke
collar around his throat. “Arough?” he said, staring up
at her in confusion. “Tonight you’re coming with
me,” she whispered. When the bitches yapped at her, she grinned over her
shoulder at them. “Don’t worry. I’ll give him back to you—but not till I’ve had
my way with him.” He whined and squirmed as she
dragged him to her jeep. “Don’t bother,” she told him. “Remember, my magic is
non-magic. You can’t change as long as I’m close to you. And I hear that your
favorite position is very close to any woman. So get comfortable fur-face.” *** “Thank goodness I caught you
before you closed, Joe,” Candice smiled as she dragged the whining wolf into
the veterinary clinic. “Is there something wrong
with your…” The vet hesitated, narrowing his eyes at the wolf. “Dog,” Candice supplied.
“Yes, there is something wrong with my dog. I need you to perform emergency
surgery.” “Really? He looks healthy to
me.” The vet reached down and ruffled the “dog’s” dark fur. Jason whined pitifully. “You’re a big boy, aren’t
you?” the vet said. “He certainly thinks he
is—which explains the emergency. I need you to,” Candice paused, glanced at
Jason, then dropped her voice and whispered into the vet’s ear. “Well, I don’t know. It’s
pretty late. I was just closing,” Joe said. “Surely you can fit him in.
Pretty please, Joe?” She fluttered her lashes at him. Joe smiled and shrugged. “I
suppose I could for my favorite teacher. Go Fairies!” “Go Fairies!” Candice chimed
in automatically. “If you wait here, I’ll take
him in the back and be done in no time,” Joe said. “Uh, no! I mean, I’ll come
back with you. If I don’t stay close to him he’ll change…into something that
might surprise you.” “But you won’t want to
watch!” “Oh, no, no,” she assured
him. “I’ll stay in the room, but I have a poem I need to finish, so I’ll be
concentrating on that while you take care of his problem.” “Suit yourself, teacher,” Joe
said. “Bring him back.” Candice settled on a metal
folding chair not far from the operating room table, careful to keep her back
to the busy veterinarian and his unwilling patient. She picked up her pencil,
and smiled as she finished
her poem. But if that wolfman breaks my
heart if he thinks that we should part I’ll wait until the moon is waxing full
that magic time when his change is due, (my love is quite helpless then, as a
puppy…baby…body in a mortuary) I’d collar that fur-faced gigolo and make a
timely visit to The Vet. Ah, well, I’m sure there’ll
never be a need. Candice smiled and glanced up
at where Joe obscured her view of the sleeping, spread eagle Jason. …Yet. Episode 1.4 CRUNCHING SCIENTIST, HIDDEN DRAGON By Sophia Nash Episode 1.4 Crunching Scientist, Hidden Dragon By Sophia Nash “Well, I’ll be damned if I’m going to let
Vanessa DuMal get her claws in one of them before me.” Mavis Gap dropped the
edge of her avocado and burnt orange striped curtains back in place and turned
to Janice, draped comfortably across a chartreuse loveseat. “Your pointed ears are glowing, honey.” “Well, I like that. Is that all you
gotta say?” Mavis scooped the chihuahua from her native Indian cop friend’s
lap and paced, a pouty look in full bloom. “Well, what did you expect? You know how
bored I get listening to your Vanessathons. When are you going to learn to
just ignore her?” “The day I win.” “Win what?” “Whatever.” Mavis bent down to kiss the
top of Prunella’s head, a devious plan emerging. “Have another Cosmopolitan, honey.” Janice
patted the seat next to her before giving the cocktail shaker a couple of jigs
and draining it into the two V shaped glasses. “It’s not even 7:15 in the morning,
Janice.” “Think of it as retail therapy.” “Wha? I can’t talk to you when you’re
this far gone.” Mavis accepted the glass from her friend and drained it in one
swallow. “It’s retail therapy when I had to go out
and actually buy this fancy French firewater since you couldn’t remember the
spell.” “You’re changing the subject.” Mavis glared
at her friend and wondered, not for the first time, if Janice was fifty or one
hundred and fifty. It was hard to tell given the amount of Votox Janice had
convinced the town vet to inject in her forehead. If she had not been her best
friend Mavis would make fun of the slight droop in one eyebrow. “I have dibs on
Dr. Perfectly-Chiseled.” “Does Dr. Predily-Chisolm know?” “He will tonight when he comes for
dinner. He and the other two visiting archaeologists end their first day of
excavation at five.” She looked down at her bosom and rearranged her Miracle
bra to extra perky before leafing through the pages of the latest edition of
Chihuahua Fancy. Janice sat up straight and shifted her
eyes. “Where’d they say they were digging?” “Why Corkscrew Falls—where all those old
bones are.” Janice’s eyes radiated a wolfish color
for the merest moment before she downed the cocktail and vamoosed out the door
faster than Mavis could say, “Single, white, willing witch. Humans within
1,500 mile radius only. Reply with photo.” *** If there was one thing Vanessa DuMal was
sure of, it was that she didn’t want to end up like town busybody, Mavis Gap,
with her neurotic brood of Chihuahuas and a passion for exotic cocktails. She
felt sorry for the woman who lived her life by watching everyone else’s.
Vanessa shook her head. Did Mavis really think Vanessa hadn’t seen her peeking
past her curtains whose colors were a scary homage to the dubious design
choices of the 70’s? Walking away from Sarah Caldron’s Chat
& Chew, Vanessa wondered why Mavis was so envious of her, anyway. It was
not as if she had any children, the one thing every other witch in town craved.
It seemed the woman coveted everything Vanessa possessed. Every time she
bought new clothes, not a week would go by before Mavis would be wearing the
identical thing—even when the jeans had made her chunky bottom and legs look
like, like…Vanessa forced back her mean-spirited thoughts and turned onto Puff
Draggy Lane. She knew why she was feeling cattish. Her hormones were on
overdrive and Mavis had blatantly propositioned Vanessa’s husband Jean-Luc at the
annual All Hollow’s Eve party at the town hall last week. The thought of her spouse made Vanessa’s
stomach churn. Every nerve ending in her body was tingling. Why had she made
that outrageous suggestion to the archaeologist at the Chat & Chew? It wasn’t
like her to flirt. She hadn’t looked twice at a male—human, warlock or
otherwise—since the day she had laid eyes on the Frenchman of her dreams that
warm autumn day in Paris—the day she had realized her lifelong dream of
visiting the City of Light. With his wild lion’s mane hair, glittering gold
eyes, and passion for adventure, the West Bank artist with a slew of fancy
French titles had stolen her heart faster than the time it had taken for the
paint to dry on the canvas she had purchased from him. She could still barely believe her luck
in having this extraordinary and mysterious man ask her to marry him, and agree
to move to middle-of-nowhere America. But he had had no choice given that
Vanessa spoke no French and the Parisian financial institutions had shown
little interest in employing an investment analyst from Michigan despite her
extraordinary knack for picking winning stocks and commodity futures. And so,
acting on the spur of the moment, a most beloved French trait, Jean-Luc had
packed up his canvases and paints brushes and sailed back with her to America.
Surprisingly, he had become enraptured by
the natural and mysterious elements of Brokenoggin which he featured in all his
new paintings. Although why a normal human would like it Brokenoggin she could
never understand. Most humans only stuck around here because of the various
potions and spells that were secretly disbursed as freely as sedatives on a
mental ward. Selling short May Pork Bellies five years
ago had provided the couple with enough cash for them to marry and move into a
house that Jean-Luc had quickly filled with his bold, visionary art. But
lately, nothing seemed to be going right. They were stuck in a rut of epic
proportions. Jean-Luc’s art wasn’t selling, and Vanessa’s depressing hormone
charts had long ago replaced their dinner discussions of charting the once
exhilarating pre-Silicon Valley financial markets. And lately, many of their
friends had stopped including them in gatherings. Many called Jean-Luc haughty and unapproachable
behind her back, forgetting that Vanessa’s gift of extraordinary hearing made
anyone within a four-block radius subject to her auditory clairvoyance. But she
loved Jean-Luc. Always would, despite his bizarre love of Animal Kingdom and
Jerry Lewis and his disinterest in daily showers. There was something about the mysterious
glow she sometimes thought she saw lurking in his eyes when he growled and
mated with her that made the answering primal urge within her ignite. It was
just that lately, she was certain all her childbearing enhancement potions were
interfering in their once tempestuous sex life. And there were times Vanessa was sure he
didn’t love her as much as she loved him. She sometimes thought the only reason
he stayed with her was because of her adeptness at moneymaking ventures. The
quarterly visits by her in-laws didn’t help Vanessa’s self-esteem either.
Jean-Luc’s father and stepmother Simone could make mincemeat of lesser
mortals. Their hawkish features and vague criticism of ‘vulgar American ways,”
cut Vanessa to the quick. When they came, there was no question in her opinion
of who came first in Jean-Luc’s mind in the familial pecking order. And
Vanessa couldn’t bear her stepmother-in-law’s accusatory stare. Didn’t they know
that Vanessa wanted to provide them with a grandchild even more than Jean-Luc
did? After five years with Jean-Luc, her itch for a child was worse than the
time Alice Fairweather mistakenly mixed poison ivy extract in her Preparation H
type remedy. Vanessa just couldn’t take it anymore.
Her eyelids burned with tears fighting to form as she opened the little gate to
her house’s cobbled walkway. A few feathers danced in the early morning breeze
and Vanessa wondered if the neighbor’s cat had finally gotten to the baby
eaglets nearby. “Jean-Luc, this is the only way. For the
thousandth time, you should have followed your father’s advice and never
married Vanessa, anyway. We knew the union could never produce an heir. At
least we’re grateful it hasn’t produced…something canine.” Vanessa stopped dead in her tracks and
stared at her red front door. Simone DuMal’s voice drowned out Mavis’s barking
chihuahuas five blocks away. She lost the fight with her welling tears. “You’ve gone too far, Simone. I won’t do
it. Not even for my father. I love Vanessa.” “Love…such a foolish notion Americans put
on their greeting cards”—Vanessa could picture Simone’s Gallic shrug—”Since
when did love having anything to do with producing the next generation’s
Vicomte de la Gryphon? Vanessa is a nice enough girl. But what we need is a
nester and breeder. I know the glitter of gold is what got to you. It has
been the undoing of most of our kind.” There was a pause. “Now, don’t make me
angry, you know what happens when the mood strikes me and I’m already
peckish.” Vanessa heard a familiar growl and scratching noise. “It’s a fait
accompli. You’re to meet that nice, normal archaeologist lady at eight pm
at the house your father and I rent when we come to visit. I told her you were
an expert on the history of Brokenoggin and she bought it. I’ll make a
delicious Foggy Dragon’s Breath soup so she’ll envision her wildest dream come
true—although with your charm and looks you really shouldn’t need it—and if you
can’t get her between the sheets within the blink of a sty, then I’ll, I’ll,
well, we’ll all give Vanessa another chance.” “Simone.” “Don’t ‘Simone’ me. This is for the
best. And Vanessa would thank us. If you impregnate the archaeologist, we’ll
cast spells on both Vanessa and the scientist so that they’re both convinced
it’s Vanessa’s child after the fact.” “I don’t know, Simone. It sounds pretty
far-fetched. But…I guess I’m willing to do it, if it will solve our problem.
Frankly, I’m sick of the subject.” Vanessa clapped her hands over her ears
and ran back toward town. Her cursed extra-sensory hearing. She knew it. Just
knew it. Jean-Luc didn’t love her. Now, there was nothing stopping her from
accepting that offer of a drink tonight. And it would serve them all right if
her child looked like the nerdy archaeologist. A new wave of tears erupted.
Witches were not known for their willingness to bite off their noses to spite
their faces. *** The table was set, the tarot cards swept
under the couch, and the dogs, bless their little hearts, dead asleep behind
the kitchen door after lapping up that mild sleeping draught. Mavis glanced at
a chew toy peeping up at her from the harvest-gold shag carpeting and kicked it
under the coffee table. The doorbell rang and Mavis suddenly
noticed that the eyes of the lit troll candle were glaring at her. She turned
the face away and ran to the door. Opening it, she stared up at the most
handsome human she’d ever seen. Wavy chestnut hair, blue-green eyes, full
luscious lips. Ah, he looked liked Dr. Kildare, only better. “Mrs. Gap?” Dr. Predily-Chisolm gallantly
swept up her hand and bent to brush his lips upon it. How utterly nineteenth
century romantic. There were definitely some things she wished civilization
hadn’t lost in the name of progress. Mavis forced back a girlish giggle. “Do
come in. I’m soooo glad you could make it. I know how tiring all that digging
must be.” He crossed the threshold and Mavis
quickly locked the door behind him and turned off the porch light. Nothing
was going to interrupt her now. “I’ve prepared a little dinner and”—she licked
her lips— ”a lot of dessert for after.” “How kind of you, Mrs. Gap.” “Miss Gap. But please call me
Mavis.” “Alright. Then you must call me John.” “How appropriate,” Mavis replied with a
giggle she hoped didn’t sound like a snort. He was so cute standing there and looking
a bit flustered and disheveled. Mavis rose up on her toes and brushed a fleck
of dirt off his cheek. “Miss—or rather, Mavis, thank you so much
for your invitation and for offering to give me a little insight into the
history of this town. I really do think we’re onto some sort of breakthrough.
We’re still trying to document the find. Can’t tell if it’s a woolly mammoth
or some sort of ancient dinosaur.” “How fascinating. Tell me more. But
first, please, try this little drinky-winky. I’ve made a batch of piсa-coladas
and they’re divine, if I do say so.” She slid a drink into his hand faster
than a black widow bites the head off its mate. Potions weren’t her forte.
She just hoped the aphrodisiac wasn’t too potent, but then again, maybe that
wouldn’t be such a bad thing. She motioned him to sit on the love seat and
joined him. Mavis clinked his glass in salute,
forcing him to take a swallow. “Mmmm, Mavis. That’s good. What’s that unusual
taste?” Must be the dash of ground Mexican fire
ant testes. “Paprika.” “Curious,” he said taking two gulps in
rapid succession. His eyes looked a little glazed. He shook his head in an obvious
effort to regain his sense of purpose. “So tell me about Brokenoggin.” “This drear—I mean dear little town?
Well, let’s see.” She really should tell him a little to whet his appetite and
ensure his return if the wild sex didn’t do the trick. He was simply too
handsome to be content with a one night stand. She hunched her shoulders which
forced her cleavage to full frontal attack mode and placed a finger on her
Dance with the Devil Red lips. “I understand from a little book I have,
written by my ancestor—a grandfather—or rather a great, great, great
grandfather. Maybe one or two more greats should be in there.” She winked at
him. “Anyway, sometime during the seventeenth century, he emigrated here from
Plymouth along with a group of other settlers who seemed disenchanted with the
whole puritan scene. I think he came with about six or seven other friends.”
“Really?” He had the cutest earnest expression on
his face. And the hugest bulge in his trousers. Mavis smiled. “Yes. Care for
some guacamole and chips?” She dipped a chip and dropped it between his
quivering lips before dragging her finger along his willing tongue. “Honey,
are you OK? You look a little warm.” That was an understatement. “No, no, I’m fine.” He gulped back the
rest of the piсa-colada and tugged on his tie. Mavis leaned forward to deftly untie the
striped Brooks-Brothers staple. Vanessa would be impressed. “How were they received?” he asked. A
trickle of perspiration slid down his temple. “What, honey?” “Your ancestor and his group. How were
they received?” “Oh. Let’s see.” She touched the tip of
her tongue on her top lip and tried to look thoughtful. Hmmmm, maybe she should
let him have another half a piсa colada so he’d really let go of his
inhibitions. She poured a little more from the Waring blender. “Well, it seems
the new settlers were very warmly welcomed because the original town folk were,
well, starving.” He tossed back the drink like a man who
had just crossed the Sahara. “Starving…” His pupils were dilated, and his
voice had taken on a kind of husky vibration. Something was dancing the mambo
in his pants. It was an impressive sight—enough to make any girl swoon. She looked at his transfixed gaze and
swooped in for a kiss. Let the thrashing begin. She had meant for the experience to
culminate in her bedroom. She had spiffed it up for the occasion, pink silk
sheets, a pink comforter, ruffles on all the pillows and bows on all the
curtains. But it wasn’t in the cards. She should have guessed since her tarot
cards had forewarned that this was going to be wild, brief, and devastating. Yummy.
Dr. Predily-Chisolm was a big boy. And
he was adorable, all large clumsy hands between mutterings of ‘sorry’ every
half a minute or so. He didn’t seem to know how to unhook her push-up bra or
untangle the fishnet stockings around her ankles. But he did know what to do
with his, his—well, a nice girl would call it ‘his digging tool,’ she
thought with a smirk. Oh, this felt so nice and normal after
all that wild jungle sex with the warlocks in town, when you never knew if they
were going to turn into lions or tigers or dragons at the drop of a wand. And
this time she was sure she would conceive a real child with magical powers
instead of another chihuahua. Not that she didn’t love the little darlings. It
was just that she was tired of all the pitying looks in town. And boy would it
get Vanessa’s goat. Oh my, she might just be reaching the
point of having an old-fashioned climax! How novel. Dr. Predily-Chisolm leaned
up on his forearms and Mavis gazed at his beautiful abs. She sighed in
pleasure and urged him silently with her hips. She was right on the pinnacle
and panting. “I’m so sorry, Mavis. I don’t know
what’s come over me.” “I don’t know what you mean, handsome.
I’m all yours for the taking.” “I mean, I don’t normally do this sort of
thing.” “Really? I would’ve never guessed.” If
he didn’t move again, she thought she would die of anticipation. She bucked
against him. “Wait. What’s that noise?” he asked. Please. Start. Moving. Now. She thought
in annoyance. She tried to tug his neck down but he had gone rigid. “I hear scratching and…and is that
barking?” Oh God. No! And she knew just what they
were capable of. Prunella had taught Wisty and George how to balance her on
their backs so that she could reach the kitchen doorknob with her paws and
wrench it open. No sooner had she envisioned it, when all nine dogs burst
through the door and circled them, barking in a laughing sort of way. The scientist jumped up, pulled up his
pants and stood on top of the end table, knocking her precious troll candle to
the floor. Mavis threw the rest of the piсa coladas
on the small flames now licking the carpet and a purple starburst erupted
before it extinguished the fire and left an ashen spot of sodden cinders. The
dogs had surrounded the end table like a pack of laughing hyenas and the good
doctor was looking mighty uncomfortable. Mavis was about as frustrated as she had
ever been in her life. “Prunella, if you don’t herd Wisty, George, Max and the
rest back to the kitchen, I’ll put you in the pound! And I’ll take you for
your annual shots early!” Mavis snapped a hand to her mouth. He would
think she was a raving lunatic talking to her little ones like that. Luckily,
he looked too scared to have noticed. “Johnny, darling, no need to cower up
there, my little doggies are the sweetest, they’d never hurt a Spanish fly.” Prunella winked and led her brothers and
sisters back to the kitchen. The scientist still appeared anxious and only half
listening when she helped him down. “I’m sorry, I don’t really like dogs.
I’m allergic.” His eyes did look a little watery. “Really? Well, you don’t look allergic
to me. Let’s go back to my bedroom where we won’t be disturbed.” “Ummm, thank you, Mavis, but really, I-I
think I should be going.” Mavis dropped her gaze to his pants and
saw that the dance had ended. Abruptly. Should’a made him drink a full second
glass. “But I have ever so much more to tell you about my ancestors, John. And
dinner is almost finished cooking.” He looked tempted but embarrassed.
“Well, all right, but maybe we should stay in this room. I don’t know what
came over me, Mavis. And I hope you’ll accept my apology. You see, the thing is,
well, to be perfectly frank”—he blinked—”I’m gay.” *** Dr. Loindexter’s room at Motel 13 gave
Mavis Gap’s home decorating efforts a run for their money. Vanessa tried not to
hyperventilate while she stared at the tilted barrel-shaped lampshade on the
nightstand next to the glued-down TV remote. The shiny blue polyester bed
covering looked like something right out of Alice’s bedroom from The Brady
Bunch. As she waited for Dr. Loindexter to emerge from the bathroom, she drew
the curtains closed in an effort to ignore the blinking of the neon tavern sign
across the street. Why, oh, why had she let this go so far?
She could have said ‘no’ after their dinner at Transylvania Pizza Kitchen. She
could have said no after drinks at Brokenoggin’s only tavern. But she hadn’t.
Every time ‘no thank you’ had crept onto her tongue, she remembered her
stepmother-in-law’s voice, ‘what we need is a nester and a breeder.” It
made Vanessa so hurt and sick inside. They always assumed it was her problem.
Well, had her in-laws ever stopped to think that maybe the problem lay in Jean-Luc’s
prodigious lap? Vanessa had spared Jean-Luc the embarrassment of submitting to
an examination by never voicing that thought. She removed her pale pink Manolo Blahniks
that matched her spring tweed suit and Gucci scarf. Jean-Luc had bought the
tiny skirt and jacket because he had said it made her legs look long and sexy.
Oh, she was going to have to stop thinking of Jean-Luc if she was going to do
this. She sat on the edge of the bed and straightened her spine. Reason fought with hurt feelings. Why
hadn’t he stood up to Simone? He almost always had in the past. Vanessa
remembered the secret, and guilty thrill she felt each time he had winked at
her before maneuvering his unsuspecting stepmother on top of their scratched up
trap door. She had thought they were on the same side. Not any more. The archaeologist emerged from the
bathroom, his white Fruit of the Looms pulled high. He had carefully wet and
combed his dark hair parted down the middle. He had tiny aureoles and not a
single strand of hair on his sunken chest. However, the hair from all the wild
beasts in Africa could be found covering his thin legs above his white socks. A
lopsided grin stretched from ear to ear. He looked like he was counting his
lucky stars. Vanessa supposed she had chosen him so
that she would feel less guilty. It was working. Jean-Luc pumped iron on
Mondays, Wednesdays and Saturdays and had some spectacularly sinuous muscles to
show for his efforts. This man, and she used the term generously, would
probably think a Nautilus machine was a navigational device. She crooked a finger at him, urging him
forward. He eagerly jumped onto the bed and sniffed her. So much for sensual
foreplay. “Vanessa, you’re the most beautiful woman
I’ve ever ever seen. I still can’t belie—” She leaned forward, held her breath and
forced herself to kiss him. It was too bad she had forgotten to close her
eyes. She forced back the bile creeping up her throat. For all his assumed lack of experience,
the scientist sure knew how to undress a woman in less time than she could do
it herself. But soon, way too soon, his clammy little hands were exploring
every last inch of her body, and she was trying, unsuccessfully, to keep disgust
at bay. He kept moaning her name over and over until she thought she would
scream. She wished he would just get it over with. Then she would thank him,
leave, and get home in time to mix up a post-coital fermentation elixir to
optimize the chance of conception. She dropped her hand to touch him in an
effort to urge him to mount. A wilted, placid piece of flesh greeted her hand.
What on earth? She had only ever seen Jean-Luc’s manhood, something that would
spark fear in the eyes of any virgin. With good reason. “Oh, Vanessa. Vanessa, baby. See me, feel
me, touch me, heallllll me—” Oh. My. God. Was he whispering lyrics
from the Who’s ‘Tommy’? “Um, Dr. Loindexter. Are you OK?” “Oh, yes, Vanessa baby. Just keep
touching me. It’s been so long. So long since…” “Yes?” “Ah, hell…since anyone’s hand has touched
me other than my own.” She forced herself to open her eyes and
saw a red flush move past his eyebrows to his receding hairline. “I’m sorry Dr.
Loindexter.” Such an unfortunate surname choice. “Will you please call me Duncan?” he
whined. “Oh, sorry, Duncan. What can I do?” He sighed heavily, rolled off of her and
covered his face with his forearm. “Nothing. Not a darn thing. You’re just too
intimidating for me, I guess. No, let me revise that. I know you’re
too intimidating. Hell, I’ve never gotten past second base with anyone, not
even pimply old Betty Sue Bob Michaels. How do you expect someone like me to
perform under so much pressure?” Vanessa’s mouth twitched. Poor man. “I’m
sorry Duncan. Do you want to try again?” She prayed he would say no. Right
now she would give up her first unborn anything if she could just get out of
there. If this was not a sign from her friend Lucifer that good witches didn’t
have to put up with bad sex, then— But… Her nature refused to let her leave
without doing a kindness toward Dr. Loindexter. She flipped open her Birkin
bag, extended her compact wand and flicked it. “Obliviosus somnus,” she
said, wishing she could remember that chapter on organ transformation from her
Curses textbook. This would have to do. Her liver wasn’t into continuing this
ridiculous plan anyway. Duncan Loindexter slept the sleep of the
dead, his jaw slackening in surrender. She was just going to have to figure
out another way to have a child. Perhaps Lucifer would be willing to make a
deal with her. He always had been more than accommodating in the past. Vanessa threw her wand back in her bag,
snapped into her clothes, and walked away from the preposterously named Dr.
Loindexter. She only wished she could experience a little forgetful sleep
herself. *** Jean-Luc DuMal gulped down his
stepmother’s soup like a fluish Jewish man tolerates his mama’s lukewarm Matzo
balls. He gazed down the length of the formal dining room table, marked with
only a few very faint scratch marks, reminders of some heated family
arguments. He wondered about the petite dark brunette archeologist facing
him. So very unlike Vanessa, his dear long, tall drink of ambrosia. His wife
was the quintessential blonde bombshell of every man’s fantasies. How was he
going to go through with this? Dr. Heather Lovingood was ordinary in a
girl-next-door kind of way. She had huge white straight teeth courtesy of an
excellent American orthodontist, a pert nose, and eyeglasses which were just
dying to be taken off her face. But she just wasn’t his type. It was also clear, however, that the
reverse was not true. Two sips of Simone’s soup had made the woman begin to
stare at him with a sort of rapt fascination similar to when the conversation
at the Ladies Home Wicca coffee-clatch turned to Hugh Jackman. Where was the
fun in this? The delicate dance of flirtation was best performed when both
parties knew the art of being coy and intriguing with a sprinkle of dry humor,
something his wife had in abundance. When he felt himself harden, despite
thoughts of his beloved wife, he began to suspect that Simone had slipped
something in his soup too—and it certainly wasn’t a potion that made Dr.
Lovingood look like Hugh Jackman. But then, his stepmother had never been
known to leave things to chance. “Mr. DuMal, you were speaking about the
new settlers, one of whom was your wife’s ancestor, right? He nodded and pushed away his soup bowl. “So they were instrumental in helping the
original townsfolk survive a particularly harsh winter. A kind of re-creation
of Plymouth’s first winter with the Indians, right?” she asked. “Yes, except these newcomers didn’t scalp
the townsfolk.” He smiled at her against his will. Heather was actually fairly
cute. Very cute, really. “Instead, they brought foodstuffs with them and
had some, uh, original methods of stretching what they had on
hand.” “So the inhabitants must have been
grateful.” “You would think.” He scratched his head.
“But you would be incorrect. It seems that once the starving townsfolk’s
stomachs were full, they began to question the newcomers’ methods.” He had a
sudden, nearly irresistible urge to climb on top of the table and crawl over to
this Lovingood babe and lick her. A rumbling from his stomach signaled
gastro-intestinal fire burning his ribs and his crotch. He wondered if dear
old Simone had found this potion in her Joy of Spooking or in a highly
adulterated Guide Micheline recipe file. Annoyance wrestled with desire, and of
course, desire won. “Really?” Heather paused and pulled the
rubber band from her hair, allowing the silky dark strands to fall all over her
nubile shoulders. When had she unbuttoned her oxford shirt
and pushed it off her shoulders? The Lovingood ran a hand through her hair
and tossed it back with panache. “And how did the newcomers react?” she asked
huskily. OK, no one could blame him. No
self-respecting warlock worth his weight in hemlock could resist this potion
whatever it was. He felt like he would explode if he didn’t have her right
here, right now. He got up, trying to casually hold a napkin over his front,
and walked the long length of the table to her. She looked up at him with huge
brown doe-eyes. Simone was right. It was for the best.
Vanessa would thank him if she knew what he was going through to provide
a child for them. He would do the Lovingood and make everyone happy by the
act. “Miss Lovingood, I have some etchings in my study that might be of
particular interest to you. Would you care to see them, my dear?” Not very
original, but who needed subtlety with potions like these? “Ohhhhh, yessss,” she said, breathing
heavily as they almost raced down the hallway. It was a miracle their pants were still
on by the time they reached the study. “What about your wife, Mr. DuMal?”
Heather asked in a moment of clarity. “Wife?” His mind turned to mush when the little
she-devil did something indescribably delicious with her tongue in his ear.
Little did she know she was playing with fire. Literally. He ached for her now with an intensity he
had never known. His stepmother sure knew how to cook. And Heather was
simmering for him. She was mewling like a cat and arching her back like a
rabid raccoon. It was a sight to behold. He gently nudged her down onto the brown
leather sofa and began to unzip his black jeans. The urge to stretch his long
length into her was unrelenting. He allowed his pants to drop and anticipated
the look of reverence that would light up Lovingood’s face. She giggled. It was the kind of giggle that felt like
a dash of ice cold water. With sickening intuition, he looked down to see the
stuff of nightmares. Standing as erect as a tin soldier was a manhood in all
its glory. But it wasn’t his manhood. It looked…well, it looked like a
birthday candle, a child’s unlit pink birthday cake candle. Even the revolving
pink and white swirls were visible. Hell… “Simone,” he roared. An involuntary
flash of fire came out of his throat. Heather screamed. Jean-Luc felt the unmistakable gnawing of
shifting in his bones. It was an achy, fiery sensation that reminded him of
the sound of fingernails on chalkboard. It actually almost felt good. He
hadn’t shifted since the day he’d married Vanessa. In fact, for five years he
had stoically endured a horrendous case of PGS, pre-griffin syndrome. He
didn’t need to glance down to see the feathers forming under his skin, his lionish
tailbones elongating, and his claws emerging. Miss Lovingood clearly wasn’t going to
hang around to see the rest. Moments later, Jean-Luc found himself tripping
over his tangled pants in an effort to keep up with her as she raced out the
front door. Luckily, it was full dark outside with only a waxing moon to
provide any sort of illumination. No one would see them. The fresh air caused an abrupt halt to
his transformation. The fire in his belly calmed and the itch of the pin
feathers retreated as they dissolved back under his skin’s epidermis. He
almost cried out in frustration, the urge to stretch out his wings and fly once
more was almost unbearable. He had waited so long for a shift. If she would only stop that infernal
screaming. Miss Lovingood’s lungs were only surpassed by her wheels, er, legs.
Jean-Luc could barely keep up with her as they raced down Main Street, past the
town tavern. Suddenly, the last door of the low-slung Motel 13 opened wide,
nearly knocking Jean-Luc off his feet. Out walked Vanessa, with a sphinx-like
cool expression on her face, spritzing Chanel No. 718 all over herself. “Jean-Luc, what are you doing here?”
Vanessa asked. Out of breath, Jean-Luc said not a
word—instead he peeked into the motel room. There seemed to be some sort of
half man, half primate curled up in a fetal position and passed out cold on one
of the beds. “I could ask you the same question,
cherie. But”—he raked a hand through his snarled hair—”to be honest, if I don’t
stop that screaming scientist right now, this town might just become prime
fodder for a host of National Enquirer reporters. Come on, we’ll talk later.” Not for the first time, Jean-Luc blessed
his wife’s cool head and long slim legs as she surged past him, high heels be
damned, up the steep road out of town. About half a mile up, the asphalt
turned to gravel and another half mile later, the road skidded into dirt. When
he spied a trail of broken branches, he veered into the underbrush toward
Corkscrew Falls. Fifteen minutes later, Jean-Luc’s sides heaving, he dragged
himself up beside his wife. He knew he should have been doing more cardio
instead of just pumping weights. “Where’d she go?” He leaned over in an
effort to regain his breath. Vanessa panted and pointed to the entrance
of a cave. Eerily familiar wing-batting and heel pounding noises came from
within. “Father?” he shouted. Eyebrows raised in question, Vanessa
swung around to face him. “Huh? Your father’s in there?” He quickly recanted. “I don’t know what
I’m saying, Cherie. Look, we’ve got to get that woman out of there. I have a
bad feeling about this. Isn’t this the place Janice told all of us to steer
clear of?” “What were you doing with that woman
anyway? “What were you doing in that motel room?”
“Don’t change the subject,” Vanessa said.
“Look, my love, I’m big enough to forgive
you if you’ll do the same. You know I love you and no other.” Vanessa looked at him as if she was
trying to read his mind. “Alright”—she pushed her hair over one ear and licked
her lips, a movement that always drove him crazy with desire—”but only if you
promise that you’ll keep your father and stepmother out of our lives forever.” “Forever is a long time, cherie. How
about if I promise to keep them out of our affairs until the next millennium?” “Deal.” Vanessa stuck out her left pinky
and he grabbed it with his own. Pulsating warmth spread through his loins and
he felt himself harden again. He put his other hand on himself and was
relieved to feel a large familiar shape under his jeans this time. Thank God. A bloodcurdling scream rent the night air
and the unmistakable sound of teeth gnawing bone followed. Scientists, it
seemed, were crunchy. The slight smell of mustard and ketchup wafted through
the air. And if he wasn’t mistaken, there was a hint of A1 too. He grabbed his wife’s other hand and
pulled her into a fast retreat toward town. “It’s too bad she wasn’t the
fainting type,” he said, sadly. “Well, someone’s going to have to concoct
a forgetful potion or spell for the other two scientists otherwise we really
will learn firsthand about the Enquirer’s stellar reporting skills,” she said a
few moments later. That’s what Jean-Luc loved about his wife, ever practical. “Poor woman. She came for dinner and I
was telling her all about the history of this little town. But, I was wondering
how I was going to explain the part about your ancestors’ mystical leanings and
the reason they settled here. She wouldn’t have understood the extraordinary
primal urges they—and we—have to mate. And the fact that it takes one mystical
being and one ordinary human to produce something memorable. A living and
breathing…child.” “Oh, Jean-Luc.” Vanessa hurled herself
into his arms. “Do you think we’ll ever have one of our own?” “Of course we will, cherie. It’s only a
matter of time”—he kissed her and held her tight—”and effort.” “And the right potion,” Vanessa added,
sensuality dripping from her. “Well, practice makes perfect,” Jean-Luc
growled and felt his eyes glow. Practice makes perfect, indeed, he thought as
he leaned in to kiss the one witch who made his blood boil. The unmistakable surge of energy in his
emerging wingtips matched the lion spirit invading his lower extremities.
There was no stopping this long anticipated shift now. “I’ve always favored
making love to you in the wild. Nothing like the hint of a dangerous,
man-eating creature nearby to heighten the mood.” Jean-Luc enveloped her with
his massive griffin wings and prepared to plunge into her. He prayed he wasn’t
scaring his dear witchy-wife to death. But he had forgotten her aplomb in the
face of change. “Nothing like being surrounded by soft
feathers and the anticipation of first time lion-sex to put me in the mood, my
love,” she whispered. “My thoughts exactly, cherie.” He growled
and thrust into her. Her primal scream of joy melded with a distant werewolf
howl, causing a star to burst in a galaxy nearby—surely, the promise of a new
life in the making. 2005 was, it seemed, a superb vintage
year, after all. Episode
1.5 HOW TO SEDUCE AN AMNESIAC VAMPIRE By
Kathryn Caskie Episode 1.5 How to Seduce an Amnesiac Vampyre By Kathryn Caskie He stood in the blue
light of the full moon, his back to the steadily lapping loch. There was no
escape. None. He didn’t dare move. Didn’t dare take his gaze from the enormous
wolf watching him from atop a sandstone outcropping not ten feet up the
embankment. This wasn’t good. Why the hell was he out here in the middle of
the night anyway? He searched his brain for an answer, but no matter how hard
he tried, he couldn’t remember a damn thing. Not even his name. Cautiously, he
slid one foot back into the water. He’d just swim out into the loch. It would
be safer out there. But then, a rather disturbing thought sprang into his
mind. What if he couldn’t swim? How was he to know? Best not risk it.
The wolf snarled viciously at his sudden movement and crouched low. He froze
in place. Icy water spat at his heels and splashed the backs of his thighs,
raising the hair from his chilled damp skin. Lifting the short hairs…everywhere.
No. No way. He risked a half-glance downward and blinked at
his own ghostly white skin. Holy shit. He was completely naked...and
what the hell was that—he squinted, trying to make it out—something
written on his hand? There had to be some damned good explanation for all of
this. Had to be. The wolf tilted her head back and let out a shrill
howl, sending an uncontrollable tremble through his body. He watched,
petrified, as she rose up on her muscled legs, prowled a step closer and, with
her tongue, lapped the saliva dripping from one of her fangs. Oh
hell. But
then, the loch behind him began to sputter and pop, bubbling like a pot set to
boil. The sound grew louder and more ferocious over the passing seconds, until
it all but muted the roar of the waterfall not five hundred yards away. His
breath came faster, and he couldn’t seem to get enough air, as the thrash and
splash behind him drew closer and closer still. From the corner of his eye, he
saw a massive scaly taloned appendage cut through the roiling water. Then
it was behind him. light knifed across his
vision sending him staggering toward the muddy bank. He fell to his hands and
knees, dazed. “Seth. Get up. Run!” Dark-winged specks crowded his mind as
he lifted and turned his head toward the female voice. There, on the
sandstone outcropping where the wolf had been, was a naked woman. “Get away
from the loch!” She leapt from the jutting rock with amazing agility and raced
toward him, her
moon-streaked raven hair floating behind her like a silken cape. “Now, Seth,
before it’s too late!” *** Janice pulled her rucksack from the crevice in the
cave wall, and dug around for her makeup bag and Altoid tin. First things first. Seth
could wake up at any moment and she didn’t want the gorgeous piece of man candy
to find her for the first
time—this lunar cycle—with residual gray werewolf streaks through her hair and
Fido breath. She glanced at Seth, the beautiful vampyre, who was lying naked
before the waterfall curtain that stretched across the mouth of the cave. How
lucky she’d been to stumble upon him when she did. But he was safe now...and
better yet, with her. Janice
had to admit she’d never seen such a perfect specimen of a man—mortal or
immortal. And in Brokenoggin Falls, where 24-hour hottie spells could be had
for a mere hundred bucks, that was really saying something. Hurriedly, she popped two Altoids into
her mouth to remedy her dog breath, then pulled out a pink tube of Maybelline
Waterproof Mascara. Angling a hand mirror over her head, she eased the mascara
wand from crown to tip, painting over her gray streaks. And, because she was a
tad over fifty after all, she used the magic Maybelline wand on a couple gray
curlies down under too. Of course, the streaks were only a
temporary thing and, as usual, would disappear once the moon set. But Seth’s
squeaky-clean memory was temporary as well. The minute he opened his eyes, his
amazing blue-ringed eyes, he would remember everything from the incident at the
loch onward—at least, until the next full moon wiped his mind clean again. First impressions were lasting though and
therefore Janice wanted to be sure to look her best—or rather, her youngest
for him. Of course, this meant making sure he saw
her naked...tonight. Absently, Janice wondered where she might
find her shredded uniform this time. It was a pain in the keester to hunt down
her clothing after every full moon, but she was a far larger wolf than human,
and well, that was probably a good thing. Reports of a wolf running through
the woods in a police uniform would probably start people talking. She proudly surveyed her bronze-hued nude
form, pausing on her perfectly pert breasts. There was no question about it,
she looked fabulous. Sadly, though, the wolfish effects on her body would be as
fleeting as her gray-streaked hair. Janice glanced down at her muscle-cut
abdomen, and well-defined arms and legs. Yup, by tomorrow morning, her boobs would
resemble puppy ears, her thighs cottage cheese, her belly a lumpy pillow and
her arms—well, they’d have wing flab. She shuddered at the reality of it. No, if she was going to seduce Seth, it
had to be tonight. She’d waited far too long already. Just then, Seth groaned and scratched at
his chest. He was sure to open his eyes at any moment. No more procrastinating. Besides, what would it matter if she blew
it? She’d only have to live with the humiliation until the next full moon,
right? Then she could try again. A nervous flutter shot through Janice’s
stomach as she slid open the zipper on her sack and pulled a black Sharpie
permanent marker from the leather loop on her ticket pad. She knelt beside
Seth, took his hand in hers and studied the words he’d written on his palm. As the moon waxes, your memory wanes. Good. Simple block letters. Easy enough
to mimic. Reaching across Seth’s hips, Janice
accidentally brushed him just there, causing him to twitch and quicken.
A little anticipatory smile burst upon her lips. She raised up his other hand and very
carefully, pressed the Sharpie to his palm. Call Janice 555-1805. Trust her. Looked good. Perfect, actually. Why, she
could have had a nice career as a check forger if she hadn’t gone into law
enforcement. Okay, now for the piece de resistance.
Janice swallowed hard as she reached down
between Seth’s legs and took him into her hand. Very
carefully, she began to write. *** His eyelids fluttered, and the first thing
he noticed, besides the merciless throbbing pain in his head, was a naked woman
kneeling at his side. He blinked in astonishment. Her golden skin glistened
in the light of a flickering lantern as she leaned close and drew a wool
blanket over his body. To his eyes, her female form was absolutely flawless.
Her breasts were full and round, her waist small and graspable—what was that?
Did she say something? “Can you hear me? I asked how you were feeling.” She
pushed her long ebony hair back from her
face, forcing him to peer up into her saucy golden brown eyes. “W-where am I?” “We’re in a cave...behind Brokenoggin
Falls. It’s okay, Seth. You’re safe here.” He was still dizzy and more than a little
disoriented, but turned his head toward the roar and splatter of a wall of
water a few feet away. Water. “In the loch—” He had started to ask her
about that scaly...thing with the talons, but then it occurred to him
that she’d revealed something more important. “You called me...Seth.” “I did. And, I’m Janice.” She reached
out and ran her fingers through his curly damp hair. “Seth.” He furrowed his brow. “Are
you sure? Why can’t I remember my name—anything?” “Shh, don’t worry.” She bent, and to his
utter surprise, pressed her warm lips to his. “It’s the moon. And in
Brokenoggin Falls, strange things happen in the light of a full moon.” She
glanced a little nervously across the cave at a canvas bag near the wall, then
turned her attention back to him. “I was worried about you. You really scared
me. Never, ever venture so near the loch during a full moon. It’s far too
dangerous.” Suddenly, he remembered the snarling wolf
on the rock...and then the naked woman. Seth pushed himself upright. He
stared at Janice. “You—the wolf. No, no, no. Can’t be.” He brought his
fingers to his aching head, and found a bandage plastered to his swollen brow.
“I hope it’s just the bump on my head and I’m not really going mad.” “I promise you, Seth, you’re quite
sane.” Janice remained expressionless for a moment before speaking again.
“Here in Brokenoggin, we all have secrets. Unbelievable secrets. But you and
I...we keep each other’s. We trust each other.” Seth shoved his hand through his hair.
This was all coming too fast. “I don’t even know you.” “Yes, you do. You know me...intimately.
You just don’t remember.” Janice caught his wrist and turned his palm
upright. “See?” Seth read the words on his hand. Call
Janice 555-1805. Trust her. “I know this is hard to grasp. It always
is when you lose your memory like this. But I am here for you.” “Then you’ve got to explain it to me.
Everything. How can this be?” “Seth, we have a lot to talk
about—believe me...a lot. But for now, you only need to know that you
lose your memory each time the full moon rises. Everything you know disappears
from your mind and you must start remembering from scratch.” Seth lifted his other hand and saw that
there was a message there, too. As the moon waxes, your memory wanes. “All these notes written on my skin...”
He cupped his hands and looked up at the dark haired goddess. “I-I don’t
understand.” Janice trailed her soft fingers
soothingly down his arm quickly pulling them back when he noticed the dirt
embedded under her long nails. “It’s how you remember, Seth. No matter what
happens to you, no matter where you end up, you know what’s most important—and
how to find me.” He gazed into her glittering eyes, as
understanding dawned. He had to admit, his method of note-taking was quite
clever. He must be a very intelligent man. “So I remember what’s most
important,” he murmured. “Yes, my love.” She smiled at him. My love, she said. Just how intimate are
we? It didn’t seem to bother Janice in the
least that she was naked, for she shifted and sat crossed-legged beside him,
her right thigh pressing against his hip. But he was a man after all and couldn’t
help but peek into that shadowed area between her legs. When
he did, he felt himself stir and harden. He was mortified. “Seth, I’m a little chilly from the
spray off the falls. Do you mind if I share the blanket with you for a bit?” “Uh...” He started to lift the blanket,
but decided to quickly check on his condition, trying to decide the best way to
apologize. It’s not like she wasn’t going to notice! But then, he discovered something odd. He couldn’t have. He’d actually written a message...down
there! What could have been so damned important, that he felt he had
to remember—could not forget? Lifting the blanket a little higher, he
allowed the lantern light to illuminate the rapidly expanding inked words. Janice is the best. The best, huh? Well now,
that was good to know. A wicked little grin found its way across his
lips. “Seth? I’m freezing out here.” “Sure, Janice, slip on under. I’ll
keep you warm. Real warm.” Janice gave a long pleasurable sigh as she
slid atop his naked body. Episode 1.6 THE LOCH’S STRESSED DRAGON’S HALF-SISTER By Elizabeth Holcombe Episode 1.6 The Loch’s Stressed Dragon Half-Sister By
Elizabeth Holcombe (In which Rowdy Vanderlight, love-sick
centaur and UPS driver spends solitary moments Googling himself and in the
process goes to the post office and finds help for his ailing heart.) Rowdy Vanderlight spent most of his free
time, when he wasn’t delivering packages for UPS, most of which went to Claudia
Choo from QVC, Googling himself. Yet, he couldn’t get the image of Claudia’s
witch sister, Tulah, out of his mind. He wanted to ask her for a date, but
Tulah was always out with that cackling, conjuring, moonlight-obsessed coven of
hers. In the late night hours, Rowdy had no choice but to find ways to amuse
himself after Conan was over and the infomercials took over the airwaves. He
discovered Googling. He Googled himself first. But, alas, Googling himself
soon grew boring, too. He couldn’t shake thoughts of Tulah. One particularly morose night, while
Googling, Rowdy discovered eBay. Never one to shy away from a pursuit that
could mildly boost his ego, he switched from Googling and eBayed himself. He
was there, too! Someone named “Ticklemypie73” was selling “A Rowdy Ghost Named
Vander in a Light Green Brooch”. So the two words “Rowdy”, “Vander”, and
“Light” were in an eBay listing. Interesting. The brooch was an ugly piece, but the
bidding was at an astronomical three thousand and fifty-eight dollars. Rowdy wasn’t completely clueless about
life outside of Brokenoggin. Mortals loved anything that they felt would
connect them to the spiritual world. He searched on eBay such words as
haunted, charmed, bewitched, cursed, among others and found a large amount of
crap for auction with huge bids. What fools those mortals be! And how rich he
could be! Maybe asking Tulah for a date would be easier if he had financial
means. He didn’t have looks that was for sure. He was a centaur who wore
baggy pants and looked too much like Napoleon Dynamite. Tulah might look past
his humble face, glasses, and lower half that resembled more Seabiscuit than
Secretariat. With wealth, Tulah might overlook his unfortunate physical
attributes. Brokenoggin had far more than its fair
share of haunted, charmed, cursed, and bewitched crap. Yet, he had to be
responsible. Nothing that was still haunted, charmed, cursed, or bewitched
could leave the town. But stuff that was once involved within the tangents of
the metaphysical would be safe and would sell faster than Godiva’s delicious
sugar maple nipple tips! Such was it that when no one was looking,
Rowdy Vanderlight mild of manner and dependable UPS driver, silently gathered
the detritus of Brokenoggin and secretly put them up for auction on EBay. In seven days after the auctions ended,
the money rolled in and causing Rowdy to scratch the bushy dark curls on his
head and face another dilemma: mailing the items. He couldn’t do UPS. Might
not be a good idea. He had never been to the Brokenoggin post office since the
new postmistress arrived some weeks ago causing quite a stir among some of the
more confident gents in town. Even Joe the veterinarian, who’d gone out and
captured some spoiled Wyvern and had it caged in a backroom of his office, looked
positively smitten every time he strolled toward the post office, a box under
his arm. And when he drove the big brown truck through town, Rowdy never failed
to notice Gavin-the-male-witch practically floating back down Main Street after
leaving the post office. Rowdy had to go there. His stable-living
room combo was covered with boxes that had to be mailed. Monies had been paid
to him. People expected to get their haunted crap. He had to go. He had to be
indifferent. Should the new postmistress live up to the bawdy talk by Gavin and
the other townsmen, Rowdy had to keep his cool and think of Tulah. She was the
only woman for him, even if she didn’t know it What a dilemma! Early the next morning, on his day off,
after Rowdy changed the straw in the bathroom and shoveled out the old into a
trash can in back of the house he made his way to the post office. Practically
galloped there. He almost literally ran into Joe who stormed out of the small
box of a building. “She’s damn Viagra, I tell ya!” Gavin
shouted into Rowdy’s face. Blinking at the wave of steak and onion
breath that shunted out of the often naked wizard’s mouth, Rowdy asked, “Who?” Gavin—who, according to some of the
town’s lady witches, hardly needed help getting a chubby—hooked a thumb in the
direction of the post office. “In there.” He regarded the boxes Rowdy held
with a death grip in his arms. “Forget your truck?” “Huh?” Rowdy glanced at the boxes. “Well, good luck,” Gavin said looking
woefully across the street at the Wicked Pea Diner. “Stop by sometime. You
might need a spell or something I can help you with.” He nodded at the diner,
with its seizure-inducing flickering neon “open” sign. “I need steak…” Gavin thrust his hands into his pants
pockets and walked across the street barely avoiding the dozens of marble-sized
droppings left by the Chihuahua herd on a pre-dawn run. The witch-warlock-wizard or whatever he
was had no idea the troubles Rowdy had. Sure, he was the only male
spell-caster in a town full of women known for their spells, but he at least
had some of his own kind around… Rowdy drew in a deep breath and clutched
his boxes tighter. He used his fingertips to grab the brass handle of the post
office’s glass door. Inside a fluorescent bar light sizzled overhead
giving a sickly institutional glow to the small space bisected with a
pock-marked wooden counter. Worn mangy velvet ropes hooked to dull brass
stanchions made up a U-shaped path to the counter. Stupidly Rowdy complied with
the rat maze even though he was the only half-human there. In Brokenoggin
Falls, humans were rare and usually ran out of town screaming. As Rowdy obeyed the velvet ropes he
glanced down at the boxes, taking in great sniffs of the air’s pungent scent:
old paper, glue, and sauerkraut. Sauerkraut? “May I help you?” The raspy female voice
bid him to look up from his parcels. Oh no. Gavin was right. Viagra for the
eyes. Heat began to rise up from his loins,
which were an impressive sight or so he’d been told. He hoped his baggy pants
would conceal his inner thoughts about the vixen behind the counter. Rowdy
squeezed his eyes shut. “May I help you?” He slowly opened his eyes. She was a
sexual goddess. If he didn’t control himself and soon, he would burst through
his khakis. “Yes,” he said stiffly placing the
packages on the pock-marked counter. “I’d like to mail these.” Goddess stared at him with glassy,
mesmerizing emerald eyes. Her mane of auburn and blonde-streaked hair
glistened even in the sparse fluorescent light. One thick lock tippled an
arched brow over those gem eyes drawing him in. The heat grew again. She had
to be human; she was a civil servant after all. Goddess broke her stare and looked
indifferently at the trio of boxes. “Anything liquid, perishable, or
potentially hazardous?” she asked. Liquid? One box held a lawn gnome that
had been pissed on by a werewolf. The werewolf whiz had dried. Not liquid. Perishable? Rowdy considered that
carefully. Another box held a dozen of Godiva’s maple sugar nipples guaranteed
to grow hair-down-there if bushiness was desired. The candy was a favorite
among fairies who were generally hairless and not happy to have their privates
chilled in the Michigan winter. Rowdy had pocketed these from the windowsill
where they cooled, such a clichй, before Godiva had a chance to place a spell
on them. Safe for humans, but not really perishable. Potentially hazardous? The last box
contained a white birch root flattened when the Wyvern farted on it. The “dragon”
root could be hazardous. The wood still contained the beast’s stench. It had
sold for quite a lot to a woman in Northern California who dealt in rare
herbs. Potentially hazardous? Rowdy had to ponder that one. “Mr. Vanderlight, do you wish to mail these
packages or not?” “I do, but the question perplexes me.”
And she knew his name. How? “Do these packages contain anything
liquid?” “No.” Her eyes looked like they had an
inner fire. He felt warmth in his impressive loins again. “Perishable?” “No.” It was growing, pressing into the
back of the zipper. “Potentially hazardous.” He thumped his foot on the floor. Joe’d
been right during his last vet checkup. He needed new shoes; something felt
loose down there. “Potentially hazardous?” Her eyes
flashed. “YES!” Rowdy shouted. And he didn’t mean
anything in the boxes. He scooped up the packages and wrenched around. One of
the boxes, the one with the white birch root, shot out from his arms and
thudded to the floor. Rowdy whinnied in frustration, dropped
down and scrambled across the cracked grey linoleum floor. The strong sent of sauerkraut and sudden
eclipsing of the fluorescent light caused him to quickly realize that he was
not the only one on the public side of the counter. A puffy pink hand reached down and
snatched the package up from the floor. Rowdy looked up from his prone
position at the Goddess, her emerald eyes flashing seductively at him. Her lips
painted in pearly bright pink lipstick widened into a lovely smile that made
Rowdy’s large attribute twitch. He quickly looked away willing it to twitch no
more. “Please rise, Mr. Vanderlight.” Her
voice was as seductive as it was commanding. Rowdy, clutching his other two packages,
did as the beauty bade him. Once to his hooves he kept his gaze to the floor. “You cannot harm me, Mr. Vanderlight,”
Goddess said. “Please look at me. I don’t bite…hard.” Rowdy belted out a loud neigh that
sounded more like the squawk of a demented crow. He looked up at Goddess. “Look at me, Mr. Vanderlight,” she said
huskily. “All over.” Rowdy began with her eyes, quickly
sliding his gaze to her pink lips, down her neck and her cotton postal uniform
of pale blue with darker blue pinstripes with a red, white, and blue patch of
an eagle’s head. The buttons of the blouse strained to their limits tenaciously
holding more than generous breasts from bursting forth sending the eagle
soaring from its fleshy outcropping. Rowdy was a breast man and the goddess
had given him an eyeful and second helpings to boot with the civil servant
before him. Yet, as he dragged his gaze away from her mammaries stupendi,
he quickly learned why Gavin had recently admitted to be a “booty man”.
Goddess had booty, hips and booty, and she didn’t need a long swishy tail to
turn him on! Other than about Tulah, Rowdy never
thought with exclamation points about a woman. Suppressing such thoughts kept
the fire in his loins doused, but the pilot light always burned. “That’s right, Mr. Vanderlight, nothing
but you at present is excited.” “I am not,” he said. “Your pants are telling me a different
story.” Earl looked down at the front of his
baggy Dockers. Was that the tip of his impressive appendage sticking out a
little over the waistband? “Who are you?” he asked. “Potentially hazardous,” she replied, or
at least that’s what Rowdy thought she said. “I beg your pardon?” “Portentia Harmonious.” “So you’re not a postal worker?” “When I need to be.” The buzz of the fluorescent lights was
the only sound in the silence that followed. Rowdy still held his packages. Being a
practical man and not one to steal from the parties who were expecting his
wares, he asked, “So, there’s no one here to help me mail my packages?” Portentia sighed and rolled her eyes.
“Those buyers are not human. They are protecting the stupid mortals. Your
eBay seller I.D. red-flagged you Mr. Vanderlight.” “BrokenogginPonyBoy?” “Duh…Yes. You should know better than to
foist your town’s unique trinkets on mortals salivating for proof that folk like
us exist. A man with your particular attributes shouldn’t spend time Googling
himself. You have much to share.” “That is none of your business.” “I offer you a solution for your problem
with Tulah.” “That certainly is none of your concern.”
“It is all of our concern when you nearly
unleash mayhem on mortals, Mr. Vanderlight. Come, we’re going on a picnic.” “It’s morning,” he protested. Then
curiosity gripped him. “Where?” “You know the place. I’ll drive.” They stepped out of the post office just
as Gavin exited the Wicked Pea. The wizard’s mouth dropped open. Rowdy
offered him a shrug as Portentia escorted him to her massive black Cadillac
SUV. *** Rowdy looked through the windshield at
the police cruiser parked beside the entrance sign to Brokenoggin Falls
National Forest. “Janice is here...somewhere,” Rowdy said
leaping down from Portentia’s SUV. “I’d like a bright shiny light on top of
my SUV like that,” she said. “You want to go into law enforcement
now?” Rowdy imagined Portentia pinning down a suspect with those breasts and
handcuffing him until he was helpless— “It would be an appropriate diversion for
me,” she said hefting a wicker picnic basket from the back seat of her vehicle.
“You were thinking it.” Rowdy held up his hands. “OK, look, Miss
Harmonious, I need to know right now what you are and why you are here.” “Bluntly put, Mr. Vanderlight, I’m your
sex therapist.” “I didn’t call for any sex therapist,” he
protested taking the basket from her. He was still a gentleman after all.
“You’re wasting your time.” “You are a very silly man. Come along.” Portentia hooked a finger in the
direction of a narrow path barely distinguishable from the pain path that led
to the dilapidated picnic shelter just a smidgen of a mile from the parking
area. “Don’t you want to take that path?” he
asked. “You want me to, but that’s not the path
you often take, Mr. Vanderlight.” How the hell did she know that? Portentia walked ahead of him, her booty
giving him a show. He was helpless to do anything but follow while carrying
that ridiculous picnic basket. Portentia
was leading him to that place beside the lake where the Wyvern dwelled. This
was dangerous. He had never brought anyone with him when he visited the open
space by the lake. He loved to gallop freely, stretch his legs, and race off
his frustration at not having a love of his own. “Don’t
look so nervous,” Portentia said. “This is for your own good.” the lake. “Godiva?” “No.” Rather than
recite the entire population of Brokenoggin, Rowdy said, “Tell me or I’ll stop
right here.” “We’ve arrived.”
Portentia paused at one particular large and mossy rock. She turned and faced
Rowdy with those shining emerald eyes. “Look into my eyes,” she ordered.
“What do you see?” Mesmerized,
Rowdy stared into Portentia’s wide orbs. She was doing something, but he could
not look away to see what. She had sucked him into some sparkly emerald field.
The feeling overtaking him was warming, giving him confidence as if he was in
Louisville beating all of the thoroughbreds and having the attention of all of
Kentucky’s eligible Southern sweethearts. That was comforting in itself. Then
he felt a cooling sensation, both refreshing and…pungent. The
vixen blinked. sauerkraut lubricant.
Warmth surged up from his toes, to his knees, along his thighs and to the only source of his pride—which Portentia now
possessed. “Stop,” he gasped. “T-Tulah is—” “Me, my darling,” she whispered
into his ear. “Tulah? You?” Portentia sheathed herself over him while
they stood on the lake’s edge. The carpet of pine needles provided good
traction to this dance with Portentia—or Tulah—leading. She lifted her legs
and wrapped them around his waist. Swishing his tail over her ankles, he held
her which was no easy task. She was of Rubenesque proportions. Was Tulah that
large? “I’ve always wanted you,” she whispered. Then the aroma struck his nostrils with a
stench like no other. The sauerkraut was cooking on her body. Steam rose from
his sex therapist. The sauerkraut bubbled and simmered on his flesh. “I want to love you, Rowdy. I have loved
you, have changed for you. But first I had to temper my fire,” Portentia said.
Then this woman lulled her head back as
they both reached the achievement to end all achievements. Rowdy whinnied, and
Portentia-Tulah laughed. After the quaking stopped, she wriggled
off of him. Rowdy said the only thing that came to
mind. “I loathe sauerkraut.” “Well, we might try relish or chunky
diced tomatoes, but sauerkraut works best.” She stepped away from him and gathered
her postal uniform and the biggest pair of panties he had ever seen, her booty
sling. “I have to go now,” she said placing her
bundle of clothes under her arm. “But I’ll meet you here tomorrow.” She turned away, paused, and looked back
at him. “Do me a favor.” “Anything,” he said breathlessly. “Tell that veterinarian to release my
half-brother from his cage or I’ll shape-shift into his worst nightmare—a PETA
activist.” “Go?” he asked. Where were his clothes?
“But we just got started. I didn’t know you were part dragon,
Tulah…Portentia…whoever you are. I don’t care! I love you!” “Tomorrow,” she said. “I’ve got to go. I
promised my brother I’d pay his lair a call, check on things, bring in the
papers and the mail, feed the goldfish.” She winked at him. “Tomorrow, Rowdy,
and don’t forget to bring the sauerkraut. Without it to douse my heat I’ll just
burst into flame when our satisfaction comes.” Portentia-Tulah stepped into the lake.
While holding her clothes, she dove head first into the dark water. Earl stood naked covered in congealed
sauerkraut in stunned silence waiting for his true love to surface. She didn’t.
“I hate sauerkraut. I’ll bring relish.” Just as light dawned in his muddled mind
that the woman he had lusted after had given him the best sex he had ever had,
a harsh female voice assaulted his reverie. “Hands up and turn around.” Rowdy did as Janice ordered. “Rowdy Vanderlight?” she asked. “What in
the Sam hell are you doing?” He could ask her the same question. Her
hair was rumpled, her police uniform was stained here and there with mud, and
her lips were swollen and very pink as if she had been the main contender in a
kissing contest. But he was the one who was naked and decorated in sauerkraut,
and she was the one with the badge and the gun…and a ride back to town, so he
kept his questions to himself. “It’s been a very full morning,” he said.
Janice puffed a stray lock of hair away
from her right eye. “Tell me about it. Need a ride?” “Yes, please.” “Clothes?” “I have no idea.” Janice peeled off her jacket and offered
it to him. Rowdy tied it around his waist with the sleeves. “Thanks.” He walked beside her down the narrow
path. “May we make a stop at the market before
you take me home?” he asked. “I need to purchase some relish.” Janice just shook her head.
“Brokenoggin.” Rowdy smiled. He was glad it was not
just a normal day. “On second thought, Janice,” he said
handing her the jacket. “I’ll just gallop around the lake for a while.” “Naked?” “Free!” He kicked up his hooves and left
her. “You need a new shoe!” she shouted after
him. Later, Rowdy thought, and he would also
speak to Joe about the Wyvern and its cage. For Portentia-Tulah. It was love.
Sweet love. *** Early the next morning, Emma Mincemeat
banged on the post office door. “It’s
eight-thirty!” she shouted into the glass. “You’re supposed to be open!” seeing things. Gotta get them to the
doctor, check their eyes.” “What sort of things?” Emma snorted in frustration
and turned from the door. She looked Gavin in the eyes. “Dead people.” Episode 1.7 FEED YOUR HEAD or The Flaming Faery Queen Closeted at the Bottom of the Garden Closet Tool Shed By Patricia Rice Episode 1.7 Feed Your Head By Patricia Rice With the agility of a trained athlete,
Morgan walked backward on the center rafter of the tool shed at the bottom of
Alice Fairweather’s Wild Herb & Useful Weeds Garden. Artistically swinging
her wings, she hummed acid rock from a tape Alice had left moldering in an old
tape recorder on a back shelf. No Barbra Streisand for Morgan, uh uh. She was
the very model of a modern major general. Or Fairy Queen, if one must be factual
about it. If only she had some fellow faeries to queen it over. Well, she had half of one. She simply
wasn’t speaking to him these days. “White Queen walking backward…” She did
a double backflip down to Alice’s new leather gardening gloves, neatly avoiding
the trap of the birdnetting on the bench beside them. “I am not shallow,” she informed the
mouse snacking on the grass seed bag. Morgan insisted on being labeled
according to her rightful gender inclinations and not by the usual physical
indicators. It wasn’t as if anyone could see beyond her hair and wings anyway,
and she made such a lovely queen. “He cannot call me shallow. I know all the
classics. All of them, I tell you. I can boogaloo and slide, and Bette
Midler would give the best years of her life for my vibrato.” The mouse didn’t reply. The chihuahuas
were chattier but they’d discovered a rat pack earlier and had gone yipping off
on their own. Settling into the cushiony couch provided
by the glove’s palm, Morgan fluttered her wings at the glass witch ball Alice
had tactfully provided. “I tried subtle, and he didn’t even notice.” She
examined the shimmering copper tracing on her wings, tastefully intertwined
with silver and adorned with genuine turquoise. Talking to one’s self grew old, but she
refused to come out of the tool shed again. If her One True Love would not
acknowledge her, she would pine away at home, where no one could see. Perhaps
she could develop tuberculosis and perish dramatically. Or was that Moulin
Rouge? “If he likes green dragon scale so well,
I’ll show him scales!” Studying her reflection in the ball, she narrowed her
spectacularly long-lashed eyes—one of her best features if she did say so
herself—and pictured luminous dragon green. The copper obligingly developed a rich
blue-green patina. “Makes me look like a garden gnome.
Gross.” With a flick of her well-manicured fingers, she created a flaming
kaleidoscope of red, pink, and orange pulsating through the veins of her wings.
“Better. The retro rhinestone Halston, I think.” The adorable little pressed
khaki mini-skirt and fitted jacket she’d chosen for her southwestern subtle
look disappeared with a snap of her fingers, replaced by an iridescent silk and
chiffon confection with a slit up the side to reveal the perfection of her
silky legs. The rhinestone halter top emphasized the breadth of her shoulders. “Not bad, not bad at all.” She twirled
around to catch her reflections in myriad chips of mirror. “No more catering to
Jo-Jo, the tasteless wonder. Let him friggin’ fag a wyvern and singe his baby
blues,” she sang in an increasingly operatic scale that would have rivaled
Beverly Sills if Sills were a contralto. Pleased with the result, Morgan added
amplification and repeated the scale until the tool shed rang with echoes of friggin’
fag a wyvern. “Morgan, it’s three in the damned AM.
Put a sock in it. That doesn’t even make sense,” Alice shouted, before
slamming the window on the perfect June evening. “You need a man, Alice, honey,” Morgan
sang back. “I have the perfect ass I can supply.” Alice didn’t reply. She’d probably
plugged in her earphones. I am not shallow, Morgan repeated to herself, still
stinging from Joe’s rejection. Morgan knew Shakespeare. Really knew
him, if you got her drift. Where did people think he came up with those drama
queens he wrote about? She’d been lovely as Titania. Perhaps she
should go back to red… No, the last time she’d tried red hair, a
hummingbird had tried to sip a hole in her head. She would stay with her
gorgeous, gleaming golden tresses, blonde silk that would dance with moonlight,
should she choose to come out of her closet. No way. She was never coming out again.
Dancing among the toadstools had lost some of its charisma since she’d moved to
Brokenoggin. Perhaps it had been a trifle shortsighted to chuck Oberon and take
Puck’s suggestion to visit the New World. All she’d wanted was a little
freedom to be who she was without all the stuffy expectations of Not so Gay
Olde England. Freedom was just another word for having
nothing left to lose. The damned Chihuahuas kept digging up the
toadstools anyway. If it hadn’t been for them, she might be with Joe right
now, sharing that cozy bed he kept behind the doghouse. So, she’d given the wa-was ass’s heads.
It hadn’t killed them, had it? She could turn them back anytime she liked.
Joe didn’t have to be so…so politically correct about it. Ass’s heads
were traditional, weren’t they? She could be more helpful with a little
guidance. He didn’t have to be so nasty about it. Lost in deliberation over whether she
should accessorize with silver or gold, Morgan leaped three feet off her glove
at a solid whump against the side of the shed. Could that be Joe, stricken with grief
that she’d never returned? Crawling on hands and knees to beg her back? Ready
to admit that she wasn’t an air-headed poopsickle who’d erased her brain with
polish remover? As if she had any need of polish remover. She blew on her nails and changed the
color from turquoise to orange, then added adorable little red stars and half
moons. Being a queen had its moments. A werewolf howl outside the shed ended
that pleasant reverie. So help her, if she’d told Sly once, she’d told him
into eternity that she didn’t want him nibbling on the mushrooms! When she got
finished with furface— “You hell-born hound,” an irritated—and
obviously drunk—male voice shouted from outside the tool shed, “I’ll drink your
furry arteries dry if you don’t get out from under my feet.” Hmmm, male. And she didn’t immediately
recognize the voice. It seemed somehow muffled. Was this an opportunity to
make Joe jealous? Not that she cared if the stubborn dragon-lover had his
eyebrows singed. The werewolf growled a threat the drunken
male didn’t take seriously enough. Morgan truly didn’t like bloodshed. Flitting out of her tool shed closet into
the moonlit night, Morgan tried to warn the stranger, but she could only emit a
squeak of awe at the scene unfolding. Staggering drunkenly through her magic
mushrooms, Sheriff Janice’s naked vampyre Seth tried to grab Sly by his
muscular wolf neck. Morgan could have told him that was a bad move, but the
two powerful males weren’t paying her any attention as they dodged and weaved
in their drunken dance. She had to admit, Seth was a fabulous
specimen of manhood, but blood made her nauseous, and he looked in a drinking
mood. His fangs extended further as he finally gripped the wolf. No wonder his
voice had been muffled. She sighed and rolled her eyes as the
inevitable occurred. Sly pissed on the vampyre’s naked leg. Slimed, Seth swore a blue streak and
flung his prey hard against the tool shed’s scarlet wall. A bit of the pink
gingerbread Morgan had designed for the roof broke off. Sly yipped as he hit,
but landed on all fours and sprang straight at Seth. “Will the two of you cut that out?”
Morgan called, flapping her wings as visibly as she could to catch the
moonlight—and their attention. “I won’t be able to bake brownies if you crush
the damned mushrooms!” As a pacifying effort, the command failed
dismally. The vampyre kicked the wolf and sent him
sailing into the precious little turret Morgan had added to the shed’s roof.
The copper gnome mounted on the wind vane snapped, and Sly slid off the far
side of the roof. Before she could fly into a rage and kick
the big fanged lummox where it hurt, Seth slid in the newly slimed mud, grabbed
for the garden rake Alice had left leaning against the shed, and did a slippery
little cha-cha before plunging headfirst into the marble birdbath jacuzzi
Morgan had just installed in her latest makeover project. The birdbath flew into the air, flipped
over, and crashed down on Morgan’s head. Actually, onto all of her. Trapped
beneath the china bowl, she bounced off the porcelain like a bug under glass.
“I’ll stake you to the church tower for this!” she screamed, more shaken than
hurt. On the other side of the bowl, the
vampyre groaned. She thought she heard the disgusting
sound of regurgitated stomach contents, but vampyre’s only drank blood, right?
Had he been sucking a wino? Not her concern. Flying upward at warp
speed, she attempted to heave the bowl off of her, with no luck. Just because
she had muscles didn’t mean she knew how to use them. “Get me out of here, bloodsucker! This is
all your fault. So help me, if you’ve ripped one rhinestone off this collar,
I’ll sic the chihuahuas on you. You think werewolves are bad? Just wait until
those—” An unnatural howl of agony rattled her
bowl. Well, that ought to scatter any elves in
the vicinity. Gnomes, too. A sick vampyre rated right up there with fee,
fi, fo, fum as a fumigator. Deciding on a different tactic, she got
down on her silk-clad knees and pried the lid up from the bottom just enough to
peek out. She wasn’t about to blow her cover if Seth was hunting for blood. He lay sprawled among the mushrooms,
holding a gleaming white fang in one hand and attempting to shove it back in
his mouth. Since he didn’t seem too interested in
her, Morgan slipped from beneath the bowl and settled on a swaying lavender
stalk to study the situation. The mushroom bed might never recover. Seth the Vampyre was one hunka, hunka
burning masculinity—even with that nasty sawed-off stake in his chest. And he was never going to get that fang
back in without her help. “Wanta talk about it?” She propped her
newly polished fingernails beneath her chin and batted her lashes attractively.
The vampyre only growled and looked at
her blankly. Uh oh, full moon amnesia. Morgan flipped a bit of fairy dust in
Seth’s direction, just enough to rattle his senses back in place. “If that’s you, Morgan, flit your fairy
ass out of here.” Holding his aching jaw, Seth rose from the muck. He located
Morgan with natural instinct and scowled, not showing any gratitude at all for
her helpfulness. “A one-fanged vamp isn’t frightening,
sweetie.” She straightened her newly madeover wings in the moonlight so he
might better admire her artistic talent. Apparently deciding she wasn’t worth
arguing with, he staggered to his feet and moaned again in pain. “Does this
damned town have a dentist?” “No, and I can’t imagine one putting
their hand in your mouth if they did,” she said, almost with sympathy. He was
totally awesome, after all, especially from her vantage point at knee height. For a very brief moment she contemplated
whether Doc Joe might be equally well hung, but the thought of Doc Joe lit a
different bulb. “I bet Jo-Jo knows how to fix fangs. He even brushes that
damned wyvern’s teeth.” “Jo-Jo?” Seth asked warily, clamping his
hand over his mouth and muffling his voice even more than earlier. “The vet?”
he asked in horror as he realized who she meant. “Of course. He sticks his hand in fanged
mouths all the time. Come on, I’ll get him for you.” “I know where the vet is. I don’t need
your help.” Seth started out of the mushroom patch. “Good luck,” she called, standing to show
off her athletically trim figure. “It’s a full moon tonight, so you won’t find
him home.” “It’s always a full moon around here,”
Seth grumbled, turning to glare at her, although one eye had started to swell,
giving him a malevolent look. “Don’t tell me the damned vet is a werewolf
too.” “Hardly.” Morgan flew to land on Seth’s
luscious curls and settled in. “Compared to everyone else around here, he’s
the next best thing to straight. But he doesn’t like to be found when he’s
busy.” “And he’s busy at the full moon?” Seth
asked suspiciously, turning in the direction of Morgan’s hair-pulling. “Sounds
like a were to me, and I’ve had enough of them for one night.” “Oh, and just who do you think takes care
of those stupid weres when they go all testosterone crazy like Sly did
tonight? Go right there at the church and head toward the graveyard.” “How do you know where to find him? I
didn’t think you ever came out of the tool shed. You a friend of his?” “He barely knows I exist,” Morgan
complained. “He swatted at me as if I were a horsefly. And then I heard him
tell Emma all blondes are shallow. He’s so cute when he’s being dumb.” “You’re taking me to a dumb vet?”
Seth growled. “All blondes aren’t shallow, although I suppose a lot of shallow
people might be blonde.” “I’m a natural blonde,” Morgan insisted.
“Except when I’m a natural redhead. And I am not shallow.” “Fey,” he suggested generously. “Fairy fey, and not shallow.” Morgan
flaunted her wings. “Anyone who doesn’t have anything better
to do than paint stars on their fingers isn’t exactly Nobel Prize winning
material. Here’s the graveyard. Where do I go now?” “To hell would be good,” Morgan
suggested, disgruntled by his insult. “But I’m hoping maybe Joe will see me if
I ride in on a patient. I make such a cute little bow on your curls.” She
tugged his hair again to steer him toward a barn at the back of the graveyard. “Why do you like the guy if he ignores
you?” “He’s cute.” “That’s a shallow reason,” Seth pointed
out. “He’s kind,” Morgan added with a slight
growl of irritation. “He’s occasionally smart.” “And?” Seth prodded. “He-takes-care-of-creatures-who-can’t-take-care-of-themselves-and-I-want-to-help-him-and-if-I-don’t-have-some-company-soon-I-will-die.”
She spat out the words so fast that they all ran together, then held her breath
to see if Seth would laugh. If he did, she would magick him so bad he’d wish
he’d lost both fangs. “All the witches around here make being a
Fairy Queen tough, doesn’t it?” he asked sympathetically. “With all that
estrogen floating around, you’d be better off as a Fairy King.” “I found my king,” she said with
satisfaction. “There he is, behind the wyvern cage.” “Oh, shit.” Seth stopped in his tracks as
he saw the baby green dragon. “That thing hates me. She’ll fry the damned town
if I get any closer.” “Pish posh.” Morgan blew a little fairy
dust toward Joe’s pet. “She’ll sleep now. Come along, let’s see what my darling
can do for you.” “He’s not your darling.” Back in
grumbling mode, Seth walked warily toward the cage. “And he doesn’t look like
much of a fairy to me.” Indeed, in his white lab coat, with his
steel-rimmed spectacles, and that adorable lock of barely-brown hair in his
eyes, Doc Joe looked like a scrumptious professor. It was the square jaw and
brown eyes that slayed Morgan every time he glanced her away. “Not everyone can be
gorgeous enough to be a queen,” she lectured. “But he’s fey, all right. How
else do you think he can tame a dragon?” *** Startled when the wyvern fell asleep just
as he was about to feed her, Dr. Joe glanced around suspiciously. He didn’t
fear any of the creatures that walked these woods at night, but he intended to
hogtie the next joker who tried to feed chihuahuas to the dragon. Watching the vampyre cross the graveyard,
he relaxed. No joker there. Pity about that stake he carried with him, but it
was beyond Joe’s capacity to argue with Death. His glance caught the gleam of a flaming
orange-red bow in the vamypre’s dark curls, and his gut knotted. Morganna. It was impossible to ignore a flaming
fairy queen, but Joe did his quiet best. He knew he wasn’t Oberon-handsome or
Puck-witty. He didn’t have any of those qualities most worshipped by the fey.
He couldn’t recall a Barbra Streisand song if he was held at gunpoint. The
only time he’d managed a dance move was when the harpy tried to claw him in a
delicate area. If he was any more boring, he’d be a banker. If he touched her without permission,
Morganna could sizzle his innards into frog legs. No touching allowed. “Seth?” he asked as the vampyre grew
closer. “You need that black eye treated?” Seth removed his hand from his mouth and
held out a gleaming fang. “The eye will heal, but this won’t.” Joe shuddered, just a little. He
preferred to treat the living. But Brokenoggin had lately become a haven for
the dead, it seemed, so he might as well learn to deal with it. He’d thought
Seth a decent sort until he’d showed up with Morganna in his hair. Joe was
doing his best to ignore that fact, although his insides twitched with
jealousy. “I haven’t ordered any books on vampyre
anatomy. You’ll have to let me look in your mouth. I might not be able to
help.” “He’s being modest again,” Morganna
complained, posing with her wings upraised so Joe could see all of her splendid
Halston gown. Joe knew what a Halston gown was. He
might be boring, but he was still fey. He motioned Seth to sit on a stack of
crates beside the barn where he stored supplies. Carrying the right feed and
medicine for the variety of creatures in this town required a lot of space. He
was just glad the living was cheap because creatures didn’t often pay well. He
had doubts about naked vampyres with memory problems summoning cash either.
But he was in this business to help, not become rich. “Open wide.” He waited for Seth to open,
then winced at the bloody hole where the fang ought to be. He tried to place a
finger in Seth’s mouth to test for a fang root, but powerful jaws clamped shut
instantly. Joe was lucky he had fast reflexes or he’d be a nine-fingered vet.
“You have to keep your mouth open,” he admonished. “I don’t think I can,” Seth said
sheepishly. “It’s instinct. I smell the blood and go for it.” “Ooo, lucky Janice,” Morganna cooed,
batting her eyelashes. “Why are you here, Morgan?” Joe demanded
in annoyance. The last thing he wanted to do was look incompetent in front of
his queen. “To help?” she asked with a big smile.
“What do I have to do to win a Nobel prize?” “Be a world-class humanitarian, which we
all know you’re not.” Another reason he needed to stay far clear of Morganna.
She could turn him into an ass with one angry swish, and he was bound to say
something she didn’t like. “Why don’t I start small as a vampyre
humanitarian.” To Joe’s startlement, she dropped fairy
dust on Seth’s nose. Instantly sleepy, the vampyre tilted from the crate, and
Joe had to grab him to hold him up. “Oops.” With what might have been genuine
apology, Morganna flitted down to examine Seth’s sleeping features. “I should
have waited until he was lying down, sorry.” “I can’t put my fingers in his mouth
while I’m holding him up.” Joe shifted his feet to keep from falling over
beneath the bigger man’s weight. “Get someone to help me lay him out.” “Oh, c’mon, big boy. You and me can do
it together.” To Joe’s shock, the Fairy Queen darted
beneath the vampyre’s other shoulder and took some of his weight. A crate
slipped as they lowered him toward the ground. Joe winced. Seth would have a
sore bum in the morning. Or tomorrow evening, when he woke. But with
Morganna’s help, the sleeping vampyre sprawled safely on the grass. “If I’d known you could carry weight like
that, I’d have called you to help me with the wyvern.” Dusting off his hands,
Joe tried to study the vampyre and not the fairy flitting lazily near his ear. “Now what?” Morganna landed on Joe’s
shoulder. It was a trifle difficult to ignore a
flaming fairy queen breathing on his neck. She smelled of cherry tarts, his
favorite dessert. And there was something…exciting…about the flutter of
delicate wings blowing on his ear. “I have to pry his mouth open, shine a
light in there, and poke around to see how the fang attaches. I need three
hands, minimum, now that he’s out.” “Better three hands than nine fingers,”
Morganna taunted. “Hold him open and let’s see what’s in there.” He heard her gagging as he pried the
vampyre’s mouth open. He was used to the stench of blood, but Morganna
wouldn’t be. “This won’t work. Fetch Janice. She can help me.” “It could take me the rest of the night
to find Janice. Am I right, or does Fangtooth there not dissolve at sunrise?” “I have no idea. I’ve never asked. Maybe
I can put something in his mouth to hold it open while I look. You can hold a
flashlight for me.” He could almost feel the burn from her
look of scorn. “Forget your fairy light, Jo-Jo? Forget
what you really are, big boy? Is that what this is all about? Pretending to
be a regular old run-of-the-mill vet who just happens to pet dragons?” Yeah, he was doing his damndest to forget
that and a lot of other things, like sex. Damned inconvenient for his sort
around here. “Look at me!” Joe protested, roused to
frustration with the nagging gnat. “Do I look like I can dance on toadstools? I
have two left feet. I croak like a frog. I like white lab coats. I’m
happy petting dragons. What do you want me to do, get down on my knees and
pretend I can tickle gnomes? And flowers make me sneeze. It doesn’t matter who
my mother was, I’m no more fey than Seth there.” Morganna swatted his nose with her wings
until he sneezed. Dodging her irate assault, Joe attempted to look inside the
vampyre’s gaping mouth. Seth snored, spattering his spectacles with blood. “Hold him still,” Morganna said with
resignation. “If he splatters me just once…I swear, I’ll plant him with my
toadstools.” She darted down to sit on Seth’s lip and sent Joe a pathetic look
that nearly broke his heart. “I’m really not shallow, am I?” “Shallow? Morganna, you’re
sitting on a guy’s fang wearing Halston and asking me that? Will you just look
in there and tell me what you see before he inhales, and I have to cut out his
entrails to fish you out?” She visibly brightened. Fairy lights were
clever as well as useful. “You’d do that for me? That’s
sweet. You’ll see, I’ll be very handy to have around.” Before he could find a horrified reply,
she ducked into Seth’s mouth, taking her light with her. Kneeling on the ground, propping the
vampyre’s mouth open, Joe could easily see the jagged edge where the fang
should be in the light Morganna cast. She was starting to turn green at all
the blood, a true sign of devotion if he ever saw one. Green was definitely
not her color. “Okay, I can do this. There aren’t any nerve endings or muscles
involved, just that duct. Get out of there before you get hurt.” “I’ll hold the fang while you do whatever
you have to do to glue it back,” she insisted. “Out, Morganna, or so help me—” Seth yawned. Without thinking of the consequences of
grabbing a fairy, Joe snatched Morganna from the vampyre’s mouth before she
could be sucked down. His big hand wrapped around her fragile body, and a
flutter of excitement shook him as her wings teased his palm. The sparkle of
fairy dust spattered his skin like a million fireflies. He opened up his hand to see Morganna
sitting in the center, lazily flapping red-gold wings and smiling seductively
up at him. Fairy light glowed in a golden halo that enhanced her hair and
played havoc with his mind. He’d never held a queen before. “Honey, you and me are gonna have a real
good time,” she purred. “Do I have a choice?” he asked, feeling
the fairy dust already coursing through his blood, exciting lower parts
untouched far longer than he wished to remember. The throbbing magic pounded
in his head, and the thrill of possession was about to overrule reason. “Of course you have a choice, big boy.”
She lay down on his palm, wiggled temptingly, and kicked her Manolos. “That’s
what faeries do, offer choices. My size or yours?” Visions of flitting through the flowers
with Morganna at his side danced in his head. Visions of baby wyverns frying them in
flames burned up that fantasy. “Why me, Morgan?” he asked, feeling the
magic penetrating, stripping away all the inhibitions he’d used as a shield for
so long. “Because you care,” she said honestly.
“Because I need someone who cares.” “And you think I don’t?” She looked at him sadly. “I don’t think
you care about me, but I care about you. Want me to reverse the spell?” “I can’t help Seth if I’m small,” he
reminded her, clinging to what remained of his rapidly diminishing
practicality. Lust crazed his mind. “All right. For now,” Morganna whispered
softly. “Later, we’ll try the tool shed on for size. I have a lovely glove
where we can cuddle.” To the shock of Joe’s whirling senses,
Morganna darted into the air, spun around, and an instant later, stood beside
him in white lab coat—with pink satin collar—wings hidden, but whiskers
starting to shadow a handsome jaw. Morgan gathered up his thick golden hair in
a diamond clasp and winked when Joe stared. “I hope that fang glue dries quickly,”
Morgan murmured seductively. “I hate wasting fairy dust.” Joe never quite remembered how he
replaced a vampyre’s tooth, but he had lots of fine memories of a birdbath
jacuzzi to take home with him the next morning. Episode 1.8 A SPELL OF C.R.A.F.T. By Vicki Lewis Thompson Episode 1.8 A Spell of C.R.A.F.T. By Vicki Lewis Thompson (In which Emma accidentally casts a spell.) Emma Mincemeat slipped into Spellbound
Books at ten in the morning and inhaled the scent of freshly brewed coffee. She
would love a cup, would love to sit and munch on a brownie, too, but she didn’t
dare. She had to make her purchase and leave before somebody spotted her. One moist brownie…her mouth watered at
the thought. She was certain they put something in the mix, some secret
ingredient that made her feel wild and uninhibited, but she’d never asked what
it was. Better not to know. The
bookstore’s owner, Jacob Flyleaf, wouldn’t tell her, anyway. She wasn’t like
the rest of the population in Brokenoggin Falls. She was different. Emma
hated that. But ten years ago Peter had insisted on
investing in real estate here. He’d claimed it would appreciate, but of course
it hadn’t. Peter didn’t care because he fit in. That thing Peter could do when
he was in the mood—changing into a black panther—was valued for some ungodly
reason. All twelve of her children were accepted,
too, even little Hortense, who had seemed so ordinary until she’d turned three
and had started speaking in some language Emma had never heard before, not even
in Brooklyn. They all apparently took after Peter’s side. Emma knew of one other person in town who
claimed to be normal—Alice Fairweather. But Alice just happened to be over for
tea one afternoon when Peter had decided to shape-shift as a practical joke.
Alice had run screaming from the house and refused to come back, no matter how
many times Emma had called to explain that Peter wouldn’t ever do that during
teatime again. That left Emma feeling more isolated than
ever, but today she planned to do something about that. She’d cased Spellbound
Books for days to figure out when business was the slowest and Jacob Flyleaf
would be alone. Fortunately Jacob didn’t gossip about a customer’s purchase. A
tongue-knotting curse had struck him mute at the age of thirty. The book she needed was on the fourth
aisle, two-thirds of the way down, second shelf, with a bright yellow spine.
That book was her salvation, a chance to feel less like a freak in Brokenoggin
Falls, and today it would become hers. She’d just pulled the book off the shelf
when who should come bouncing into the bookstore but Maria Drinkwater. “Emma!” she called out. “Hi, there!” Damn it. Emma embraced the book, holding
it against her generous bosom in an attempt to hide the cover. “Hello, Maria.” “It’s good to see you.” Maria’s tone was
patronizing, as always. She thought a person with no magical powers was
beneath her. “What have you there?” “A cookbook,” Emma said. “Well, of course you do, with all those
children to feed. You probably use a stove and actual groceries to make
meals. How quaint.” Emma clenched her jaw. “Yes, isn’t it.”
She was through being insulted by the likes of Maria. By tonight she’d have
engineered a centerfold figure like Maria’s and a vasectomy for Peter. He
wouldn’t consider the surgical kind, but there were other ways, and this book
would explain them. “Well, I’m here for the coffee and
brownies.” Maria smiled her superior smile. “I’m supposed to meet Juan later,
and the brownies have that wonderful aphrodisiac quality. Have you noticed?” “Um, yes.” Emma blamed both her eleventh
and twelfth child on those brownies. “Are you having any, Emma?” “Not today.” Emma edged toward the
checkout counter, keeping her book hidden as best she could. “All righty, then.” Maria strolled toward
the cozy nook where the coffee and brownies were served. She kept glancing back
to see if Emma would lay the book on the counter so she could get a look at it.
When Maria nestled into a plump easy
chair and picked up the plate of brownies, Emma set her book on the counter,
which activated an alarm in Jacob’s office. He scurried out, took one look at
the book and waggled his eyebrows at Emma. Sheesh. You would think she was
buying porn. Instead of responding, she looked bored
and drummed her fingers on the counter. Jacob shrugged and scanned the bar
code into his computer with his index finger. In seconds she’d paid for the
book and was out the door. Witchcraft for Dummies was hers! *** Late that night she sat alone at the
kitchen table mixing the ingredients she’d gathered secretly during the day.
Pots of this and kettles of that simmered on the stove. The stench was
horrendous, but fortunately the Body Bodacious Potion was nearly done. Next she’d brew the Spermatozoa Silencer
Charm for Peter. She’d thought of doing that one first, to be safe, but vanity
had won out. She could hardly wait to get rid of her saggy boobs and her lumpy
waistline. Twelve children took a lot out of a person and left some unwanted
bits behind. And speaking of behinds, hers would be the envy of every woman in
Brokenoggin Falls. Consulting her book once again, she
discovered that she was required to take the potion out into the moonlight and
drink it there. Emma crept quietly into the back yard where there was,
conveniently, a full moon shining. She wasn’t sure, but it seemed as if this
place had more full moons than Brooklyn. If the potion tasted as vile as it
smelled, she’d better go over by the well and draw up a bucket of fresh water.
She set the vial on the edge of the well while she lowered the bucket into the
well. As she pulled up the dripping bucket, two
toads hopped out, startling her so much she nearly knocked over the vial.
Fortunately she grabbed it in time. Then she raised it to her lips and pinched
her nose to keep the fumes from making her gag. But before she had taken so much as a
sip, Mavis Gap, the nosiest woman in all of Brokenoggin Falls, popped her head
over the back fence. Mavis did readings, and it was no wonder they were
accurate. She spied on everybody in town. “Emma!” Mavis didn’t bother to keep her
voice down, either. “I thought I heard someone out and about back there!
What’s up?” “Just felt the need for a drink of fresh
water, Mavis.” Emma lowered the vial and tried to hide it behind the bucket,
but the damned full moon was making secrecy very difficult. Mavis was another woman Emma loved to
hate. She was only thirty, or so she claimed. In this town people could be
three hundred years old and look thirty. In any case, Mavis looked thirty . .
. and gorgeous. It just wasn’t fair. “It appeared to me as if you were about
to drink something besides water,” Mavis said. “I could use a stiff one,
myself.” She laughed. “A drink, that is. The other kind is easy enough to get
around here, but good liquor is hard to find.” “It’s…something for a headache,” Emma
said. “I don’t—” A third frog leaped from the bucket onto
the stone ledge surrounding the well. Emma yelled as the frog
crashed into the vial. She nearly fell in as she made a frantic grab for it
and missed. The vial seemed to tumble in slow motion over the side and down
into the black depths where it landed with a hollow splash at the bottom. ***
Emma finally got rid of Mavis, but by the time she returned to her kitchen she
was too tired and disheartened to start over. She’d tackle the whole thing
tomorrow night. After cleaning the kitchen, she crawled
into bed beside her sleeping husband, but she didn’t cuddle. A hot summer
night was not the time to snuggle in with her man, especially because he was
presently covered in black fur, which often happened during the full moon. He did, however, want to cuddle with her,
which led to other things. She had to admit that the sex was more exciting
when Peter turned himself into a big black cat. If only he would refrain from
biting her neck while he was thrusting, she’d enjoy the session even more.
Still, all-in-all, she couldn’t complain. As for Peter, he went to sleep
purring. *** By about eleven the next morning, Emma
decided she was going senile. She ended up at the local witch store but couldn’t
remember what she needed there. Then she glimpsed a woman in a police uniform
wandering the aisles. She looked familiar to Emma, but no name popped into her
head. Come to think of it, Emma wasn’t sure
what her own name was. Because the woman in the police uniform looked
familiar, and because police were supposed to help citizens in trouble, Emma
confronted her in the roots and berries aisle. “Do you know who I am?” Emma asked. “You look familiar,” said the police
woman. “Are you somebody I should know?” “I was hoping you could tell me my name,”
Emma said. “I wish I could.” The police woman shook
her head. “But lately I can’t even remember my own, let alone other peoples’.”
“But you’re an officer of the law. You’re
supposed to know things.” The woman looked down at her uniform. “I
must be a cop, since I’m dressed like this. So why am I in the witch store?
There must be a reason. I—oh, hello, there.” She glanced over Emma’s
shoulder. Emma turned to discover a naked man
standing behind her, a naked man with fangs, no less. Even more peculiar, he
had a stake through his chest. Emma cleared her throat. “Who are you?” “You don’t know, either?” The man looked
upset. The police woman shouldered her way past
Emma and planted herself in front of the man. “I don’t know, and I don’t care.
You’re one fine specimen, I can see that much.” Her glance dropped to his
crotch. “Oh, hey, you respond to compliments. Excellent.” “Ignore that, Janice.” The man waved a
hand at his erection, which was only slightly smaller than the chunk of wood in
his chest. “Listen, something serious is going on here. Everybody’s losing
their memory. It looks like the town’s been put under a spell of C.R.A.F.T.” “Sounds very serious,” said the woman who
was apparently named Janice. Keeping her attention firmly on his penis, she
linked her arm through his. “Let’s go back to my place and talk about it,
shall we?” “What kind of spell?” Emma asked. “C.R.A.F.T.” said the man. “Can’t
Remember A Fucking Thing.” Emma gasped. She never used that word
except in the privacy of her bedroom when she was engaged in the act. “My apologies for the language, Emma,”
the man said. “But that’s what this looks like.” Emma stared at him and struggled to make
sense of it all while she tried desperately to avoid staring at his penis the
way this Janice person was doing. “You know our names?” “Yes. I’d already lost my memory, so the
spell has the opposite effect on me.” He sighed. “I wish it didn’t. My
memories are coming back and that’s what’s causing this.” He pointed to his
erection. Emma figured she could look at it without
being rude now that he was directing her attention there. It was impressive,
with veins standing out and everything. “You must have some kind of memories!”
Janice tugged on his arm. “Let’s go make
some more, honey bun.” The man resisted her tug. “Believe me, I
do have potent memories. Apparently I’ve been a very naughty little vampyre.” “My favorite kind.” Janice slid an arm
around his waist. “Forget my place. Let’s slip into the back room of this
fine establishment and do it on the floor.” “And risk me getting killed again? No
thanks.” The vampyre turned Janice toward the front of the store. “Besides,
you’re supposed to be investigating a theft of dragon’s breath, which is
probably why you’re here. I’m guessing the C.R.A.F.T. potion got into the
town’s water supply somehow, so after the first cup or two of coffee, it began
to take hold. If I’m right, it was a diluted dose, so it should start wearing off
soon.” “I’d like to go home and wait for that to
happen,” Emma said. “Can you point me in the right direction?” “Sure.” The vampyre walked her to the
front of the store and pointed out her house six doors down on the left. Feeling extremely disoriented, Emma
walked home, in the door and back to the kitchen. A man was sitting there reading a bright
yellow book. He glanced up when she came in. “There you are,” he said. “Just
in time. I haven’t had a good roll in the hay since I can remember. Let’s go
upstairs and have sex all afternoon.” Emma discovered she wanted to do that,
too, but she had a vague feeling she had responsibilities. “Are we alone?” “We are, now. There were twelve kids
hanging around, but I sent them all to the movies. The older ones can look out
for the younger ones.” That sounded okay to Emma. “Did
they…um…drink any water this morning, do you know?” “Are you kidding? They’re kids! They
don’t drink water. They had Grapalicious Goo-Goo juice. There was a ton of it
in the refrigerator.” He stood and held out his hand. “Come on. I want you
naked and squirming in five minutes.” Although Emma was more than willing
because she hadn’t had sex in ages, either, another vague thought came to her.
“What if I get pregnant?” “Who cares?” He closed the book with a
slap of pages. “It’s about time you had a kid, don’t you think?” “Maybe so.” She glanced at the book.
“What is that book, anyway?” “Just something I found tucked in the
closet upstairs when I was looking for my socks, which I never did find, by the
way. It’s Witchcraft for Dummies. I don’t know where it came from.” “Neither do I.” Emma stared at the book,
trying to think why it would be in the closet. “One of the pages was turned down, so I
read that one. It had two spells on it, one called Bodies Bodacious, and the
other one called C.R.A.F.T., which stands for—” “I know what it stands for,” Emma said,
blushing. “Are you shy about such language?” the
man asked. The longer Emma gazed at him, the hotter
she became. For some strange reason he reminded her of a panther. She started
up the stairs. “Not when I’m naked and squirming,” she said over her shoulder. Emma thought about it. Episode 1.9 NIGHT MARES By MaryJanice Davidson Episode 1.9 Night Mares By MaryJanice Davidson “Oh, Gawd, this is soooooo boring!”
Withering Disdaine cried. “I didn’t think it was possible,” her
sister Scornful began, “But this both sucks and blows,” her
sister Derisive finished. None of the triplets pointed out that the
line had, in fact, been stolen from Bart Simpson. The three sisters knew. In
fact, they were liars, thieves, cheats, chronic complainers, hypochondriacs,
swindlers, whiners, and (is this redundant?) pre-teens. To put the cherry on top of their sundae
of evil, they all planned to be student loan officers when they grew up. Among other things. Withering peeked out their bedroom
window. Yep, the guests were still out there, milling around like they were
waiting for an execution or something. Which, in this town, wasn’t exactly out
of the question. “Jeez,” she said, striving for bored, but instead hitting
grudgingly impressed, “looks like the whole town’s out there.” “Wrecking the flowers, prob’ly. Mom’ll
have a fit.” Derisive threw herself face down on her bed. “You’d think we’d be
happy—we’re eleven now.” Since she was speaking directly into her pillow, a
passer-by would have heard, “Mmm mmm mnnn phhhmm bbbb nnnn mmmmwww,” but her
sisters understood her perfectly. “Just a few more years until we can jettison
our virginity and figure out what all the fuss is about.” “You’d do that with a boy?”
Scornful gasped. “Urrrrgggghhhh!” Derisive sat up. “Well. In theory. I
mean, right now, no way. Urrrgggghhhh is right. But maybe someday. Look, how
many people live in this town? And they’re all boy crazy or girl crazy? They
can’t all be morons.” “Compared to us?” “Compared to the general population,”
Derisive allowed. “There’s got to be something more to it than those articles
we’ve been reading. We’re not old enough to figure it out yet, but when we are,
we’ll control that, too.” “I don’t think Food and Wine is
our best source for sex ed,” Scornful pointed out. “Well, that’s all we could get. They’re
so damned overprotective of us. Us! We’re going to be running this weird little
town someday; the least they could do is treat us like adults.” Derisive
snatched the sky-blue ribbon (which perfectly matched her eyes) out of her
butterscotch colored hair and flung it to the carpet, which was pink, and
perfectly matched her rosy cheeks. “I mean look. Just look. Ribbons in
our hair, braids! Jumpers! Pastels! Knee socks! We’re not five
anymore, for the love of Lucifer! We should be in training bras right this minute.”
“No we shouldn’t,” Withering said,
looking at her sister’s flat chest and grinning. “Oh, shut the hell up before I hex all
your food—how’d you like everything to taste like dog shit?” “With Mom’s cooking, I probably wouldn’t
notice.” Derisive laughed; she couldn’t help it.
Meanwhile, Scornful had crept up on one of the twin beds (pastel yellow
bedspread, matching yellow bedskirt) and peeked. “They aren’t going anywhere,”
she announced. “They’re waiting for ‘the darling triplets’—” “Barf.” “Puke.” “—to come out and do our little triplet
song and dance, cut the cake, open presents, blah-blah. Aren’t we cute?
Haven’t we grown? Aren’t we just adorable?” “Aren’t we going to hurt someone? Aren’t
we going to blow something up? Aren’t we in touch with our inner juvenile
delinquents?” “Well, let’s get rid of ‘em. I’ve got
all the Barbie Dreamhouses I need. I want the new Beyoncй CD. I want the
Catwoman DVD. I want to be the new LOTF.” “Co-LOTF,” her sisters corrected. “My point is, I do not want
anything with a Mattel sticker on it. The madness ends here!” she cried,
stomping a Mary Jane shod foot. “We can’t just ‘get rid of ‘em’.” Withering frowned, trying to work that
one out. “You mean, we don’t have the mystical ability, or we don’t have the
will, or we don’t have the moral elasticity, or you don’t want anybody to be
seriously hurt, or—” “The last one,” Scornful said. “If we
kill anybody else, Mom’ll kill us. She carved it right into our desks
with her fingernails, remember? ‘Kill anyone else and I’ll kill you’.” She
sighed fondly. “Tough love. It sucks, but it works.” “So, let’s get rid of them without
hurting them. You know—chase them away. Then we’ll go through our stuff in our
timeline, keep the good stuff, pitch the rest, have cake for supper, and figure
out how
to kneecap that annoying LOTF. Then maybe watch Season Two of The Simpsons.” “Season Three,” Scornful said. “Season Four,” her sister corrected, and
they compromised. Then Derisive added, “Good one, BTW, Withering. And here I
thought you were just the pretty one.” “I am the pretty one, jerk. So how
should we do it? Boils? Nettles? Insects? Girl Scouts?” “Come on,” Derisive said. “Even we’re
not that bad.” “I’ve got it. It’s an outdoor party, poor
suckers...let’s drive them back to the homes. And then...” “...when they think they’re safe, their
nights will be worse than their afternoons!” “And mom can’t nail us for it, because
nobody will die,” Scornful finished gleefully. “Heck, she can’t even trace it
back to us—any one of the freaks in this town could have done it, either on
purpose or by accident.” “It’s good to be us,” Derisive chortled.
She snatched a (pink) Kleenex out of the (pink) box on her desk, blew her nose
into it, crumpled it, and dropped it. Withering leaned over and spat on it.
Scornful stomped on it. The three girls held hands but, before they started to
chant, Derisive had time for one more complaint. “Guys? How come black magic
has to be so damned gross?” * * * After fleeing from the little darlings’
outdoor birthday party, Claudia Choo bolted the doors and, exhausted from an
afternoon of counterspells and running and more spells and trying not to get
trampled, fell into a deep, dreamless sleep. Or so she thought. Moments after her head
hit the couch armrest (she wasn’t sleeping in the marital bed because of, um,
martial difficulties that really were no one’s business and besides, where she
slept was her business, and where was that fucking Earl, anyway?), a horrific
crashing snapped her back awake. “Oh thank God,” she said to the giant
black pony currently kicking up its heels in her breakfast nook. “Thanks for
coming.” The pony stopped in mid-kick. Pardon
me? Is that my power, Claudia wondered, or
the animal’s? Is it projecting its thoughts into my mind, or did I
unconsciously cast a— The animal stomped to get her attention.
No, seriously. Why are you glad I’m here? Nobody’s ever glad to see me, or
my herd. “Maybe because of all the destruction of
property and that sort of thing,” she suggested. We’re not getting on your case for wrecking the planet,
the pony thought at her reproachfully. “Good one. There’s lots of china in the
cupboard to your left.” Her wedding china, as a matter of fact. She tried not
to sniffle. “Smash away.” Thanks. The pony—a striking creature of deepest, unshaded black,
crashed about half-heartedly for a minute, then added, It’s not as much fun
without people screaming and running and trying to chase me out with brooms or shotguns.
“Sorry.” She brightened. “I could conjure
up a shotgun. I’m not so good at brooms, though—I missed that day in school.” No, it won’t be the same. You never did
answer me. “Oh. Well, it’s a long boring story, and
I don’t have any alcohol, so I’ll give you the short version. My husband and I
are—are sort of on the outs. I mean, he doesn’t like me. He’s wonderful and
annoying and handsome and everything a wife could want. But I guess—I guess he
doesn’t like me anymore.” Why? “I think it’s because I’m barren. I
can’t give him any children. So when he married me...” She swallowed a sob.
“He threw away his chance to be a father. I think he resents it. I think...he
hates me.” That’s too bad, the pony projected sympathetically. Here.
Maybe the noise will cheer you up. It kicked over a china hutch and,
Claudia had to admit, the resulting crash was satisfying. “Thanks,” she sniffed. “You seem like you
take pride in your work.” Yes, that’s true. “Maybe I could be your helper? God knows
I can’t do anything right around here. Can’t even make a baby...can’t even
cheat on my husband!” We’re full up, the pony said tactfully. But I’ll
keep your name on file. “Thanks.” She rested her forehead on her
hands. Hands that had held Earl, stroked him in the dead of night. Loved him.
On memorable occasions, slapped him. Oh, you bastard. I’d give anything to
be free of you. What was that? “Nothing. I wasn’t talking to you.” The pony trotted into the living room,
shaking dust off its glossy flanks. Look, you seem like a nice enough
person, for a slavering blood-thirsty member of the most rapacious species the
planet has ever known. “Thanks,” she said, cheering up. So I’m going to help you out. First of
all, things aren’t as bad as they seem with Earl. It fact, the fix is
laughably simple. You just need more information. “But how can I—” I’m talking now, if you please. Pay
attention. For things to get better, you have to tell your dream to the
Vampyre. “What? I have to tell him what? Dream?
You mean, when I go back to sleep I’ll dream about Seth?” Tell Seth about Janice’s beast. It’s very
important: he must know about her beast. “But what does that have to do with Earl
and—” Remember. People don’t always remember.
Or they attach no significance to it. “I’ll remember. But what does any of
that have to do with—owww!” Her neck hurt. Her neck hurt because
she’d fallen asleep on the piece of shit couch they’d bought on her honeymoon,
her neck always hurt when she slept on the thing, and she sat up and
worked the kinks out, and looked around her spotless house. Kitchen—clean.
Hutch—still standing. No pony. No nothing. A dream. Episode 1.10 DANCING IN THE STREAK By Lynn Warren Episode 1.10 Dancing in the Streak By Lynn Warren It was no secret that there was something
not quite right about Brokenoggin Falls. The little hamlet looked like a
normal town with paved streets, charming antique lampposts and sidewalks that
meandered through the shops around town. The climate always reflected the
season, but it never got too cold or too hot, the residents simply wouldn’t
have allowed that. Trees that seemed capable of touching the sky grew at an
alarming rate along with gorgeous blooms of every shape and color for every
season even though weeds never seemed to appear. Everyone in Brokenoggin knew each other.
It was a small place, really. Full of charm and old world ideals. People born
in Brokenoggin grew up and stayed in town. In fact, no one left. At least, not
in anyone’s recent memory. And the residents always lived a very long, long
time. And while those things might be
considered a wee bit odd, that wasn’t the most peculiar thing about
Brokenoggin. No, the most peculiar thing about Brokenoggin Falls was the ladies
some referred to as witches… *** Gavin tossed the box down onto the
bathroom counter along with his reading glasses. He was going to sue the
fucking bastards. All of them. In fact, the more the merrier as far as
he was concerned. Those evil sons of bitches at the pharmaceutical company
didn’t know who they were screwing around with, literally. Gavin moved away
from the counter to examine himself in the mirror once more. The full-length mirror concealed nothing
and it was a good thing. Gavin wouldn’t tolerate an imperfection and if he had
one, well, he damn well was going to know about it beforehand. He looked good. Even if he said so
himself. Not many forty-two year olds, looked as good as he did. He only lied
about his age in public. Everyone in the neighborhood believed he was
thirty-eight, so why destroy their illusions? Gavin was tall, lean and spent a
good deal of time on a weight machine and swimming nude in his pool. He liked his body. A lot. And he didn’t
mind showing it off as he did when he took his morning stroll around the
neighborhood of Brokenoggin nude. His morning walk was a tradition around the
neighborhood. Women kept their underage children inside and went to their
morning paper themselves. He’d seen sexy girls pulling weeds early in the
morning or pulling their trash barrels back into the garage. It made him swell
with pride. But he hadn’t gone yesterday and there was no way in hell he was
walking outside today. Swelling was his problem. Four hour chubby, my ass. He’d had a goddamn steel pole for two
days now and it wasn’t showing any sign of deflating any time soon. Gavin ran
his hands through his short, golden brown hair in frustration. He walked back
over to the bathroom counter and examined the warning label on the box once
more. No, there were no warnings that warlocks shouldn’t take the drug. Ha!
He had them by the balls. Meanwhile, what the hell was he supposed
to do? Running his hands through his hair again, Gavin glanced at the chaos
around his home. His bedroom and bath had spellbooks lying all over the floor.
He’d searched high and low for some sort of shrinkage spell. But all the
specific spells resulted in permanent damage. He wasn’t about to cause any
damage to his prize equipment. Reaching for a pair of sweatpants, Gavin made a
decision. He’d put some clothes on and go visit the witches. Maybe one of
them had a potion or an herbal wrap or something. Because every spell he’d
actually tried on his chubby only made it harder. What was worse was how horny
he was. Gavin had never experienced such and insatiable desire before. It
boggled his mind. No wonder he couldn’t cast a decent spell. He needed to
quench this desire before he could even begin to think clearly. Right now, he
was so damn horny he could fuck every woman in the neighborhood and be ready
for a second go round within minutes. Slipping into a pair of navy sweats, he
examined the tent pole protrusion. Oh wasn’t that just sexy? He couldn’t go
outside like this. No way. Gavin was a proud man. A warlock of esteem and
probably the only sexy man in the neighborhood not tied up in knots over the
witches of Brokenoggin. He walked into the kitchen and poured
himself a glass of orange juice. From his window, he could see several women
milling about in their front yards waiting for something or someone. He drank
half a glass of juice in two large swallows. They’d just have to wait. He
wasn’t going outside like this. A knock on his front door nearly made
Gavin spew juice across his granite countertops. Maybe if he didn’t answer,
the women would go away. Go back into their homes and put their little
fantasies on a shelf somewhere for the next few days. At least for as long as
it took him to get rid of the chubby. The knock came again. This time more
insistent and Gavin walked slowly into his living room. What was wrong with
these women, anyway? His drapes were drawn, he hadn’t been outside in two
days. Why didn’t they think he wasn’t at home? “Gavin! Gavin? Are you in there?” He recognized that voice. It was Maria
Drinkwater, a nosey little witch that somehow managed to entangle herself in as
much gossip and mayhem as she could find around town. He drew the drapes
tighter. He took a chance and peeked out of a small crack in the fabric. “Son of a bitch!” Gavin leaped back as
he saw the pale green eyes of Maria trying to peer into his house. “Get away
from my house.” “Gavin, we’re not going anywhere until
you come out.” Maria put her hands on her ample hips. “The girls and I have
been waiting for two days for you to surface. You can’t deprive us, Gavin.
It’s not nice.” Gavin poked his head through the curtain
careful to keep the rest of his body concealed. “What are you talking about?” Maria crooked her finger at him and
pointed across the street where at least fifteen women of all ages and sizes
gathered. Turning slowly, Maria pointed farther down the block where even more
waited. Gavin groaned. Some of them were even
holding signs. He pressed his face up against the window and squinted to read
one of them: “Where’s our hunk?” “Oh dear god…” “So you see, you’ve managed to create
quite an event over the years. Now get your British ass out here so we can
drool and then get on with our day.” Gavin pulled the drapes shut. “No! Now,
go away.” “We’re not leaving.” Maria’s happy
little singsong voice was just enough to set his teeth on edge. “You might as
well come out.” His lips twisted. His eyes narrowed to
slits. “I’m not well,” he yelled to Maria all the while his mind worked over
scenarios. “Gavin, you’re gorgeous. You’re always
well, and hot.” His head tilted slightly. Maria’d always
had a crush on him. Ever since the first time he’d strolled naked past her
door, she’d practically thrown herself at him whenever the occasion arose.
Well, now he’d risen to the occasion so to speak and there was no bloody way
he’d let her get a look at him like this. The little witch would suck the come
and probably the life right out of him. Pacing in his foyer, Gavin considered his
options. He could sit in his house and hide, hoping somehow this massive
chubby would vanish on is own. On the other hand, he could bravely stride out
his front door and fuck every woman in his path and work it down to a
reasonable size. Obviously, the later was by far the more
pleasurable. He wondered what the vivacious and voluptuous Miss Maria
Drinkwater would think of such a thing. Would her sensibilities be offended or
would she ride him like he was a wild stallion? Part of him wanted to find
out. It really did. The other part of him didn’t think it was a terribly good
idea to mix magicks. Who knew what sort of catastrophe could come flying out
at the moment of orgasm. He’d created many a wild storm in his youth while
toying with the affections of witches. Gavin shook his head. He didn’t need
the excess aggravation. Besides, what made him think it would go
down anyway? He’d pleasured himself three times last night trying to get his
rod to shrink and no luck. All it’d done was drive him nearly insane. He was
so horny now his teeth clenched just to keep a lid on his baser needs. Now, his
jaw hurt. His muscles ached and he wanted nothing more than to sink his cock
into a tight, wet pussy. “Gavin? Are you still there?” “Yes.” It was more a hiss than anything
else, but he couldn’t help it. He could practically smell the magic on her.
He raised his head, his eyes lit with a realization that nearly blinded him.
The woman was a witch. She had been known in the past to stir the cauldron, so
to speak… “Gavin, are you coming—” “No, but if you don’t get out of here,
you will be!” He flipped the locks both magical and mechanical on his front
door. With one hand, he yanked the door open and with his other, he caught
hold of Maria’s wrist. He slammed the door behind her then whirled on the
pretty witch. “Did you do this?” He watched as her eyes turned predatory.
She licked her lips as her gaze traveled down from his face, over his chest and
settled on his rock hard rod. Gavin sighed, now he knew what women with those
big gorgeous tits felt like. She gazed at him as if he was a big, juicy filet
that she’d love to sink her teeth into and it made Gavin a bit uncomfortable. “Stop that.” “Mmmm,” Maria’s mumble sounded more like
a purr. “That. Stop that.” She lifted her eyes slowly, blinked and
seemed to refocus. “You’re kidding, right?” “No, I’m not.” Gavin folded his arms in
front of his chest wishing he’d gone and kept those sweatpants on. “The girls have to see you! My gawd!
They will just turn into puddles.” Again with the sexual imagery. Gavin’s
jaw tightened. Of course, everything right now had sexual connotations as far
as he was concerned. “You need to leave.” “What?” Maria’s eyes shone with alarm.
“Why?” She took a step toward him and Gavin backed up nearly tripping over the
ottoman in his living area. “I’m the president, didn’t you know? That’s why I
came.” She just had to say that particular word,
didn’t she? Another word he didn’t want to hear at the moment. “Excuse me?” “The president of the Naked Wizard
Admirer’s Association.” Gavin choked. Saliva caught in his throat
and turned to ash. He coughed, doubling over and finally hacking his way to
the ottoman. This was outrageous! He’d never heard of such a thing. No wonder
all these women stared at him. They were mocking him. “Oh for heaven’s sake, Gavin.” Maria
pressed a glass of ice water into his hand and knelt down beside him. “We’re
not mocking you. Far from it.” He took a tentative swallow of the water,
not wishing to look at her. He didn’t believe her. The women of Brokenoggin
made a laughing stock of him. “Go away.” “I’m not going anywhere.” Maria pushed
to her feet, using his arm for support. A tingle of magic ran through his
bloodstream and naturally settled in his cock. “Do you have any idea how many
women in town want to sleep with you? Outside of old Ms. Dunbar who can’t see
well enough to tell a man from a bull, I don’t know any female within a thirty
mile radius that doesn’t want to have a fling with you.” Gavin’s head lifted, she looked sincere.
But you couldn’t trust those witches. And the little glimmer of realization
that kept tickling around his head all this time finally shone like a beacon.
“Does that include you, Maria Drinkwater?” She smiled. Her pretty lips, full and
glossy pink made him long for a taste. Funny, he’d never actually looked at
her in that way. Until now. And that made all the sense in the world. Maria shifted her weight from one hip to
the next. “What? Do you think I’m nuts or something? Of course I want you,
Gavin. Why do you think I cast—” Gavin stood slowly. He angled his index
finger toward Maria. “You cast?” He approached her slowly as the magic
tingled through his entire body. Part of him was thinking Lightning Strike
while the other thought Fireball. It trickled over him in a searing
heat. “What did you cast, Maria?” She turned her head away. “Well, you’ve
never noticed me before so I figured I’d help the issue.” “I see.” “Of course, I didn’t think it would have
such startling results. I mean, who would’ve thought I’d get it so hard.” “Maria…” His tone warned, but a weird
part of him found himself already intrigued by her behavior. “I’ve got some gorgeous lingerie that I
just picked up. I think you’ll like it.” Maria started for his front door.
“All you’ve got to do is walk over to my house and—” “And what?” “I’ll reverse the spell.” She winked. “But
first, you and I are going to have some fun.” Maria opened his front door and
held out her hand. “So I’d advise you to come along and prepare yourself for
the best sex you’ve ever experienced. Unless, of course you want to go through
life with that jack hammer.” Gavin raised an eyebrow. “What did you
have in mind?” “Oh, lot’s of things…” What the hell did he have to lose? Only
a massive, aching hard-on that showed no signs of retreating on its own. He
took her hand and stepped up to the door. Outside, he could hear gasps of
pleasure and applause. Gavin looked out and swore one woman even fainted. A
small smirk played about his lips before turning into a sexy grin. He walked outside, his hand in Maria’s
and reached back to close the door. “I hope you’re ready for a wild ride.” She laughed. “Oh, I’m ready. And there
are always reinforcements.” Episode 1.11 X MARKS THE G-SPOT By Shelly Laurenston Episode 1.11 X Marks the G-Spot By Shelly Laurenston Mavis brought the binoculars back up. She
was bored and uncomfortably hot. Even her sleeveless sundress and sun hat gave
her absolutely no respite. Truly, this kind of weather did not give her
comfort. In fact, it did the opposite. It made her horny as a tiger in heat.
But she couldn’t do that anymore. Nope. People would start getting
suspicious. Exactly how many husbands could leave one thirty-year-old woman?
As it was, six might really be pushing it. She simply couldn’t risk seven. She sighed. All of this celibacy was
making her depressed. She didn’t like being depressed. It went against her
naturally perky nature. She scanned the streets of her little
town, looking to see what people were up to. That’s why she always loved this house.
The top floor porch circled her entire home. On a really good day she could
witness all sorts of things from here…and she often did. At the moment, she could see Officer
Thinksalot cruising down Main Street. She snorted. She never could find the energy
in her to like that woman. Snotty miss know-it-all as far as she was
concerned. And kind of boring. Besides, she never came in for a reading. So
she was of no use to Mavis whatsoever. She swung her sights into her neighbor
Emma’s backyard. It was a very rare occasion when Emma did anything remotely
interesting. And those toads the other night just didn’t count. Oh, who was she kidding? She could care
less about Emma, her toads, or the boring town cop. No there was only one thing
she really had any interest in at the moment. Only one thing she really wanted
to watch that closely…but she shouldn’t. She really shouldn’t. Biting her lip and disgusted at her own
weakness, she swung her binoculars over to her front yard. That’s where she
left that damn gardener. Goddess, he was gorgeous. Tall, his body one big
rippling muscle, shoulder-length mane of black hair and crystal-clear blue
eyes. Eyes that stared straight through her. Loose-fitting blue jeans hung low
on his lean hips, and his sleeveless blue T-shirt did nothing but bring out
those divine blue eyes. She almost tripped over her own tongue when she opened
her front door to him. And the way he looked at her…like a
starving man just offered a slice of prime rib. Thank you, Maria. Her friend recommended
him…although she should have known better. Leave
it to Maria to send the hottest man on the planet over to trim her hedges.
Maybe it wouldn’t be so bad if she weren’t so damn horny. But she was…and that
would just make it harder to resist him. She had to, though. She had no choice.
The town would definitely notice if this one went missing. She leveled her binoculars at the front
of her house. She’d hired him to re-design her front lawn. Maybe plant some
new flowers and bushes. Maybe…maybe…uh-oh. Her breath caught in her
throat. He wasn’t there. Oh, damn! She whipped her
binoculars around to her backyard. And sure enough, Mr. Tall, Dark, and
Well-Hung stood in her backyard. And right by those pesky graves. *** She slid to a stop in front of him. “Now
how did you get back here?” She knew her voice sounded way too high at the
moment, but trying to pretend she was being light and unconcerned was killing
her. “How about some iced tea? Or a soda?” He stared down at her, those clear blue
eyes sizing her up. He didn’t seem remotely disturbed by her sudden
appearance. In fact, he looked amused. Very amused. “No, thank you.” His voice, low and heavy
shot her senses into overdrive. Gritting her teeth, she tamped down the Wanton
Whore ready to throw the man to the ground, fuck him until his heart stopped,
and then bury him with the others. She and the Wanton Whore had been fighting
for dominance since she put on her first training bra. And every day it got
harder and harder to win. “You know, I can’t afford to have you
passing out on me from this heat.” Grabbing his, she gently pulled him toward
her back patio. His arm, hard as steel, felt wonderful and strong against the
tips of her fingers. He allowed her to pull him to her patio
and into the back of her house. Opening the refrigerator, “Let’s see.
Bottled water?” He nodded as he carefully examined her
kitchen. Strange young man. He didn’t say much but there seemed to be a whole
lot going on inside that handsome head. Mavis took out a bottle and handed it to
him. “You know, I really don’t need any help with my backyard. I just let that
grow wild. I like it that way.” He opened his water and chuckled, “Is
that right?” She frowned. Was the man laughing at her?
“Yes. That’s right. So if you’ll concentrate on the front…” “You
sure you just didn’t want me to find those bodies you’ve got in your backyard?”
herself to smile and speak. “Where ever
did you get such a ridiculous idea?” “From the graves I found. Most of them
mostly contain bones. But one is still…percolating.” She kept tight control
over her emotions, it wasn’t easy. It wasn’t easy at all. “There are no bodies
in my backyard. You…” With a shake of his head, “Don’t lie to me, Mavis. Don’t
ever lie to me.” “How dare you speak to me that way!” “So you’re trying to tell
me you didn’t fuck your husbands to death?” “That’s insane. And
insulting!” “So where are your husbands, Mavis? If not in your backyard.”
“You can call me Ms. Gap. And my husbands left me, if you must know.” “All six
of them? There were six, right? I counted six graves.” She turned away from
him, huffing as if in anger. But it was panic. Pure, unadulterated panic. None of her usual
charm was working with this one. And what bothered her most was the fact that
he didn’t seem too concerned with the multiple graves in her backyard. If she
didn’t know better, she’d swear he expected to find them. Mavis
shook her head. She should kill him. But to be honest, she didn’t know how.
And she wasn’t entirely comfortable with the whole concept. Was it her fault
her mother’s demonic genes cursed her to always be alone? She’d only had six
lovers in her life and she’d screwed them all to death. She didn’t mean to.
But once she got going, the succubus buried inside her DNA, made its
appearance. So, although technically she may have murdered her husbands, she
really didn’t. They just couldn’t handle her. No man on the planet could. “I
think you need to get out.” She
felt him brush his hand or fingers across her bare shoulder. “Don’t worry,
Mavis. I have no intention of telling anyone. I’ve been waiting too long for
you. But we can’t leave those bodies there. That cop will stumble across them
eventually.” Staring
at him over her shoulder, “What do you mean? You’ve been waiting too long for
me?” He
stroked her shoulder again, but he had one hand shoved in the pocket of his
jeans and the other gripping his bottled water. She looked at what touched her
and stumbled back, cold fear slamming into her heart. “Is
that a…a tail?” Casually, he glanced down at the
flesh-colored tail whipping lightly around her leg. It angled down into a point
and should have scared the beejesus out of her. But she was much more
concerned with the fact that he actually had a tail. A long strip of
muscle that angled down into a point. “Yup. I got my mother’s eyes…and my
dad’s tail. Trust me, it would have been worse if I got his eyes.” “Who the hell are you?” He smiled. A beautiful smile that made
her pussy clench and her mind scream in panic. “Didn’t your precious cards
tell you I was coming for you?” He dropped his half-drunk bottle of water on
the counter and took a step toward her. “Didn’t you see me?” Mavis stumbled away from him, her back
slamming into her stove. Thankfully she hadn’t turned it on; otherwise, she’d
have burned her entire backside. And she wasn’t sure she would have cared. “Who are you? What are you?” His grin widened as he stood in front of
her, bracing both his arms on either side of her. “My name’s Cade.” “I know your name!” She looked for a way
around him, but he blocked her in. “I just don’t know who the hell you are.” “You sure, Mavis? You really have no
idea?” The way he looked at her with those eyes. Suddenly they seemed
unnaturally blue. Freakish, even. He leaned down until they were eye to
eye. “You don’t know me at all?” “Get…get out.” “Why? What are you afraid of?” “You have a tail!” “And you have six dead husbands in the
backyard. And I don’t see me running screaming into the night.” She glared at him. “It’s daytime. And
exactly what is this? Some kind of blackmail? You want money or something?” “This isn’t blackmail.” His eyes swept
down her body and she knew he was absorbing every detail. “And the last thing I
want from you is money.” “Then what…” She stopped as his lips touched hers. A
soft, gentle kiss. No! She couldn’t do this. She could overlook the tail, but
not his dead body in her kitchen. He was huge. It would take her hours to get
rid of him. She brought her hands up and pushed
against his shoulders. With great effort she pulled her mouth away. “No! I
can’t.” He smiled, his mouth easing down to her
throat. “Why?” “Because…oh!” He bit her neck. Hard.
“Don’t.” At this moment, she was having a flat-out fist fight with her inner
succubus. “I just can’t!” “Afraid you’ll kill me?” She couldn’t concentrate enough to come
up with a lie. Besides, he seemed to know so much already, why bother? “I will
kill you…Goddess, stop!” She grabbed his hands with both of hers before they
could grab hold of her breasts. “Please, Cade. I don’t want to hurt you.” “Do you really think I’m that easy to
kill?” He closed his big hands around her smaller ones, his callused fingers
rubbing the knuckles of each hand. “Are you?” “No. But I’m…I’m not…” “Human?” “Not completely. No.” “Well…neither am I. Completely.” She let out a little gasp as he nibbled
his way down her throat. Three of her husbands hadn’t been completely human
either. After she fucked the first three to death, she decided to try
something not nearly as human. She tried a werewolf, a demon from the fourth level
of hell, and a Marine. And none of them could handle her either. “I’m not just not human, Cade. I’m…I’m
a…” She’d never admitted this out loud to anyone, and she really didn’t want
to admit it to him now. Damn him! Didn’t he have some roses to plant or
something? Growling, he stood up. So much taller
than her, she felt dwarfed by the man’s presence. “I know what you are, Mavis.
I know…and you’re just what I need, woman. So stop fighting me.” “Don’t bark at me!” She snatched her
hands back from him and crossed her arms in front of her chest. “I’m trying to
protect you!” He crossed his arms in front of his
chest, mimicking her. “I don’t need your protection. Not from you. Not from
anybody.” “Maybe not. But I can’t afford to bury
another body in my backyard. And it’ll take me forever to drag you out of my
house and down to the…oh! Oh!” She reached back and gripped the stove,
her head thrown back. “You were saying, Love?” Mavis tried to breathe, but that wasn’t
working. So focused on where he’d placed those hands, she’d completely forgotten about his
tail. That goddamn tail! It slipped under her sundress and the tip slid past
her panties. Now it rubbed her clit. Tiny, tiny circles right around it. She couldn’t
believe how well he maneuvered that thing. “Do you want me to stop, Mavis?”
She opened her mouth to say “Yes! Stop!” But he twirled his tail the opposite
way and all she could manage was a
choked high-pitched sound. “You
know what I hate? I really hate this hat.” Snatching the sunhat from off her
head, he tossed it across the room. The whole time his tail just kept working
her. Dragging her closer and closer to orgasm. “Much
better. I don’t like you hiding that pretty face when we’re in the house. I
like seeing it.” just kept playing
with her. “And
let’s get this off you.” He grabbed her sundress by the neck and with one
mighty pull rendered it in shreds. Then he casually stripped it from her body.
She wore no bra, which only left her panties. “You really are beautiful,
Mavis.” Cade
stepped closer, examining her near-naked body from head to toe. “I didn’t
think you’d be so beautiful. Although that wouldn’t have mattered. What we
need from each other goes beyond anything so trivial.” She
had no idea what the hell he meant. What they needed from each other? forefinger and
squeezed. Hard. Her eyes snapped open. “Don’t ignore me, Mavis.” His
other hand grabbed her untended breast. “Don’t ever ignore me. I don’t care
what you do to the rest of the idiots in this town. Spy on them. Ignore them.
Lie to them. I don’t care. But with each other we’ll always be honest. We’re
partners in this, Love. Don’t forget that.” What in hell was he
talking about? In this together? In what together? He released one breast and
she bit back a moan of disappointment as his hand reached up and brushed the
dark hair out of her face. “I want you to come for me now, Love. Right. Now.”
She screamed as the orgasm tore through her, her body shaking in release. She
felt her world tilt and slide
away beneath her feet. *** Mavis opened her eyes and found herself in her bed,
a white sheet pulled up to her chin. The windows were open, letting in a
slightly cooling breeze and the bright afternoon sunlight. Really, with a little effort, she could
have made herself believe what happened with Cade was nothing more than a
dream. A hot, wet nightmare the Wanton Whore dug up hoping to send Mavis out
on the hunt for Husband Number Seven. She could have made herself believe all
sorts of things if she tried. But that head between her legs apparently
wasn’t having it. Mavis pulled up the sheet and gazed down
at the top of Cade’s dark head. Her legs began to shake, another orgasm
imminent. How did he do that to her? She usually didn’t come until the men
were in their final death throes. Not the best way to get off, but it wasn’t
like she had any choice in the matter. Cade’s hands slid under her and gripped
her ass tight. She gasped as he lifted her so that his mouth could feast on
her comfortably. She reached out blindly and grasped the headboard.
Instinctively, she tried to close her legs, but Cade held them wide apart,
letting his tongue roam freely over and in her pussy. She tried not to think
too hard about the fact that his tongue felt longer than anything she’d ever
experienced. Who the hell was this man? How did he
seem to know so much about her? She’d heard about him as soon as he moved into
town. Maria practically knocked her door down trying to get to her so she
could give her all the details. Yet with all the gossip and “investigation”
Mavis had done, she’d yet to find anyone who seemed to have had any kind of
relationship with him. And she’d looked. New stud comes to town and a lot of
these whores…uh…housewives fell all over themselves being the first to break
him in. But from what she could tell, no one had been with Cade. Now she
couldn’t help but wonder if he’d truly been waiting for her? An orgasm slashed through her and her
entire body clenched hard. Cade held her tight to keep her on the bed and she
barely reigned in the Wanton Whore in time. The fact that she’d been able to
hold her back this long amazed Mavis. But the difference between Cade and her
past husbands was her very real desire not to hurt him. Cade pushed her body back into the bed and
then started licking her all over again. No, no, no. She couldn’t do this
again. One more time and the Wanton Whore would have her way. And she’d never
be able to protect him. Not from that bitch. She released the headboard and lifted the
white sheet, staring at the man who’d turned her whole life upside down in a
matter of a few hours. “Cade…Cade, please stop.” Blue eyes looked up at her. He smiled and
dragged himself up her body, kissing her flesh the entire way. Everywhere he
touched tingled with lust. He set her blood on fire and she knew she wouldn’t
be able to hold back who she really was any longer. “You all right, Love? Feel better?” She shook her head. “No. I don’t feel
better…just who the hell are you?” Gently, he pushed her hair off her face.
“I’m Cade. My mother was a Rhode Island blue blood. My father was an incubus.
And as entertaining as demons can be for lovers, I wanted something more
human…but something I wouldn’t kill. A witch I know cast a spell for me. A
location spell. To find my true other half. My dark-soul mate. To find you,
Mavis. And don’t worry about the tail…I can totally retract that in public.” Mavis snorted out a laugh. “Okay.” One hand brushed her cheek. “I’d dreamed
you for years before I went to Fanny for the spell. I just never thought I’d
find you. And now that I have…” He didn’t need to finish. She saw the
desire in his blue eyes. He wanted her. Desperately. “Are you sure, Cade?”
She’d only known the man for several hours but it felt like she’d been waiting
for him all her life. If she hurt him or worse, she’d never be able to forgive
herself. “Honestly, Love. I think I’m the only man
who can handle you.” He lifted the sheet and, frowning, Mavis glanced
down. Her eyes widened at the enormous cock between his legs. Even the demon
ex didn’t have anything like that. He grunted. “This is usually where the
screaming would always start.” Mavis didn’t scream. At least not yet.
Instead, she reached down and grasped the hard shaft in her hand. It pulsated.
Hot and powerful against her palm, her long fingers unable to close around it.
Her pussy wept in excitement. She’d been waiting her whole life for this
cock…oh, and the man attached to it, of course. He sighed as she eased her hand down the
entire length of him. She’d seen porno movies at bridal showers where the men
weren’t this well-endowed. She released the Wanton Whore who had been
impatiently waiting. Released her and didn’t look back. Black talons burst from her hands. Her
dark, sassy bob, grew several feet long, streaked with white and blond hair.
And she knew her eyes turned completely black, tinged with red. Just like it
always did when she got like this. “Fuck me, Cade,” she grumbled out in that
demonic voice her exes really hated, “Fuck me now.” He smiled down into her face, not
remotely disturbed by her transformation, and for the first time she saw four
fangs. Two on top and two on the bottom, right behind his incisors. He
stretched out between her legs, his hot cock right against her pussy. He
grabbed her wrists and pinned her arms above her head. His black hair fell
across her face, the silky strands heating her to fever pitch. “Take a deep breathe, Love. The first
time is always the roughest.” She did, as he slowly pushed himself
inside her. She spread her legs wide, letting all of him sink in. They both
gasped in surprise as he went in to the hilt quickly, her body accommodating
him immediately...like he was always meant to be there. Her smile as wide as
his, Mavis arched into him. “Do it, Cade. Do it! I want to see if we
both survive.” His thrusts started off slow and Mavis’
body immediately reacted to them. Her flesh on fire as she shuddered and
whimpered beneath him. She wrapped her legs around his waist, urging him on
with her body and her cries. Cade sped up, his body slamming into hers,
seemingly unable to hold back any longer. She tried to pull her wrists away so she
could bury her talons into his back and tear flesh from his body. But he just
chuckled and held her tighter. He controlled her body with ease and she loved
it. He dipped his head and laved one breast.
She gasped at the feel of his harsh tongue against her. Then he roughly sucked
the nipple into his mouth and she cried out. His free hand grabbed her other
breast, twisting and tweaking the nipple until she thought she might explode.
Cade growled against her flesh, his
movements becoming stronger, more forceful. And Mavis loved it. She arched
again as her orgasm rushed through her. And that’s when she felt it. His tail
snaked around behind her and the tip slid into her ass. She exploded, her scream only stopped
because he slammed his mouth over hers. She’d experienced nothing like it before.
Even when she’d killed her husbands, she hadn’t erupted like this. Mavis felt the Wanton Whore, finally
satisfied and content, go back to the safe place in her body. Her talons
retracted, her hair went back to its sassy bob. And even her eyes felt normal once
more. It took Mavis, however, a moment to
realize something. Cade wasn’t dead. Far from it, in fact. Actually, he was
still going strong and there didn’t seem to be any signs of him letting up. “Cade,” she panted out as he continued
pumping into her. Over and over again. “What, Love?” His mouth happily returned
to her breast, gently worrying the nipple with his teeth. She shuddered as another orgasm prepared
to release itself. “Exactly…ah! How long do you normally keep this up?” He glanced up at her, blue eyes digging
deep into her soul as if afraid she’d bolt. He didn’t release her gaze or
breast when he spoke. “Days.” Mavis raised an eyebrow as her toes began
to curl from the earth-shattering explosion getting ready to rock her. “Days?” He nodded slightly, waiting for her
response. “Well…okay…oh. Oh! Do that again, Cade.
Oh, yes…yes…that feels really good. Um…but I promised to make my cheesecake
for the church bazaar this weekend, so…ooooooooh!” He shrugged as he went back to sucking
her nipples. “That shouldn’t be a problem.” She smiled as her orgasm worked its way
up her spine. “Okay, then. That’ll…that’ll work…Oh, God!” Episode 1.11 THE TOAD PRINCE By Terese Ramin Episode 1.11 The Toad Prince By Terese Ramin (In which Murphy’s Law arrives in
Brokenoggin Falls, and a demonstration of “Be Careful What You Wish For” is
brought to bear.) “Rrrrrriiiiiiiibbb-iiiiiittt,” trilled the Giant Toad (quite literally
genus/species Bufo marinus, if anyone
is keeping track) that sat across the breakfast table from Alice Fairweather.
Its slow, low-pitched voice sounding almost exactly like the exhaust of a
far-off tractor, the toad spoke again somewhat reproachfully, “Rrrrriiiiiiiibbb-mmmmeeeeepppp
rrrrriiiiiiiibbb-iiiiiittt!” From behind Alice’s husband Greg’s
black-rimmed Clark-Kent-style glasses-frames, it blinked curiously human
hazel-brown eyes and waited for her to do something. Alice stared back at it aghast. But I
am NOT a witch, was all she could think. I couldn’t have done
that. Not just by getting super-upset and calling Greg a giant toad for
forgetting our wedding anniversary for the thirteenth year in a row… And yet the evidence of her dubious
prowess and long-denied heritage put its three-toed left foreleg atop the
morning paper—the Thursday new technology section, Greg’s favorite—and Greg’s
hi-tech titanium watch and plain platinum wedding ring thunked solidly
onto his salsa-and-scrambled-eggs-with-a-side-of-Russian-caviar-and-gourmet-biscuits
plate. (It was their anniversary for crying out loud!) Alice eyed the
further evidence that this particular Bufo marinus (a toad species definitely not
indigenous to Michigan’s Upper Peninsula, nor indeed to anywhere in the
United States north of extreme south Texas, Miami, Stock Island, southern
Sonora, or the pools and arroyos in the Rio Grande Valley) was, in fact, her
husband. Taken together with the emotional upset
over yet another forgotten anniversary, the evidence— glasses, human
hazel-brown-eyes, watch and ring—was all too damning and made her feel like
crying. She loved Greg to distraction but sometimes he was such a… She stopped herself from even thinking
anything accidentally lethal just in case, just in time, and burst into tears.
“I AM NOT A WITCH,” she sobbed loudly, “I-am-not-a-witch-notawitchnotawitchnotawitch…”
*** “Trevor Fairweather!” Claudia Choo knocked on her kitchen
bay window in an attempt to get the
attention of the Golden Retriever digging industriously in her herb and rhubarb
bed just below. “Stop it. Stop it this instant!” Normally a well-behaved canine of
immaculate grooming and joyous but exceedingly beautifully-mannered
temperament, Trevor suffered occasional bouts of rebelliousness and went, what
Claudia had heard his young mistress Amy Fairweather refer to as “rogue.” Instead of desisting, Trevor pointed his
impressive golden muzzle directly at Claudia, barked once, and moved over to an
exquisite patch of lavender and dragon’s breath. He nosed through the expertly
tended growth, chose his scent, clamped his teeth around the stem and tore out
the largest lavender plant Claudia had. Then he started to excavate in earnest. Speechless with fury, Claudia darted for
the first available exit and dashed catty-corner across Crestfallen Lane to the
Fairweathers’. She was damned straight going to give Alice a piece or two of
her mind, tell her to come get “that dog!” and have her—somehow—replace
the prize rare English-East-Indian Lavender-Mint plant Trevor had
just destroyed. *** “I am not a witch, notawitchnotawitchnotawitch…”
The more Alice Fairweather chanted the
mantra to herself, the more hysterical she became. It was a simple statement really, and one
that shouldn’t need justification or explanation, but every time she said it,
her need to justify herself to the universe got worse. She glanced at the sunlit kitchen table
upon which sat the usual, normal Fairweather family accouterments: the
breakfast dishes and morning paper, the French press coffeepot, the
too-cute-for-words unicorn-creamer and salt & pepper set Amy gave her last
Christmas because they were what the nine-year-old thought her mother should
have… An almost imperceptible keening joined
the mantra when she glanced at Greg’s place. “—notawitchnotawitchnotawitchnotawitch…”
Dear Lord, what had she done? What had
she done? Nothing, that’s what. She couldn’t have
because she wasn’t a witch, which meant this whole thing had to be… Greg’s own fault. The keening trickled down to a hysterical
giggle. That’s right, had to be Greg’s fault. He’d been the one to insist
they move back to this godforsaken place after all. Said it would pay to live
near his biggest and most lucrative clients. She’d never wanted him to
own an Internet company called SpookYour-Mama.com in the first place. Or to
specialize in items that the magickally enhanced scarfed up like free fresh
cookies at a blood drive. She was also not the one who’d forgotten
their thirteenth anniversary, or their fourteenth—which meant he’d forgotten thirteen
times in a row! Screwing with double-thirteens was just asking for bad
luck no matter how not superstitious you were or how much you were
definitely not a witch. Which she couldn’t be. Otherwise, she’d
probably like the number thirteen, black cats instead of Golden Retrievers and
turning her husband into a Bufo marinus whether accidentally or on
purpose. Right? “Rrrrriiiiiiibbbbb-bbbbaaaaaaappp?”
the toad trilled in its tractor exhaust voice, sounding for all the world as
though it wondered if she was all right. Alice took in Greg’s Clark-Kent-glasses
perched askew on its nose, the all-too-human hazel-brown eyes that blinked
behind the this-man-is-a-geek-but-a-really-hunkly-one nearsighted-thick lenses
and choked, “N-no, I’m n-not” and started to sniffle into tears. But
just then Claudia burst through the never-locked kitchen door, surprising her
out of them. “Hot damn it, Alice! That dog of Amy’s
is tearing up my prize lavender and if you don’t stop him, I’m going to hex him
into—” She stopped dead in mid-sentence and
stride, assessing the situation in the Fairweather kitchen in the blink of an
eye. “Oh, Alice,” she said in disgusted
sympathy, “what is it with men and anniversaries? The giant toad forgot again,
didn’t he?” A tiny bubble of hysterical laughter
squeaked out of Alice before she collapsed at the table opposite the Giant
Toad, crying as though her heart had broken. Ribitting madly, the toad hopped
onto the table and headed toward Alice. Claudia grabbed a potholder and a
dishtowel, scooped up the toad and dumped it into the deep ten-gallon soup pot
Alice kept on the one end of the counter and used to cook fish stew or chili
for the town festivals. “No you don’t,” she told the toad,
“you’ve caused enough trouble already.” She covered the pot, dropped the towel
and hot pad, grabbed up the phone and went to pat Alice’s back. “Don’t worry,
sweetie, it’s not your fault. We’ll convene the coven klatch and get you back
to normal in a flash.” *** “Giant Toads are
toxic, aren’t they?” Vanessa DuMal peered closely at the deeply pitted
paratoid glands that extended far down the sides of Greg’s new body. Hesther
Bellhallow leafed through one of several regional A Field Guide to Reptiles
and Amphibians she’d thought to bring with her at
Claudia’s summons. “Highly—to dogs and other animals if they bite it,
according to the Peterson’s.” She climbed Alice’s kitchen stepladder to get
her own look at the Bufo marinus, asking Claudia as she did so, “I’m a
medium, not a witch, so why am I here again?” “In case we need a spirit guide to help
us figure out which spell to cast, and because you’re part of the coffee
klatch,” Claudia said for approximately the seventh time. “So I guess that would mean the second
part’s true for me, too,” Emma Mincemeat suggested apologetically, “but what
about the first? I’m only human.” Vanessa tapped the somewhat dogeared Witchcraft
for Dummies clutched tight to Emma’s bosom, her forefinger tucked firmly
inside to mark a possible solution to Alice’s problem. “You at least want
to be a witch,” she said, “unlike some people who don’t even know when
they’re casting a spell.” Alice snuffled back indignation—and fear.
“Maybe your ancestors weren’t evil arts witches, but mine were. I
don’t want any part of what they did. I can’t be tempted. I have Amy to
consider. She needs to be raised right. Brokenoggin Falls Community Church is
the only—” “Alice.” Harmony Faithfull, pastor of
Brokenoggin Falls Community Church, who didn’t normally attend the coven coffee
klatches, slid an arm around her most faithful service attendee and squeezed.
“The church is open to everyone. Why Mavis Gap is one of our most active
members, and you know she’s just recently announced she thinks she’s a
succubus, so I don’t imagine you need to worry if you think you’re related to
black magick…” “She needs to worry,” Claire Stalwort
assured Harmony in her primmest little girl voice. “We don’t take kindly to
the black arts in this community.” Gerda Tawdry snorted impolitely behind
her hand a word that sounded like “Harpy,” and Gladys Tawdry sneezed something
behind hers that sounded so much like “Where’s Sam?” that Claire immediately
withdrew to the far side of the kitchen, a cup of coffee in one hand and a
pitcher of warm nutmeg-enhanced milk in the other, and pouted. Then Gladys
stuck out her tongue at Gerda and Gerda flipped Gladys the bird and… “The point is,” Godiva Tawdry said
firmly, stepping between her sisters before the hair pulling started, “we all
have stuff in our pasts we wish we didn’t. That’s why AnnMarie—” “I’m here.” Mussed and dripping with
perspiration, AnnMarie Hathaway blew in through garage breezeway. “I’m sorry
I’m late, but I’m a little worried about the skeleton closet. I had the lock
fixed at the beginning of the summer, but something’s not right. Has anyone
put something besides a skeleton in there recently? A Big Bad, maybe?” Everyone looked around the kitchen at
everyone else. “Well…” AnnMarie chewed her lip.
“Probably my imagination then.” She didn’t look like she thought it was, but
as though she knew there was nothing she could do about it even if it wasn’t
her imagination. At least not here and not now. “Did we get thirteen of us?”
She started counting heads. “I brought extra brooms.” Vanessa’s jaw dropped. Claudia’s mouth
worked, trying to form speech but failing. Gladys and Gerda clung together for
a change, cackling in perfect accord. The tip of Hesther’s tongue showed
between her teeth when she bit it to prevent herself from saying something;
Maria clapped a hand over her mouth to prevent the same. Harmony, Emma and
Claire looked at each other, puzzled, and Alice stared at her in dismay. “Brooms?” she asked aghast. “I don’t
even want to be a witch and you brought brooms!?” Tsking, Godiva simply shook her head. “AnnMarie, AnnMarie,
what will we do with you? Brooms? You’ve just set witchcraft back a thousand
years.” “Oh for god’s sake, grow up, all of you,”
AnnMarie snapped. “They’re to sweep up the salt when we’re done with the
circle.” This time she got several winces and some
deeply guilty stares from everyone except Vanessa and Claudia, who sent each
other, “Uh-oh, did you bring the salt–I didn’t bring the salt” looks.
“We do plan to cast a protective
circle, right?” “Uh huh.” “Sure.” “Yep.” “Oh definitely.” “Yes, absolutely.” “Right.” “We’re just waiting for Candy Cox to get
here with the, er, kosher sea—” “Celtic,” Claudia murmured out of
the corner of her mouth. “Er, yes, Celtic Sea salt,”
Vanessa finished, improvising. “Since Alice doesn’t like to practice, you
know, we thought we’d better use the best and clearest stuff we could find for
the first circle cast in her house.” AnnMarie’s lips twitched. “There’s a five
pound bag of Morton’s Iodized in the front hall,” she said as gravely as she
could. “I brought it just in case Alice didn’t have enough in the house because
she doesn’t practice.” Usually the most gracious and seemly of
women, Claudia nevertheless stuck out her tongue at AnnMarie. “Witch.” It was
plain she meant it with a capital ‘B’. AnnMarie grinned. Candy Cox breezed in at that moment. “Am
I the last one?” Hesther put down the phone. “Hi, Candy.
That was Janice. She’s trying to get here, but the Disdaine triplets screamed
for her and she says she’s a literally tied up right now.” “Don’t you mean a little…?” Godiva began,
and stopped. On second thought and where the Disdaine pre-adolescents were
concerned, Hesther no doubt meant exactly what she said. Emma tapped her foot, stuck her left ring
finger in the page she’d marked for Alice’s situation and began to leaf
determinedly through Witchcraft for Dummies. “As the mother of twelve,”
she said furiously, “someone should tell their parents that something has
to be done about those girls before they come into their most powerful
years as a charmed trio. But right now we have to un-scream-summons Janice the
way you’ve been promising to all summer, and do something to make sure
she doesn’t have to respond to the bogus any more!” They didn’t even need a second to think
about it. “Agreed!” the other eleven women chorused. Even Alice didn’t
hesitate to join them. She didn’t like the way the Disdaine’s sometimes eyed
Amy, and she was also beginning to realize that being in the company of women
who’d help each other at the drop of a tear might not be so bad even if they were
witches…and other things. Harmony Faithfull joined them, too. She
wasn’t one of them, not really, not in any spiritual or magickal system yet
invented, but they’d called her in to help Alice, a member of her congregation,
and she was part of their community: their needs were hers. Whatever it was
they were about to do here, she had absolute faith in the fact that their
intentions were pure and honorable: they meant to help and not harm, not
hinder. She could get behind that one hundred percent. There were, after all,
more things on heaven and earth and all that… She would simply have to ignore the fact
that she was just a little fuzzy and more than a trifle skeptical about the
means. “But without Janice—” Alice cleared the
timidity and teary roughness out of her throat. “Didn’t you say, Claudia, that
we need thirteen for this because of all the thirteens involved in it?” Claudia nodded. “Most of the time I
wouldn’t think about it, but since the number seems so specific this time, we
should probably stick with it.” “What about Mavis?” “No one’s seen much of her since Cade…” “Maria?” Emma interrupted quickly. If
anyone even talked sex around her she was likely to wind up pregnant
again by morning. Peter could smell the mere thought of the word on her
and responded
to it as though it was Viagra and Cialis and oysters all packed into one potent
punch. No one knew where Maria was. “Morganna’s down in the garden tool
shed,” Alice said, “she’d come.” Vanessa peeked out the kitchen window.
“Is that Joe’s truck?” A collective sigh went up. “Gavin?” “Eeeeeuuuw! He’d probably come naked.” “Tulah-Portentia?” “Still pissed because Rowdy hasn’t been
able to talk Joe into turning her half-brother loose.” “I should say not.” Claudia sounded
peeved. “Little twerp’s a menace, burning up everything in sight and eating
whatever he feels like. Why he even tried to dust my Earl…” Vanessa patted her shoulder and bit her
tongue to prevent herself mentioning her own husband’s father, Vicomte de la
Gryphon, the actual munching scientist culprit. “I hear there’s a new gal in
town. Dorothea something. Maybe—” “What about me?” Eight-year-old Amy
Fairweather crawled out from under the kitchen table where she’d been hiding
and eavesdropping all along. “I’m a powerful witch. It’s my daddy. I want to
help.” “Oh, Amy!” her mother exclaimed,
horrified. “What are you…you’re not supposed to be…you should be out…how did
you…?” Overcome with questions and admonishments without direction, Alice
fishmouthed into silence. For the space of five heartbeats she stared at her
daughter. “No,” she said finally, resolutely. “Absolutely not. I forbid it.” “But moo-oom!” Amy stamped her foot.
“You know I can help. You know it! You know we could do it all by
ourselves together, just you an’ me, but you’re too afraid of what might happen
and how you’d feel afterwards, but I’m not cuz you wouldn’t.
You’re the best witch ever-ever-ever, else I can’t be and I am!” “Child, what are you talking about?”
Vanessa stooped in front of her. If she and Jean-Luc were ever able to
conceive, she hoped she’d be able to make more sense out of their offspring
than she was making out of Amy right now. “If you have any magicks at all,
which is unlikely, you’re much too young to have come into them.” “Technically,” Claire said slowly,
glancing from Alice’s dead-set, frightened face to Amy’s equally determined,
completely unafraid countenance and back. “Technically. I’ve heard of
circumstances…” “No!” Alice shouted. “Yes!” Amy yelled. “Rrrrrrrriiiiiibbbbbbb-bbbrrrrreeeeepp-oooooowwwrrrr!” the Giant Toad rumbled metalically from
the depths of the ten-gallon soup pot. Mother and daughter stared at each other
without giving ground. Everyone else gazed from them to the soup pot then
anywhere else in consternation, uncomfortable as they’d ever been in their
entire existences. “You know it’s me ‘n you with them or
nobody.” Amy, stubborn: Alice’s mother’s image to the core. “I know it’s me and them and you visiting
Aunt Cecilia for the day if you don’t mind your manners now,” Alice tossed
back, equally stubborn, and firmer than any of the other ladies had ever seen
her. Clearly the fruit that was Amy didn’t fall far from Alice’s oak tree. Amy stamped a threatening foot. “I’ll
show them!” She flicked the small fingers of her left hand at the unicorn
creamer and the salt-and-pepper shakers and the ceramic trio came to life and
started to dance. A collective gasp burst from the coven klatch.
“Oh—” started Vanessa. Alice said nothing, merely sent Amy a
chastising stop-showing-off glance then pursed her lips in the direction of the
dancing ceramic unicorns. They stopped in a blink and went back to being
nothing more than simple decorative accouterments atop the breakfast table. “—shit,” Claudia finished for
Vanessa. They looked at each other, at the rest of
the women, at the toad in the pot. AnnMarie gave voice to their thoughts.
“This is—” At that instant, Trevor fitted his
beautiful, furry Golden Retriever body through the doggy door into the kitchen,
dashed into the center of the room leaving muddy footprints in his wake,
dropped a pair of finger bones on the floor and barked three times. As if on
cue, the finger bones unfurled and began to creep across the floor toward
AnnMarie who viewed them with fascinated horror. “No, this
is really not good at all,” the keeper of the skeleton closet said. *** The
finger bones decided things for Alice. She pointed a brook-no-nonsense finger at
Amy. “You’re to stay within touching distance of me at all times and don’t let
go of Trevor’s leash.” “Yes, mommy.” Amy nodded solemnly. Alice dropped a green silk cord over her
daughter’s head, tapped a forefinger against the delicately hand crafted silver
amulet of the Green Man with the broken noggin and the waterfall foaming out of
his head that now lay over Amy’s heart. “And don’t take this off ever.” “I won’t,” Amy promised. Then, “Where’s
yours?” “Right here.” Alice clipped a silver
chain about her neck. An amulet identical to Amy’s except for the diamond
chips in the falls and the tiny emerald, amethyst, and aquamarine points
dangling from the Green Man’s beard rested in the hollow of her throat. “Daddy
made me one, too. Just in case.” “In case of what?” Candy sounded anxious.
“In case I ever stopped living in denial
and started practicing.” Alice grimaced. “He thought if he designed something
with the falls and the trees in mind, maybe it’d offer some protection for Amy
and me from my ancestors.” “Honey,” Claudia
observed nervously, “I don’t think you need to practice, I think what you need
is to take control.” “Yeah,” Alice said dryly, eyeing her soup pot. “Consider
that done. Cast the circle, AnnMarie. Cast it wide.” *** The afternoon waned and evening set it.
The salt circle glowed moonlight-bright from the protective power it held, but
every single one of the dozens of cast spells failed. Exhausted, the women
looked at each other. “What haven’t we tried?” Claudia. “Dancing naked under the full moon?”
Gladys, poking Gerda, both of them on the verge of giggly hysteria. Harmony sank to her knees. “Maybe it’s
me,” she offered gloomily. “I’m here for Alice and I’m pretty sure I saw something
this morning when she and Amy did…whatever they did even if I don’t know what,
but…” she hesitated. “I can’t believe that’s really Greg in that pot, and maybe
a believer’s what you really need.” “Nonsense,” Emma said briskly. “This
isn’t like voodoo. My book says so.” “Voodoo!” AnnMarie snapped her fingers
and looked hard at the finger bones fidgeting idly away inside their own
separate salt circle. Trevor lay with his nose an nth of a degree outside the
circle, guarding the bones. “Maybe,” Amy tried for the sixth time in
as many hours, “It’s like that story daddy—” This time Janice’s arrival interrupted
her. Looking somewhat the worse for wear after her afternoon with the
Disdaines, she strode through the house, stopping short of the circle.
“Haven’t you de-toaded the man yet?” “No, but we’ve un-screamed you,”
Hesther told her. Janice’s face relaxed into an
uncharacteristic smile. “I thought someone screamed when I was on my way over
here, but I didn’t leap, so…thanks.” “Yeah, thanks.” Seth stepped up behind
her. Clothed for once, he was merely remarkably handsome instead of
godly-gorgeous. “It’s a whole lot more convenient when she doesn’t leave in
the middle of—hey, I know those bones.” AnnMarie started. “You do?” “Sure.” Seth shrugged. “They belong to—” The full moon rose abruptly, pink and
friendly, a harbinger of things not to come. “Yes?” AnnMarie prompted. Confused and frightened, Seth looked
around wildly. “Where-who-what…?” Janice turned and took hold of his fly
and Alice covered Amy’s eyes. “Brokenoggin Falls, Seth, a vampyre. I’m
Janice. See? You’ve got it written on your arm. Let’s go and get you
undressed, help you remember what else you’ve forgotten…” “Get him to remember who the finger bones
belong to,” AnnMarie called after them, “It’s important—” “That’s it,” Alice said flatly, putting
her foot down. “I’ve had enough. I appreciate everything you all have tried
to do, but we’ve got too many things going on here to solve one little
anniversary problem. Because that’s all this is. It’s just between Greg and
me, and I might need help, and he might be a toad about remembering some
things, but most of the time he’s my prince and—” “Mommy.” Amy tugged at her arm hard.
“That’s the thing we haven’t tried. Daddy’s story, you know the one he always
tells me, his favorite one, about the toad prince. He says it’s how he found
you and you made him the man he is. Remember?” Brought up short, Alice could only stare
down at her daughter, blinking rapidly, mouth agape. “Oh dear God,” she
breathed at last, teary-voiced, “how could he remember what I’d forgotten?”
She dropped to her knees beside the soup pot. “Oh, Greg! You wonderful,
glorious, ridiculous toad of a prince!” “Rrrriiiiiiibbbbbiiiiittttt,” the Giant Toad thrummed deeply in its
distant-tractor-exhaust voice, “Rrrrrriiiiiiibbbbbb-wwwwwoooooowwww!” “Alice?” Claudia asked. “What? Oh.” Alice offered her a watery
laugh and smudged the heel of her hand across her eyes. “I’m sorry, girls.
You’ve all been wonderful, but we can break the circle now. I really do have
to do this on my own. Emma, would it be all right if…” Emma, wife who’d survived countless
anniversaries and mother of twelve, caught Alice’s drift at once and held out
her hand to Amy. “Of course. Amy, how about you come spend the weekend at my
house? The quadruplets are dying to show you—” she shuddered delicately,
knowing that no eight-year-old worth his or her salt would ever be able to pass
up this opportunity no matter how gross “—this new thing they can do with dead
people. You can show them that thing you did with the salt-and-pepper
shakers…” Alice turned to Trevor who pushed himself
up on his haunches, wagging his tail and waiting for instructions. “Take care
of those bones.” “No, wait!” AnnMarie cried. “There’s
something wrong with them, I know it. They need to be locked in the skeleton
clos—” But before she could finish or stop him,
Trevor pushed his nose deliberately through the salt circle around the bones to
break it, scooped them up in his mouth, dashed to the edge of the large circle,
pawed it open and was gone. “You don’t know what you’ve done,”
AnnMarie told Alice gravely. Alice made a face. “No,” she agreed,
“but with my ancestors, if Trevor brought those creeping fingers here and then
a vampyre from out of town thought he recognized them before he forgot what he
was again…” She offered up a lopsided shrug. “I’m just thinking the skeleton
closet might not be the safest place for them, and maybe that’s why they were
separated and buried someplace else to begin with.” “On your head,” AnnMarie advised her, and
Harmony Faithfull gasped, took out her cross she wore around her neck out of
her blouse and automatically countered, “Let the ties between the dead and the
living be parted and peace exist between them.” Something calm settled in the air around
and within Alice’s house and stayed there. AnnMarie eyed Harmony sharply. “I
thought you weren’t a witch.” “I’m not.” Proudly Harmony drew herself
up to her full height and stared AnnMarie squarely in the eye. “I’m a pastor.” “Hunh,” AnnMarie said puzzled.
“Interesting.” She linked elbows with Harmony. “I wonder if there’s anything
you can do with my closet…” They wandered off, chatting. With their departure, Trevor’s absconding
with the bones, and Emma leaving with Amy, the rest of the group began to drift
away, too. Only Vanessa and Claudia lingered, unsure that leaving Alice
unsupported was the right thing. Touched to discover that she did indeed
have something in Brokenoggin Falls that she’d always thought she lacked, Alice
fingered the gems in the exquisitely crafted Green Man pendant at her throat
and smiled. “Thank you, really. You don’t know how
much. But it’s fine—better than.” She glanced again at the soup pot where the
toad sat watching her every move through its all-too-Greg-like eyes. “I know
exactly what to do now. In fact it was stupid of me to take so long to remember
it. So…” She grinned shyly. “Come for coffee tomorrow afternoon, I’ll tell you
about it?” Then for
the first time in her life, Alice let herself be hugged by her friends. *** The
light pink moon shining down on the rippling upper end of Corkscrew Falls
created magical shadows under the spreading branches of the great fox oak where
Greg and Alice first met. “I can’t believe you remembered this,”
Alice repeated, setting Greg’s warty body down on the huge, craggy,
shaped-by-the-falls rock where she’d first seen him. “I didn’t even remember—didn’t
want to remember what my parents and grandparents…” “Rrrriiiibbbb-mmmeeerrrpppp,” the toad rumbled gently, “Rrrrrreeeerrr-mmmaaaapppp.”
Alice nodded. “Yes, I know. They thought
they were clever. They thought I’d never do it. But they were the ones who
sent me to summer camp. That’s where I heard the girls say you never find the
prince without kissing a lot of toads so, stupid me, I thought they meant
literally. I figured bad taste, warty skin, bufo toxins and all I should get
it over with, maybe get to my prince faster. And there you were.” She pulled a
tall, cone-shaped princess hat with a long, flowing blue gauze scarf-thing
trailing off it out of the duffel bag she’d brought with them and put it on,
tying its iridescent blue-green-purple-y ribbons beneath her chin. “Right there
on this rock.” She perched carefully beside her
transmogrified husband, picked him up and brought him to eye level. “It’s a
good thing princess hats are shaped like dunce caps,” she told him
apologetically, “because that’s what I am—a dunce for not figuring this out
earlier.” “Rrrrriiiiibbbbuuurrrppp,” the toad disagreed soundly. It inched
cautiously forward in her palms, reached out a three-toed forefoot and touched
her nose. At the same time, Alice tipped her head and kissed it. On a breath, her husband’s mouth formed
under hers, his fingers found her face and tunneled into her hair, his bare
body took shape and fitted next to hers; the rigid length of his cock nudged
her gauze covered thigh. Alice gasped and tipped her head back, baring her
throat to his tongue and teeth, catching his cock in her hand. “Oh god, Greg, don’t stop, don’t stop!” “I couldn’t if I wanted to. The only
thing I’ve eaten all day is flies and fish eggs. I’m starving.” Alice laughed unsteadily. “I brought
sandwiches.” His voice was dark, carnal. “I’m in the
mood for something creamier.” He dragged her across his lap, all the
while hunting avidly for her breasts with his mouth. The peek-a-boo
gauze-and-lace tunic she’d changed into before driving them out here dragged
roughly, erotically across her skin and his, teased them both, so that by the
time he found an aureole it was puckered tight, the nipple at its crest a hard,
thrusting bud bursting for relief. When he rolled it finally between his
tongue and the roof of his mouth, tunic and all, Alice pressed into him hard
and begged for more. “Touch me while I suck you, Alice,” Greg
whispered, “and touch yourself, too. Bring up your cream for me, baby, I need
you…aaaahhhhh.” Alice stroked his tip, arched her back
and let him watch her run her other hand down her own belly until she tucked
the filmy nearly see-through skirt tight over her mons and began to stroke
herself, too. The heat from his gaze made it difficult to split her concentration
equally, but she did her best to keep her attention focused on him and only on
him while she sheathed her hand around him and wet him with his pre-cum, moved
the fingers of her other hand rhythmically against her clitoris and lightly
inside her own sheath… When Greg clamped down hard and pulled
her nipple deep into his mouth, Alice’s focus threatened to shatter. Her
breath stuttered, her hands clamped and nearly stalled. Greg tilted his head
sideways and looked up at her. Their gazes locked. While his mouth massaged
one aureole, his tongue and teeth the nipple, he teased her other aureole and
nipple with the pad of his thumb—slowly, gently, exquisitely manipulated them
so that the breast itself had to plump and strain to make sure it felt the
pleasure. His other hand simply steadied her, played lightly over her skirt,
slowly ruching the fabric higher and higher along her leg and easing his
fingers closer to the inside of her thigh. His cock strained her hand, outgrew its
span, spilled a measure more of pre-cum that she used to slicken its generous
bulk while her breathing thickened and quickened, and her breasts rose higher,
faster, harder into his hand and mouth. “Please,” she whispered darkly, working
her inner thighs against his tempting fingers while hers continued to slide her
now saturated skirt against her clit. “Please.” Driven by the word, he let her breasts
slip away, moved to ease the gauzy skirt beneath her hand. When she would have
withdrawn it, he clasped her fingers in his and shook his head. “I need my cream first, wench.” Then he waited for her to grasp his
meaning, nod and grin wickedly at him before he pushed her back and spread her
legs wide, dipped both their fingers inside her—two of hers and two of his—and
urged her to thrust while he manipulated their hands. It didn’t take long to get what they
wanted. Her sweet pearly cream spilled over their hands even as her soft moans
started to spill into the night. “That’s the spot, right there?” Greg
asked, pressing both of their index fingers to the soft little button of flesh
inside her that sent Alice’s hips bucking high. “Ye-es!” she gasped, shuddering
and bucking when another pleasure-spasm sent more thick moisture trickling down
her backside. “Cum inside me right there, right now, Greg, yes!” Grinning his beautiful, intensely “Greg”
smile down at her, her husband scooped their messily dripping joined hands to
his lips and said, “Sustenance first,” and sucked their fingers clean. Then while she was still giggling over
that bit of nonsense, he flipped one of her knees over one of his shoulders and
drove his cock into her hard. She moaned with pleasure. He did it
again; so did she. And the rest of the night went exactly
that way: celebrated precisely the way fourteenth wedding anniversaries are
supposed to be celebrated—with good, hot, lusty, loving sex and plenty of it. And also a few promises to do it again
exactly the same way next year. Only maybe without the forgetting the
anniversary part. Or… Alice came hard and long, simultaneously
with Greg, wrapped around him, clutching at the stars. …Maybe with the forgetting would be okay,
too. As long as they celebrated number fifteen together, among their friends
in Brokenoggin Falls. Episode 1.12 A DANCE THROUGH THE GARDEN OF GOOD AND
EVIL By Susan Grant Episode 1.12 The Garden Of Good and Evil By Susan Grant The Devil scowled at the dirty, sweating
demon that had been brought before him in chains. “Kneel before me and prepare
to receive your sentence!” “Aye, Master.” The demon crouched and
bowed his head. It would not do to act arrogant, not after the torture. At
least he still possessed all his important body parts. It could have gone much
worse for him. And perhaps it still would. The devil, as always, was in the
details. “Prepare to receive your sentence,
Demon.” They were all named Demon down here in Hell. The only being with his
own name was Lucifer Himself. “Aye, Master.” The demon’s hands, bound
at the wrist, rested awkwardly at the small of his back as he tried to focus on
Lucifer’s fiery red eyes, the black goatee, the horns, the pitchfork, and the
crimson suit--proof that the whimsies of fashion in Hell had been at a
standstill since the birth of time. Fashion? Why was he thinking of
fashion? His concentration simply wasn’t what it used to be after the century
of torture he’d endured for his crimes. Or had it been two centuries that he’d
been paying for his terrible deeds? Ah, but what was an extra century or two
in the grand scheme of things? He’d been on this earth for more than 10,000
years, tasked to bring the worst sort of doubt into the miserable, pitifully
abbreviated lives of human beings. For he was a High Demon-Lord, one of the
most ancient of them all: the Lord of Self-Doubt and Second Thoughts, the bane
of many a human failure, simpering creatures all too eager to listen to the
doubts that he could so easily plant in their weak minds. You can’t,
he’d whisper until they believed it. You won’t. Try and you will surely
fail. Countless men who could have ruled the
world had never stepped beyond their front doors because he had made them doubt
themselves, made them afraid to take chances, to risk failure. Nor were women
any safer from his dark murmurings through the eons. He’d frightened countless
wenches, silencing their voices by playing up their fears of sounding too
shrill, too stupid, too...different. Humanity’s failures--he’d been the force
behind most of them. Until that fateful day he glimpsed true courage and
couldn’t bring himself to destroy it, giving the Will-To-Go-On to a small,
starving band of settlers wandering in the snowy woods of Michigan’s Upper
Peninsula. He wasn’t sure exactly why he’d spared them, why he’d given them
the inner strength to push themselves until they reached warmth and shelter,
but he had—and it had felt damned good, too. In fact, it had felt so damned
good to be good to the damned that he repeated the deed all around the globe,
losing himself for years in a virtual frenzy of beneficence, until he was
finally caught, red-handed, in the midst of one of those random acts of
kindness. The demon’s crimes had been considered so
heinous that the Devil Himself had dragged him back to Hell. First, there had
been the fruitless, futile explaining, then the torture. Now this, his
sentence: “For your crimes, you are
banished—banished from Hell for all time!” The demon’s head jerked up. Banished?
He’d expected a reduction in rank, the loss of freedom to come and go as he
pleased, but banishment? His salary, his benefits--poof, gone! Just
like that. Heaven’s Gates, he’d slaved ten thousand years—for nothing! Done
the Devil’s deeds only to end up like this: out of date, out of use, and
without a transferable retirement plan! It’s your fault. You have no one to
blame but yourself. “Is this to be forevermore?” he almost croaked. Lucifer chuckled. “Not forevermore, no.
For I have made you mortal, as well,” he added glibly, cutting short the
demon’s premature sigh of relief. “Never fear; you won’t have many years ahead
of you to fret your fate.” He waved a clawed hand. “You can thank me
anytime.” “Where?” the demon asked instead. “Where
will you send me?” Something told him it wasn’t mortality itself he needed to
fear as much as the locale in which he would suffer it. “Why, to the very epicenter of your
initial act of kindness.” He spat out that last word. Literally. The glob of
moisture sizzled in one of the many fires burning deep within the bowels of the
earth. “Brokenoggin...” the demon whispered. Devil’s red eyes appeared positively
gleeful as his forked tongue darted out to moisten thin, malice-curved lips.
“Yes,” he hissed with the very faintest of lisps. “The hamlet of Brokenoggin.
Such a peculiar little place.” The demon mulled over his options, which
were near zero, as far as he could tell. Time was running out to reverse this
course. So, he did what he did best: “Are you certain this is the best plan for
me, Master? The best punishment?” The Devil’s voice turned deadly. “What
do you mean?” “Let’s think this through. What if it
doesn’t work?” You can’t...you won’t. Try and you will surely
fail... “The High Lord of Self-Doubt and Second Thoughts living across the
street? Shopping at the local market? Dropping in at the Cub Scout meeting?”
The demon forced a weak laugh. “Absurd, is it not?” The sound of a thousand screams filled
the chamber as the Devil roared in incredulous rage. “How dare you!” Goblins
and gargoyles somersaulted through the shadows, fleeing the chamber as a
rumbling began under the cold stone slab of a floor. “Your dark magic does not work with me,
Demon!” “No magic intended. I merely suggest
that you look at all sides of the equation.” Lucifer roared again. Somewhere far above
them, on the surface, the ground also shook. The demon half-wondered how many
casualties there would be this time. But that was no longer his job. He’d been
fired. He was no longer be tasked with sowing seeds of defeat in the survivors’
minds, riddling their psyches with despair. At that, something close to relief
filtered through him. Doing good had taken the fun out of doing evil. He sensed
he’d never be 100% good. Yet, nor could he ever return to being 100% bad. Pulsing like hot coals, Lucifer’s eyes
glowed brighter, his fangs glinting. A tantrum was coming; the demon could
sense it. “I do not doubt, fallen one. I do not err. I do not have second
thoughts!” Lucifer grew and grew until he towered above the demon, his
clothing splitting and hissing as muscled flesh bulged and tore it apart.
Horns sprouted from a ridged skull, curling upward, until they, too, were lost
in the swirling mist of the chamber. How many times had the Demon witnessed
such showy outbursts during his long existence? In fact, it kindled his own
temper, long dormant. It was as if something wrenched open deep inside him.
For the first time, emotion, true emotion, filled him: anger, resentment, shame
at his past. Just like the humans, he thought. What was happening to him? “I
am sorry,” he said under his breath. It was the only way to express what
boiled up inside him. “I am so very sorry...” “You don’t look sorry,” the Devil hissed.
He looked up slowly. “Ah, but I am. I’m
very sorry. Sorry for all the centuries of planting doubt, of turning back
those beings better than I. In fact, I hereby repent.” Take that, Big
Guy. “You...re-what?” “I repent. R-e-p-e-n-t.” Wasn’t that an Aretha
Franklin song? Oh, he was going to suffer mightily for this, but it didn’t stop
him. “I ask forgiveness all the deeds I ever did in your name. I truly do.”
And he truly did. The demon threw back his head. “Forgive me!” “I...do...not...forgive!” The demon smiled; perhaps it would be his
last. “It wasn’t of you that I made my plea,” he said. It was the first time in all of history
he could ever remember hearing the Great Satan sputter. Then the screaming
started up all over again. Two jets of searing red heat shot out from the
Devil’s eyes and hit the slab where the demon crouched. Rocks exploded,
pummeling him. The air was on fire, something that the demon should have been
used to—Lucifer’s temper was legendary—but this felt different. There was a
horrific wrenching, and the demon could no longer see or hear, or even, after a
blessed while, feel the pain that wracked him. Bathed in white light,
floating...he wondered if this was what it felt like to die. If so, perhaps he
would not mind. But he knew, as he spun into oblivion—or, rather, the wilds of
Michigan—that Lucifer never would let him get away as easily as that. *** In a
clear, sweet voice, Harmony Faithful concluded her sermon. “Now, go in peace
and enjoy this beautiful day that God has given us.” The sound of her
six-month-old puppy’s tail thumping on the hardwood floor was all that broke
the perfect silence. “Thanks, Bubba.” Harmony smiled and
glanced up from her eight-page, handwritten sermon that had taken all of ten
minutes to read to the twelve rows of empty pews. “It’s nice to know someone
appreciated the homily today.” Sometimes, she wondered what she possibly
could have been thinking, relocating to the remote Upper Peninsula: her, a city
girl, thinking she could make church goers out of the people who lived here
who, um, weren’t anything like any people she’d ever met anywhere else. But
after her two tours as an air force chaplain were up, she was ready for another
challenge. Six months ago, this chapel had been a
tumbledown farmhouse. With the help of her father and brothers, she’d
remodeled the old place. Then they’d returned to Detroit, leaving her to grow
her flock. Except that aside from a few curious townspeople, no one had showed
up. “You can do this, girlfriend,” she told
herself. She’d simply have to drum up a little of the faith in herself that she
always tried to drum up in every one else. After all, she was Harmony
Faithfull, the daughter of Jacob Jethro Faithfull, IV, Detroit’s most famous,
and often infamous, but always ebullient pastor of Elm Avenue Church.
“Remember that, Harmony,” she said out loud. “It’s in your genes. God sent you
here because you have a job to do.” Bubba seemed to agree, a long pink puppy
tongue draped over one side of his open mouth. Boy, lately she sure was
spending a lot of time talking to herself or to the dog. She needed to get out
more, meet of the locals, maybe join in on some of those oddly named “coffee
covens” Janice—the town’s only law enforcement officer—and the Fairweathers—incredibly,
seemingly normal couple—had told her about. Most of the women in town
seemed nice, if a little, um, racy. Black lace bra types, Harmony had dubbed
them in private. Not meaning any disrespect. Her own sister was a black lace
bra type. And
not that Harmony had anything against a woman knowing her own charms or being
confident about sex. God had never dissed procreation. In fact, He encouraged
it—within the context of a committed, monogamous relationship, of course.
Something she sure didn’t have to worry about, considering her current state of
isolation. Have some faith. Give it time. Time... Yeah, she had plenty of that
lately. She gathered up the sheets of lined paper, crushed them in her fist,
and aimed the ball of paper at the wastebasket across from the pulpit. It
clipped the rim and spun inside. “Two points!” She tapped a finger against her chin.
“Maybe we can start an after-school basketball team. What do you think of
that, Bubba-licious?” The puppy wagged his long black tail. The idea had worked for her preacher
father and some inner-city kids in Detroit. The hoops had brought the kids,
and then the mothers, who’d dragged the fathers and the boyfriends, and within
the year there was an entire community with Sunday potlucks and a
fifty-two-member choir. Not that she could picture the Disdaine triplets
shooting hoops, but it’d be a start. It was all about getting people through
the door. Brokenoggin Community Church. Where all
faiths are welcome.
That last part she’d painted onto the sign as an afterthought when weeks had
gone by and nary a lost soul tromped through the door. Well, save Janice, the
town sheriff. She’d drop by sometimes to see how Harmony was settling in,
staying for coffee but not the good word. But then Harmony firmly believed
everyone was welcome here, for whatever reasons they chose to come. She was
taught as a child that a true heart excluded no one, and that the church was
the heart of the village. Except in Brokenoggin, that honor was held by the
town tavern. How could she convince the townspeople to
congregate here instead? What did she have here that they couldn’t find
anywhere else? “God, help me figure this out. Give me a sign.” Please.
The floor rumbled. At first she thought
it was the old furnace kicking on, but it was warm today, too warm for the
heat. The earth moved again, and then stopped. Strange. Everyone knew a fault line ran
through Missouri. But Michigan? Just then, a breeze kicked open the front
door, carrying in the scent of freshly turned dirt. Bubba bolted out the door,
barking. Something outside was making the puppy bark like crazy. Was that
strange pack of nasty little Chihuahuas on the loose again? Harmony stepped outside. Grabbing the
frilly cotton of her skirt, she lifted it higher, her long legs carrying her to
the garden she’d planted under an ancient, gnarled apple tree. Birds chirped.
The sky was a pure, clear blue. And the sunshine, she could almost taste it.
There was another reason she’d come here. Something about this little patch of
land drew her. She was so entranced by the outdoors that she swept right past
Bubba who was barking at the naked man lying on his side in the shade of the
tree. The naked.... ...man? Harmony froze, the skirt falling out of
her hands. There was no naked man. Oh, yeah? Then how do you explain the
after-image that just seared itself onto your retinas? Heart thumping, Harmony whirled around.
He was definitely naked, lying on his side, one thick, muscled thigh thrown
forward, the sunshine bouncing off his butt. His skin was tanned, smooth, and
his dark hair curled long and loose around his neck. He had the well-hewn body
of a NFL running back— powerfully muscled, but without a linebacker’s bulk. She’d asked God to send her a sign. But
she never expected anything like this! Then she blinked. What was she doing,
staring? The man was out cold—drunk probably—but still, she should be
helping. Her military first-aid training kicked in, and she dove to her knees,
her fingers going to his corded neck to feel for a pulse. There...a
heartbeat...slow, distant, almost forlorn, as if the man had grown tired of
living. Harmony sat up straight. Gosh, that was
a weird thought. Tired of living? And yet when she studied him, his face, she
could believe it was true. Well, she’d have to fix that. No man was going to
give up the goat on her watch. And especially not while naked and crushing her
best zinnias. Bubba growled, low and deep. “Stop it,”
Harmony scolded. “I’m a third-degree back belt, baby. If he turns out to be
the town serial killer, we’ll team up and put him away. Until then, Bubba-boy,
you behave.” The puppy obeyed, its brown eyes huge. Harmony tapped the man on the cheek. “Hello?
Are you okay?” He needed a shave and the bristles pricked her skin. But his
face was warm, almost as if he was sunburned...or had stood too close to a fire
and got burned. More likely, he collapsed after a night of carousing. He was
going to be pretty embarrassed once he realized he’d left wherever he’d been
hanging out without his clothes. “Come on, wake up. I’ll brew you a pot of
coffee. Lord knows, I make a mean pot of java.” He didn’t make a sound, not
even a snore. She took hold of his solid shoulder and shook hard. “Let’s go.”
Nothing. She tried her air force officer voice. “Time to wake up, soldier! Now.
Move, move!” The
man cracked open one eye. At first she thought she saw a red glow, but it
seemed to be a trick of the sun. His eyes—or rather the one eye she could see,
the other one being buried in the peat— was beautiful, the mellow gold of good
scotch, the kind her father would reverently pour out in a glass once each
week, late on Sunday night—”Now that God’s work is done, Harmony,” he’d
explain. “How’re
we doing?” she asked. administered
emergency caffeine, she’d better make sure he wasn’t wounded. Anywhere. She
gave him a thorough inspection. After all, it was her citizen’s
responsibility. There wasn’t an ounce of fat on him. Or a single scar. He
was as sculpted as a statue of a Roman warrior, except with body hair, the
perfect amount, too, short and coarse and dark.... Something
drew her eyes back to his face, where she discovered he was watching her with
something close to amusement. “You seem very much...whole,” she said quickly
explained. “Whole.
Aye, lass,” he murmured in the strangest-sounding accent, almost a Scottish
burr. “They kicked me out, but I got to keep all my parts and pieces.” He
flashed a blinding grin. “You like what you see, then.” She
stopped her blush before the heat of it could reach her cheeks. She’d grown up
with three brothers. Like heck if she’d let the fact that a man was sprawled
naked in her garden in all his very magnificent glory distract her. “No,” she
lied. “As a matter of fact, I don’t like what I see.” Was that something
wounded that flashed in his eyes? Certainly it was surprise. She let the sin
of pride curve her mouth. “I don’t care for the sight of a drunk, lying naked
in my flower garden on a Sunday morning.” She gathered her skirt around her and
stood, brushing the dirt off her hands. “But I did pray for someone to show up
today, I prayed for a sign, and I suppose I shouldn’t complain, because I
didn’t spell out the specifications.” “I
am not drunk.” His eyes confirmed that. They were clear, not bloodshot, as
they searched around the garden with curiosity and maybe even wonder, as if he
were only just now becoming aware of his surroundings. She
thought of his strange reference to keeping his body parts. “Were you in an
accident?” onto the dirt with a soft thud. He looked
so beaten, she softened her tone. “Would you like some coffee?” “Water.” His
voice was a bit hoarse. “Cold water.” “I hear you on the water.” She’d prefer
hers in the form of a shower. “Can you walk? Or should I call the
paramedics?” He
seemed to test his arms and legs. Long muscles flexed, moving under firm skin,
and his tight stomach brought new meaning to six-pack abs. Harmony...
she warned herself. Be professional. “Where are your clothes?” she asked as
calmly as she could as he didn’t seem to care that he wore none. “They
were taken from me.” that in a way that half left her breathless. “First
things first.” She pulled off her sweater and handed it to him. “Here. Cover
yourself, and then you can come inside. I’ll find you some clothes. My family
was here a while back. They left some things. You can dress and use my
phone. I’m Harmony, Harmony Faithfull. Who are you?” “My
name...” pastor’s flower bed. “De–er, Damon...of Brokenoggin,” he
announced with the strangest mix of pain and pleasure. Well, she thought, the name was no less
strange than any of the others in this town. “Come on. I’ll get you fixed up.”
Bubba trailed Damon to the door at the
back of the chapel where Harmony’s living quarters were. The growling had
stopped, but Harmony knew the dog would protect her if need be, although
Harmony trusted her instincts, which told her Damon held no menace—raw,
smoldering male sexuality, yes. But no menace. Inside she found him some work clothes of
her big brother’s. When Damon retuned to the kitchen after changing into them,
she saw she’d guessed right on the size. He sat at her little table, smoothing
large hands over the lace cloth. It was as if everything were new to him,
everything a wonder. Even her, she realized with an tiny twist of her heart
when his gold-brown eyes found hers for a moment before focusing on the glass
of water she about spilled in his lap. Sometimes, their eye contact seemed to
knock him off balance as much as it did her. She took a seat as he drank with thirsty
gulps. “You feeling better?” she asked after a bit. “Aye.” He winked, pressing the back of
his hand to his mouth to dab at the droplets of water left behind in a truly
medieval way. “Tended by a beautiful wench.” She lifted a brow. “Wench. Is that a
Scottish term for a strong, capable, intelligent woman?” He laughed, rich and deep. “Aye.” She balanced her chin on her hand. “I
don’t know what to make of you, Mr. Damon of Brokenoggin.” “Make of me whatever you like, fair maiden.”
“Fair maiden. I like that a lot better.”
His gaze went soft again. “It fits ye
better, too.” She swallowed against the feelings his
gentle, sexy tone fired up inside her. “Do you have family you need to call?”
she asked quickly. “To let them know you’re okay?” He shook his head. “Nay. I have no one.” “You’re not married?” She immediately
bit her lip. His mouth curved. “Nay. Never thought of
it. But then my...former job didn’t allow for it.” His eyes took on a faraway
look. When he returned his attention to her face, it was with such bold
intensity, such raw consideration, that this time she did blush. “Perhaps,
now, that has changed,” he murmured. Harmony got up too quickly, sloshing
water out of the pitcher. She grabbed a dish towel and started mopping at the
puddle. Damon grabbed her wrist. Heat and fear spun up her arm to her
heart, nearly stopping it. She stared at his big hand and then his face. “I’m
a third-degree black belt,” she said softly. “And my dog will rip your throat
out if you try anything stupid.” He let go instantly. “I did not mean to
frighten you.” And she believed him. Gut instinct was
her best friend and it hadn’t failed her yet. “Listen,” she said, sitting back
down. “I’m the local pastor here. I’d like to help you in any way I can. But do
you think you can be honest with me? How did you really end up in my flower
garden, um, butt naked?” He leaned forward, folding his thick
fingers on the table. “The real story?” Rolling her eyes, she felt her mouth
quirk. “No, I want you to lie to me.” “I was the ten-thousand-year-old High
Demon-Lord of Self-Doubt And Second Thoughts until I was expelled from Hell by
Lucifer Himself after he caught me committing random acts of kindness. Then
last night, after several hundred years of torture, I was made mortal and
banished to live out my days here, in Brokenoggin, the site of my original
‘crime’ of beneficence.” Harmony stared at him, and Damon stared
back. Gosh, he looked dead serious, too. “I was just kidding about the lying.”
“Aye, I know.” He drummed his fingers
nervously, glanced out the window as if seeking inspiration, before returning
his gaze to her. “I will tell you this way: I worked for a corrupt boss. I,
too, was corrupt until I learned what it was to be good. I learned that I liked
being good over being bad. My boss, he punished me for it, for changing, and
then he let me go. And so now I am here, with no job, and no clothes.” Thank you, Lord. Ask and ye shall
receive. Harmony smiled as inspiration hit.
“Listen, I could use a groundskeeper.” She opened her hands so he could see
the calluses and paint stains. “In fact, just this morning I was praying for
some help with the heavier work around here. The barn needs fixing—I’d like to
make it into a social hall, eventually, maybe a school, or even a gym—and I
thought if I had some help, it’d leave me more time for recruiting more
parishioners. In fact, any parishioners.” “No one comes?” She shook her head. “If I could figure
out a way to lure them here, I would. If I could have something here that they
couldn’t find anywhere else... In fact, just this morning I asked God to help
me figure it out. To give me a sign. And he sends me you: a naked Demon—I
mean, Damon.” All of a sudden she began to laugh, laughing so hard that she
had to throw her face into her hands. “Oh, my,” she gasped. Sniffling, she
dabbed at her eyes with her sleeve. “Is this what they call Divine Intervention?”
His sparkling eyes seemed at once
impossibly ancient and that of a newborn baby. “Aye, more than you know, fair
maiden.” “If I’m the fair maiden then you can be
my knight in shining armor. But I can’t afford to pay much.” She sobered. “I
can’t really afford to pay you at all.” This was crazy. She pushed back from
the table. “I’ll give you a ride back to town.” “I don’t require money. I’ll work
for...sustenance.” She shivered at the look in his sexy
eyes, the way he drew out that last word. “Food,” he clarified. “And a place to lay
my bones at night.” Bones...bones...she tried to keep her
mind out of the gutter. “Okay, you’ve got yourself a deal.” Why was she
whispering? She shook her head and thrust her hand at him. He took it, and she
got the most curious feeling that he wanted to lift it to his soft lips. But
he shook it and let her go, and she closed her fist under the table so she
could secretly hold onto the feel of him. *** Damon started work that afternoon. The
weather was hot and he so easily worked up a sweat. He tossed his shirt on the
grass and continued bare-chested. By the end of the week, word had gotten
around about the new groundskeeper down at the new church. “Devastating,” Maria confided to the
ladies over coffee one morning. “He’s built better than any man in this town.
You have to come see.” And so they did. That first Sunday the
pews were filled with eager women. The next Sunday the men began trickling in
to see where the women were going. With every passing week more townsfolk
came, until after a few weeks Harmony had to ask Damon to build her some more
pews. At dusk he came to her kitchen where
she’d promised him a special meal. As he sat, showered and dressed in clean
clothes, she stood next to him and lit some candles. His hand slid around her
waist. She held her breath and met his eyes. They’d never touched, never
kissed. It wasn’t for the lack of wanting to, either. But, suddenly, she
wondered what in the world she was waiting for. And so she bent down and kissed him. He didn’t let her escape when she was
done. Pulling her onto his lap, he pressed his mouth between her breasts and
held her tight, as if she somehow anchored him here on Earth. Which made her
heart ache when she remembered how lost he seemed when he’d first arrived. When he lifted his chin to see her, his
eyes were dark, very dark. “You have the devil in your eyes
tonight, Damon of Brokenoggin,” she murmured, imitating his accent. “Aye, and
you’ve got a bit of the devil in ye, too, I see.” She traced the curve of his
mouth. “But I have the feeling that I’m about to find a little piece of heaven
in your arms.” Chuckling deeply and with confidence, Damon drew her close for
the longest and best kiss of her life, proving just how right-on she was. *** Belting out her words in a rush of sweet
inspiration, Harmony Faithful delivered her sermon to a full house. At the
front of the chapel, the door half-open, Damon stood listening, his arms folded
over the end of a pitchfork as he leaned against the outside wall. He wasn’t
yet ready to come inside the chapel during a service, but one day soon, he
would. And, just as Harmony hadn’t yet come to Damon’s bed, she knew that
someday soon, she would. Then all would be right with the Fair Maiden and her
Dark Knight—or as right as life ever could be in the bizarre little town of
Brokenoggin. No sooner than Harmony conjured the
thought than a tremendous screeching filled the tiny chapel, chased by an
unseasonably cold breeze. The wind whooshed between the pews, tossing off hats
and whipping hair, until it found her, whirling around her like her own
personal tornado, scattering the pages of her sermon. One hand fisted in the
fabric of her cotton skirt to keep it from flying up, she tried to snatch back
her papers from the whirlwind, but it only blew harder, whipping her hair
around her face. It was almost as if something—or someone—was tormenting her on
purpose. Now, this sort of thing happened all the time in Brokenoggin, only,
never on the grounds of the church. What had changed? What had made her fair
game? As Harmony fought to hold down her skirt
against the force of the wind that didn’t seem to be affecting anyone else, she
stumbled away from the lectern, exchanging a glance with Janice, the sheriff,
that somehow made her feel better and worse at the same time. Janice’s
expression was something between annoyed and a little tired as she focused
somewhere outside the front door. Harmony followed the woman’s gaze. Outside,
shadows arced and swooped, but there was no sign of Damon. Her heart dropped. Harmony joined the crowd exiting the
church. Outside, shadows arced and swooped. Harmony squinted in disbelief.
They were...flying...monkeys. Yes, just like the winged assistants from the
movie The Wizard of Oz! “Damon!” At the sound of fear in Harmony’s voice,
Damon paused in his battle with the sub-demons, which were still pouring out of
a crack in the earth he’d so carefully tilled the week before. Harmony’s
autumn vegetable seedlings were tossed aside like so much dust as creatures
exploded from the ground. That angered him even more. She was running toward him as the
sub-demons tugged on her hair, her skirt, but her concern seemed to be only for
him. Heading toward her, he lifted his pitchfork and began whacking the
creatures, solid little thuds, leaving as many as he could writhing on the
ground. The Sub-demons were dark monsters with little power, but enough of
them could kill a man. Could kill a mortal. An unfair fight that, he thought.
But who said Lucifer was fair. Damon had thought his sentence of being mortal
would have been enough, but it was obvious his former boss wasn’t through
torturing him yet. He wanted to take from Damon the only woman he’d ever cared
for. “Damon!” “Stay back, Harmony!” He spun, taking
out several of the more brazen of the sub-demons with a sweep of the pitchfork.
The creatures lay dazed on the ground. The townspeople ran every which way,
complicating his efforts, some screaming, others laughing. He’d seen a lot of
scenes during his long years working for the Devil, but none as chaotic as this
one taking place on the front lawn of Brokenoggin Community Chapel. Smacking left and right, he fought his
way to Harmony. Just as he reached her, one landed on his shoulder like a
parrot. It hunkered down, snuggling against his neck, and with a sinewy hand,
caressed his cheek. He grabbed it by the scruff of its neck and threw it aside.
Harmony’s eyes glowed with disbelief. “Do you know them?” “Nay.” Nay? Was he slipping back
into the lies that so characterized his past life. “Aye,” he amended, taking
another swipe with the pitchfork before another could land on him. “What is it? No or yes?” Harmony ducked
as a monkey swooped over her head. “Damon, what are you not telling me?” “They’re...acquaintances of mine,” he
explained rather weakly. Harmony gaped at him. “Acquaintances...” “Well, perhaps co-workers is the better
term.” He smacked another with his pitchfork. “Former co-workers.” One look at Harmony’s expression told him
that he had a lot of explaining to do. She knew nothing of his being a former
High Demon Lord, nothing of what he was. He’d wanted her only to know what he
had the potential to become, but alas, that was not to be. His mouth twisted
furiously. Thanks to Lucifer. There was more shrieking, but a human
sound this time. Well, semi-human. The Disdaine triplets were on the loose,
one of them aiming a weapon of some sort. “The riot gun,” Damon heard Janice
shout. “How did they get hold of the riot gun?” The triplets squealed with laughter as
they took shots at the sub-demons. A bullet clanged off his pitchfork. He dove
with Harmony to the ground, along with almost everyone else. “Hit the deck,” Harmony shouted at the
same time Janice yelled, “Cease fire!” The creatures squeaked, and suddenly
began pouring back toward their hell-hole. Damon’s mouth quirked. The
sub-demons had encountered something worse than the creatures of hell: they’d
met the Disdaine triplets. Damon fancied that he’d like a family of his own
someday. But five minutes with the triplets was enough to convince any man to
drop all thoughts of procreation. “Damon,” Harmony said in a hiss of a
whisper. He turned his head to find her lips an inch away from his. His body
was wrapped around hers as they lay sprawled on the ground, the same body that
now reacted rather briskly to that pleasant discovery. He was beginning to
quite enjoy the sensations of his very mortal self. There were advantages to
being mortal that he’d never realized. But Harmony didn’t look pleased at all.
Ah, yes. The sub-demons. “I can
explain,” he said. Her lips pursed. “Uh huh.” The last of the sub-demons disappeared
down the hell hole. Then, as everyone began to rise to their feet, thinking it
was safe, the Disdaine triplets fired off one last shot as they fled their
parents. Seth, who had come with Janice, flew backward, clutching his chest. The sheriff ran to his side, her face
revealing her feelings for the man Damon knew was a vampire, even if Harmony
did not. Janice tore open Seth’s shirt. “His
stake—it’s been knocked loose!” The next thing Damon knew, the town vet
was rushing to her side. Physicians, real physicians, were as scarce around
these parts as pastors. Harmony ran to Janice. “Is he...?” “No.” Janice swallowed. “He’s not dead.”
She touched her fingers to the man’s broad chest. Not as broad as his chest,
Damon thought, but broad nonetheless. “The stake was shot out,” Janice said,
almost gasping. “Normally, it would have killed him. But the rubber bullet
plugged up the hole.” She frowned. “What were those things?” “I don’t know,” Harmony muttered. “But
Damon does.” Damon tried charming the sheriff with one
of his smiles, but her gaze sharpened. “Is there something you want to tell
me?” Before Damon could reply, a clattering
noise filled the air. “AnnMarie’s skeletons!” one of the
townsmen shouted. “It’s true!” a woman Damon recognized as
AnnMarie stated. “It’s them. And they’re angry. Run.” The chaos started
all over again. AnnMarie bolted off toward the church with everyone in her
trail. Damon and the vet carried Seth to safety. “AnnMarie has skeletons in her closet?”
Harmony asked. Alice Fairweather glanced at her. “You
didn’t know that?” Janice interrupted. “Those...things must
have woken them.” Even the Disdaine triplets fled the storm
of approaching skeletons. Either that or they were out of ammo. They got the door closed just in time.
Damon could hear several skeletons trying the door, which he, the vet, and the
local warlock kept shouldered closed. From outside, an enraged howl rose up
like a North Sea wind, cold and bitter. A skeleton clattered against a window,
but it was too fragile to shatter the glass. Furious that it could not get to
them, it howled and spread its bony hand on the glass. It was missing a finger
bone, and looked angrier than everyone else. Something told him it was the
ringleader of the skeleton crew. Then, with a sound so horrible that it
reminded Damon of what he’d left behind in hell, the fingerless skeleton flew
off. Janice, kneeling by an unconscious Seth, shouted, “No! Someone, try to
stop it! It’s going to destroy....” Episode 1.13 Due to unforeseen Technical Difficulties (superstition and
the fact that the skeletons from AnnMarie’s closet ate it) there is no episode
13. Episode 1.14 A DRAGON’S TALE or There’s No Such Thing as
A Dragon By
Mary Jo Putney Episode 1.14 A Dragon’s Tale By Mary Jo Putney She winged through the air with steely
determination, more intent on her mission than the moon-touched forest below. Where
was that blasted town? Ah, that was it ahead, the lights a bright splash in
the northern forest even at this late hour. She swooped down when something odd
caught her eye. How interesting, a vampire apparently rising from the dead.
Quite the handsome stud, if one liked humans. Or former humans. She swooped
down on him like a strafing fighter plane, startling him into falling over
backwards. Pleased, she resumed her journey, serene in the knowledge that
there was nothing abroad in the night more fearsome than she. All houses looked much the same from the
night sky, but she found her destination easily, using senses other than sight.
She landed and entered through the back door, opening the lock with her magic,
before settling in to wait the hours until morning. She yawned, glad there was
time for a nap. It wasn’t as if her teeth and claws needed sharpening. After a night of restless dreams, Claudia
gave up trying to rest and swung herself out of bed. Earl, blast him, still
slept the sleep of innocent, which he most surely wasn’t. She sighed as she studied his taut,
golden-skinned body. How had they come to such a pass? They’d loved each other
when they married, she was sure of it. She’d been crazy for Earl, with his
half-Chinese elegance and tantalizing air of mystery. He was her dream man,
both exciting and reliable. Reliable had meant a lot to her after a
childhood traveling with a succession of tacky carnivals where her mother
played Madame Zaza, Authentic Gypsy Seer. Her mother actually was a good seer,
though she used witch wisdom and black hair dye instead of anything remotely
gypsy. Claudia had left the carney life as soon
as she was old enough to go to college. There she studied botany to become a
thoroughly modern witch who understood herbs and potions in a scientific way.
She’d learned to grow herbs of greater potency, and understanding how species
related to each other had allowed her to create new mixtures far beyond
anything made with traditional witchcraft. Her internet potion business had
made her one of the best known witches in the world. She’d met Earl when she went to him for
tax help. He swept her off her feet, literally—the first time they’d made love
had been on top of scattered Schedule Cs. He adored her blond, All-American
girl looks as much as she’d loved his Eurasian exoticism. When he brought her to Brokenoggin Falls
and proposed, she’d accepted in a New York minute. She delighted in the town’s
wild energy and its crazy, charming residents who would accept anyone. Here she
could have children and raise them with a normal, stable life. Well, sort of
normal. So they married and moved to Brokenoggin
and everything went to hell. How could she ever have believed that life with an
accountant would be exciting? The word passionate was not in Earl’s
vocabulary. It had been her initiative that laid them out among the tax forms.
He always treated her like a spun glass angel that had to be handled with care.
At first she liked that, but the pedestal soon palled. No wonder she never
became pregnant. It took passion to create new life. She slid out of the bed, thinking that if
she had a couple of kids to chase around, she’d be so exhausted that she
wouldn’t mind his disinterest in sex. Instead, she was bored and hot and
horny. Earl was bored with her, too, or they
wouldn’t both have started having crazy flirtations. So far nothing
irrevocable had happened, at least on her part. She didn’t think Earl had
cheated on her, either. Yet. But it was just a matter of time. Maybe she
should file for divorce now, before she lost the last remnants of self-control
and turned into the town slut. That hunky young landscaper was looking awfully
good….. Resisting an idiotic impulse to caress
Earl’s bare shoulder, Claudia headed to the bathroom. After a quick shower, she
released her long blond hair from its braid and brushed it loose so that it
cascaded over the shoulders of her green robe. It was witch hair—unnaturally
lush and shiny—and Earl loved it. She suspected that was why he married her. Maybe she should whack it off and give
him her shining locks as part of the divorce settlement? He could own the
golden tresses he loved, and she’d be free. With her Hair Blaze potion, she
could grow a new crop quick enough. Maybe she’d go to California and turn into
a surfer girl. No, at thirty she was too old for that sort of thing…. Yawning, she ambled down the stairs to
the kitchen to get the coffee started before she dressed. She adored her
kitchen. As soon as she had laid eyes on the warm wood and cool tile, she told
Earl this was the house. The kitchen stretched along the back of the structure,
looking into the green depths of the Michigan woods. Witches drew their
strength from nature, so the kitchen was Claudia’s own private cathedral. She
had dreamed of teaching her daughters to bake bread and distill potions…. Cutting off the thought, she stepped into
her kitchen—and screamed. Sprawled across the Spanish tile
countertop was a…a creature of glittering silver scales and slithering,
inhuman motion. A dragon. “Earl!” “Oh, for heavens’ sake, child,” the
dragon hissed. “Don’t carry on so. I’m your mother-in-law.” *** Earl jerked awake when he heard the
scream, his blood curdling. Claudia! Before his brain had processed the
scream, his body was halfway down the stairs clad only in his sleeping shorts.
In this crazy town, anything might turn up at any moment. Though Claudia was
an excellent witch, humans were so fragile. He skidded to a stop in the door of the
kitchen, horrified. His beautiful Claudia was flattened against the wall,
cowering from a menacing beast with smoldering breath and malicious eyes. He
stared at the dragon with dismay. “Mother, you promised.” The dragon snorted, flame bouncing off
the tiled counter. “Yes, and for seven years I’ve abided by my word and
pretended to be human. Seven years, and you have yet to fulfill your part of
the bargain and give me a grandchild.” Her exhalation of disgust scorched a
hickory cabinet opposite her. “If you can’t get this useless human female
pregnant, it’s time you left her and found yourself a dragon bride. A proper
scaly maiden who will value the family jewels and give me grandchildren.” “There’s no such thing as a dragon,”
Claudia said, her voice shaking. “I’m hallucinating from the locoweed I used
in yesterday’s brewing. That happened once before and I hallucinated harpies
and animated garden gnomes.” “Uh…that wasn’t really a hallucination,”
Earl pointed out. “Brokenoggin does have harpies and live garden
gnomes.” “Not a hundred of them dancing like the
Radio City Musical Hall Rockettes,” Claudia snapped. “After I’ve had my coffee,
this horrible creature will vanish back into the mists.” “You fool of a girl!” The dragon launched
herself across the kitchen, clumsy because she couldn’t unfurl her wings
properly. “I’m Mei Ling Choo, and I was at your wedding! I never liked you or
the marriage, but I didn’t think you were so stupid!” Reflexively Claudia cast a magical
damping spell. A burst of green light engulfed the dragon. When it cleared, a
petite Chinese woman in neat traditional tunic and trousers sprawled on the
Mediterranean floor tiles. “Mama Mei!” Claudia gasped. “It really is
you!” Earl reached his mother before Claudia
did and offered a hand up. “Are you all right, Mother?” With a disdainful sniff, Mei Ling brushed
wrinkles from her tunic. “It takes more than a tumble to damage a dragon,
boy. Your betrayal of your true nature hurts worse than anything that witch
you married can do.” Many women might call their
daughters-in-law witches, Earl reflected, but seldom with such accuracy. He
punched the button on the electric kettle, then guided his mother to the
kitchen table. “I’ll make you a nice cup of tea. Then we can discuss this
like civilized people.” Claudia stared at him. “You’re not
denying any of this, Earl. But you’re…you’re not a dragon.” Her voice trailed
off. “Are you?” “I’m only half a dragon, I think.” He
scowled at his mother. “Mother can’t remember who my father was, but she’s
pretty sure he wasn’t a dragon.” “None of your business who your father
was,” Mei said with no logic but total conviction. “Since you’re both being so
uncooperative, I’ll have that cup of tea and be on my way.” The electrical kettle began to steam,
then clicked off. Claudia filled a cup with boiling water to warm it. “What
kind of tea, Mama Mei?” “Earl Grey. Hot.” Mei smiled, showing
small, sharp teeth. “My favorite. I named my son for the tea—Earl Grey Choo.”
Claudia dumped the warming water, added a
teabag, and filled the cup. “I didn’t think you hated me,” she said in a low
voice. “I’ve always liked you.” “She doesn’t hate you,” Earl assured his
wife. “It’s just that being in dragon form tends to…bring out one’s aggressive
tendencies.” “Which is why you never shape change—you
prefer being a wimpy human,” his mother said waspishly. “Are you still capable
of taking dragon form? If not, you are no son of mine.” She removed her tea bag and drank the
scalding contents of the cup in one long gulp. Then she rose to her feet, an
unsettling wisp of steam accompanying her words. “Enough. Earl, I order you
to resume your dragon form, if you can. Then you must leave this woman and
find a proper bride and get her pregnant. I have Spoken. Good-bye.” She
vanished in a shimmer of magic, leaving silence thick enough to choke an
elephant. Leave Claudia? The mere thought paralyzed
him. Sure, they’d been going through a bad patch lately, but they’d find their
way back to each other. They had to. Longingly he watched Claudia’s luscious
figure as she made a pot of coffee with meticulous precision. He liked
precision. That’s why he’d become a CPA, and it was one of the reasons he fell
in love with Claudia. A witch needed to be as precise as an accountant. Claudia poured herself a cup of coffee as
soon as enough had dripped into the pot. After slugging back half the cup, she
crossed the kitchen to inspect the cabinet Earl’s mother had flamed. Her expression turned grim.
“The scorch marks are still there.” She ran her fingertips over the blackened
wood, then turned to her husband and said dangerously, “Earl, you have a lot of
explaining to do.” *** As Mei vanished from her son’s house, she
transformed into her dragon shape, glad to stretch her wings properly. The
seeds she had sowed would take time to bear fruit, which meant she had a few
hours to kill. Maybe she should visit the young wyvern Earl had told her
about. The beast sounded as if it needed a good spanking and a lesson in
manners. Mei was well qualified to dispense both. And she wouldn’t mind
getting a look at the chalcedony the little dragon was guarding…. *** Claudia studied her husband’s nearly
naked body: the smooth, strong muscles, the shining black hair, the entrancing
tilt of his dark eyes. She’d always sensed he contained mysteries, but how
could she have missed the magic that swirled about him? “Have you been masking
your dragon nature the whole time we’ve been together?” He glanced away, unable to meet her
gaze. “As soon as I saw you, I wanted you. I…I was pretty sure you wouldn’t
want a half-breed Chinese dragon who doesn’t even know who his own father is.” “Well, it’s not as if I know who my
father is. My mother got around.” Her calm exploded into anger. “But I hate
the fact that for all these years, I’ve been married to a stranger. Was I just
another jewel for your dragon horde? A blonde for your collection?” “No!” Earl exclaimed. Then he paused, an
incurably honest accountant. “At least, that was only part of it. I can’t deny
my nature, and you are a rare and precious beauty worthy of any dragon’s
collection. But it was you I fell in love with. Your warmth, your kindness to a
geeky accountant, your earth magic strength. I…I tried to become what you
wanted. Reliable.” So he’d sensed her need for stability
from the first, and shaped his image to that. She didn’t know whether to be
touched or furious. Yes, she’d wanted reliable, but she’d also wanted exciting.
“You could have been reliable and still told me you were dragon born. Did you
think I was some kind of bigot?” “No!” He bit his lip. She hadn’t really
appreciated how sharp and white his teeth were. “Maybe it’s best if I
demonstrate my true nature. If I still can.” He closed his eyes, concentrating hard.
A shimmer of magic began to gather around him, blurring his outlines. He was
shape shifting, she realized. Or trying to. Snarls and curses sounded from
inside the fog of magic, and the dimly seen shape of his body began to change.
A—forepaw?—shot out, and then Earl’s body switched orientation from vertical to
horizontal. “Dammit!” he snarled. Claudia retreated across the kitchen,
fascinated and appalled. Shape changing was obviously not a gentle process.
More swearing, this time in a distorted voice and words that sounded like
Chinese. The shape began to enlarge rapidly, and
then suddenly the magic dissipated to reveal a magnificent dragon. He was
perhaps the size of a large horse and his opalescent scales were colored every
shade of indigo and teal, dark at the spine and lightening to silver on his
underbelly. His eyes were pure gold and magnificent wings lay furled along his
back. “Earl?” she whispered. “Is that really you?” “Indeed it is,” he rumbled in a deep,
sexy baritone that made her think of Darth Vader. “Do you see now why I hid
myself?” “But you’re beautiful!” Reminding herself
that this was Earl, who would never hurt her, she approached and laid a
cautious hand on his shining flank. He quivered under her touch. She couldn’t
help noticing that dragons were—well hung. “A pity I can’t turn into a female
dragon.” He gave a long, scorching sigh. Her
kitchen cabinets were not having a good day. “The fact that you can’t is the
main reason I’ve concealed my identity. I…I fear that if I let my inner dragon
loose, I might incinerate you when we’re making love. That could happen even
when I’m in human form. So I’ve locked down my dragon nature.” “The bottom line is that you’re afraid of
burning me alive?” she said, startled. “That’s no problem now that I’ve
perfected my fire protection potion.” He blinked at her. Who knew that dragons
had sexy long eyelashes? “You’ve created a fire protection potion? I didn’t
know that!” She sighed. “We haven’t talked much
lately.” He looked down bashfully. “Every day I go
to your website to see if you’ve posted any news about your work or new
products. It’s been a way of keeping in touch, sort of. But I didn’t know
about this potion.” “I haven’t posted anything about it
because I haven’t figured out how to produce it in commercial quantities,” she
explained. “But I have enough for personal use. I gave some to everyone who
comes in contact with the wyvern. The silly beast can’t be trusted not to fry
people, but the potion has prevented injuries.” Earl’s opalescent eyes widened. “When
you work out a method of large-scale production, you’ll be rich!” “Hush your mouth, Earl,” she said,
annoyed. “I plan to sell it at cost to fire departments. Firefighters deserve
all the help they can get.” His eyes glowed even brighter. “That’s
one of the things I love about you. Your idealism is so…so undragon-like.” Briefly she wondered if her lack of
interest in getting rich was part of why Mother Mei didn’t like her. Luckily,
Earl had enough human in him to appreciate something besides hording jewels—he
did pro-bono tax returns for most of the old folks in town. So her husband was a dragon, a creature
of fire and passion…. The knowledge sent waves of heat through her. She
stroked her hand slowly along his sinuous spine. “I have some of the fire
protection potion here in the kitchen. Should I drink some?” “Oh, please,” he breathed. “By
the time you’ve taken it, I’ll be back to human shape.” Lips parted and heartbeat accelerating,
she murmured the spell to unlock her potion cabinet, which was always sealed to
prevent anyone from breaking in. It wouldn’t do to let the town teenagers get
at her frog potion…. Ah, there it was. She took the bottle,
unscrewed the cap, and swigged down a large dose. She could feel the cool
power as it slid down her throat, then filled every cell of her body with
protective light. Yessss…. It would be at least six hours before the
effect started to fade—and she knew exactly how she wanted to spend those
hours. More cursing and swearing from across the
kitchen, then a thump. She turned to see Earl back in human form, sprawled on
the floor. His shorts had gotten lost along the way and….her eyes widened.
“Sweetie, is your shape shifting ability something that applies to your human
body? Because part of you certainly looks…enhanced!” “This is what happens when I let my
dragon nature loose when I’m in human form.” His voice retained some of those
sexy Darth Vader vibrations. “That isn’t all that changes.” Lithely he rose
from the floor and stalked across the kitchen, and she could see the fire in
his eyes. A step away he hesitated, sounding like
the old Earl. “You’re sure that potion works?” “Guaranteed.” Since he was being
cautious, she pounced. His mouth and body were dearly familiar, but at the
same time new and exciting. Hot. She bit his ear, then gasped as he
ripped her robe away to reveal her naked body. From then on, they mated like dragons,
flame rolling through them, raising passion to unimaginable heights. Sex and
fire and dragon blood. And dragon endurance and shape shifting magic that made
everything fit just right. By the time Claudia regained her senses,
the sunshine had shifted from early morning to full day, and then some. She
lay gasping, her head pillowed on Earl’s shoulder while she luxuriated in the
sweet/sharp pain of love bites in numerous places. “A good thing I insisted on
tile for the floor, or we might have burned the house down,” she murmured. “Oh,
Earl, why didn’t we do this years ago?” “You hadn’t developed the potion,” he
said practically. His sated eyes began to glow golden again. “But now that you
have…” he nipped her shoulder. “Dragons are very possessive, my jewel. No
more flirtations with anyone!” She smiled with lazy mischief. “You
think witches aren’t possessive? If you so much as look at another female,
you’ll lose a few cherished body parts.” She rolled onto him, secure in the
knowledge that neither of them would ever look at another person again. “Now
about that dragon endurance….” *** Having sorted out the wyvern and acquired
some really fine pieces of chalcedony, Mei flew back over her son’s house and
scanned it with her dragon senses. Ah, so the silly children had worked things
out. Claudia might not know it yet, but she was pregnant with twins, a boy and
a girl. And dragon nature was a dominant. Cross breeding with a really good
witch wouldn’t hurt the blood line. If anything, it would strengthen it.
Hybrid vigor. Luckily, Chinese dragon magic and Western witch magic were so
different that mixing caused no problems. She smiled toothily. The two of them
certainly had plenty
of vigor. Satisfied, she banked and swung west toward her San Francisco home.
Her work here was done. Now it was time to get to work on Earl’s
sister, who’d also been fool enough to marry a mere human…. Episode 1.15 LOF-T: ROGG 1 (Lord of the Forest Trolls: Return of
the Garden Gnome episode 1) By Linda Wisdom Episode 1.15 LOF-T: ROGG 1: Trolls Gone Wild By Linda Wisdom All those beautiful tall leafy trees were
better than any house for protection. The lush green canopy overhead filtered
out the sunlight while the rich earthy smell of moss caressed my nostrils and
the feel of grass beneath his gnarled toes was bliss. The rustling sound of
insects serenading the night was better than any music concert. It was all so
dark and inviting. No wonder his kind considered it heaven. Sam knew he was smiling. He didn’t just
love running through his world. He also loved dreaming about it. His legs twitched with the anticipation
of waking up and running through the forest. How he loved sunny days when he
could scramble up trees and scare birds even without going out into the
sunlight. Cats had nothing on him for scaring birds. Or eating them. Such a
tasty treat for the non-discriminating troll. Then he would jump out of the
bushes and scream at the faeries before running through puddles. Rain? Inside his dream his smile
slipped. He didn’t smell rain in the air. So why was he getting wet? His nose worked. What was that
disgusting smell? Wait a minute. That wasn’t rain coming
down on him. He opened his eyes to find a little tan dog’s leg way too close
to his nose. That creature was daring to piss on his head! Trolls might not have many powers, but
they could zap creatures that taunted them. He blinked, concentrating harder
than usual it seemed. Surprised he watched the little beast continue its
disrespectful business. He knew just where to send that current. So why
wasn’t the dog now a pile of ash? Where in the Goddess’ name was his power? Sam looked up at the sky where he’d been
told She resided. “Just tell me what I did!” he screamed.
(Even at the best of times, trolls are excitable. This wasn’t the best of
times.) Silence. “Okay, whatever I did, I didn’t mean it. I had too much
ale. I was caught up in the moment. It was just one of those things.” That was his story and he was sticking to
it. He didn’t know what he’d done, but he didn’t see where it was anything
unusual for one of his kind. Trolls weren’t sweet little angels. They just
weren’t. He rolled his tongue around inside his mouth and spat out something
dark brown. His mouth felt like he’d tasted something disgusting. He swore it
tasted like that gross stuff the witches of Brokenoggin thought was so great.
He had no idea why they thought chocolate was ambrosia when there were so many
tasty mushrooms, along with that oh-so-tasty moss to munch on. Or even a good
chewy slug. He had to figure out where he was and
exactly what had happened to him. This wasn’t like a hangover from too much
Goran ale. But all he could see was domestic blue lawn grass that wasn’t very
well tended, and flowers that weren’t all that special. He noticed a nearby puddle of water and
used that to see why he felt so different. Whatever he expected it wasn’t
this. Shock sent him rearing back. He was a…a…Garden Gnome, banished to
suburbia! If it were possible, he’d have fainted
from the shock. He wondered who hated him so much they’d turn him into a
gnome. Trying to pick and choose among his enemies, he knew, could turn into a
very long list. He tended to make more enemies than friends. Not to mention he could see something
bright and glittery hanging off his head. Wait a minute, this didn’t feel like
his head! If felt…pointed! He didn’t have a pointed head. Or what
looked like disgusting pink paint on him. All right, so now he basically
looked like a gnome dork. He decided he should thank the Goddess the thong was
on his head and not riding up his ass. That would have been the ultimate
humiliation. I must have royally pissed someone off to
end up like this. Time to do some hard thinking so I can get off this ugly
lawn. No self-respecting troll should be forced to be near this sorry excuse
for a lawn when there’s a perfectly good forest nearby. Sam the troll turned garden gnome turned
his head to watch a police cruiser roll slowly down the street. He might be a
creature of the forest, but he recognized the driver of the vehicle. “Lookin’ hot, babe!” he called out,
flashing what he thought was a sexy grin, but which actually looked downright
scary to the uninitiated. Namely, anyone who didn’t understand a troll’s
expressions. The Caprice pulled over to the curb and
stopped. Brokenoggin’s main, and only, police officer, Janice Thinksalot,
climbed out of the patrol car and walked over to him with an animal-like grace
he had to admire. The admiration evaporated when he realized she wasn’t going
to even show the decency to crouch down to his level, thereby forcing him to
tip his head all the way back until he had to scramble for balance. She might
be one hot mama, if you liked their kind, but she was also a cold and
rude bitch who didn’t respect the lofty trolls. “What the hell are you doing here?” she
asked. She wrinkled her nose in distaste as a nasty smell emitted from the
troll-turned-gnome. She stepped back but it didn’t make the odor any less
offensive. “You smell like Chihuahua piss.” “That’s because one of those tiny
monsters pissed on me. As for how I got here. Beats me.” He kicked up his
heels. “But you gotta say I add some class to this ugly place.” He waved his
hand in the vicinity of the house. He didn’t like seeing his once gorgeous mud
colored skin now painted a pastel pink to resemble human skin. Janice’s eyes swung downward then back
up. Her lip curled echoing the disgust on her face. “That is so sick.” He looked down at the protuberance poking
out of his bright blue shorts. Even his expression of pride couldn’t make him
look even remotely harmless. He tried to stuff his erection back in his
shorts, but it refused to remain hidden. He had an idea it wouldn’t be going
down anytime soon. He did a hop and a skip across the lawn then spun around. ““I can’t help it if I happen to show
what I think of a lovely woman.” He defended his body’s reactions with the
same kind of haughty attitude he’d seen the faeries use. “Claire doesn’t mind
when I’m showing my affection.” “Then Claire has more issues than I knew
about. Of course she also has the sad task of being married to you.” Janice
took a deep breath. “Do us both a favor and get out of here before one of the
triplets comes out here and gets rid of you in a very painful way,” she told
him. “You know how much they hate trolls.” He lifted his white-bearded chin.
Something else he wasn’t happy with. He usually had no more than four hairs
sprouting from his pointed chin. “I can’t go anywhere.” “Wanna bet?” Janice grabbed his arm and
practically pulled him off his feet as she made her way across the lawn. He yelped a protest at her
trollhandling. “Police abuse!” he shouted at the top of his lungs. “We’re
talking cruel and introll punishment here! Next thing I know she’ll try to
strip search me even if my clothes are painted on me.” He waggled his
eyebrows. “Not that I wouldn’t mind you checking out all my orifices.” “Shut up you sick and disgusting thing!”
she ordered between gritted teeth as she dragged him across the lawn with his
dug in heels leaving furrows in the grass. It appeared turning him to a garden
gnome added a few, or thirty, pounds to his roly-poly frame. Except when
Janice’s feet touched the sidewalk a strong force pulled her back to the lawn.
She frowned and tried once more but was pulled back again once the troll’s toes
touched the lawn/sidewalk boundary. She rounded on him with a fury that
rivaled his harpy wife. Frankly, he was impressed. Not to mention more than a
little turned on. “Dammit, Sam! Stop whatever you’re doing! You need to get out
of here!” “I told you!” he shouted. To prove his
point, he ran toward Janice as if he had the intention of mowing her down. In
the back of his mind, he hoped he could make a run for his beloved forest where
he might have a chance of finding someone who could break the spell. His toes
barely breached the edge of the lawn when a spark of light snapped at him and
he was abruptly thrown backwards. His arms windmilled as he desperately fought
for balance. He lost the battle and ended up on his butt. He promptly bounced
to his feet. “Talk about lousy taste in grass,” he muttered. He didn’t care
that bits of grass and dirt clung to his shorts since they remind him of
home—sort of. But then, considering there was a turquoise-glittery thong
hanging off his head, nothing could embarrass him. “There’s no cushioning to
this grass at all. They need to hire a new gardener. Don’t they know a lush
lawn makes a dwelling look more homey? It’s not like they don’t have the money
to maintain a nice yard. It would be nice if they planted something that had
actual green in it.” Janice shook her head. “Who do you think
you are? The new member of Extreme Home Makeover? I just want to know
why you’re here.” Sam snarled. “If I knew how I got here
I’d have a better chance of getting outta here, wouldn’t I? All I know is, I
woke up when one of those little skanky Wa Was pissed me,” he said. “It has
not been a good day.” The sound of the front door opening and
high-pitched shrieks assaulting Janice’s ultra-sensitive ears had the officer
stepping back and Sam frantically looking around for a place to hide. The Disdaine triplets were bitch witches
and they hadn’t even hit puberty yet. They looked alike, acted alike and
created mayhem in tandem. While they were dressed in their mother’s choice of
cute pastel-colored sundresses, their faces looked as if they’d gotten into
their mother’s make-up complete with Witchy Woman lip colour smeared red across
pouty mouths, Vamp Tramp purple eyeshadow and Demon Glow blush covering rounded
cheeks. “That’s nasty!” Scornful Disdaine shouted
running up to Sam with a finger outstretched as if a flame would erupt from the
tip at any moment. Her yellow ruffled sundress and matching tennis shoes made
her look like a little angel. Unless one looked closer and saw the little
devil lurking in her eyes. “That smells nasty!” Derisive
Disdaine screamed, holding her nose with thumb and forefinger. She glared at
Janice. She stamped her sky-blue tennis shoe shod foot. “You’re the police and
you have to do what we say. Get rid of it!” “Manners. Manners are good,” Janice
growled at her as a reminder she was no mere human. “We don’t like gnomes. They’re nasty,”
Withering Disdaine announced with a haughty toss of butterscotch curls.
“Especially ugly ones like him.” She tried to grab at the thong that danced on
his head but a breeze lifted the ends and tossed them in the other direction.
She frowned as Sam grinned at her before running off to turn a cartwheel. The
thong magickally remained on his head. “Why is his thingie poking out like
that?” “Oh come on, Sam, that is so sick!”
Janice yelled. “And it’s not my fault!” He jumped up
and down in a typical troll-tantrum-when-imprisoned-in-a-gnome-body. “Not my
fault, not my fault, not my fault!” The sisters clasped hands and circled the
troll-turned-gnome. “Nasty troll, nasty gnome, make us happy and go home!”
they chanted. “Nasty troll, nasty gnome, make us happy and go home!” “Yeah, like that’s gonna happen,” Janice
muttered. She raised her voice. “You girls want him to leave? Why not drag
him out into the street where I can drive over him?” Three pair of eyes lit up with malevolent
glee. “Hey!” Sam’s protests were drowned out by
the girls’ screams of delight as one took one arm, one took the other and the
third pushed from the rear. Sam cursed them every tiny step of the way. His
words turned into maniacal laughter when they reached the sidewalk and all four
were catapulted backwards. “My dress!” Scornful screamed, brushing
dirt off her backside. “That hurt!” Withering wailed with
ear-splitting sound. “Bad gnome!” Derisive bounced to her feet
and ran over to Sam who was awkwardly scrambling to his feet. “You need to be
punished!” “Like I haven’t been punished already by
being imprisoned on this ugly lawn.” He turned to Janice. “Get me out of
here.” “Tell me who sent you here and I’ll
appeal to them to take off the curse.” Janice kept a wary eye on the triplets.
They weren’t known for their ladylike behavior. “I don’t know who sent me here!” he
shrieked, turning his pink skin a bright red. “I don’t know, I don’t know, I
don’t know!” He jumped up and down so hard he left holes in the grass. Janice threw up her hands. “You’re on
your own.” She turned around and walked back to her cruiser. “No!” Sam ran down the yard but had the
smarts to stop short of the edge. “You can’t leave me with them!” “Watch me.” Janice’s words floated back
to him amid the triplet’s ear-splitting shrieks of malicious joy as they danced
around him. Sam spent the day learning just what the
phrase “hell on earth” meant. By the time the sun went down and the
triplets were called inside the house, he was ready to beg the devil himself to
take him away. Nighttime wasn’t much better. He spent
an hour on his tiptoes looking in one of the Disdaine windows watching the
family consume dinner. He didn’t think much of the menu and all it did was
make him hungry. He discovered the hard way that gnomes didn’t have stomachs
to process food even if he could have found a toadstool somewhere. He stamped
his foot in frustration but it didn’t have the scary impression an angry troll
could make. No wonder people made fun of garden
gnomes. They were the clowns of the magickal world. Gnomes also couldn’t sleep. Sam listened
to the triplets protest bedtime and their whispered chants that were downright
scary. “Little birches,” he muttered, settling
for making a bed among the flowers ringing a tree set in the center of the
yard. What he wouldn’t give for a nice large hollow tree trunk. He stiffened
as a lean black animal appeared at the end of the street and moved gracefully
down the sidewalk. It was too large to be a dog and its eyes gleamed with a
fierce hunger not seen among the canine set, and Sam was suddenly grateful he
was stone and not skin and bone. He might have ended up a late night snack. The werewolf loped over to him and
sniffed him from the top of the thong to his toes. The way the were kept
returning to the thong made Sam wonder just who or what had worn it before it
ended up as a colorful accessory. “Do you happen to know how I got here?”
he asked, but only received a growl for his trouble. “Fine, see if I tell you
how to get in the house where you can find three tasty treats. ARGH!”
If he thought Chihuahua piss was bad, he soon learned that werewolf piss was
even worse. As for were-shit…well, that was downright indescribable. By morning, Sam was convinced he’d endured
more than any law-evading troll-turned-gnome should endure. The only good thing
that happened to him was the sprinklers going off at six a.m. and washing him
clean. Promptly at eight, the triplets were back
outside ready to make his life hell again. Sam wailed like he’d never wailed before,
but no one bothered to come to his rescue. Not when it was more fun to stand
on the sidewalk and watch a show that was more entertaining than anything found
on cable. Emma Mincemeat showed up with her book Witchcraft for Dummies,
but none of the reversing spells she uttered did the trick. He feared he was
doomed to spend eternity as a lawn ornament tormented by the Disdaine
triplets. As his last bid for self-defense Sam
began singing his favorite song. A troll-turned-gnome singing the Lumberjack
Song from Monty Python was a sight—and sound—no witch could forget. Especially
since singing wasn’t one of his few gifts. As he pranced around singing at the
top of his lungs, the thong now hung around his neck like an obscene necklace.
The tapping on the sidewalk was a sound
he was afraid he would never hear again. The vision approaching him looked
like something out of a dream. Petite, barely five-foot-one-inches, with
cornflower blue eyes, hair the color of spun gold hanging down her back in
spiral curls and Faery pink glossed pouty lips looked ready for a kiss. Her
dainty shell-pink dress matched equally dainty high-heeled open-toed sandals
that displayed pink painted toes Sam vividly recalled sucking on more than
once. Her large eyes widened in shock as she stood in front of him. He could
smell the scent of spring on her skin. His penis wasted no time in popping out
in search of a familiar place. “Euuwww, his thingie is looking at me!”
Scornful screamed. “Oh Sammykins!” The Vision wrung her
hands in front of her. “I didn’t mean for this to happen.” Sammykins didn’t need a real brain to
figure out what she meant. “Claire, you did this to me?” He didn’t
have to pretend feeling hurt. His beautiful Claire was behind his punishment? Her lower lip trembled. “You were mean
to me,” she said in her little girl whispery voice. “You made me cry.” “We were having an argument! No one says
anything nice during a fight! And I didn’t say anything mean to you until you
called me a gross mushroom eating trog,” he reminded her. He stood up as tall
as he could. “I am not a trog.” A teardrop hovered on the curve of her
cheek before slowly making its way downward. “And I am not…” she sniffed,
unable to continue in front of what looked like fifty witches, a few interested
weres, a naked vampyre—to name only a few of the Brokenoggin residents lining
the sidewalk. The smell of popcorn filled the air as they settled down to
watch the show. Sam wiggled his fingers. If Claire was
behind his change, then it was only fair she share his humiliation. “Not a…?” he prompted. “This isn’t nice, Sammykins,” she
whispered. “I don’t want to say it.” “Not a-a-a-a…?” he drew out the last word.
Her tiny chin trembled. “You said I was
flat.” Men’s gazes immediately zeroed in on her
double-D breasts. “Man, that is one Wonder Bra,” John
loudly announced. Claire glared at him. “I am not flat!”
Her whispery voice suddenly rose in pitch. “I am not flat!” “Whereas I have perfect pitch,”
Sam announced to one and all with a dramatic sweep of the arm—except the
gesture lost its sense of drama since his arm was merely a tiny pink painted
extension with even tinier fingers. He began singing his favorite ditty, the
Lumberjack Song from Monty Python complete with his favorite gestures. What he
didn’t realize was that while he thought his singing voice was magnificent, it
sounded more like a wood chipper in serious need of a grease job. “I hate that song!” Claire
screeched loud enough to crack more than a few windows. “HATE IT! HATE
IT!” She reared back and looked down at the grinning and singing Sam with
bulging eyes. She was no longer the pretty and dainty little darling she was
two seconds ago. Her porcelain skin shimmered into a
brownish color and her body suddenly elongated, bones popping as her arms
lengthened to papery wings. Her perfect doll features receded with her mouth
turning into an ugly V and razor sharp teeth glistened white in the
afternoon sun. She flapped her wings until she hovered a foot above the grass,
her stick-like legs kicking thin air. As Sam kept singing, she lifted her head
and screamed a shrill sound that might have shattered more than a few eardrums
if it wasn’t for most of the residents being protected by magick, and the fact
that those who weren’t knew who to go to, to have new ones conjured up. The screeching harpy flew higher, her
large wings flapping heavily. With one last scream that shattered windows in a
five-mile area, she flew off. “Flat!” Sam shouted after her, his tiny
arms waving. “Your scream is flat!” “Good going, dog hydrant,” Janice said
from the sidelines. “After the way you just humiliated her, she’s not going to
allow the curse to be lifted anytime soon now.” Sam froze. As the police officer’s words
sunk in, he realized the mistake he’d just made was the biggest he’d ever made
in his life. “I’m sorry, sweetheart!” he shouted after
the diminishing figure in the air. “I didn’t mean it! You have a beautiful
voice. And I’ll only sing in the shower!” When she didn’t turn back, he
shrugged. “She’ll be back. You’ll see.” He settled down in the grass. “She
never holds a grudge. It’s not in her.” A little after midnight when the black
were stopped by to piss on him, Sam knew there wasn’t a chance in his lifetime
that Claire would be back to take the curse away. He wrinkled his nose at the
pungent smell on his clothes. He sat down to wait for the sprinklers to come
on. “Good thing I never said what I think of
her mother.” Episode 1.16 PIECES OF DESTINY By Michelle Rowen Episode 1.16 Pieces of Destiny By Michelle Rowen “Only a matter of time,” Destiny Hopewell
said into her tiny, pink cellphone. “And I’m finally getting the hell out of
this town. For good.” “Yeah,
yeah,” her friend said. “You’ve been saying that for eighteen years.” “You
won’t be hearing it much longer. I’ve got a date with Tad tonight.” “Tad,
the hotty college guy you’ve been emailing for, like, forever?” “That’s
the Tad.” “Hey
Des, that’s great. Just don’t get your hopes up, okay?” Destiny
stopped walking. The warm, summer evening air felt like it was closing in on
her. “What did you just say?” she snapped. There
was a pause. “Uh…” “Look,
Pru, I don’t care if you want to stay in this town of freaks for the rest of
your life. don’t. I want to go somewhere normal where I don’t bump into naked
vampires or where garden gnomes don’t try to look up my skirt as I pass them.
Don’t even get me started on those trailer trash witches who have it in for
me. I can’t take it anymore. There’s a whole world out there that I want to
see, and when I get out of here, I’m not looking back.” “What about your
parents?” Destiny
rolled her eyes. “When did you become the voice of reason? My parents are a
huge part of why I want out of here. Look, I have to get home and get changed,
okay?” “That’s
cool. I have to get ready myself.” “Why?
What are you doing tonight?” “I’m
babysitting the Disdaine triplets.” “You’re
kidding.” “They’re
paying me amazing money, too. You babysat for them before, didn’t you?” Destiny
reached down and tenderly rubbed her knee as she thought back to her
babysitting stint with the Disdaine triplets. They hadn’t been happy with their
assigned bedtime and hidden her kneecap for a few hours. She’d dragged herself
around the garden looking for it while the brats stayed up watching TV and
eating candy. When she finally found the kneecap she had to fight with a
talking squirrel over it for a half an hour. Talking squirrels were hard to
reason with. Ever since, she’d been walking with a bit
of a limp, more pronounced when wearing fashionable footwear. Should she warn Pru? Not that it would
be a surprise for anyone living in town that the triplets were evil incarnate.
But still... Nah. Let her figure it out for herself. “I’m sure it will go fine,” she said.
“Nothing to worry about. Anyhow, I’ll tell you all about my wonderful date
tomorrow.” There was a long sigh on the other end of
the line. “Have fun, okay?” Destiny hung up. Oh, she was going to
have fun, all right. Nothing was going to go wrong tonight. It wasn’t every
day an outsider came into town who wasn’t a total freakazoid. Like that naked
vampire guy. What was his name? Seth…Stephen… something like that. Granted,
he was a major hotty. But way weird. He’d fit in just fine in Brokenoggin
Falls. But Destiny didn’t. Never had. And she never
wanted to. She pulled her notepad out of her purse,
and flipped forward to her to-do list. FRIDAY – D-DAY 1.
1.
Shift at Brokenoggin Burger — 2:30 – 7:30 pm 2.
2.
Date with Tad – 8:00 pm 3.
3.
Make Tad fall madly in love with me — 8:15 pm 4.
4.
Have Tad propose marriage — 10:00ish pm ** Note to self: Remember to
scrape windshield of Toyota to remove remnants of Tad Anderson was the answer to all her
problems. He’d take her out tonight and she’d make him fall madly and
passionately in love with her. He’d see her plight, her pain, her naturally
large breasts, and want to rescue her. They’d drive off into the sunset
together in his Porsche—in her mind he drove a red Porsche—and bye-bye
Brokenoggin. Forever. The thought made her very happy. But
nothing could go wrong tonight. Nothing. She had precisely, she looked at her
watch, less than a half hour to get gorgeous, and wash the french fry smell off
herself from working a six hour shift. No time to waste. As soon as Tad took her away from town,
she’s never work for minimum wage again. She was going to be a model. Or
maybe an actress. She had the looks, after all. Just another thing this lame
ass town had kept her from achieving. She picked up her pace, but at the end of
the block two familiar figures stepped into her path. She stopped. Great, just
what she needed. The two trailer trash witches she’d been talking about a
minute ago. Sabrina and Tabitha Wartly. Tabitha had been in her computer
class at Brokenoggin High and had made her life practically unbearable. She sure was one ugly bee-yotch. “Well, looky here,” Tabitha sneered at
her. “Destiny Hopeless, walking home from the greasepit.” “I’m not walking home from your face,”
Destiny said. “And that’s the only greasepit I can see.” “Ha ha, that’s so funny I forgot to
laugh.” Sabrina didn’t say anything, but even in
the near darkness Destiny could see her eyes were red and puffy from crying.
They finally matched the rest of her face. Destiny tucked her notebook back in her
bag and crossed her arms. “What do you want? I’m in kind of a hurry here.” Tabitha glared at her. “Like the hurry
you were in to steal my sister’s boyfriend?” Destiny stared at her blankly for a moment
trying to figure out if she’d just gone insane. Sabrina’s boyfriend was a
troll. Literally. She started to laugh. “Yeah, I so stole your boyfriend,” she
said. “Not.” “He told me he’s in love with you,”
Sabrina sputtered. “I saw the love letter he wrote you.” She stomped her
foot. “You stole him from me!” “Look, loser-girl. I didn’t steal your
boyfriend. If he has a fixation with me because I’m the only girl he’s met who
isn’t covered in ugly warts, it’s not my fault.” Her bottom lip wobbled. “My mom calls
them beauty warts.” “Riiight. Look, I’m going home now. I
have an important date with a normal guy. Do you know what normal means?
No, I didn’t think so.” She started walking but could hear the
girls whispering behind her back. Then one of them laughed. Destiny turned
around to look. They were holding hands and had their eyes closed while they
chanted something through their giggles. Oh shit. Maybe I shouldn’t have said
anything about the warts,
Destiny thought. It was obviously
a sensitive issue. “What are you doing?” she demanded. “Important date, huh?” Tabitha grinned.
Her two good teeth glinted in the moonlight. “Wouldn’t want it to come apart at
the seams, would you?” Destiny stared at her. “What are you
talking about?” Sabrina snickered. “Just try to keep it
together…Destiny. Geez, don’t fall apart on us, okay? Wouldn’t want anything
bad to happen to you since you’ve always been so nice to us.” Destiny felt tense. The girls had done
something—some spell. That much was obvious. But she didn’t feel any
different. Shit. She’d been stupid to tease the two of them. Apart it was
okay. Together they were…well, evil. But before she could ask
them what they’d done to her, the sisters waved at her and laughed. Then they
turned around and ran away. *** Tad arrived right on time, and Destiny
raced down the stairs at the sound of the doorbell. Didn’t want her father
answering the door. Or her mother for that matter. If she could help it, he
wouldn’t meet her folks at all. Ever. She took a deep breath and opened the
door. Tad stood there looking as hot if not
hotter than the photo he’d emailed her. Six feet tall, blonde hair, high
cheekbones, full lips. He even had a damn dimple in his chin. She could have
sworn she heard a chorus of angels singing, but noticed that the next door
neighbors were having a karaoke party. Two furry people she didn’t recognize
were outside howling at the moon in the key of G. She grabbed Tad’s sleeve to pull him
inside so he wouldn’t witness the weirdness. She worried he was going to be
disappointed in her since the picture she’d sent him was from a distance. A
prom photo. It was a good picture of her, but she’d tried to cut out her prom
date, a wizard by the name of Willard who’d brought her an enchanted corsage.
They’d had to leave the dance early after the corsage ate a good chunk of the
front part of her dress. “Wow,” Destiny said. “You look amazing.”
“Thanks.” Tad smiled—a bright, handsome,
completely normal in every way smile. “You know, it’s weird. I could have
sworn I saw a naked guy with a piece of wood sticking out of his chest on the
other side of town.” “Really? That’s weird.” Change of subject, she
told herself. Pronto. “Ready to go?” She grabbed her jacket and made for the
door just as she heard a very familiar voice behind her. “Not quite yet, young
lady. Don’t I get to meet the young man?” Destiny tensed. “Dad, I thought you
were in your workshop. I didn’t want to disturb you.” Her father came towards
the door. Destiny tried to block the view but it was too late. Tad had already gotten an
eyeful. Well, a mini eyeful, anyhow. Destiny’s
father stood barely four feet tall. He wasn’t officially a “little person,”
though, since he was perfectly proportioned to his height. His nose came to a
curving point as did his ears, and he wore green and red striped stockings
underneath a red sweater and green shorts. His shoes were handmade, and
jingled as he walked. Destiny’s
father was an elf. A Christmas elf, that is. Twenty years ago he’d escaped
from the North Pole. “Damn slave labor it was,” he always told her. “That
Claus is a tyrant!” He’d heard about a small town called Brokenoggin Falls that
welcomed unusual people, and packed up his best candy canes and toy-making
tools, and then stole a reindeer for his getaway. He
hadn’t been in Brokenoggin for much more than a year when he ran over a dog
with his car (an Austin Mini, of course), a big, black, shaggy dog that he took
to the vet and then helped nurse back to health. But it turned out it wasn’t a
dog at all. It was a wolf. A
werewolf. She wasn’t even sure she
understood most of the time. “Look here,” her father said with a great smile on
his diminutive face. “I’ve made a gift for your friend.” Tad stepped forward to accept
the small, carved wooden sailboat. “Da-ad,” Destiny whined. “Don’t
embarrass me.” “Embarrass you?” he exclaimed. “I wouldn’t dream of it.” Yeah,
right. “Okay, we’re like, leaving.” Destiny grabbed Tad’s very firm and
nicely muscular arm and tried to steer him outside. “This is amazing,”
Tad said to her father as he inspected the boat. “Where did you learn to do this?” Destiny’s father gave a little
bow. “Thank you, my boy. I was well taught from the time I was a child by none other than—” “Leaving,”
Destiny cut him off before he said too much. “Now?” “Give your poppa a kiss
first.” Kill me, Destiny thought. Just kill me now and put me out of
my misery. But she forced a smile, leaned way, way over,
and air-kissed her father’s cheek. *** Perfect date. It
was going to be perfect. Stamped it, no erasies. Turned out Tad didn’t drive a
Porsche after all. It was a Mercedes. Destiny decided she could live with that. He
hadn’t seemed mortified by meeting her odd father. Thank God her mother was
out that night at a laser hair removal
seminar. And her brother? She’d thought she’d seen him earlier out of the
corner of her eye. But it had just been her imagination.
Luckily, too. He was extremely overprotective of his sister and was guaranteed
to hate Tad on sight. They
sat in his car in the parking lot of Brokenoggin Burger. The thought of eating
the greasy food made Destiny’s stomach turn over, but she forced back the
cheeseburger and fries with a smile. She glanced at the clock on the dashboard.
Eight-thirty. According to her schedule Tad should have fallen madly in love with
her fifteen minutes ago. She wasn’t positive, but she didn’t think it had
happened yet. It
was okay. Fifteen minutes off schedule was nothing to worry about. her head to the side so she could fish
out whatever it was. Hard, small, white… A tooth. Holy shit, she’d just lost
a damn tooth on a Brokenoggin fry. But it wasn’t that hard. The tooth had
just…slid out…all by itself. She eyed Tad. He wasn’t paying attention while he
fiddled with the car radio to find some “mood music.” She
took the tooth and tried to slide it back into place. She expected to feel
pain, but there was nothing. There. All fixed. He finally found a decent station, and
leaned back in his seat clearly proud of himself. The music cut through the
uncomfortable silence in the car. Destiny had been trying to think of
something incredibly witty and intelligent to say. But since Destiny was
neither witty nor terribly intelligent, she was coming up blank. “You’re so beautiful,” Tad finally said. A dribble of ketchup landed on Destiny’s
shirt and she grabbed for a napkin. “Oh? Um...thanks.” “You know, I was hoping to meet a girl
like you.” “Really?” “Everybody thinks I’m weird, see? Because
I’m sort of mature for my age. My friends, my folks, they all tell me that I
should just have fun. But I really want to do is settle down with a nice girl.
Get married. Have a couple of kids. Like, right away. I don’t want to wait
until I’m too old to care about those things anymore.” She nodded sagely. This was perfect.
Everything was going according to her plan. He reached over and tucked a strand of
her freshly highlighted auburn hair behind her ear. “I just figure, when you
know what you want, you just gotta go for it.” “I totally and absolutely agree.” “You’re special, Destiny. I knew that
from the first moment you uploaded your picture.” How romantic was that? Destiny sighed
with happiness. He leaned towards her and she closed her
eyes, waiting for the kiss. Hoping that she didn’t have anything stuck between
her teeth. She waited. And waited some more. Then she opened her eyes. Tad was chewing on a french fry. “The guy
at the drive through was kind of weird, huh?” She cleared her throat and tried to
compose herself. “Yeah, that’s Cy. I guess he is a little strange, isn’t he?” “Something was up with his eye. What was
that? Kind of freaky if you ask me.” Cy was a cyclops. So there was nothing
wrong with his eye other than the fact that he only had one of them right in
the middle of his forehead. Nice guy, though. Always let her leave early.
Plus, for a guy with only one eye, he had a very nice body. It was a trade-off.
She didn’t think it was all that nice for
Tad to pick on him and was about to say something, but her nose started to
itch. She absently rubbed at it and after a moment it came clean off her face
and fell into
her lap. Horrified, she immediately ducked under the dash to try to reattach
it. “Destiny?” Tad asked. “You okay down
there?” “Yeah, fine. I just dropped something.” “Should I turn on the light?” “No! No lights!” Destiny gently turned the nose in the
right direction and pressed it to her face. She touched it, waiting to feel
blood, waiting to feel pain, but there was nothing. She took her hand away and
the nose stayed exactly where it was supposed to be. She was just about to start freaking out
over what the hell was happening to her when she remembered something the
Wartly sisters had said earlier. “Just try to keep it together…Destiny.
Geez, don’t fall apart on us, okay? Wouldn’t want anything bad to happen to
you since you’ve always been so nice to us.” A spell. That’s what this was. A spell meant to
ruin her date by those ugly bitches. Really funny. Not. She’d show them. Nothing they could do
would stop her from making Tad fall completely in love with her. After the
night was over…then, and only then, would she think about her revenge. Just because she didn’t have any magical
powers didn’t mean she didn’t have ways of paying them back big-time. “Let’s go somewhere else,” Tad suggested.
“Out of town?” she suggested hopefully. “Nah, there’s got to be somewhere,” he
lowered his voice and grinned at her, “private where we can get to know
each other better?” Since the entire town of Brokenoggin was
surrounded by a thick thatch of evergreens, there were plenty of private places
Destiny could think of. She directed him to a little nook where she’d made out
a couple of months ago with Johnny Franklin. At least until the full moon came
out and he bolted from the car and into the woods. Wonder what ever happened to him after
that? she thought. Were-chipmunks
were so unpredictable. “Damn it!” Tad swerved the car, snapping
her out of the memory. “Almost hit that stupid dog. Where do all these little
dogs come from anyhow?” She just shrugged. “This
town is messed up,” Tad said. “How can you live here without turning into a
freak, yourself?” It was on the tip of her tongue to tell him it wasn’t that
bad. And that it was okay for her to say those things about Brokenoggin, but not
for him—a total stranger to the town. But she bit her tongue. Which then fell
out of her mouth. “Shit!” she yelled, but since her tongue was gone it sounded
more like, “Shhhd!” She undid her seatbelt and scrambled to the floor to look
for the elusive appendage. She thought it had bounced over on
the driver’s side of the car so she crawled in that direction and grabbed onto
Tad’s knee for support. “Oh yeah, baby,” Tad said. “That’s what I’m talking
about. But can you at least wait until I pull over?” There it was, under the brake
pedal. She grabbed the tongue but it slipped away from her. “Shhhhddd!” She
finally got her hand on it and shoved it back in her mouth. It was covered
with dirt that tasted disgusting, but it reattached
itself right away. Then she tried to get back into her seat, but Tad now had
her hand pressed firmly against his lap. Just like a guy, she thought.
Didn’t matter if they were human or not. Only one thing on their mind. If Destiny had been in a laughing
mood any more she’d think it was funny. “Let me up,” she said. “Now you want
up.” He looked down at her. “But you just got down there.” She pushed herself
up with one hand and tried to wrench the other away from him. It popped clean off of her body and Tad was left
holding her entire arm without the rest of her attached to it. Great, just
great. He looked at her, as she calmly put her seatbelt back on, and then at
the warm limb now laying in his lap. His eyes widened. “Don’t freak
out,” she told him. “I can explain.” He started to scream. Then he swerved off
the road and slammed into a tree. So much for the perfect date, Destiny
thought as she dragged herself out of the car. “Tad, you okay?” she asked. Tad
was still screaming. She saw her arm shoot out the window as if Tad had thrown it
as far away from himself as he could manage. She frowned. Talk about rude. She walked over to it and picked it up
gingerly. Then pressed it back into place. She helped Tad out of the ruined
Mercedes. His wallet fell out of his now ripped leather jacket. “Don’t touch me.” He shuffled away from
her. “Okay, okay. Look, just relax.” “Just relax? “Yeah, it’s just a spell. I’m not
normally like this.” “What do you mean, it was a spell?” She sighed. “Look, Brokenoggin is a
little different, okay? That’s why I want to get the hell out of here as soon
as possible.” “Bunch of freaks.” Tad looked around
nervously. “I’d heard that about this town.” Her frown deepened. “Freaks is a
little harsh, I’d say. Unusual occurrences, sure. Witches, werewolves...maybe
an elf or two.” He nodded. “Freaks.” “Look. They’re not freaks. You don’t even
know them to make that kind of judgment.” Why was she defending Brokenoggin now?
This was not part of the master plan. She just didn’t like somebody else
insulting her hometown. Ironic? Perhaps a tad. “I’d heard it was different here. I just
didn’t realize how different.” He eyed her. “So what are you, anyhow? A
werewolf?” “No way. I’m human. One hundred percent.
That’s why I want to go live somewhere else.” “Good luck with that.” She grabbed his arm and he flinched.
“No, listen to me. I like you. You’re great. You’re perfect, in fact. That’s
why I wanted to go out with you. I figured you and me...maybe we could do
something together.” “I was thinking the same thing.” She took in a deep breath and let it out
slowly. She could salvage this. It wasn’t too late. She smiled at him, and he smiled back.
She leaned over and picked up his wallet. “So were you serious about wanting to get
married right away?” she asked. He nodded. “Very serious.” A photo was peeking out of the top of his
wallet. She pulled it out to take a look at it. It was of a pretty blonde
girl. “Who’s this, your sister?” He laughed, and grabbed the wallet away
from her. “No. That’s my fiancйe.” Destiny blinked. “Your what?” “My fiancйe. Did your ears just fall off,
too?” She reached up to check them just in case
he was right. No, they were exactly where they were supposed to be. “You have a fiancйe?” she repeated in
disbelief. He shrugged. “Kind of helpful to have one
when you’re planning on getting married, right?” He paused, and looked at her
strangely. “Shit, Destiny, your eyeball just fell out. That is messed up.” She leaned over and picked it up,
absently popping it back into its socket. “If you’re going to get married, then why
are we out on a date?” He studied her for a minute, then started
to laugh. “Oh no, you didn’t think...” He pointed at the car then back at
her. “...you thought I was going to ask you to marry me?” Destiny wasn’t laughing. She didn’t think
she’d ever laugh again. “Look,” he continued when he caught his
breath, “this doesn’t have to end this way. We can still have fun tonight. I
know you want to.” She narrowed her eyes. “You know I want
to what?” He grinned. “My girlfriend doesn’t want
to put out until the honeymoon. That’s why I came here.” Destiny waited. “You came here
because...” “Because Brokenoggin girls are easy,” Tad
said. “It’s a well known fact. Now come over here, baby, and I’m going to rock
your world.” She kicked him in the groin. Lost her
entire foot in the process but it was worth it. She hopped back towards the
car to grab her cellphone so she could call her dad to come pick her up. Maybe Brokenoggin wasn’t so bad. If Tad
represented the men she would find outside the town, then maybe she didn’t want
to leave after all. She wondered what Willard the wizard had
been up to since prom. Maybe she should give him a call. “Hey,” Tad yelled from where he was
writhing in pain on the ground. “Is this your dog? Get it the hell away from
me, will you?” There was a chihuahua standing three feet
away from his prone form. It growled viciously at him. “That,” Destiny said, holding a hand over
the speaker of the cellphone while she balanced precariously on one foot, “is my brother ChiChi. And he is sooo
going to kick your ass.” Episode 1.17 SUZI STILETTO: RECOVERING DEMON SLAYER By Alesia Holliday Episode 1.17 Suzi Stiletto: Recovering Demon Slayer By Alesia Holliday “You’re through, Stiletto,” the chief
roared at her. “You broke Union rules five months in a row. You’re out. You’re
done!” The assistant chief, Herman Milquetoast,
smirked at her. He’d wanted her out for ten years. Guess the little prick was
finally going to get his wish. She took a menacing step toward him and had the
satisfaction of watching him flinch back. Then she turned back to the man who’d
been like a father to her since somebody had dropped her off at Slayer Academy
when she was only six, ‘Take care of this freak’ scrawled on a note pinned to
her dress. He couldn’t just throw her out. She had nowhere else to go. “But, Chief,” she held up her hands,
dropped them again. “If I’m not a Slayer, I’m nothing.” For a moment, she though she saw tears
glimmer in his eyes, and she had hope. He looked at her and sighed. “Then you’re
nothing.” Then he walked away, never looking back,
stepping over the bodies of the seven Lawyer Demons she’d slain that night. *** Six months later “We’re totally screwed.” Suzi’s grip on the steering wheel of her
used neon-green VW bug tightened until she was sure she’d leave fingerprints in
the plastic. “I don’t want to hear it. We need to make rent and the car
payment, plus buy you some more of those eucalyptus leaves you insist on
eating,” she said, shooting a glance of sheer disgust at her so-called best
friend in the passenger seat. “I don’t care,” Jimmy whined in that
screechy voice of his. “There are more important things than money. Suzi slammed on the brakes so hard the
car fishtailed, finally shuddering to a stop. The headlights illuminated an
ancient sign creaking off a rusted pole. She peered at the writing, trying to
make it out. “Is that Latin?” Jimmy was struggling to jump back up on
the seat from where he’d fallen on the floor. “I wouldn’t know Latin from Pig
Latin, remember? I was monolingual even before you got me changed.” She sighed and clenched her eyes shut for
a moment, struggling for patience. She lost. “Look, you little insect. I told you five
times to stay home that night. Lawyer Demons are the worst—their powers are
unstable and they always want to closing argument me to death. Thank God
Shakespeare started the Slayer Academy when he did. ‘Let’s kill all the
lawyers.’ Brilliant. And people thought he was a writer.” She snorted.
“Anyway, you’re the one who stowed away in the back of the Jeep.” “Yeah, and saved your fine ass from the
big ugly one,” Jimmy squeaked back at her. “You promised no more insect
cracks, too. Don’t make me tell your mother on you.” Suzi looked at her best friend,
transformed by a random blast of a Death Affidavit Ray into a cricket. The
irony smacked her in the face, as it always did. Her foul-mouthed,
trouble-causing, total instigator of a best friend was now, quite literally,
Jimmy Cricket. “I’m sorry. Look, this traveling
lingerie and sex toys sales job was the best I could do when they kicked me out
of the Union. Overuse of powers, my ass. Anyway, suck it up. The woman who
invited me, what was her name—Hillde Foster or something? She said the town
definitely needs more sexy lingerie, whatever that means.” Suzi glanced up at the road sign again,
then felt her mouth fall open. Hard. “Um, that sign was in Latin not two
minutes ago. I swear it was.” Jimmy, who’d probably been preparing one
of his zingy comebacks to bug her, twitched his little antennae in the
direction of the sign. “Well, it’s not now. Plain as day: Welcome to
Brokenoggin Falls. Brokenoggin—what is that? Ojibwa? Algonquin? Anyway, I
don’t like it. This town was clearly marked in the Slayer Handbook as OFF
LIMITS.” Suzi clenched her jaw,
then threw the Bug into gear. “Well, I’m not a Slayer anymore, am I? We have
nighties and nipple clamps to sell. Let’s get going, already.” *** “It’s just like a Tupperware party, but
no nobody is allowed to practice burping anything—or anybody!” The same line
she’d said a hundred times in the past half-year rolled off her lips as three
grown women rolled off the couch. Literally. They were the something triplets,
and they were a pain in the ass. They’d bickered so much, she’d finally started
pushing the hostess’s champagne at them, hoping they’d get sloshed and shut up.
Now they kept trying to take their clothes off. Hillde had been right, though. There had
to be forty…women…at the party. Except they weren’t all human. Not many were, in fact. Suzi’s Slayer
instincts had kicked so far into overload the minute she’d stepped out of the
car, it was a wonder she hadn’t flashed into a killing frenzy and slain the
potted palm tree in the foyer. Or the weird guy who kept lurking at the
doorway, trying to catch somebody undressed, probably, given the six cameras
dangling from his neck. “Okay, okay, now to the very best part of
our evening—the modeling show! Who will go first? How about you?” She held up
a red corset and panties and smiled at the pastor, stepping a bit closer to the
woman to confirm what she’d smelled earlier. Yep. She smells like demon. She’s not
the demon, but she’s been rubbing naked flesh with one really recently. Must
be some interesting church. “Um, sounds good. I’m…trying to break
away from being ‘white lace girl’,” the woman answered, turning a little pink
and taking the scarlet silk set from me, then backing away. Probably wondering why I’m sniffing at
her, like a freak. I need to chill. But Holy Freaking Gates of Hell, I sense
so many vampires, demons, and witches in this town, I can hardly breathe. As the women swarmed around the couches
where she’d set out her samples, Suzi wandered over to the table where snacks
and drinks were displayed with fresh flowers, pepper sauce, and…hair removal
cream? She leaned down and whispered to Jimmy, who was hiding behind the
cheese ball. “Do you smell it? Demons, demons, everywhere, and not a stake in
sight.” Jimmy’s tiny green body quivered. “No,
no, no. I don’t care if a demon steps right up and smacks you with one of your
own sample dildos. You’re sanctioned. If you slay now, you’re on automatic
death sentence. No kidding around, Suzi. I can’t lose you.” She softened, staring down at what was
left of her friend. “Aw, you say the nicest things.” Jimmy hopped on top of the cheese ball.
“At least until you find a way to change me back. Hey, did you see the tits on
those Tawdry triplets? Butter me up and call me a triple-decker, baby.” Suzi choked on her cracker. “Right.
Sentimental to the last.” Just then, one of the guests touched her
arm. “Excuse me, honey, I have a serious saggy boob issue, after having twelve
kids. Do you have anything even more wondrous than a WonderBra? We’re talking
Miracle Bra, here.” Suzi put her plate down and turned to her
new client. “I happen to have just the thing. It uses titanium underwire.
And I think you’re the miracle, if you don’t mind my saying so, with
twelve kids. How do you do it?” As they threaded their way through forty
half-drunken women—did THAT woman smell like Dragons mating? No way
are there dragons this far north!—all laughing hysterically and in various
stages of undress, Suzi noticed a sheriff lurking in the doorway. She
stiffened and nodded toward the woman. “Is there trouble?” Miracle Mommy glanced over, then shook
her head and laughed. “Nah, that’s just Janice. I don’t think she’s had sex
since way before I got my first stretch mark. She’s probably looking for a
little action, if you know what I mean.” “Well, I’ve got BOBs, no problem,” Suzi
responded absently, looking for that latest shipment of bras that out-of-work
NASA engineers had designed. “Bob? Bob who?” “Battery-Operated Boyfriends. We even
sell batteries, so you can go right home and let ‘em rip. Here we go—are you
about a 44D?” *** Never piss off a Gypsy King. Don’t Rile a Romanian. Life Sucks, Then You Die. He’d had seven thousand years to think up
a damn motto, and this was the best he could come up with? Don’t Rile a
Romanian? Shit, he deserved to be cursed to never know happiness. He was a
freaking loser. Ever since he’d defiled the virgin Antonia (and let’s face it,
if Antonia was a virgin, he’d been an aqueduct), and suffered her father’s
wrath, Lucius had been doomed to absorb the Anguish, Vitriol, and Suffering of
mankind for all time. Which, with jerkoffs like Satan in action, pretty much
sucked. Yeah, he’d picked up some colloquialisms
in the past few years, too. Doomed never to Enjoy. Never to
Appreciate. Never to Love. Never to Laugh. It had to be a helluva curse, too.
‘Cause if there was ever a bunch of screwballs destined to crack him up, it was
the residents of Brokenoggin, located straight up, a hundred and fifty feet of
rock and dirt over the stupid, dank, smelly cave he called home sweet prison.
But he’d been hatching a plot for the
past seventy or eighty years. Just one night. That’s all he wanted. One night
to see the sky again—the sun would sear him with agony without the benefit of
death, agonizing or otherwise—so he’d planned just one night of freedom.
Seeing people again would give him the courage to endure another seven thousand
years of solitude and isolation. Or
maybe he’d squash a few of the suckers, just for fun. create
a resonance in the very rock that binds me—maybe half a hundred. Laughing and
laughing and laughing… He hadn’t heard laughter since the night
of the curse, and that was more of the Mwah Ha Ha variety. Prick Gypsy
King. Laughter—Tonight’s the night, then. Now.
Stretching up from the
hunched position in a corner he’d taken about three hundred years previously,
give or take, Lucius stretched for the rock ceiling. Then he began to smash
through it. *** The rumbling started off low and quiet,
but Suzi’s Slayer senses were so jazzed, she picked up on it first thing. She
was trying to find a Merry Widow that wasn’t just flame-retardant but actually
fireproof for one of the guests, when the first vibrations started. Now the
framed photos on the hearth were rattling around, but the drunken party guests
were too busy shrieking with laughter and dancing around the room with the
dildo assortment to notice. Jimmy did, though. He hopped up on her
leg, and she picked him up and put him on her shoulder. “Hey, Suzi, what the
hell is that? Earthquake? This freaks me out.” It freaked her out, too, but she wasn’t
going to admit it. Not with her damn Slayer gear locked up at Union
headquarters. “What’s the matter, Jimmy? Spidey sense going haywire?” “I’m a cricket, not a spider, you
overgrown freak of nature. And, yeah, something is seriously wrong here—” Before she had a chance to make a
smart-assed comment about insects that said I told you so, the
earthquake rumbled out of control. The guests finally noticed when a giant
painting smashed to the floor. Everybody started shrieking and trying to pull
their clothes back on, except for the sheriff, who was pretty calm—like most
sheriffs, no surprise there—and the triplets, who howled even louder and
ripped their remaining clothes off. Jimmy hopped off her shoulder in the
general direction of the couch. Suzi didn’t have time to worry about any
of them, though, because the floor in front of her started to buckle. She
slammed her arms out and shoved everybody in reach back and away from the huge
hole that was opening in the floor. This was going to be the mother of all
sinkholes. Holy crap! “That’s my new coffeetable!” her hostess
screamed, not seeming to get that the whole house might go at any minute. “Everybody down!” Suzi shouted. “Try to
stand in a doorway or under a table, until the shaking stops!” But the shaking wasn’t stopping. At
least not the shaking in her knees. Because the biggest hulk of a butt-ugly
demon she’d ever seen shoved first his fist, then his head, then his entire
rock and mud-encrusted body up out of the hole in the floor. “We’re screwed,” Jimmy squeaked. “Shut up, Jimmy,” she said, scanning the
room frantically for something—anything—that she could use to beat the foul
fiend. Nothing sharp and stake-y—except the heel of her new Jimmy Choo. Dammit!
“Begone!” she said, Firmly and
Dramatically, like it said on page one of the Slayer Handbook. (She’d never
made it past chapter three: Succubi and the Men Who Love Them). “Get
thou Demon Self back to Hades where thou art more…welcometh!” She grabbed the
first thing to hand, cursing the lack of her Slayer bag. Okay, two vibrators in the shape of a
cross is not quite Union protocol, but who’s gonna report me? The Demon cowered in front of her,
clearly in awe of her fury and righteousness. The sounds it made were truly
hideous: the rending of flesh and the gnashing of teeth, and the…laughter?
Okay, that totally pissed her off. Did
even the freaking demons know about her getting dumped by the Slayers’
Union? She marched closer to the demon, fearless
in her fury. “Departeth, thou Foul Fiend from Hell! Get thee back to the
depths of slimebucketness from whence thee came!” The demon fell over with a resounding
crash onto its side. She’d killed it with only her words! The power of that
last Mucous Demon she’d slain must have stayed with her—it could kill with mere
words, too. (Well, that and copious quantities of green phlegm, which made her
want to hurl just thinking about, but with a name like Mucous Demon, what did
she expect?) The foul fiend gasped its final breaths.
Rattled its final death rattle. Laughed at her again. Shit! This is totally not going my way. Jimmy piped up from where he’d been
hiding on the couch, behind the leather bustier. (He’d had a thing for leather
when he’d been a human, too. Go figure.) “Suzi! You know you’re not allowed to
do any unsanctioned slaying. The Union Decree was very clear.” The demon howled even louder, then it
started to talk. Suzi backed away, wishing for holy water or at least her
crossbow; something to hold firm between herself, the partygoers who crouched
trembling on the floor behind her, and the evil monster. She tried to
understand its words, hoping she would recognize enough of its fiendish
incantation to effect some sort of blocking spell with the remains of the
powers of the Succubus Sorceress she’d slain in January. “Oooniast Inga VayVairs Eeen,” rumbled
the demon. What? Oooniast, oooniast, what was that?
Ancient Atlantaen? One of the Sixty-Six Demon Dialects she hadn’t studied as
well as the others? Not that she was much of a book-learner, in fact. Oh, holy transformation. The demon
started glowing; first the faintest golden glow played over it—skin? Scales?
Ugly rock-like protrusions?—then a nimbus of pearlescent light covered it
from head to–to whatever the heck was attached to its legs. This was not a guy
you’d take home to mother, to loosely quote from a song about another Super
Freak. She backed away even more, holding her
cross of vibrators out in front of her, but suddenly a massive sonic boom of a
blast thundered through the house, and the demon disappeared in a burst of
light, just before everything else in the room disappeared in a burst of black.
*** Suzi woke up to find herself cradled in
the massively-muscled arms of the most astonishingly beautiful man she’d ever
seen. She stared into his pale silver eyes for a long moment, captivated by
their shifting shimmer, before allowing her gaze to drift over his sculpted
cheekbones, classical Roman nose, perfectly kissable lips, and firm jaw. Then
she had to stare at his eyes again, just to check that they really were silver,
and it wasn’t just a delusion caused by her temporary blackout and ensuing
concussion. Nope. Definitely silver. Which went well,
you know, with the wickedly black waves of hair that hung down to his
shoulders. His naked shoulders. Oh, crap. She stole a glance down. His naked shoulders were on top of his
very naked and majorly muscled chest and the naked arms she’d noticed earlier.
She squirmed a little, trying to stand up, and his arms tightened around her.
Oh, holy hard-on, Suzi. Either he was very, very happy to see
her, or she was sitting on the world’s largest roll of quarters. In his very naked lap. “But where the hell is the demon?” Silver eyes smiled fondly down at her.
“You’re the funniest thing I’ve ever seen, little Slayer.” She jerked in surprise. “How did you know
I’m a Slayer? Er, was a Slayer? And let me up,” she said, pushing
ineffectually against his chest. “You…wait! ‘Funniest thing I’ve ever seen?’
Oooniast Inga VayVairs Eeen? You’re the demon?” He smiled again. “Not any more.
Experiencing laughter after seven thousand years broke the damn curse. Now I
am your Eternal Love Slave, little Slayer.” Suzi sighed and watched as Jimmy fainted
dead to the floor, little cricket legs pointed straight up at the ceiling.
“I’m totally screwed.” Episode 1.18 LOF-T: ROGG 2 (Lord of the Forest Trolls: Repentance
of the Garden Gnome episode 2) By Judi McCoy Episode 1.18 LOF-T: ROGG 2 – SAM’S REPENTANCE By Judi McCoy Sam was worried. Ever since he’d last
seen Claire, things had grown fuzzy, murky even, in his mind and his body.
He’d been finding it very difficult to move and, if one pardoned the pun,
harder and harder to get an erection. Stranger still, last night he’d actually
slept for the first time since he’d found himself in this miserable
condition. It was as if the sight of his wife,
coupled with the knowledge that he’d hurt her, had caused some kind of
off-kilter reaction in the spell. Never in a million years, had he thought
she’d turn postal on him and resort to spousal abuse, but there was no doubt in
mind that’s what had happened. Weird thing was, she’d taken his derisive
comment totally out of context. When he’d said she was flat, he’d meant
she was off key when she screamed her incredibly frightening—though he loved to
hear it—harpy’s song. Poor Claire thought he’d meant she was flat in the boobs,
which to her was a huge insult, and she’d cast the retaliating spell. After hearing her side of it, Sam
realized Claire had every right to do what she’d done. He’d been unkind, and
his baby doll wife didn’t deserve his nasty or cutting remarks. Today had been a long day filled with
little motion on his part, and a lot of pain in his stocky limbs. Now that it
was evening, and he felt like the trunk of a dead tree, he was afraid to nod
off for fear he might never wake up in the morning. If that happened, he
wouldn’t be able to talk to Claire and explain that a guy was a guy. He was
sorry he’d caused her grief. He now realized he hurt her whenever he spoke to
other women or let his joystick get out of control. But she had to understand that he was a
horny bastard and proud of it. Women turned him on, but he would never be
unfaithful to his lamby-pie. Ever. If only he had another chance… Thunder rumbled in the distance, pulling
Sam from his thoughts. Great. Just what he didn’t need. Another night of
standing in the drenching rain on the Disdaine triplets fucking front lawn
smack in the middle of town. Since being held prisoner here, he’d been soaked,
spit at, and peed on, not necessarily in that order, at least a dozen times a
day. Him! The man who was once in charge of
the entire forest that surrounded this pitiful community. To think that those
nasty triplets had laughed at him while they told him how they planned to take
over his territory. When he caught those miserable creatures, he was
going to turn them into toadstools. Or gnats. Or maybe three blind mice. Then
he could feed them to a cat. That would certainly fix their dirty little
wagons once and for all. More thunder had him raising his eyes,
the only part of his body he was able to move easily. How could it be flood
weather when he could see stars in the remarkably clear sky? Then again, this
was Brokenoggin Falls, a place where the curious happened on a daily basis.
And the citizens liked it that way. He glanced around the lawn and sighed.
There were a few other gnomes spaced apart on the grass, but Sam felt certain
he was the only one that had a heartbeat. Still, he felt sorry for them,
mainly because the kids in town sometimes used the garden gnomes as
skateboarding cones or goal posts. Sam had yet to see his exact form, but
imagined he appeared very much like the rest of them: short and stocky with
flowing white hair and a beard to match. Not to mention ugly. Only with him, the rhinestone-studded
thong he’d been forced to wear as a crown was now somewhere down around his
neck. And the humiliation continued… Besides being the Disdaine triplets
titillation du jour, people passing by pointed and laughed. Teenagers spit on
him. And the dogs, werewolves, and other assorted townsfolk used him for their
own personal port-o-potty. He’d enjoyed egging them on, until he’d seen Claire
and started experiencing this strange freeze-form existence. It was enough to make a once powerful and
commanding troll cry. The thunder grew to a deafening roar. He
heard screaming, then watched helplessly as a few of the party goers who’d been
living it up in the Disdaine’s garden came running frantically from the back
yard. Then he saw the reason why. With hooves flashing in the darkness,
wild horses thudded from the far end of the estate. And leading the charge
were those miserable spoiled brats, the banes of his existence, the boils on
his ass: the Disdaine triplets. Riding bareback on the lead beasts, the
spawns of Satan were screaming at the top of their nasty little lungs, shouting
with glee as they trampled, ripped apart, and generally destroyed whatever they
plowed over. Sam winced when he saw a few of the
plaster gnomes smashed to smithereens. In an instant, he was knocked flat,
certain he’d be ground to powder. He held his breath, closed his eyes and
waited… *** Sam awoke to morning sunshine and a
headache the size of Lake Michigan. Lying on his side, he couldn’t move a
muscle, and there in front of his nose sat the top of his once pointed head.
He’d been spared the powder crushing, but he’d definitely been flattened. He
was probably the only person in Brokenoggin with a truly broken noggin. He wriggled, trying to make his muscles
work, but nothing happened. He was well and truly stoned. His only hope was
that someone, maybe Janice Drinksalot, the town constable, or Earl Choo, the
mayor, would be along to survey the damage that had certainly spilled into the
town center. Instead, the pack of roaming Chihuahuas that had recently arrived
in the area descended and used him as a pissing post. Footsteps in the distance told him a
savior might be at hand. Rolling his eyes upward, he saw a woman ambling
toward the square, reading a yellow book as if she had no idea of the
destruction. Sam could only see her legs and the top of her head, bent in
concentration as she strode slowly in his direction. When the woman reached the square, she
raised her head and glanced at the trampled lawn. Emma Mincemeat, one of the
few normal—if there was such a thing—residents of Brokenoggin Falls, frowned as
she stopped and sat on the only bench that hadn’t been decimated under the
Disdaine triplets vengeful romp. Sam remembered that Emma, a nice woman
who had migrated here from Brooklyn with her husband and twelve—count ‘em twelve—children,
always wanted to fit in when she was, in actuality, one of the village
misfits. “Hey, Emma, it’s me,” thought Sam, throwing her a silent
plea. Maybe she would stand him up, dust him off, and glue back the top of his
head in order that he regain a shred of his former dignity. She raised the book up and the title
became clear. Emma was reading Witchcraft for Dummies. He imagined it
probably was her latest, and surely her most worthless, attempt to ‘fit in’. Just then, Emma set the tome down and
took a second survey of the lawn. Raising a brow, she ran her gaze over a
gnome broken in four or five pieces. Her eyes darted to another and its
decapitated body. Heaving a sigh, she finally looked at Sam. “Oh, you poor thing,” she said aloud.
Walking over, she stood him on his tiny flat feet. To Sam’s mortification, his erection
sprang to life. Immediately, he reminded the miscreant body part that it was
getting the hots over a mother of twelve, for Goddess’s sake. That was all it
took to make the offending member calm and allow him to enjoy the moment. Emma swiped a tear from her eye.
“Someday, those rotten triplets will get their comeuppance. At least, I hope
so. In the meantime, not one of my children is going to be allowed near them
and their crazy, misguided, and altogether evil ideas. Ladies of the Forest
Trolls, indeed.” She tsked again. And then she did
the unthinkable. She picked him up and carried him to the bench like a baby,
where she cradled him in her arms. Wonder of wonders, though his body was
frozen stiff, the force field that had kept him on the lawn was gone. Sam felt Emma’s heart beat against his
shoulder as she brushed the dirt and grass from his wizened face. “Poor Sam,” she whispered. “Someone
should do something to help you.” She ran a hand over his flat head. “It’s not
so bad, really.” Then, with a twinkle in her eye, Emma sat
him beside her on the bench and again perused her book. Smiling, she picked it
up and began to thumb through the pages. “Bring boils…bring frogs…bring warts…”
she muttered. “Bring hail…bring a hurricane…bring rain…” She turned the
page. “Bring to life,” she said with a grin. Then she gave Sam a forlorn
smile. “Do I dare?” Sam worked to give his eyes an
encouraging expression, but feared the attempt was lost on Emma. Then he
realized the enormity of the situation and changed the look to one of denial.
She wasn’t a witch. She was a no-talent mortal. She was reading a book written
for dummies for Goddess’s sake. No telling what might happen to him if
her spell or incantation failed. He wasn’t ready to be her experiment! Besides, once Sam realized Claire had put
the spell on him, he assumed she’d be the only one who could set him free. But
getting help from Emma? The one Brokenoggin citizen with the least amount of
magical ability…? That was stretching it by a mile. Emma closed the book and stood. Then she
tucked it under her left arm and hoisted Sam under her right. Turning, she
headed in the direction from whence she’d come, mumbling under her breath as
she walked. *** Emma
arrived at the clock tower and knocked as politely as she could with a book
tucked under one arm and a two-foot garden gnome wedged under the other. She
had never made a house call to any of the citizens of
Brokenoggin, but Sam’s predicament was too serious to ignore. Besides, she
was married with twelve children. It wasn’t right for her, a happily married
woman, to allow a rift to continue between a husband and his wife—at least, not
if she could be of some help. She’d
seen the anger and pain in Sam’s eyes and the despair and plea for forgiveness
in Claire’s the day the two had last met, and knew they were both sorry for the
things they’d said. Sam and Claire just didn’t know how to put things back the
way they were—no, better than the way they were—and begin again. “Who’s
there?” came a timid, breathy voice from behind the heavy oak door. with the book faced the tower. “This had
better be important,” said Claire, peering through the narrow opening.
“Because I’m really not up to entertaining visitors.”
“May I come in?” asked Emma, who prided herself on being polite, even under duress.
Claire narrowed her baby blue eyes. “Is this a trick?” Emma crossed mental
fingers. “Not really. But I do have something you need to see.” Shrugging,
Claire stepped back and opened the door. Emma slipped inside and leaned on the
door, slamming it shut. Then she turned fully. With a hand to her mouth,
Claire gasped. “No…please take him back. I can’t bear to see my Sammykins in
that horrid condition.” She held her hands to her lovely face. “What have I
done? Oh, what have I done?” Emma’s
heart swelled with pride. Her suspicions were correct. Claire did love her
husband. Now if only Claire could reverse the spell, all would be well. She
marched through the hall with Claire wailing from behind. When she reached the
kitchen, she set her book on the table, then did the same with Sam. Claire’s
eyes grew round as dinner plates. “His head! What happened to Sam’s head?”
Walking around the table, she eyed him from the top of his flat crown to his
gnarly toes. “Why does he look like as if he’s made of plaster? And how did
you manage to remove him from the Disdaine’s front lawn?” “I
don’t know why he’s stiff as a board, but I suspect it has something to do with
being able to bring him through that force field. I can tell you this. Last
evening, the triplets rode the night mares and wreaked havoc through the entire
town. I suspect Sam got caught in the upheaval and had his head trampled.
You’re lucky he wasn’t smashed to pieces or decapitated.” “What
have I done?” cried Claire, pulling Sam to her chest. When she held him to her
ample bosom, his erection sprang to life. Giggling through her tears, she
stepped back and threw him a sappy look. “Oh, Sam, you naughty troll, will you
ever change?” “Surely
whatever you’ve done can be undone,” said Emma, pleased to see that Claire was
showing her husband a little sympathy. “Something tells me he’s had time to
think about all this and he’ll have that nasty projectile under better control,
once we free him from the spell.” Claire’s
beautiful face grew red. Her eyes leaked tears as she shook her head. “I
can’t.” that I wished he would
suffer. He was always poking fun at the garden gnomes, so I imagined one of
them in my head and the next thing I knew—” she snuffled a watery sob “—he
looked like this.” Emma sat down with a plop and opened her book to the page
she’d turned down. It was time to find out whether or not she’d gotten her
money’s worth. “I found a spell…” she began. “You did? Truly?” Claire rushed
to read over Emma’s shoulder. “I’m not a witch and neither are you. Perhaps we
should call on Claudia or Gerda—” “Don’t be stupid. The last time they got
together at Maria’s to cast a spell they blew up her kitchen. This is merely an
incantation, no ingredients or dynamite. I say we try it ourselves.” Claire
worried her lower lip. She’d missed her Sammykins these past few months,
missed him so terribly she couldn’t even come to the triplets’ house to look at
him. The one time she had, they’d argued in front of strangers, which had
humiliated her further. She wanted her husband back, but only if he promised
to behave. “I
have conditions,” she stated. problem.” “So look him in the eye. Last
time I checked, that’s where I saw a spark of life.” Folding her arms, Claire
gave her husband a thorough examination, and couldn’t help thinking how much he
resembled a piece of garden statuary. His face was set in a scowl and his arms
stuck out rigidly at his sides. The only part of him that appeared different
was his flat-as- the-bottom-of-an-iron head. Then she gazed into his eyes and saw a
tiny drop of water creep from the corner of the socket and onto his rounded
cheek. Her heart lurched in her chest. “Are you still alive in there, Sam?” He blinked, but she could tell it took
quite a bit of effort. “Emma,” she said, still staring at Sam.
“I think he’s fading fast. If we don’t do something…” “I agree. So finish what you have to say
while I go over this spell again.” Claire focused on her husband’s eyes. It
was too painful to look at him fully. “Sam, I want you to promise me there
will be no more poking fun at my chest.” Sam’s eyes moved up and down. “I’ll take that as a yes,” said Claire.
“And there will be no more erections for any woman, except me.” Again, his eyes went up and down. “And no more fighting. I hate it when we
fight. We don’t have to agree, but I want to talk over our differences in a
rational manner. You cannot continue to sing that stupid lumberjack song to
annoy me, or shout out slurs in front of strangers.” This time, his eyes moved more rapidly in
agreement. A feeling of hope fluttered in her chest.
“I’ve come to realize that I, too, need to make a few promises in order for
this marriage to work. For one thing, I’m going to try to control my temper,
and be less…harpish.” She sighed. “And I promise to work on
expanding my bustline. Since you seem to find my boobs deficient, perhaps Emma
can find a spell that will make them bigger.” “First things first,” muttered Emma,
still perusing the book. Claire grinned when Sam’s eyes moved
‘yes, yes, yes’ in a frantic motion. Bending forward, she kissed him full on
his grim lips. “I’m so sorry, my darling. But we’ll make it right.” She
turned to Emma. “I’m ready whenever you are.” *** “Ah, this is the life,” said Sam sometime
later. He gazed at his beloved, who was smiling as she sat across from him on
their picnic blanket under an oak tree in the woods. “Naked, with the woman I
love, and fully sated. It can’t get any better than this.” He and Claire had thanked Emma and raced
here, to the forest, as soon as the spell had been lifted. Then they’d made
love, ate, and made love again. He grinned when his wife gazed down at her
bountiful breasts. “You’re sure they’re not too small?” she
asked in a breathy little voice. “Because I’m willing to let Greta or Claudia
experiment, if it will make you happy.” Sam reached out and ran a finger over one
budded nipple, happy to see it pucker at his touch. Claire shivered and he
smiled. “I don’t want anyone, especially those idiot witches, doing anything
to your perfect body. If they do, they’ll die.” “What are you planning to do to the
Disdaine triplets?” she asked, snuggling closer. “What would you like me to do?” “Something righteous, but nothing cruel,”
Claire answered. “They are only children.” “Hah! Children of the devil. I’m planning
to speak to their parents. If they don’t discipline those girls, the town will
do it for them, and I’ll lead the charge.” “Those rampaging Chihuahuas have made a
mess of the city’s streets. How about a week of picking up dog droppings?” “Make it a year.” Sam’s smile grew wide.
“And they have to do it with their bare hands—no pooper-scooper.” “Sounds like a plan.” “I say we take it to the next Brokenoggin
town council meeting, first.” “Can I go with you to the meeting?” “Of course, you can. I promised you we
would never be apart again, remember.” “Oh, Sammykins,” said Claire, squirming
when he cupped her breast and bent forward to suckle the tip. “You do such
wonderful things to me. I love you so.” Sam’s penis grew to its full length,
prodding Claire’s belly as it begged for attention. She reached between them and caressed the
rigid digit with both hands. “Maybe we should leave? Someone might find us,
and I’d be so embarrassed if they did.” He used a knee to part her legs and slid
into her, sheathing himself fully in her moist, silky heat. “Let them see us,”
he said, kissing her. “I don’t care.” Settling himself atop her, Sam pumped his
hips, slowly at first, then with abandon. Claire arched beneath him and met every
thrust. When her cries of pleasure turned to her harpy wail, she didn’t change
into her other self. Instead, she gazed up at him and drew him to her lips
where their tongues tangled in a duel as old as time. He drove her to the brink of exquisite
madness, and she did the same to him. And Sam finally realized the secret to
taming a harpy. Episode 1.19 DOROTHEA’S WIZARD By Jennifer St. Giles Episode 1.19 Dorothea’s Wizard By Jennifer St. Giles “Well, Yodo, this isn’t Kansas or
New York.” Sheltering her toy poodle from the drizzling mist with the edge of
her cherry-red jacket, Dorothea Davenport tentatively followed the ebony brick
road leading to Dr. O. Zexton Zinclair’s residence. She hadn’t considered rain as a factor
when she’d concocted her plan to meet the author of Pleasure Potions. A
flat tire on her rented Jaguar, courtesy of a well placed nail, and one dead
cell phone for show would hopefully gain her entrйe into the recluse’s home and
make use of her nearby, bodyguard driven limo unnecessary. But she hadn’t
realized that the town of Brokenoggin would resemble an adult Jumanji either,
dogs as large as wolves running loose, women wearing hopeful expressions and
Victoria Secrets best but least lining the streets, and a fanged man parading
around naked while the sheriff sat in her cruiser ogling rather than
arresting. This place wasn’t just over the top, it was stratospheric. And none
of it compared to the unfolding scene before her. Droplets of water dewed her skin and
dampened the silk of her dress, giving her an eerie chill that stood at odds
with the increasing, sultry heat of the surrounding air. She’d noted the
change in temperature the moment she’d passed through the gargoyle studded
gate, but at first attributed it to nervous exertion. Now she wasn’t so sure.
The further she intruded, the stranger her surroundings became, and the warmer
the air turned, reminding her more of a tropical beach than a late afternoon in
Michigan. Even stranger still were the ghostly tendrils of Spanish moss hanging
from the twisted branches and the tangy scent of sea flavoring the breeze. Her
heart beat double to the click of her red heeled boots and her cherry slick
mouth went dry as the dark, spire-ridden mansion rose from the shadow of the
gnarled trees. Yodo yipped in protest and she brushed a
comforting hand through his dark curly fur. “It’s okay boy. If there had been
anything unsavory about Dr. Zinclair, I’m sure Dr. Susan wouldn’t have mentioned
meeting him or the successes he’d achieved in his clinic before dropping off
the face of the earth.” But then Dr. Susan claimed Dorothea’s anorgasmia was a
self imposed response to her material rich emotionally bankrupt life, like a
patient with hysterical blindness or amnesia. Deep inside, Dorothea supposedly
didn’t believe herself worth loving and couldn’t accept a man’s love. The
sexual dysfunction had cost her a marriage and two other relationships, and she
wasn’t going to give her heart again until she conquered her problem, no matter
what. And she was determined to find the answer before her thirtieth birthday,
which, according to the ruby studs on her watch, gave her twelve hours to get
the elixir the AMA—not the FDA—had banned and make her day. Clutching Yodo and her red leather bag
closer, Dorothea quickened her pace. The blending of stone and iron in the
mansion bred a monolith filled with forbidding shadows and hidden threats, but
none were as dark as the one clouding her life. The faint strands of a sexy
instrumental tune thrummed in the air, informing her that someone was home.
Drawing a bolstering breath, she marched up the steps and rang the doorbell,
nearly jumping from her skin when theme music to “Jaws” surrounded her. She swung in a circle, catching herself
looking for an approaching menace of yawning teeth before stopping and then
sighing with self-disgust. Undeterred, she rang the bell persistently, and
followed each echoing sound bite with a firm rap on the lion faced brass knocker.
“See, Yodo, how’s that for courage.” Sweat now beaded her brow, adding to the
dampness of the humid rain. The temperature near the house was like that of a
steam sauna, forcing her to slip off her jacket or grow faint from the heat,
but even the droplets of rain hitting her bare shoulders and sliding beneath
the halter-top of her dress provided little relief. After five attempts to
rouse someone from the mansion, she decided to follow the music and walk around
to the back. Grass and fecund earth gave way to diamond bright sand that
immediately swallowed her heels as the sight before her boggled her mind. A
vast, misty playground of turquoise pools, lush vegetation, and waterfalls
stretched for acres. “Beware, beware, beware.” The squawking
warning came from a large green and gold parrot perched on a nearby cushioned
lounge chair big enough to pass for a bed. Yodo, yipped and squirmed to be let
down. Realizing that any forward motion would only occur bootless, Dorothea set
Yodo down and sat on the damp sand. She unzipped her boots as she kept one eye
on Yodo who sniffed a circle around the turning parrot. They seemed to be
sizing each other up, more curious than antagonistic, so she decided to let
Yodo walk. She stuffed her jacket and boots in her bag and left her red fishnet
thigh highs on to keep some semblance of formality. If she wasn’t careful, she
could easily find herself naked and comfortable in this kind of heat. The music played softly over some sort of
surround stereo system, providing her little help in locating what she hoped
would be Dr. Zinclair. As she moved down the beach, the rain turned to mist
then stopped. It wasn’t until she reached the edge of a steamy pool with Yodo
close behind that she saw him. A naked and sun bronzed him. He stood beneath
the spill of a soft waterfall less than ten feet to her left with his back to
her, a scarred back. The whitened skin of lash strokes crisscrossed his back
and whipped across her heart. Dear God, what had happened to him? Who’d carried
out such a barbaric punishment upon him and why? She clenched her fist as the
urge to soothe long healed pain coursed through her, making her almost forget
why she’d come to him. His muscular arms held onto a bar over his head, and as
she watched, he pulled his lean body slowly up, lowered himself, and then
repeated the motion several more times as rivulets of water poured through his
dark hair and down his tanned body. She stepped silently back, planning to
return to the man’s porch and wait, but couldn’t quite stop watching his
powerful, fluid movements. He was pure sensual magic in action. “What in the hell do you want?” he asked,
suddenly dropping from the bar and turning to face her. His snarling deep voice
had more fear impact than the “Jaws” theme and the dark countenance of his
sharp brow, determined nose, and square jaw were just as threatening. For the
first time she wondered if maybe her desperation to know a moment’s pleasure
was going to cost more that she was willing to pay. Really? She asked herself. Could she
resign herself to an anorgasmic fate or would she rather die trying to change
it? “I need help. My name is Dorothea and
this is Yodo. My car has a flat.” She spoke the lie lamely. “Right. Dorothy and Toto. And I’m the Tin
Man. You’re in the wrong place, lady. Get lost. Go back to Kansas.” He turned
his back on her and grabbed the bar he’d been exercising on. “I’m called Thea. My cell phone is
dead!” she shouted, feeling the bite of tears sting her eyes. Had she really
thought it would be so easy? Can I use your phone? And by the way, aren’t you
the man who wrote that book? I have this friend who really needs help. Surely
you could sell me a bottle of Nymph. Desperation had a way of making any
action sound good. Yodo, buried closer to her ankle, trying to comfort her. “Do us both a favor, lady. Drop the
pretense and just leave. I don’t have what you’re looking for.” “Are you Dr. Zinclair?” “Not any more. Get lost.” Dorothea exploded. “I want an orgasm
before I turn thirty tomorrow. You had a clinic. You helped women like me.
Dr. Susan praised your success rate. All I want is to buy a bottle of Nymph
and I’ll leave.” He laughed, turning to face her again.
“Do you really want the drug? Are you willing to take it regardless of its side
effects?” “Yes,” she whispered, her heart
hammering. “Yes,” she said louder. “I can’t live this way anymore.” His humor died. This time he stepped
into the pool and strode toward her, unashamedly naked. Not that he’d had any
reason to hide anything. His assets rivaled her trust fund and appeared to
ready make any deposit he wanted to. She had to fight to keep her gaze
somewhat aimed at his face. A feat that grew less difficult as she met his
intense gaze. Long ebony lashes framed sea-green irises, creating a
mesmerizing study of light and dark. He stopped when his arousal brushed her
silken covered stomach, making her gasp at the shock of sensual heat lightning
through her. It was unlike anything she’d ever experienced. Her purse slid
from her grip and landed on the ground. She considered backing up, but
didn’t. Yodo yipped then sounded like he jumped into her purse for a nap,
something he often did whenever she went shopping. The tangy scent of salty air
gave way to the doctor’s heady cologne, something that urged her to breathe
deep and relish. “Since we’re being so truthful here,” he
said, his deep voice vibrating sensually. “There is no Nymph. It was nothing
more than a concoction of brandy and peach liquor.” Dorothea shook her head, refusing to
accept his answer, or back away from him. “No. You cured women, made them
whole, normal. How?” Instead of answering, he smiled, slowly,
sending another fissure of heat right to an unfamiliar, almost clenching core
inside of her. Grabbing her hips, he pulled her tightly against his erection,
pressing hotly to her damp silk. Then he ran his hands up to brush the sides of
her breasts, stopping where the cut of her halter covered her soft skin. Dorothea gasped as her hips automatically
pressed to him. “How?” He lifted a dark brow. “Usually
counseling worked, but on rare occasions when it didn’t, my touch did. I made
love to them, Dorothea. I’m the drug.” To prove his point, he slid his thumbs
beneath her top and flicked them over her nipples. She gasped as the tips
hardened beneath the assaulting tingle of heat his touch gave her, a tingle
that lingered long after he’d moved his hands back to her hips and stood
looking at her, waiting for her reaction. “Cure me,” she whispered, finally. Every
ounce of her agonized desperation echoed in her voice. She’d come this far, and
at this point in her life she was ready to try anything she hadn’t before, even
sex with a charismatic stranger. His grip on her hips tightened, but he
didn’t move. He just stared at her and she saw both indecision and a shadow of
pain flicker in his eyes. “What if I chose not to? Do you think that I don’t
pay a price? Besides the toll on my own body and soul to be used for sex,
there’s no guarantee that tomorrow you won’t wake up in the same condition.” Shamefully, tears filled her eyes and she
took a deep breath, edging back from him. “You’re right. I’m sorry.” She’d
given no thought to him, only of herself. He released her hips and she averted her
gaze to stare out over the water and falls, as she desperately tried to come to
grips with her situation. “How is all this possible?” “Brokenoggin’s hot springs, a lot of
ingenuity, and a little magic,” he said the last in a wry sort of tone that had
her glancing back at him for a moment. He was looking at her as if puzzled, but
her pain at having to walk away into anorgasmia was too great to try and figure
out what he found so odd. “I’m sorry to have disturbed you, Dr. Zinclair.” “Ozz,” he said. “I go by my initials.” She laughed sadly. “So you’re the
wizard?” “That’s right.” She reached for the handle of her bag
where Yodo napped. “And Dorothea is going home.” He caught her hand.
“That’s it? You’re willing to walk away from your heart’s desire after coming
here?” “I’ve no right to assuage my pain by inflicting it on others. Besides,
from the looks of your back, you’ve suffered enough. What happened?” “A curse
I’m powerless to avoid,” he said, softly, running his finger across her palm
and then up her arm. “Take your dress off, Dorothy. I’ll take you to OZZ.” She
gasped from the pleasure and the tenderness in his touch. “Thea,” she said.
“Dorothea.” She meant to ask him what he meant by a curse, but forgot as his
hands splayed over her bare skin. “Dorothea,” he whispered in her ear.
Spreading fire with his touch, he slid his hands to the nape of her neck and
pulled the tie of her halter loose. The damp silk fell away, exposing her
breasts. Her nipples tightened, this time just from the intensity of his gaze
as he looked at her. He moved behind her and a shiver followed the path her
zipper took down her spine. When she stepped from the puddle of her red dress,
she wore only her thigh high fishnet stockings and a matching thong. Dressing
as sexy as possible and becoming comfortable with her own body were at least
two positive results from the years she’d spent in therapy. She went to slide
down a stocking. “Leave them,” he said gruffly. “Come with
me.” Taking her hand, he led her into the water that seemed to cool and warm at
the same time as it swirled around her legs and lapped at the flesh between.
Reaching the cropping a rocks and waterfall she’d first seen him under, he
patted a large flat rock that was about hip high to him. “Climb up here and sit
on the edge facing me.” She gave him a questioning look, yet did
as he asked, surprised to feel that the rock wasn’t rock, but some softy spongy
foam. Once settled, she met his gaze. The “now what?” on the edge of her
tongue disappeared as he slid between her legs and kissed her, his tongue
gaining entry into her mouth as his arousal pressed intimately against her lace
covered sex. The moment she shut her eyes, the fireworks and heat disappeared
as a familiar numbness and a killing anxiety raced through her. She froze. “Open your eyes, Dorothea. Don’t close
them again. To get to where you want to go, you have to fill yourself with
me. The sight of me pleasuring you and you pleasuring me, the feel of me
touching you and you touching me, the taste of me on your tongue and the taste
of you on mine, the smell of me in your soul and the scent of you burned into
mine. I’m the drug you need to drink, eat, and, inhale.” He kissed her again and she kept her eyes
open, at first fixed on the mesmerizing passion in his gaze then watching his
hands palm her breasts, kneading them to aching points that his mouth covered
and sucked. She filled her hands with the silk of his hair, the slick feel of
his water-beaded skin, and the supple heat of his flexing muscles as he slid
off her thong. Running his tongue down her stomach, he
hooked his thumbs into the edge of her thigh highs, but instead of pulling her
stockings down, he used the leverage to lift and spread her legs, opening her
sex to the searing heat of his mouth. She shuddered as pleasure rippled
through her. On fire, her hips arched to him, forcing her back to her elbows.
Her eyes fell shut and suddenly the pleasure stopped. She remembered her
condoms were back on the beach in her purse and a thousand other thoughts
intruded. “Watch me, Dorothea,” he demanded. She
opened her eyes and he slid her knees over his shoulders, lifting her hips
high, giving her no choice but to see his mouth devouring her. When he reached
up and plucked her nipples, a coiling tension began to build inside of her and
spread, catching her pulse and her breath, rushing them forward, leaving her
gasping and writhing and more on edge than she’d ever been before. “Please,” she cried, reaching for him.
“I need…” He lowered her back to the padded rock.
“This,” he said, snapping his fingers and a half dozen foil packets appeared in
his hand. She sat up and stared at him, taking a
condom from him. “How did you do that?” “Magic,” he said. She glanced around to see where he could
have a box stashed, but he slid his finger up her thigh and along the groove of
her sex to flick at the swollen spot that throbbed to feel more. He was
beautiful in a dark, rough, majestic way. Intense eyes, shadowed jaw,
determined brow and nose, jutting, demanding erection. He was so purely
masculine that he made her feel utterly female. Breaking open the condom, she ran her
hand down the rippled muscles of his stomach, feeling his abs clench beneath
her fingers. But before she put it on him, she met his gaze, lifting her mouth
to his and kissed him softly, thankfully, tenderly. Pressing him back, she
slid her hands over his shoulders and the flat disks of his breasts, enjoying
the dark silky hair smattering his chest and tapering down his stomach. The
ridges of scars on his back, gave her pause, and she pressed her hand against
them. “I’m sorry for your pain.” He groaned as she cupped his heated sex
in her hand. She bent, pressing her lips to his sensitive tip and swirled her
tongue softly around him. She could feel his racing pulse throb in his shaft
beneath her fingertips and she took the satiny, hard heat of him into her
mouth, tasting him, wanting and needing to pleasure him, to excite and comfort
him all at the same time. He pulled her up, kissing her deeply,
more searchingly than before, as if he were now trying to connect with her
soul. Then he eased the condom from her fingers and covered himself. Sliding
her hips to the edge of the foam rock, he opened her with his fingers and drove
inside, filling her completely. She tensed, suddenly afraid that what she
wanted to happen, wouldn’t. “Don’t close your eyes, Dorothea. Lie
down and watch the pleasure. Yours and mine.” He pushed her back and hooked
her knees behind his hips. Moving slowly, he eased almost, but not quite out
of her and pressed slowly in, again and again as he flicked his finger over the
tender hot spot of her sex. The coil of tension inside her curled tighter and
tighter, sending her heart racing and stealing her breath. His gaze met and held hers. “Come with
me. Ride with me. Let yourself go, free your body, mind and soul to feel
nothing but the hot pleasure burning through us both. Pleasure that is going
to wipe everything from your mind.” His deep voice vibrated through her as if
he entered her mind, taking away every thought but her need and feel of him.
He captured her and nothing mattered but what she felt with him. Her hips met
the thrust of his faster and faster as a whirlwind of passion spun her around
and around. Her toes curled, her muscles clenched and…and… “Now,” he demanded, thrusting deeper than
ever before. “O, O, O,” she cried, her body shuddered
with the orgasm that erupted through her. “More,” he said thrusting again, driving
another fissure of pleasure into her heart. Moving his other hand to her
breast, he pulled gently on her nipple and sent her sky-rocketing higher. “Oh
God,” she screamed as white hot pleasure seared her soul. His body shuddered forcefully against
hers and he fell forward, bracing his weight at her sides and resting his head
against her chest. She wrapped her arms around him, pulling him closer, though
he was closer to her than anyone had ever been. Then his body tensed, jerked,
and he exhaled forcefully as if in great pain. In fact, Dorothea, could feel
the pain ripping though him into her. “Oh God,” she whispered. “What just
happened? I feel your pain. Did I hurt you?” He lifted his head, surprise and deep
pain in his eyes. His arms trembled at her sides. “What do you mean, you feel
my pain?” “You’re hurt. I feel a burning pain
inside me almost as great as the pleasure.” He rose up and pulled himself from her
body, leaving her bereft, taking both the pleasure and the pain. “You must go
now.” He braced an arm against the rock as if needing help to stand. The color
had washed from his face. She sat up, and on shaky knees, eased
into the soothing pool of water, turning to him with her hands on her hips.
“No. Not until you tell me the truth. Not until I know how I hurt you. I’m
not blind and something has.” He stared at her for a long moment, then
reached out and brushed a shaky finger down her cheek. “You are different.” He
smiled sadly. “I can never experience pleasure without pain. The greater the
pleasure, the greater the pain. My pleasure with you was greater than ever
before.” Dorothea shook her head, not wanting to
believe him. “How? Why?” He snapped his fingers and a soft robe
appeared in his hand. “I’m a wizard and it is a curse from the realm of
magic. It has nothing to do with you or what you did.” She took the robe and tossed it on the
rock, amazed and still unsure if she believed in magic, but wasn’t going to be
distracted from his pain. Then it hit her and emotion deep and strong gripped
her, squeezing into her heart. “You knew this before, yet you still…made love
to me.” Then she saw a slight discoloration in the water behind him. “Turn
around.” “Dorothea, it doesn’t matter. You got
what you came here for, now just go.” “No. Never.” Pulling on his arm, she slid
around to see his back. A fresh, deep laceration crossed from shoulder to
shoulder. She gasped, tears filling her eyes. “How long has this been
happening to you?” “All of my life.” Moving to face him, she cupped his rough
cheeks in her hands and pressed a soft kiss to his lips. “Is there a way to
break the curse?” He wrapped his arms around her, pulling
her tight. “Not that I have found. I’ve learned to live alone and minimize my
pleasure.” “I live alone and had no pleasure,” she
said, pressing closer to him then plunged headlong into the emotion filling
her. Her whole life seemed to zero in to this moment. “Can I be your pleasure
and share your pain?” “Why? Because there is magic in my
touch?” “No, because there is magic in what I
feel for you after just so short a time. I’ve had everything in life except
for real love. If there is a chance that love can grow from this, I can’t walk
away no matter how great the pain.” Groaning and leaning
down, he kissed her deeply, as if searching through to her soul. Careful not
to hurt him more, she wrapped her arms around his waist, responding with her
heart. Heat, pleasure, and his arousal grew between them. She pulled back. “You’ll hurt yourself.” He smiled. “I’ll heal. Right now, I want
you more than anything else.” “Then let me make love to you.” She
patted the foam rock. Climb up here.” He lifted a questioning brow, but did as
she asked. She grabbed a condom, slid it lovingly on his erection. Then
climbing up, she straddled him, guiding him inside her, and the magic began
again, taking her to an even greater peak as bits of her heart again followed
OZZ to heaven, whipping intense pleasure through them both. The pain hit in
the last throes of her climax. She gasped and tensed, crying at its strength.
He tried to push her away, but she clung to him. “No. I’ll share your pain.” He groaned pulling her closer to him, as
tears filled his eyes. “God help me, but I cannot deny you. I need you.” Suddenly, the world around them spun in a
dizzying circle, catching them up in whirlwind, tearing them apart. He reached
for her, but the second their fingers touched, he disappeared. “No!” she
shouted to the whirling wind, feeling as if she were being ripped apart. “No! I
love him! He’s my heart’s desire. You can’t take him!” She landed on the beach next her bag,
where Yodo yipped at her. She was clothed again, dress, jacket, boots on—even
her thong, which had been floating in the pool the last time she saw it.
“Ozz!” she called, immediately searching for him. He stood under the
waterfall, naked. His back to her. A back with no scars. “Can you hear me?
What happened?” He turned, smiling, stepping from the
shower of water. “I think you broke the curse.” “How?” “Brokenoggin is a magical place but—” She clicked her heels and laughed.
“There’s no place like Brokenoggin.” “You didn’t let me finish.” He walked
toward her and didn’t stop until his erection brushed the silk of her dress.
“But you’ve proven love is stronger than magic.” She grabbed his hips pressing harder
against his hot arousal. “Are you sure the curse is broken?” “Let’s go inside and find out.” He swung
her up into his arms and she wrapped her arms around his neck. “By the way,” she said, as he strode
across the sand. “What is your name?” “The truth?” “Yes.” “My mother, being a naughty witch from
Brokenoggin had a wicked sense of humor. Like you, she was anorgasmic until
she encountered my father. She named me after that encounter. Later in life I
added the T-O-N to Zex and Zinclair.” Dorothea gasped. “She didn’t.” “She did.” “Orgasmic Zex?” He reached the huge, cushioned lounge
chair and dropped her on it. “I’d thought you’d never ask.” He stripped her in
seconds and in minutes proved himself worthy of his name. This time no pain
followed the pleasure. Dorothea had found her wizard and her home. Episode 1.20 SOULLESS FROM SEATTLE Or The Big Bad By Fiona MacLeod & Terese Ramin . Episode 1.20 Soulless from Seattle (aka The Big Bad) Written by Terese Ramin With background story &
extra characters by Fiona MacLeod Seth stretched in the late
August moonlight and scratched around the Duct-tape-and-Goop patch on his itchy
chest. With his other hand, he reached around to scratch the identically
patched opposing area in the middle of his back. The edges of Janice’s blunt
nails slipped gently under his on his back. “Here, let me,” she murmured
huskily. Briskly, she rubbed the area all around his wound while he continued
to massage his chest. “Must finally be healing if it’s this uncomfortable.” Seth shook his head, didn’t
look at her. “I think the hole’s getting bigger and the riot bullet’s
slipping.” Janice’s fingers stilled. Her forehead dropped to his shoulder in
silent protest. He rested his cheek against her hair. “I’m sorry, but I can
feel it, Janice. A little jab in the right place and…” Her “no” slipped out
before she could stop it. She wasn’t a panicky person, or at least not one good
at showing it, but he’d come for her, done for her, been there for her in ways
no one ever had in her two and a half plus centuries, and… It had only been a summer,
but she loved him. “What can I do, Seth? Ask
anything—take anything, my soul, my heart, my blood…” “I don’t drink blood,
Janice,” he reminded her patiently. “I don’t remember why—exactly—but
we’ve established that. It’s disgusting. See, I wrote that right here…” He
showed her the bright red laundry marker caps on his left forearm where he
couldn’t possibly miss it that read: NO MATTER HOW FAR MY FANGS EXTEND, I DO
NOT DRINK BLOOD. YUCK! Her slow, wry smile kissed
his arm. “Not to drink, idiot, in a transfusion. It’s shifter blood, were
blood, ancient tribal blood. The regeneration factors are strong. Joe
can do it for us. Maybe…” She stopped. Grabbed his arm
and swung him about. “Wait,” she said in a voice that Seth knew meant she was
excited. Used by anyone else no one ever would have guessed they’d changed
expressions. “You said you don’t remember exactly. Does that mean you
remember sort of?” “Ah…” Seth cocked his head
and took stock of the muddle his brain had become ever since his arrival in the
unconsecrated section of Brokenoggin Falls Community Cemetery after Nihil
staked him with the Womanized two-by-two— “Holy shit,” he swore. He tugged on the much-washed
Levi’s 505 button-flies Janice had given him so he wouldn’t have to wander
around town naked and embarrassed by the huge and constant hard-on any thought
or visual of her seemed to produce and caught her hand. “Come on.” “Wha– Where…?” Janice hung back, trying to
catch up and pull on her own clothes as he tugged her along. Seth might not
have remembered telling her that since he’d found her in Brokenoggin’s cemetery
he wanted to make love to her for the next century, but his body certainly did.
“The Falls.” He halted long
enough for her to put on a bra and T-shirt, tug her pants over her hips and
grab her boots. “Huh?” Bewildered she splayed a hand
across his abdomen to steady herself. He responded the way he always did:
instantly, by drawing her into the deepest, most drugging kiss she thought
she’d ever die and go to heaven from, and falling into it with her. This time, though, when her
boots hit the floor, startling them both, he called them back from heaven. Resting his forehead on hers,
he scraped his thumbs across her cheeks. “Later,” he promised. Then he picked
up her boots, reached for her hand, and pulled her out the door. “Which falls, and what’s at
them?” Seth opened the driver’s door
of Janice’s personal vehicle—an old military jeep—and ushered her in. “The high
end of Brokenoggin Falls where not even the Gryphons or the Wyverns go.” Realization hit Janice like a
freight train. She swallowed hard. Seth nodded. “I know,” he said simply.
“Your beast, the secret, who you are, why I came here, where I came from, what happened that night, who the
finger bones belong to, the only thing that will save me…I remember
everything.” For a minute Janice gazed at the night shadows, carefully thinking
nothing. Then she turned over the ignition and the jeep roared to life. “Get
in and let’s go,” she said. *** Nihil and the few skeletons
that weren’t recaptured, laid to rest or revealed and forgiven in the currently
destroyed version of episode thirteen watched from the rocky hillside nearby as
Janice’s jeep pull out of her isolated, wooded driveway onto the highway. “Hunh,” Nihil ventured.
“Looks like I’m not the only one got my memory back.” Unable to speak, the
skeletons rattled their bones together and flapped their jaws in a gruesome
semblance of laughter. The one missing the finger bones Trevor Fairweather had
dug up then re-hidden gesticulated wildly at the moving jeep, itself, then
Nihil, clearly making a statement of things they needed to get cracking and do.
The barrel-chested vampire waved off the skeleton impatiently. “All right, all right. Hold your pelvis
together, Leroy, climb aboard, we’re goin’.” Thus invited, the skeletons
clambered onto Nihil’s back and shoulders. The vamp took a few warm-up steps
downhill after Janice’s jeep then started to run. Fast. *** Simon Drake, chief of the
Naga—Seattle magick’s deadly police force—and next in line for the throne of
the Principality of the Mists (as long as he found himself a soul within the
next few months) stepped out of his rental car in front of the Chat ‘n Chew.
Leaning this way and that, he tried to stretch the cricks out of his back.
Irritated when the simple isometrics didn’t work, he straightened. What the
hell use was being undead if he still got stiff from traveling? It was a damn
long way from Seattle to Brokenoggin Falls, with no direct flights, and way too
many connections—Dallas, Denver, Minneapolis, Marquette…and then he’d gotten
stuck in this damned compact Honda when he’d wanted a full size Town Car or
something even bigger. A Hummer would have done. He glanced around
Brokenoggin’s marginally deserted streets under the bright light of the
melon-colored full moon. Something about the place creeped him big time.
After working Seattle’s iniquitous Underground nothing should do that. Especially nothing as
innocent as this innocuous little hamlet. Suddenly three werewolves and
a were-panther still on its way to full change burst out the door of the Spiked
Pig Saloon across the street and ran off howling into the forest behind the
parking lot. From out of nowhere a pack of yapping Chihuahuas dashed excitedly
after the weres, tumbling over each other in their haste to keep up with the
larger beasts. Down the middle of the road behind them galloped a
panicked flight of Night Mares, whinnying in fear. And after them came a
pissed-off Centaur wearing a pink tutu, ballet slippers, a ruffle-covered jock
and a daisy chain harness, and bearing three snickering, identical-looking
eleven-year-old girls on his back. Simon was just about ready to
recant his thoughts about the “innocent, innocuous little hamlet” when three
identical-appearing adult women witches with substantial bosoms and a naked
witch man spilled out of the Chat ‘n Chew. Two of the women immediately
started arguing and fell to the parking lot gravel wrestling and pulling each
other’s hair. The third stamped her chastised them, hauled them apart and got
them moving again while the male witch observed it all in a state of
semi-arousal. Then all four went off into the woods to—if Simon heard
correctly—“dance naked and anoint the early harvest moon with fertility
spells and couplings.” Okay, yes. Simon grimaced.
He, Simon Drake, soulless vampire, bound by oath to protect if not serve
magick’s powerful—and oftentimes cruel—aristocracy truly thought he’d seen
everything. But apparently Brokenoggin Falls had a thing or two to teach him. So maybe Seth wasn’t out of
his mind when he’d talked the wild crazy about all the legends surrounding this
place. Maybe this was the only place a vamp like Seth could find his twainnoctu—soul
mule, the person born to carry a vampire’s soul until he found and mated with
her. If Nihil hadn’t killed him yet. Growling
at the thought, Simon strode to the door of the Chat ‘n Chew and stepped
inside. He’d find his brother, by God, if he had to destroy every last
resident of Brokenoggin Falls to do it. *** The forest night was alive
with shadow and sound the way forest nights always are: a rash of insects
sounded off here, a chorus of frogs there; the sough and sway of the tall
cedars and pines wove erratic patterns across clear patches of ground, teasing the
imagination to strange thoughts. Ahead, upper Brokenoggin
Falls gurgled and rushed, shaping hill and stone, carving its path into the
lower, grander falls and the loch below. Though he’d never been here before,
Seth stepped surely along the treacherous trail that led to the upper falls,
tugging the even more sure-footed Janice along in his wake. At the edge of the forest
they paused. “Look.” Seth pointed at the
melon moon. “The moon’s full again and I haven’t lost my memory.” Janice smiled tremulously.
“That’s good.” She didn’t sound sure. At least when he lost his memory with
each full moon she had a chance to shift and start over in her best skin with
him instead of having him remember what she looked like by the end of the moon
cycle: a little more dumpy, somewhat older, a lot less fresh… “Hey.” Grinning slyly, he
slid a hand up under her T-shirt to cup a breast that would be a great deal
perkier after she shifted. “I like the puppy ears. They speak to your wisdom,
intelligence and longevity, and those are all things I want in my mate.” “Ummm…” Janice squirmed
uncomfortably, though her body was certainly behind the erotic things his
fingers were doing to her flesh. Then, stunned, “Mate?” Seth pulled off her shirt and
bent to nip her ear with his fangs. “Of course. You carried both our souls for
close to three centuries, who did you think you were if not my beloved, my
mate?” “Uh,” Janice mumbled panting,
“Just Janice. Tribal scourge, pariah, cursed were-thing, keeper of the beast,
town cop and jailer, and virgin for all time.” “Hmmm,” Seth murmured,
dropping to his knees to plant pinprick fang bites down her belly while he
stripped her out of her pants. “Hardly.” He tongued and nibbled the sensitive
skin of her inner thighs, knowing exactly how to drive her mad. “You’re the
mother of my unborn children, and the only creature in the world who can help
me get back my heart now that you’ve given me my soul.” “Seeeeetthhhhh…whaa-aaat?”
On the verge of losing all sense of what he was talking about and giving
herself up to the pleasure of simply having him, Janice yelped. “Children?”
Pleasure forgotten, she shoved his mouth away from her mons. “What the hell
are you talking about? I’m menopausal.” “Pausal,” Seth said
earnestly, scrambling after her, “but not yet fully paused.” Janice wrinkled her eyebrows
and fish-mouthed him. “Are you nuts?” she managed finally. “I’m two hundred
and sixty-something years old. I look fifty…ish. I don’t care how hot you are
or how much I feel for you, I can’t have your children. I can’t have anybody’s
children. I wouldn’t know what to do with ‘em. I’d be a disastrous mother. I
don’t have enough imagination to raise kids. Why every time I see the
Disdaine girls all I want to do is turn into the big bad wolf and eat
them. And Emma’s kids? Hell no! And they’re good kids even if they do see dead
people. Even Amy Fairweather and Destiny and Chi-chi Hopewell aren’t up my
alley. So what the devil would I do with vampyre-ancient-tribal-were-beast
mixes, Seth? Tell me that.” When he stopped laughing long
enough, Seth chased her down where she’d stalked off to when he started
laughing—the upper falls lowest whirlpool—took her hands and again knelt before
her. “Janice, Janice…” A chuckle
threatened him. Heroically, he swallowed it back. “You wouldn’t have to do
anything with our kids except bear them. Then you can go straight back to work
and I’ll stay home with them.” Janice regarded him
suspiciously. “I’m sorry. That doesn’t fit with this all-alpha-all-the-time
vampyre image you’ve been showing me all summer in between bouts of amnesia—not
that I mind it from the alpha thing from lover standpoint, you understand.
It’s just that I’m not sure I can accept your word about the other from the
I’m-an-alpha-bitch-wolf-and-the-only-cop-in-town standpoint. And I really
can’t let people fuck with me because as a cop they tend to try to lie to me a
lot so I’ve got a few trust issues—if you catch my drift.” Seth’s lips twitched. “All
right. Let’s just say that I’m a whole lot of alpha with gamma rising, and
that’s why I seriously don’t fit into the whole Seattle Underground scene,
which is only part of the reason I left it. The main reason was you, just like
I told you that first night—” “Sethanimus Drake once of the
Daimonos aristocracy, now condemned for treasonous behavior,” a hard, heavy
voice roared out of the night. Whipping around fast, Seth
shoved Janice behind him. “Annihilation Jones,” he called back, voice
thunder-deep and storm-savage. “I thought you were dead.” “After you, noodle fangs,”
the thinks-fast-with-his-weapons-but-not-with-his-brains vampiric hitman said. The sound of running feet and
rattling bones surged across the damp earth toward Janice and Seth. With an
oath, Seth shoved Janice hard away from him and turned to meet the onslaught. “Now would be an excellent
time to trust me with your other beast,” he suggested, “the one you haven’t
turned loose for almost three centuries. Because it looks like I could use a
little help.” Then he leaped forward to
engage the Naga’s annihilator and his vicious Brokenoggin allies: the leftover
skeletons from AnnMarie’s closet. *** The Forest Trolls were having
a party. It wasn’t every day that the
last full moon of August arrived full and melon-ripe, heralding September and
Labor Day on the immediate horizon, which meant, like death and taxes, the
certain return of the Brokenoggin Falls school year. School meant Strictly
Enforced Bed Times, and Strictly Enforced Bed Times meant no more Disdaine
triplets to wreak havoc upon them at all hours until All Hallows—unless some
witch threw in a Sabbat they’d forgotten about, and the Disdaine parents let
the triplets attend that in between times. Forest Trolls preferred to
forget things that weren’t in their best interests to remember. Life made a
better—and longer—rock-out! that way. “Come, my little harpy
pelican,” Sam Stalwort, Lord of the Forest Trolls, beseeched his wife Claire.
“Let down your taloned birdy feet, release your wings and screech for me. You
know how I love it when you screech your harpy song when we join…” A short distance away in a
far less private glade other FTs danced and cavorted more openly with each
other and the lesser forest elves and pixies who’d come to join them,
uninvited. The taller, aristocratic Elves would never be caught dead,
unconscious or drunk near a gathering of trolls—Forest or otherwise. Faeries,
on the other hand… Morgan-Titania-Morganna
flitted lightly among the revelers, pausing now and again to dip up a drop of
troll ale—dreadful stuff, unless one added a drop of faery nectar to it, then
it totally rocked. She’d done her hair up in a rather violent shade of
neon chartreuse and was a little nervous about showing it to her lover, Joe. He
seemed to stand in awe of everything she did, no matter how potentially
disastrous or unsuited to her complexion, but she worried nevertheless. She
was his Queen, and it had still taken so long to get his attention… Of course that was because he
was so shy to begin with, the big, darling, macho fey. Going into the half-swoon she
feigned every time she thought of their first kiss, and then their first time
together back in her madeover tool shed at the bottom of the Fairweathers’
garden, Morganna didn’t he/she was flying. Consequently she flew straight into
the chin of a larger-than-life vampyre who clapped his hand around
her/him and brought her up to eye level. It could probably go without
saying that the vampyre didn’t look happy to see her. “What are you doing
here?” Simon Drake asked. Morganna posed in the middle
of his palm, arms akimbo, and drew herself up to her full height. “I might ask
you the same thing, vamPYRE. I’m the Faery Queen and I belong here. You’re
not Seth, so you don’t.” “You’re not the queen,” Simon
said rudely, “you’re a guy.” Morganna fluffed her hair and
dangled her queenly ring hand in front of him, suggesting he might want to kiss
it. “I beg to differ. Ask anyone who the fey Queen is hereabouts and they’ll
tell you, it’s me.” She stomped to the edge of Simon’s palm and shook her fist
in his nose. “And call me a guy again and I’ll stick my chartreuse
stilettos so far up your snout you won’t be able to sneeze for a week.” Simon’s lips compressed
either clamping back an ill-advised grin or a frown. “I see,” he managed at
last. “And that would certainly be unfortunate.” He swallowed a few times as
though digesting something difficult. Then, finally as light dawned, “Did you
just mention Seth? A vampire?” As was usual for most places
outside of Brokenoggin Falls, Simon did not emphasize the second
syllable in vampire but put slightly more emphasis on the first, less
combustible syllable. Morganna changed her hair
color to hot Titania red and switched her clothes to battle black leather and
tall boots. “Maybe.” Fists on her straight hips, she stuck out her square chin
belligerently. “Who’s askin’?” “His oldest brother, Simon
Drake.” Simon tipped his head. “I haven’t seen him for three months, but I
finally tracked him here. If he still…exists…I’ve come to bring him home.” He
hesitated while the unaccustomed words stuck for a moment in his soulless
craw. “Or at least save his worthless hide.” *** The battle along the edge of
upper Brokenoggin Falls raged up and down, back and forth, in and out. From
forest to grassy glade to rocky whirlpool to slippery streambed, Seth and Nihil
fought hand to hand and foot to face, fist to chin and jaw—grappling, bobbing,
weaving, dancing and wrestling. Stripped naked, Janice fought
the skeletons three-on-one, first in human form, then in wolf. She chomped
their bones in her great, wolfish jaws, shattered femurs and ulnas, radiuses
and thighs— destroyed cervical spines and ripped apart rib cages. But the
skeletons found a way to piece themselves together and keep coming. Especially the one with the
missing finger bones. It warred savagely, used its
sharp, bony digits to try to score her pelt and tear it away. She bit and
slashed at it, but it did not give ground, parried every move, wearing her
down. Devoid of flesh and muscle,
it had less weight to carry and memory weighed little, adrenaline born of the
thirst for revenge counted for much. Janice was disadvantaged by her desire to
survive, her thirst for life. Her adrenaline surge was half concentrated on
Seth and her desire to make sure Nihil didn’t destroy him. The skeleton knew that. With the few teeth left in
its jaw it bit down into her wolf shoulder and hung on even when she yelped and
shook its skull free of the rest of its bones. “Your beast, Janice.” Seth’s
deep voice, faint and fading. “Loose your beast. It’s now or never. Use it to
save us both.” Tortured by doubt and in pain
from her wounds, Janice tried to see where Seth was, how he fared. She saw him
give Nihil a swift roundhouse kick to the side of the head and then snap back
and reach stiff-fingered for the other vamp’s chest. At the same time, Nihil
came back from the kick and aimed a powerful punch straight at the Goop-and-Duct-tape
patch in the center of Seth’s chest. “No!” Janice howled. She lurched sideways, away
from the skeleton fray, and lunged madly across the slick ground toward the
vampyres. There was a sickening, sucking spluurrtch of sound and Seth’s
hand drew back from Nihil’s chest full of something pulsing and reddish. At
the same time Nihil’s fist connected solidly with Seth’s chest, sent the rubber
riot bullet bouncing out of his back and into the upper falls with a sploonk-plop.
For a moment time paused long
enough for everyone to register shocked surprise, then the vampyres fell
backwards away from each other, Seth holding Nihil’s heart aloft, while Janice
started to scream and change… *** The minute the…whatever it
was started to scream, Simon whipped around, his heart cold with dread. The
Seattle Underground was full of tormented pieces of magick, but none of them
sounded like that. “What’s that?” Morganna blanched and went
from her Titania red and battle black leather straight back to the alarming
neon chartreuse hair and shocking lime and purple dance outfit she’d been
trying out before Simon showed up. “I’m not sure.” She flittered about
Simon’s palm making sure her strappy chartreuse “do-me” pumps were strapped on
securely. “But whatever it is, it sounds like it’ll need a vet in the very
near future, so I’d better get mine.” So saying she fouffed
her hair, dashed to the edge of Simon’s hand and flew off at speed. Open-mouthed, Simon stared
after her until she was almost out of sight—at which point he thought to ask,
“Wait! Where…?” “The falls,” Morganna shouted
without looking back—or at least that’s what Simon thought she said. “Get some
trolls and meet me at the faaaalllss…” “Trolls?” Feeling deeply out of his
depth, Simon looked around at the drunken, troll-ish revelers. Then he gazed
in the direction from whence the horrible screams came. Sized up the situation
and weighed the possible abilities of drunk Forest Trolls against whatever the
bellowing wounded thing might be against his brother’s existence and what he
knew of Annihilation Jones’ capabilities. And turned and loped off
toward the screaming beast alone. *** There was, Simon realized
almost at once, something wholly magnificent about the monster and the way
she—it could only be a she—protected and defended his brother’s inert body on
the treacherous shoreline beside the stepping-down falls. Part wolf, part dragon, part
demon—or so she seemed—she fought with fury and fire, crushing bones to powder
under her feet, crunching them between her jaws or swallowing the pieces
whole. The skeletons—Simon could see they were skeletons, and that both
stunned and frightened him because Seattle, for all its savagery was still more
civilized than this—fought bitterly. They re-formed with whatever pieces were
left, battled to get around her, to reach Nihil and the bloody, dripping piece
of him clutched aloft in Seth’s unmoving hand until, nearly exhausted, she
captured the last metatarsal, gleefully chewed it up and swallowed it. Then she turned her wrath on
Nihil’s body. A wrench of her huge, clawed
paws tore of the hitman vamp’s head; a gulp and it was gone. Simon watched in
fascination while she destroyed what was left of Annihilation Jones’ body—
devouring certain bits and burying others deep at a distance from each other.
A small pile she even set aside and coated in her apparently acidy wolf-dragon
demon venom; it disintegrated into a residue of damp reddish-brown chalk that
she ground into the bank beside the falls with the pads of her feet. Finished at last, she swung
her head around to look at Seth. Her grief was palpable. That’s when Simon finally
realized he hadn’t made a move to help his brother. It’s also when he knew what
his brother held clenched in his hand: Nihil’s heart. He could still smell the
blood pulsing through it. It was alive. That meant whatever was wrong
with Seth, there was still time to save him. Galvanized by the thought,
Simon started forward. The great creature heard him. Her head swung in his
direction and she positioned herself defensively over and around Seth and
despite the glittering tears in her eyes she growled. “Whoa, baby.” Simon went
still. “I don’t want to hurt him. He’s my little brother. I’m here to help.
Just let me help.” Clearly not in the mood to
believe anyone she didn’t recognize, the monster took two steps forward, thrust
her muzzle at Simon and pulled her lips back in a deeper, more menacing, more convincing
growl. “Oh dear Goddess and her
seven sisters,” someone behind Simon swore softly. “What the holy Sam Hill is
that and where did we get it from?” “You ask me,” Morganna said
brightly, buzzing up beside Simon to size up the situation and flitting away
again, “That’s the beast Janice’s been hiding all these centuries. Or
maybe…” She fluttered to the ground
in front of Simon and took a few mincing steps forward. “Janice, honey, is
that you? You’re looking awfully snarly tonight, you don’t mind my sayin’.
Did you and—oh my sweet Jimmy Choos, Seth!” With a come-on flick of her
hand behind her, she darted forward, straight under the beast’s massive muzzle
to light on Seth’s shoulder and peer closely into his face. “Dear Goddess,
Janice, no wonder you’re upset. Why the boy’s on his last legs! Joe, Joe!
Get up here my beautiful, darling lover and do something this
instant!” She shoved at the
dragon-wolf-demon’s foreleg. “I know you’re worried, dear, but you’re going to
have to move and let the veterinarian in to have a look at him. Come on—” she
hopped down and patted the ground beside Seth’s head. “You sit right here and
hold his head in your paws. Ooooh, and look at those tears!” She flew up,
pulled off her hat—a cunning little number if she said so herself, just right
for searching out Janice-beasts and misplaced vampyres—and collected a single
diamond tear. “If I know my folklore, this’ll be the perfect thing to help
heal a transplanted vampyre heart…” *** “…And that, children, is how
daddy got to be the first vampyre to ever have a heart transplant in the
history of the known universe as well as Brokenoggin Falls.” “Cool,” Karen Thinksalot
sighed. “Awesome,” her brothers
Michael and Leroy agreed. “But what about the finger
bones?” the youngest Thinksalot, Andrew asked. “And Uncle Simon?” his five
minutes older twin sister Delores put in. “Well,” said their father,
who’d been better than his word about the staying home with them part, and even
happier when Janice shyly asked if she could stay home with them sometimes, too,
“Remember how your mother first found out about her beast and everybody got
scared and made her hide it?” All the young Thinksalots
nodded. They’d heard the story before, of course, but it tended to get better
with age and telling. “The finger bones belonged to
the first man who tried to slay her. She bit them clean off in battle. Her
family never forgave her for it because that man was an important tribal chief
who wanted to marry her. But she knew she was made for me and couldn’t
possibly marry anyone else, so she fought for her honor and virtue like a
demon—” “Until she turned into one,”
Karen finished excitedly. “I can hardly wait until that happens to me.” “Well…” Seth cleared his
throat as Janice walked into the room and made a gagging face at him. “I think
you’ll find if you ever reach that point, darling, that you’ll wish it happened
any other time than when it does.” “No I won’t,” Karen said
firmly. Janice shuddered
theatrically, then announced, “Bed time.” She reached for a twin. “But Uncle Simon—” “Is in Seattle and has his own story for
another time.” “And then there’s the part about daddy becoming a Thinksalot
instead of you becoming a Drake…” “Because I’m Indian and our group is matriarchal which means the
men marry into my tribe instead of the other way around,” Janice said
patiently. “You would think I’m explaining this to a television audience the
way you like this story repeated.” “We just like to keep the facts straight,” Michael told her. Brokenoggin
Falls blue moon and briefly contemplated what interesting things puberty might
have in store for them in a few years when they found out exactly what kind of
creatures they’re vampyre/ancient-tribal-werewolf-dragon-demon beast might have
created. And then they got right down to the bare facts
of things and fucked each other’s brains out. |
||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||
|